This is a modern-English version of Bacon's Essays, and Wisdom of the Ancients, originally written by Bacon, Francis.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
BACON’S ESSAYS
AND
WISDOM OF THE ANCIENTS
WITH A BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE BY A. SPIERS
PREFACE BY B. MONTAGU, AND NOTES
BY DIFFERENT WRITERS
WITH A BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE BY A. SPIERS
PREFACE BY B. MONTAGU, AND NOTES
BY DIFFERENT WRITERS

BOSTON
LITTLE, BROWN, AND COMPANY
BOSTON
LITTLE, BROWN AND COMPANY
Copyright, 1884,
By Little, Brown, and Company.
The University Press, Cambridge, Mass., U. S. A.
Copyright, 1884,
By Little, Brown and Company.
The University Press, Cambridge, MA, USA.
ADVERTISEMENT.
In preparing the present volume for the press, use has been freely made of several publications which have recently appeared in England. The Biographical Notice of the author is taken from an edition of the Essays, by A. Spiers, Ph. D. To this has been added the Preface to Pickering’s edition of the Essays and Wisdom of the Ancients, by Basil Montagu, Esq. Parker’s edition, by Thomas Markby, M. A., has furnished the arrangement of the Table prefixed to the Essays, and also “the references to the most important quotations.” The Notes, including the translations of the Latin, are chiefly copied from Bohn’s edition, prepared by Joseph Devey, M. A. We have given the modern translation of the Wisdom of the Ancients contained in Bohn’s edition, in preference to that “done by Sir Arthur Gorges,” although the last mentioned has a claim upon regard, as having been made by a contemporary of Lord Bacon, and published in his lifetime. Its language is in the style of English current in the author’s age, and for this reason may resemble more nearly what the philosopher himself would have used, had he composed the work in his own tongue instead of Latin.
In preparing this volume for publication, we've widely used several recent publications from England. The Biographical Notice of the author is taken from an edition of the Essays by A. Spiers, Ph. D. We’ve also included the Preface to Pickering's edition of the Essays and Wisdom of the Ancients by Basil Montagu, Esq. Parker's edition by Thomas Markby, M. A., provided the structure of the Table that precedes the Essays, along with “the references to the most important quotations.” The Notes, including the translations of the Latin, are mainly taken from Bohn's edition prepared by Joseph Devey, M. A. We opted for the modern translation of the Wisdom of the Ancients found in Bohn's edition instead of the one “done by Sir Arthur Gorges,” even though the latter has merit for being created by a contemporary of Lord Bacon and published during his lifetime. Its language reflects the English style of the author's time, which might resemble what the philosopher would have used if he had written the work in his own language instead of Latin.
CONTENTS.
PAGE | |
Preface by B. Montagu, Esq. | xi |
Introductory Notice of the Life and Writings of Bacon, by A. Spiers, Ph. D. Introductory Notice of the Life and Writings of Bacon, by A. Spiers, Ph. D. | 1 |
ESSAYS; OR, COUNSELS CIVIL AND MORAL. | ||||
NO. | ||||
1. | Of Truth | 1625; | 57 | |
2. | Of Death | 1612; | enlarged 1625 | 62 |
3. | Of Unity in Religion; Of Unity in Faith; | Of Religion 1612; rewritten 1625 Of Religion 1612; revised 1625 | 65 | |
4. | Of Revenge | 1625; | 73 | |
5. | Of Adversity | 1625; | 75 | |
6. | Of Simulation and Dissimulation Simulation and Dissimulation | 1625; | 78 | |
7. | Of Parents and Children Of Parents and Kids | 1612; | enlarged 1625 | 82 |
8. | Of Marriage and Single Life Of Marriage and Singleness | 1612; | slightly enlarged 1625 | 84 |
9. | Of Envy Of Jealousy | 1625; | 87 | |
10. | Of Love Love's Journey | 1612; | rewritten 1625 | 95 |
11. | Of Great Place Of Amazing Place | 1612; | slightly enlarged 1625 | 98 |
12. | Of Boldness Of Confidence | 1625; | 103 | |
13. | Of Goodness, and Goodness of Nature Of Goodness, and Goodness of Nature | 1612; | enlarged 1625 | 105 |
14. | Of Nobility Of Nobility | 1612; | rewritten 1625 | 110 |
15. | Of Seditions and Troubles Of Rebellions and Issues | 1625 | 113 | |
16. | viOf Atheism Of Atheism | 1612; | slightly enlarged 1625 | 124 |
17. | Of Superstition About Superstition | 1612; | ” ” 1625 | 130 |
18. | Of Travel Traveling | 1625; | 132 | |
19. | Of Empire Of Empire | 1612; | much enlarged 1625 | 135 |
20. | Of Counsels Of Advice | 1612; | enlarged 1625 | 143 |
21. | Of Delays About Delays | 1625; | 151 | |
22. | Of Cunning Of Cleverness | 1612; | rewritten 1625 | 153 |
23. | Of Wisdom for a Man’s Self Of Wisdom for a Man’s Self | 1612; | enlarged 1625 | 159 |
24. | Of Innovations Innovations | 1625; | 161 | |
25. | Of Dispatch Dispatches | 1612; | 163 | |
26. | Of Seeming Wise Of Appearing Wise | 1612; | 166 | |
27. | Of Friendship Friendship | 1612; | rewritten 1625 | 168 |
28. | Of Expense Of Spending | 1597; | enlarged 1612; and again 1625 | 179 |
29. | Of the true Greatness of Kingdoms and Estates Of the true greatness of kingdoms and estates | 1612; | enlarged 1625 | 181 |
30. | Of Regimen of Health Of Health Regimen | 1597; | enlarged 1612; again 1625 | 195 |
31. | Of Suspicion Of Doubt | 1625; | 197 | |
32. | Of Discourse Of Conversation | 1597; | slightly enlarged 1612; again 1625 | 199 |
33. | Of Plantations Of Plantations | 1625; | 202 | |
34. | Of Riches Of Wealth | 1612; | much enlarged 1625 | 207 |
35. | Of Prophecies Of Predictions | 1625; | 212 | |
36. | Of Ambition Of Ambition | 1612; | enlarged 1625 | 217 |
37. | Of Masques and Triumphs Of Masks and Triumphs | 1625; | 218 | |
38. | Of Nature in Men Of Nature in People | 1612; | enlarged 1625 | 223 |
39. | Of Custom and Education Of Tradition and Education | 1612; | ” ” | 225 |
40. | Of Fortune Of Luck | 1612; | slightly enlarged 1625 | 228 |
41. | Of Usury On Usury | 1625; | 231 | |
42. | viiOf Youth and Age Of Youth and Age | 1612; | slightly enlarged 1625 | 237 |
43. | Of Beauty Of Beauty | 1612; | ” ” 1625 | 240 |
44. | Of Deformity Of Imperfection | 1612; | somewhat altered 1625 | 241 |
45. | Of Building Of Construction | 1625; | 243 | |
46. | Of Gardens Of Gardens | 1625; | 249 | |
47. | Of Negotiating Negotiation Skills | 1597; | enlarged 1612; very slightly altered 1625 | 259 |
48. | Of Followers and Friends Of Followers and Friends | 1597; | slightly enlarged 1625 | 261 |
49. | Of Suitors Of Prospective Partners | 1597; | enlarged 1625 | 264 |
50. | Of Studies On Studying | 1597; | ” 1625 | 266 |
51. | Of Faction Of Group | 1597; | much enlarged 1625 | 269 |
52. | Of Ceremonies and Respects Of Ceremonies and Respect | 1597; | enlarged 1625 | 271 |
53. | Of Praise Of Praise | 1612; | ” 1625 | 273 |
54. | Of Vainglory Of Vanity | 1612; | 276 | |
55. | Of Honor and Reputation Of Honor and Reputation | 1597; | omitted 1612; republished 1625 | 279 |
56. | Of Judicature Of Judiciary | 1612; | 282 | |
57. | Of Anger About Anger | 1625; | 289 | |
58. | Of the Vicissitude of Things Of the Changes of Things | 1625; | 292 |
APPENDIX TO ESSAYS.
1. | Fragment of an Essay of Fame Fragment of an Essay of Fame | 301 |
2. | Of a King Of a King | 303 |
3. | An Essay on Death An Essay About Death | 307 |
THE WISDOM OF THE ANCIENTS; A SERIES OF
MYTHOLOGICAL FABLES.
Preface | 317 | |
1. | Cassandra, or Divination. Explained of too free and unseasonable Advice Cassandra, or Divination. Explained as overly bold and poorly timed advice. | 323 |
2. | Typhon, or a Rebel. Explained of Rebellion Typhon, or a Rebel. Explained of Rebellion | 324 |
3. | 327 | |
4. | Narcissus, or Self-Love Narcissus, or Self-Love | 329 |
5. | The River Styx, or Leagues. Explained of Necessity, in the Oaths or Solemn Leagues of Princes The River Styx, or Leagues. Explained as Necessary, in the Oaths or Solemn Leagues of Princes. | 331 |
6. | Pan, or Nature. Explained of Natural Philosophy Pan, or Nature. Explained in Natural Philosophy | 333 |
7. | Perseus, or War. Explained of the Preparation and Conduct necessary to War Perseus, or War. Explained the Preparation and Conduct necessary for War. | 343 |
8. | Endymion, or a Favorite. Explained of Court Favorites Endymion, or a Favorite. Explained about Court Favorites | 348 |
9. | The Sister of the Giants, or Fame. Explained of Public Detraction The Sister of the Giants, or Fame. Explained of Public Criticism | 350 |
10. | Acteon and Pentheus, or a Curious Man. Explained of Curiosity, or Prying into the Secrets of Princes and Divine Mysteries Acteon and Pentheus, or a Curious Man. Explained of Curiosity, or Snooping into the Secrets of Princes and Divine Mysteries | 351 |
11. | Orpheus, or Philosophy. Explained of Natural and Moral Philosophy Orpheus, or Philosophy. Explained of Natural and Moral Philosophy | 353 |
12. | Cœlum, or Beginnings. Explained of the Creation, or Origin of all Things Cœlum, or Beginnings. Explained as the Creation, or Origin of all Things | 357 |
13. | Proteus, or Matter. Explained of Matter and its Changes Proteus, or Matter. Explained Matter and its Changes | 360 |
14. | Memnon, or a Youth too forward. Explained of the fatal Precipitancy of Youth Memnon, or a Young Man Too Eager. Discussed the disastrous impulsiveness of youth. | 363 |
15. | Tythonus, or Satiety. Explained of Predominant Passions Tythonus, or Satisfaction. Explained through Dominant Passions | 364 |
16. | Juno’s Suitor, or Baseness. Explained of Submission and Abjection Juno’s Suitor, or Lowly. Explained through Submission and Humiliation | 365 |
17. | Cupid, or an Atom. Explained of the Corpuscular Philosophy Cupid, or an Atom. Explained of the Particle Philosophy | 366 |
18. | Diomed, or Zeal. Explained of Persecution, or Zeal for Religion Diomed, or Zeal. Explained as Persecution, or Passion for Faith. | 371 |
19. | Dædalus, or Mechanical Skill. Explained of Arts and Artists in Kingdoms and States Dædalus, or Mechanical Skill. An Explanation of Arts and Artists in Kingdoms and States | 374 |
20. | Ericthonius, or Imposture. Explained of the improper Use of Force in Natural Philosophy Ericthonius, or Imposture. Explained the improper Use of Force in Natural Philosophy. | 378 |
21. | ix Deucalion, or Restitution. Explained of a useful Hint in Natural Philosophy Deucalion, or Restoration. Explained as a helpful insight in Natural Philosophy | 379 |
22. | Nemesis, or the Vicissitude of Things. Explained of the Reverses of Fortune Nemesis, or the Ups and Downs of Life. Explained through the Turns of Fortune | 380 |
23. | Achelous, or Battle. Explained of War by Invasion Achelous, or Battle. Explained as War through Invasion | 383 |
24. | Dionysus, or Bacchus. Explained of the Passions Dionysus, or Bacchus. An Explanation of the Emotions | 384 |
25. | Atalanta and Hippomenes, or Gain. Explained of the Contest betwixt Art and Nature Atalanta and Hippomenes, or Gain. Explained of the Contest between Art and Nature | 389 |
26. | Prometheus, or the State of Man. Explained of an Overruling Providence, and of Human Nature Prometheus, or the State of Man. Explained by an Overruling Providence, and by Human Nature | 391 |
27. | Icarus and Scylla and Charybdis, or the Middle Way. Explained of Mediocrity in Natural and Moral Philosophy Icarus and Scylla and Charybdis, or the Middle Way. Explained of Mediocrity in Natural and Moral Philosophy | 407 |
28. | Sphinx, or Science. Explained of the Sciences Sphinx, or Science. Explained of the Sciences | 409 |
29. | Proserpine, or Spirit. Explained of the Spirit included in Natural Bodies Proserpine, or Spirit. An explanation of the Spirit found in Natural Bodies | 413 |
30. | Metis, or Counsel. Explained of Princes and their Council Metis, or Counsel. Explanation of Rulers and their Advisors | 419 |
31. | The Sirens, or Pleasures. Explained of Men’s Passion for Pleasures The Sirens, or Pleasures. Explaining Men's Passion for Pleasures | 420 |
PREFACE.
In the early part of the year 1597, Lord Bacon’s first publication appeared. It is a small 12mo. volume, entitled “Essayes, Religious Meditations, Places of Perswasion and Disswasion.” It is dedicated
In the early part of 1597, Lord Bacon’s first publication came out. It’s a small 12mo volume called “Essays, Religious Meditations, Places of Persuasion and Dissuasion.” It’s dedicated
“To M. Anthony Bacon, his deare Brother.
To M. Anthony Bacon, my dear Brother.
“Louing and beloued Brother, I doe nowe like some that have an Orcharde ill Neighbored, that gather their Fruit before it is ripe, to preuent stealing. These Fragments of my Conceites were going to print, To labour the staie of them had bin troublesome, and subiect to interpretation; to let them passe had beene to aduenture the wrong they mought receiue by vntrue Coppies, or by some Garnishment, which it mought please any that should set them forth to bestow vpon them. Therefore I helde it best as they passed long agoe from my Pen, without any further disgrace, then the weaknesse of the Author. And as I did euer hold, there mought be as great a vanitie in retiring and withdrawing mens conceites (except they bee of some nature) from the World, as in obtruding them: So in these particulars I haue played myself the Inquisitor, and find nothing to my vnderstanding in them contrarie or infectious to the state of Religion, or Manners, but rather (as I suppose) medecinable. Only I disliked now to put them out, because they will be like the late new Halfepence,xii which, though the Siluer were good, yet the Peeces were small. But since they would not stay with their Master, but would needes trauaile abroade, I haue preferred them to you that are next my selfe, Dedicating them, such as they are, to our Loue, in the depth whereof (I assure you) I sometimes wish your Infirmities translated vppon my selfe, that her Maiestie mought haue the Seruice of so actiue and able a Mind, and I mought be with excuse confined to these Contemplations and Studies for which I am fittest, so commend I you to the Preseruation of the Diuine Maiestie: From my Chamber at Graies Inne, this 30 of Januarie, 1597. Your entire Louing Brother, Fran. Bacon.”
"Dearly loved Brother, I feel like someone with a poorly situated orchard who picks their fruit before it's ripe to prevent theft. I was about to have these fragments of my thoughts printed. Revising them would have been a hassle and opened them up to interpretation. If left unprinted, they could be misrepresented by fake copies or altered by anyone who might publish them. So, I decided it was best to keep them exactly as they were when they first came from my pen, with no additional shame beyond the author's shortcomings. As I’ve always believed, there can be just as much vanity in hiding and withdrawing people’s ideas (unless they have some value) from the world as in forcing them on others. So, in this case, I acted as my own critic and found nothing in them that contradicts or harms religion or morals. Instead, I think they could actually be beneficial. I hesitated to publish them now because they’ll be like recently minted halfpennies—small coins, despite the good silver. However, since they wouldn’t stay with their creator and wanted to roam about, I’ve chosen to share them with you, who are closest to me. I dedicate them, just as they are, to our bond. Deep down, I sometimes wish your shortcomings were mine so that Her Majesty could have the service of such an active and capable mind, and I could, with an excuse, be focused on these contemplations and studies for which I am best suited. So I entrust you to the protection of the Divine Majesty. From my chamber at Gray's Inn, this 30th of January, 1597. Your devoted loving Brother, Fran. Bacon."
The Essays, which are ten in number, abound with condensed thought and practical wisdom, neatly, pressly, and weightily stated, and, like all his early works, are simple, without imagery. They are written in his favorite style of aphorisms, although each essay is apparently a continued work, and without that love of antithesis and false glitter to which truth and justness of thought are frequently sacrificed by the writers of maxims.
The Essays, which number ten, are full of concise ideas and practical wisdom, presented clearly and thoughtfully, and like all his early works, they are straightforward and free of imagery. They are written in his preferred style of aphorisms, though each essay is seemingly a continuous piece, lacking the fondness for contrast and superficial flair that often leads to the compromise of truth and clarity of thought in the writing of maxims.
A second edition, with a translation of the Meditationes Sacræ, was published in the next year; and another edition enlarged in 1612, when he was solicitor-general, containing thirty-eight essays; and one still more enlarged in 1625, containing fifty-eight essays, the year before his death.
A second edition, with a translation of the Meditationes Sacræ, was published the following year; and another expanded edition came out in 1612, while he was solicitor-general, featuring thirty-eight essays; and yet another, even more expanded edition was released in 1625, containing fifty-eight essays, the year before his death.
The Essays in the subsequent editions are much augmented, according to his own words: “I always alter when I add, so that nothing is finished till all is finished,” and they are adorned by happy and familiar illustration, as in the essay of Wisdom for a Man’s Self, which concludes, in the edition of 1625, with thexiii following extract, not to be found in the previous edition: “Wisdom for a man’s self is, in many branches thereof, a depraved thing. It is the wisdom of rats, that will be sure to leave a house somewhat before it fall. It is the wisdom of the fox, that thrusts out the badger, who digged and made room for him. It is the wisdom of crocodiles, that shed tears when they would devour. But that which is specially to be noted is, that those which (as Cicero says of Pompey) are Sui Amantes sine Rivali are many times unfortunate. And whereas they have all their time sacrificed to themselves, they become in the end themselves sacrifices to the inconstancy of Fortune, whose wings they thought, by their self wisdom, to have pinioned.”
The essays in the later editions have been significantly expanded, as he himself stated: “I always make changes when I add, so nothing is truly complete until everything is complete,” and they are enhanced with vivid and relatable illustrations, like in the essay on Wisdom for a Man’s Self, which wraps up, in the 1625 edition, with thexiii following excerpt, not included in the previous edition: “Wisdom for a man’s self is, in many ways, a corrupt thing. It’s the wisdom of rats that tend to leave a house just before it collapses. It’s the wisdom of the fox that pushes out the badger, who dug and made space for him. It’s the wisdom of crocodiles that shed tears when they’re about to eat. But what’s particularly worth noting is that those who (as Cicero says of Pompey) are Sui Amantes sine Rivali often meet with misfortune. And while they dedicate all their time to themselves, they ultimately become sacrifices to the unpredictability of Fortune, whose wings they believed they had bound with their self-centered wisdom.”
So in the essay upon Adversity, on which he had deeply reflected before the edition of 1625, when it first appeared, he says: “The virtue of prosperity is temperance; the virtue of adversity is fortitude; which in morals is the more heroical virtue. Prosperity is the blessing of the Old Testament; adversity is the blessing of the New, which carrieth the great benediction, and the clearer revelation of God’s favor. Yet, even in the Old Testament, if you listen to David’s harp, you shall hear as many hearse-like airs as carols; and the pencil of the Holy Ghost hath labored more in describing the afflictions of Job than the felicities of Solomon. Prosperity is not without many fears and distastes, and adversity is not without comforts and hopes. We see in needle-works and embroideries, it is more pleasing to have a lively work upon a sad and solemn ground than to have a dark and melancholy work upon a lightsome ground; judge, therefore, of thexiv pleasure of the heart by the pleasure of the eye. Certainly, virtue is like precious odors, most fragrant when they are incensed, or crushed; for prosperity doth best discover vice, but adversity doth best discover virtue.”
So in the essay on Adversity, which he had thought about deeply before the 1625 edition, when it first came out, he says: “The virtue of prosperity is moderation; the virtue of adversity is strength, which is the more heroic virtue in moral terms. Prosperity is the blessing of the Old Testament; adversity is the blessing of the New, which carries the great blessing and a clearer revelation of God’s favor. Yet, even in the Old Testament, if you listen to David's harp, you’ll hear as many sad tunes as joyful ones; and the Holy Spirit has worked harder to describe Job's sufferings than Solomon's happiness. Prosperity comes with many fears and disappointments, while adversity offers comfort and hope. We see in needlework and embroidery that it's more enjoyable to have vibrant designs on a dark and serious background than dull and gloomy designs on a bright background; therefore, judge the pleasure of the heart by the pleasure of the eye. Truly, virtue is like precious scents, most fragrant when they are burned or crushed; for prosperity best reveals vice, but adversity best reveals virtue.”
The Essays were immediately translated into French and Italian, and into Latin, by some of his friends, amongst whom were Hacket, Bishop of Lichfield, and his constant, affectionate friend, Ben Jonson.
The Essays were quickly translated into French and Italian, as well as Latin, by some of his friends, including Hacket, Bishop of Lichfield, and his loyal, close friend, Ben Jonson.
His own estimate of the value of this work is thus stated in his letter to the Bishop of Winchester: “As for my Essays, and some other particulars of that nature, I count them but as the recreations of my other studies, and in that manner purpose to continue them; though I am not ignorant that these kind of writings would, with less pains and assiduity, perhaps yield more lustre and reputation to my name than the others I have in hand.”
His own assessment of the value of this work is expressed in his letter to the Bishop of Winchester: “Regarding my Essays and some other similar works, I consider them merely as a break from my other studies, and I plan to keep doing them in that way; although I understand that these types of writings could, with less effort and dedication, possibly bring more recognition and prestige to my name than the other projects I'm working on.”
Although it was not likely that such lustre and reputation would dazzle him, the admirer of Phocion, who, when applauded, turned to one of his friends, and asked, “What have I said amiss?” although popular judgment was not likely to mislead him who concludes his observations upon the objections to learning and the advantages of knowledge by saying: “Nevertheless, I do not pretend, and I know it will be impossible for me, by any pleading of mine, to reverse the judgment either of Æsop’s cock, that preferred the barleycorn before the gem; or of Midas, that being chosen judge between Apollo, president of the Muses, and Pan, god of the flocks, judged for plenty; or of Paris, that judged for beauty and love against wisdom and power. For these things continue as they have been; but so will that alsoxv continue whereupon learning hath ever relied and which faileth not, Justificata est sapientia a filiis suis:” yet he seems to have undervalued this little work, which for two centuries has been favorably received by every lover of knowledge and of beauty, and is now so well appreciated that a celebrated professor of our own times truly says: “The small volume to which he has given the title of ‘Essays,’ the best known and the most popular of all his works, is one of those where the superiority of his genius appears to the greatest advantage, the novelty and depth of his reflections often receiving a strong relief from the triteness of the subject. It may be read from beginning to end in a few hours; and yet after the twentieth perusal one seldom fails to remark in it something overlooked before. This, indeed, is a characteristic of all Bacon’s writings, and is only to be accounted for by the inexhaustible aliment they furnish to our own thoughts and the sympathetic activity they impart to our torpid faculties.”
Although it's unlikely that such fame and recognition would impress him, the admirer of Phocion, who, when applauded, turned to one of his friends and asked, “What did I say wrong?”—though popular opinion probably wouldn’t mislead someone who concludes his remarks about the drawbacks of learning and the benefits of knowledge by saying: “Still, I don’t claim, and I know it will be impossible for me, by any argument of mine, to change the judgment of Æsop’s cock, who preferred the barleycorn over the gem; or Midas, who, when chosen to judge between Apollo, the head of the Muses, and Pan, the god of the flocks, favored abundance; or Paris, who chose beauty and love over wisdom and power. These things remain as they always have; but likewise will that which learning has always depended upon and does not fail, Justificata est sapientia a filiis suis:” still seems to have undervalued this small work, which has been well received by every lover of knowledge and beauty for two centuries, and is now so appreciated that a well-known professor of our time rightly states: “The small volume he titled ‘Essays,’ the best-known and most popular of all his works, is one in which his genius truly shines, and the novelty and depth of his insights often stand out against the ordinary nature of the topic. It can be read from start to finish in a few hours; yet even after the twentieth reading, one usually discovers something overlooked before. This is indeed a characteristic of all Bacon’s writings, and can only be explained by the endless material they provide for our thoughts and the energizing effect they have on our dormant faculties.”
During his life six or more editions, which seem to have been pirated, were published; and after his death, two spurious essays, “Of Death,” and “Of a King,” the only authentic posthumous essay being the Fragment of an Essay on Fame, which was published by his friend and chaplain, Dr. Rawley.
During his life, six or more editions that appear to have been pirated were released; and after his death, two fake essays, “Of Death” and “Of a King,” were published, with the only genuine posthumous essay being the Fragment of an Essay on Fame, which was published by his friend and chaplain, Dr. Rawley.
This edition is a transcript of the edition of 1625, with the posthumous essays. In the life of Bacon1 there is a minute account of the different editions of the Essays and of their contents.
This edition is a transcript of the 1625 edition, including the posthumous essays. In Bacon's life1 there is a detailed account of the various editions of the Essays and what they contain.
They may shortly be stated as follows:—
They can be briefly stated as follows:—
First edition, 1597, genuine.
First edition, 1597, authentic.
There are two copies of this edition in the university library at Cambridge; and there is Archbishop Sancroft’s copy in Emanuel Library; there is a copy in the Bodleian, and I have a copy.
There are two copies of this edition in the university library at Cambridge, and there’s Archbishop Sancroft’s copy in Emanuel Library. There’s a copy in the Bodleian, and I have a copy.
Second edition, 1598, genuine.
Second edition, 1598, authentic.
Third edition, 1606, pirated.
3rd edition, 1606, pirated.
Fourth edition, entitled “The Essaies of Sir Francis Bacon, Knight, the Kings Solliciter Generall. Imprinted at London by Iohn Beale, 1612,” genuine. It was the intention of Sir Francis to have dedicated this edition to Henry, Prince of Wales; but he was prevented by the death of the prince on the 6th of November in that year. This appears by the following letter:—
Fourth edition, titled “The Essays of Sir Francis Bacon, Knight, the King’s Solicitor General. Printed in London by John Beale, 1612,” genuine. Sir Francis intended to dedicate this edition to Henry, Prince of Wales; however, he was stopped by the prince's death on November 6th of that year. This is shown in the following letter:—
To the Most High and Excellent Prince, Henry, Prince of Wales, Duke of Cornwall, and Earl of Chester.
To the Most High and Excellent Prince, Henry, Prince of Wales, Duke of Cornwall, and Earl of Chester.
It may please your Highness: Having divided my life into the contemplative and active part, I am desirous to give his Majesty and your Highness of the fruits of both, simple though they be. To write just treatises, requireth leisure in the writer and leisure in the reader, and therefore are not so fit, neither in regard of your Highness’s princely affairs nor in regard of my continual service; which is the cause that hath made me choose to write certain brief notes, set down rather significantly than curiously, which I have called Essays. The word is late, but the thing is ancient; for Seneca’s Epistles to Lucilius, if you mark them well, are but Essays; that is, dispersed meditations though conveyed in the form of epistles. These labors of mine, I know, cannot be worthy of your Highness, for what can be worthy of you? But my hope is, they may be as grains of salt, that will rather give you an appetite than offend you with satiety. And although they handle those things wherein xviiboth men’s lives and their persons are most conversant; yet what I have attained I know not; but I have endeavored to make them not vulgar, but of a nature whereof a man shall find much in experience and little in books; so as they are neither repetitions nor fancies. But, however, I shall most humbly desire your Highness to accept them in gracious part, and to conceive, that if I cannot rest but must show my dutiful and devoted affection to your Highness in these things which proceed from myself, I shall be much more ready to do it in performance of any of your princely commandments. And so wishing your Highness all princely felicity, I rest your Highness’s most humble servant,
Your Highness, I have divided my life into two parts: contemplation and action. I want to share with His Majesty and you the insights from both, simple as they may be. Writing formal essays takes time from both the writer and the reader, which isn’t really feasible given your royal responsibilities and my ongoing service. Therefore, I’ve decided to write some brief notes, presented more meaningfully than elaborately, which I’ve called Essays. The term is new, but the idea is old; if you look closely at Seneca’s Letters to Lucilius, they are essentially Essays—scattered reflections in the form of letters. I know my efforts may not be deserving of your Highness, as what could truly measure up to you? But I hope they serve as grains of salt to stimulate your interest rather than overwhelm you. Although they address matters relevant to both men’s lives and their characters, I can’t claim any great achievement; my goal was to make them unique, rooted in experience rather than just theory, so they aren’t simple repetitions or fanciful ideas. Still, I humbly request that your Highness accept them graciously and understand that while I can't help but express my loyal and devoted affection for you through my work, I will be even more eager to carry out any of your royal commands. Wishing your Highness all the best, I remain your most humble servant,
1612. Fr. Bacon.
It was dedicated as follows:—
It was dedicated like this:—
To my loving Brother, Sir John Constable, Knt.
To my dear brother, Sir John Constable, Knt.
My last Essaies I dedicated to my deare brother Master Anthony Bacon, who is with God. Looking amongst my Papers this vacation, I found others of the same nature: which, if I myselfe shall not suffer to be lost, it seemeth the World will not; by the often printing of the former. Missing my Brother, I found you next; in respect of bond both of neare Alliance, and of straight Friendship and Societie, and particularly of communication in Studies. Wherein I must acknowledge my selfe beholding to you. For as my Businesse found rest in my Contemplations, so my Contemplations ever found rest in your loving Conference and Judgment. So wishing you all good, I remaine your louing Brother and Friend,
My last writings were dedicated to my dear brother Master Anthony Bacon, who is now with God. While going through my papers during this break, I discovered more of the same type: if I don’t let them slip away, it seems the world won’t either, since the previous ones have been published so frequently. Missing my brother, I turned to you next, because of our close family bond and our strong friendship and collaboration, especially in our shared studies. I want to express how much I owe you. Just as my work gained clarity through my thoughts, my thoughts have always gained clarity from your kind conversations and judgment. Wishing you all the best, I remain your loving brother and friend.
Fra. Bacon.
Fra. Bacon.
Fifth edition, 1612, pirated. Sixth edition, 1613, pirated. Seventh edition, 1624, pirated. Eighth edition, 1624, pirated. Ninth edition, entitled, “The Essayes or Covnsels, Civill and Morall, of Francis Lo. Vervlam,xviii Viscovnt St. Alban. Newly enlarged. London, Printed by Iohn Haviland for Hanna Barret and Richard Whitaker, and are to be sold at the Signe of the King’s Head in Paul’s Churchyard.” 1625, genuine.
Fifth edition, 1612, pirated. Sixth edition, 1613, pirated. Seventh edition, 1624, pirated. Eighth edition, 1624, pirated. Ninth edition, titled, “The Essays or Counsels, Civil and Moral, of Francis Lord Verulam,xviii Viscount St. Alban. Newly enlarged. London, Printed by John Haviland for Hannah Barret and Richard Whitaker, and available for sale at the Sign of the King’s Head in Paul’s Churchyard.” 1625, genuine.
This edition is a small quarto of 340 pages; it clearly was published by Lord Bacon; and in the next year, 1626, Lord Bacon died. The Dedication is as follows, to the Duke of Buckingham:—
This edition is a small quarto of 340 pages; it was clearly published by Lord Bacon; and the following year, 1626, Lord Bacon died. The Dedication is as follows, to the Duke of Buckingham:—
To the Right Honorable my very good Lo. the Duke of Buckingham his Grace, Lo. High Admirall of England.
To the Right Honorable my very good Lord, the Duke of Buckingham his Grace, Lord High Admiral of England.
Excellent Lo.:—Salomon saies, A good Name is as a precious Oyntment; and I assure myselfe, such wil your Grace’s Name bee, with Posteritie. For your Fortune and Merit both, haue beene eminent. And you haue planted things that are like to last. I doe now publish my Essayes; which, of all my other Workes, have beene most currant: for that, as it seemes, they come home to Mens Businesse and Bosomes. I haue enlarged them both in number and weight, so that they are indeed a new Work. I thought it therefore agreeable to my Affection, and Obligation to your Grace, to prefix your Name before them, both in English and in Latine. For I doe conceiue, that the Latine Volume of them (being in the vniuersal language) may last as long as Bookes last. My Instauration I dedicated to the King: my Historie of Henry the Seventh (which I haue now also translated into Latine), and my Portions of Naturall History, to the Prince: and these I dedicate to your Grace: being of the best Fruits, that by the good encrease which God gives to my pen and labours, I could yeeld. God leade your Grace by the Hand. Your Graces most obliged and faithfull Seruant.
Dear Lord.—Salomon says a good name is like a precious perfume; and I'm sure that your name will be treasured by future generations. Your wealth and achievements have been extraordinary, and you have created things that are likely to last. I am now releasing my Essays, which, out of all my works, have been the most popular because they resonate with people's everyday lives and feelings. I have expanded them both in quantity and depth, making them genuinely a new work. I thought it fitting, out of my affection and duty to your Grace, to place your name at the forefront, in both English and Latin. I believe that the Latin version (being in the universal language) may endure as long as books do. I dedicated my Instauration to the King, my History of Henry the Seventh (which I have also translated into Latin), and my sections on Natural History to the Prince; and these I dedicate to your Grace, being the best results from the blessings that God has bestowed on my writing and efforts that I could offer. May God guide your Grace. Your Grace’s most devoted and faithful servant.
Fr. St. Alban.
Fr. St. Alban.
Of this edition, Lord Bacon sent a copy to the Marquis Fiat, with the following letter:2—
Of this edition, Lord Bacon sent a copy to the Marquis Fiat, along with this letter:2—
“Monsieur l’Ambassadeur mon Filz: Voyant que vostre Excellence faict et traite Mariages, non seulement entre les Princes d’Angleterre et de France, mais aussi entre les langues (puis que faictes traduire mon Liure de l’Advancement des Sciences en Francois) i’ai bien voulu vous envoyer mon Liure dernierement imprimé que i’avois pourveu pour vous, mais i’estois en doubte, de le vous envoyer, pour ce qu’il estoit escrit en Anglois. Mais a’ cest’heure pour la raison susdicte ie le vous envoye. C’est un Recompilement de mes Essays Morales et Civiles; mais tellement enlargiés et enrichiés, tant de nombre que de poix, que c’est de fait un ouvre nouveau. Ie vous baise les mains, et reste vostre tres affectionée Ami, et tres humble Serviteur.
Dear Ambassador, my son: Since your Excellency is arranging marriages not only between the princes of England and France but also connecting our languages (since you are having my book on the Advancement of Sciences translated into French), I wanted to send you my recently printed book that I've prepared for you. I was hesitant to send it because it was written in English. But now, for the reasons mentioned, I’m sending it to you. It’s a collection of my Moral and Civil Essays, but it's been so enriched and expanded, both in number and substance, that it’s essentially a new work. I kiss your hands and remain your very affectionate friend and humble servant.
THE SAME IN ENGLISH.
THE SAME IN ENGLISH.
My Lord Ambassador, my Son: Seeing that your Excellency makes and treats of Marriages, not only betwixt the Princes of France and England, but also betwixt their languages (for you have caused my book of the Advancement of Learning to be translated into French), I was much inclined to make you a present of the last book which I published, and which I had in readiness for you. I was sometimes in doubt whether I ought to have sent it to you, because it was written in the English tongue. But now, for that very reason, I send it to you. It is a recompilement of my Essays Moral and Civil; but in such manner enlarged and enriched both in number and weight, that it is in effect a new work. I kiss your hands, and remain your most affectionate friend and most humble servant, &c.
My Lord Ambassador, my Son: Since your Excellency is involved in arranging marriages, not only between the princes of France and England, but also between their languages (as you've had my book on the Advancement of Learning translated into French), I was eager to give you my latest book, which I had ready for you. I sometimes hesitated to send it because it was written in English. But now, for that very reason, I am sending it to you. It’s a revised version of my Essays Moral and Civil, but it’s been so expanded and enriched in both content and depth that it is essentially a new work. I kiss your hands and remain your most devoted friend and humble servant, &c.
Of the translation of the Essays into Latin, Bacon speaks in the following letter:—
Of the translation of the Essays into Latin, Bacon talks about it in the following letter:—
“To Mr. Tobie Mathew: It is true my labors are now most set to have those works which I had formerly published, as that of Advancement of Learning, that of Henry VII., that of the Essays, being retractate and made more perfect, well translated into Latin by the help of some good pens which forsake me not. For these modern languages will, at one time or other, play the bankrupt with books; and since I have lost much time with this age, I would be glad, as God shall give me leave, to recover it with posterity. For the Essay of Friendship, while I took your speech of it for a cursory request, I took my promise for a compliment. But since you call for it, I shall perform it.”
“To Mr. Tobie Mathew: It’s true that I’m currently focused on revising my previously published works, like the Advancement of Learning, the one about Henry VII, and the Essays, which I’m improving. They’ve been translated well into Latin with the help of some talented friends who haven’t let me down. These modern languages will eventually become outdated, and since I’ve already lost a lot of time with this generation, I hope, if God allows, to make up for it with future generations. As for the Essay on Friendship, when I first thought about your request casually, I considered my promise a mere formality. But now that you’ve asked for it, I’ll make sure to follow through.”
In his letter to Father Fulgentio, giving some account of his writings, he says:—
In his letter to Father Fulgentio, where he talks about his writings, he says:—
“The Novum Organum should immediately follow; but my moral and political writings step in between as being more finished. These are, the History of King Henry VII., and the small book, which, in your language, you have called Saggi Morali, but I give it a graver title, that of Sermones Fideles, or Interiora Rerum, and these Essays will not only be enlarged in number, but still more in substance.”
“The Novum Organum should be next; however, my moral and political writings come first because they are more refined. These include the History of King Henry VII and the brief book you call Saggi Morali, but I prefer the more serious titles Sermones Fideles or Interiora Rerum. I intend to increase both the number of these essays and their content.”
The nature of the Latin edition, and of the Essays in general, is thus stated by Archbishop Tenison:—
The nature of the Latin edition, and of the Essays in general, is thus stated by Archbishop Tenison:—
“The Essays, or Counsels Civil and Moral, though a by-work also, do yet make up a book of greater weight by far than the Apothegms; and coming home to men’s business and bosoms, his lordship entertained this persuasion concerning them, that the Latin volume might last as long as books should last. His lordship wrote them in the English tongue, and enlarged them as occasion served, and at last added to them the Colors of Good and Evil, which are likewise found in his book De Augmentis. The Latin translation of them was xxia work performed by divers hands: by those of Dr. Hacket (late Bishop of Lichfield), Mr. Benjamin Jonson (the learned and judicious poet,) and some others, whose names I once heard from Dr. Rawley, but I cannot now recall them. To this Latin edition he gave the title of Sermones Fideles, after the manner of the Jews, who called the words Adagies, or Observations of the Wise, Faithful Sayings; that is, credible propositions worthy of firm assent and ready acceptance. And (as I think), he alluded more particularly, in this title, to a passage in Ecclesiastes, where the preacher saith, that he sought to find out Verba Delectabilia (as Tremellius rendereth the Hebrew), pleasant words; (that is, perhaps, his Book of Canticles;) and Verba Fidelia (as the same Tremellius), Faithful Sayings; meaning, it may be, his collection of Proverbs. In the next verse, he calls them Words of the Wise, and so many goads and nails given ab eodem pastore, from the same shepherd [of the flock of Israel”].
“The Essays, or Civil and Moral Counsels, might be a side project, but they make a much more significant book than the Apothegms. Tackling real-life issues and emotions, the author thought that the Latin version could last as long as books are around. He wrote them in English, expanded them as needed, and eventually added the Colors of Good and Evil, which is also part of his book De Augmentis. The Latin translation was completed by various contributors, including Dr. Hacket (the former Bishop of Lichfield), Mr. Benjamin Jonson (the learned and insightful poet), and others whose names I used to know from Dr. Rawley but can’t remember now. He named this Latin edition Sermones Fideles, following the Jewish tradition that referred to such works as Adagies, or Observations of the Wise, indicating credible statements worthy of strong belief and acceptance. I think he specifically cited a passage in Ecclesiastes, where the preacher talks about seeking out Verba Delectabilia (as Tremellius translates the Hebrew), or pleasant words (which might refer to his Book of Canticles), and Verba Fidelia (also from Tremellius), or Faithful Sayings, likely referencing his collection of Proverbs. In the next verse, he calls them Words of the Wise and describes them as many goads and nails given ab eodem pastore, by the same shepherd [of the flock of Israel].”
In the year 1638, Rawley published, in folio, a volume containing, amongst other works, Sermones Fideles, ab ipso Honoratissimo Auctore, præterquam in paucis, Latinitate donati. In his address to the reader, he says:—
In 1638, Rawley published a folio volume that included, among other works, Sermones Fideles, by the esteemed author himself, except for a few, translated into Latin. In his address to the reader, he says:—
Accedunt, quas priùs Delibationes Civiles et Morales inscripserat; Quas etiam in Linguas plurimas Modernas translatas esse novit; sed eas posteà, et Numero, et Pondere, auxit; In tantum, ut veluti Opus Novum videri possint; Quas mutato Titulo, Sermones Fideles, sive Interiora Rerum, inscribi placuit. The title-page and dedication are annexed: Sermones Fideles sive Interiora Rerum. Per Franciscum Baconum Baronem de Vervlamio, Vice-Comitem Sancti Albani. Londini Excusum typis Edwardi Griffin. Prostant ad Insignia Regia in Cœmeterio D. Pauli, apud Richardum Whitakerum, 1638.
They are added to those Civil and Moral Deliberations that were previously written; he also knows that they have been translated into many modern languages, but he has since expanded both in number and in significance; so much so that they could be seen as a new work; with a new title, Faithful Discourses, or The Inner Workings of Things, he chose to call them. The title page and dedication are attached: Faithful Discourses or The Inner Workings of Things. By Francis Bacon, Baron of Verulam, Viscount St. Alban. Printed in London by Edward Griffin. Available at the Royal Arms in the Cemetery of St. Paul, at Richard Whitaker's, 1638.
Illustri et Excellenti Domino Georgio Duci Buckinghamiæ, Summo Angliæ Admirallio.
To the Illustrious and Excellent Lord George Duke of Buckingham, Supreme Admiral of England.
Honoratissime Domine, Salomon inquit, Nomen bonum est instar Vnguenti fragrantis et pretiosi; Neque dubito, quin tale futurum sit Nomen tuum apud Posteros. Etenim et Fortuna, et Merita tua, præcelluerunt. Et videris ea plantasse, quæ sint duratura. In lucem jam edere mihi visum est Delibationes meas, quæ ex omnibus meis Operibus fuerunt acceptissimæ: Quia forsitan videntur, præ cæteris, Hominum Negotia stringere, et in sinus fluere. Eas autem auxi, et Numero, et Pondere; In tantum, ut planè Opus Novum sint. Consentaneum igitur duxi, Affectui, et Obligationi meæ, erga Illustrissimam Dominationem tuam, ut Nomen tuum illis præfigam, tam in Editione Anglicâ, quam Latinâ. Etenim, in bonâ spe sum, Volumen earum in Latinam (Linguam scilicet universalem), versum, posse durare, quamdiù Libri et Literæ durent. Instaurationem meam Regi dicavi: Historiam Regni Henrici Septimi (quam etiam in Latinum verti et Portiones meas Naturalis Historiæ, Principi): Has autem Delibationes Illustrissimæ Dominationi tuæ dico, Cùm sint, ex Fructibus optimis, quos Gratia divinâ Calami mei laboribus indulgente, exhibere potui. Deus illustrissimam Dominationem tuam manu ducat. Illustrissimæ Dominationis tuæ Servus Devinctissimus et Fidelis.
Honorable Sir, Solomon said, A good name is like precious and fragrant oil; I have no doubt that your name will be regarded as such by future generations. Indeed, both Fortune and your Merit have been evident. You will see that you have sown the seeds of what will last. I believe it is the right time to publish my Treatises, which have been the most well-received of all my works: because they may resonate with the Affairs of Men and reach their hearts more than others. I have expanded them in both number and weight; to such an extent that they are undoubtedly a new work. Therefore, I thought it proper, out of my Affection and Gratitude toward your Illustrious Lordship, to attach your name to them, both in the English Edition and in Latin. Indeed, I hope that the volume will endure in Latin (which, of course, is the universal language), as long as Books and Letters exist. I dedicated my Restoration to the King: the History of the Reign of Henry the Seventh (which I also translated into Latin and included parts of my Natural History, for the Prince): I present these Treatises to your Illustrious Lordship, as they come from the best fruits that, through divine Grace and the effort of my pen, I could offer. May God guide your illustrious Lordship. Your most devoted and faithful servant.
Fr. S. Alban.
Fr. S. Alban.
In the year 1618, the Essays, together with the Wisdom of the Ancients, was translated into Italian, and dedicated to Cosmo de Medici, by Tobie Mathew; and in the following year the Essays were translated into French by Sir Arthur Gorges, and printed in London.
In 1618, the Essays and the Wisdom of the Ancients were translated into Italian and dedicated to Cosmo de Medici by Tobie Mathew. The next year, the Essays were translated into French by Sir Arthur Gorges and printed in London.
WISDOM OF THE ANCIENTS.
In the year 1609, as a relaxation from abstruse speculations, he published in Latin his interesting little work, De Sapientia Veterum.
In 1609, as a break from deep thinking, he published in Latin his engaging little work, De Sapientia Veterum.
This tract seems, in former times, to have been much valued. The fables, abounding with a union of deep thought and poetic beauty, are thirty-one in number, of which a part of The Sirens, or Pleasures, may be selected as a specimen.
This work seems to have been highly valued in the past. The fables, full of profound ideas and poetic beauty, number thirty-one, and a portion of The Sirens, or Pleasures, can be chosen as an example.
In this fable he explains the common but erroneous supposition that knowledge and the conformity of the will, knowing and acting, are convertible terms. Of this error, he, in his essay of Custom and Education, admonishes his readers, by saying: “Men’s thoughts are much according to their inclination; their discourse and speeches according to their learning and infused opinions, but their deeds are after as they have been accustomed; Æsop’s Damsel, transformed from a cat to a woman, sat very demurely at the board-end till a mouse ran before her.” In the fable of the Sirens he exhibits the same truth, saying: “The habitation of the Sirens was in certain pleasant islands, from whence, as soon as out of their watchtower they discovered any ships approaching, with their sweet tunes they would first entice and stay them, and, having them in their power, would destroy them; and, so great were the mischiefs they did, that these isles of the Sirens, even as far off as man can ken them, appeared all over white with the bones of unburied carcasses; by which it is signified that albeit the examples of afflictions be manixxivfest and eminent, yet they do not sufficiently deter us from the wicked enticements of pleasure.”
In this fable, he explains the common but incorrect belief that knowledge and willpower, knowing and acting, are interchangeable. In his essay on Custom and Education, he warns his readers, saying: “People’s thoughts often reflect their preferences; their discussions and speeches depend on what they’ve learned and the opinions they’ve absorbed, but their actions are shaped by their habits; Aesop’s Damsel, transformed from a cat into a woman, sat very quietly at the end of the table until a mouse ran in front of her.” In the fable of the Sirens, he illustrates the same point, saying: “The home of the Sirens was in certain beautiful islands, where, as soon as they spotted any ships approaching from their lookout, they would entice and stop them with their sweet songs, and once they had control, they would destroy them; the damage they caused was so great that these islands of the Sirens, even from a distance, looked white with the bones of unburied bodies; this shows that even though the examples of suffering are clear and prominent, they do not always stop us from the wicked temptations of pleasure.”
The following is the account of the different editions of this work: The first was published in 1609. In February 27, 1610, Lord Bacon wrote to Mr. Mathew, upon sending his book De Sapientia Veterum:—
The following is the account of the different editions of this work: The first was published in 1609. On February 27, 1610, Lord Bacon wrote to Mr. Mathew while sending his book De Sapientia Veterum:—
“Mr. Mathew: I do very heartily thank you for your letter of the 24th of August, from Salamanca; and in recompense therefore I send you a little work of mine that hath begun to pass the world. They tell me my Latin is turned into silver, and become current: had you been here, you should have been my inquisitor before it came forth; but, I think, the greatest inquisitor in Spain will allow it. But one thing you must pardon me if I make no haste to believe, that the world should be grown to such an ecstasy as to reject truth in philosophy, because the author dissenteth in religion; no more than they do by Aristotle or Averroes. My great work goeth forward; and after my manner, I alter even when I add; so that nothing is finished till all be finished. This I have written in the midst of a term and parliament; thinking no time so possessed, but that I should talk of these matters with so good and dear a friend. And so with my wonted wishes I leave you to God’s goodness.
Mr. Mathew: Thank you very much for your letter from Salamanca dated August 24th. In return, I’m sending you a piece of my work that’s starting to get some attention. People say my Latin has become something valuable and is well-received; if you had been here, you would have been my critic before it was published, but I think even the leading critic in Spain will approve. However, I must ask you to forgive me if I’m slow to believe that the world has become so enthusiastic that it dismisses truth in philosophy simply because the author has different religious views, just like they don’t disregard Aristotle or Averroes. My major work is making progress; as usual, I make changes even when I add new content, so nothing is truly finished until everything is complete. I've written this during a busy school term and parliamentary session, believing that no time is too busy to discuss these topics with a good and dear friend. With my usual best wishes, I leave you in God’s care.
“From Gray’s Inn, Feb. 27, 1610.”
“From Gray’s Inn, Feb. 27, 1610.”
And in his letter to Father Fulgentio, giving some account of his writings, he says: “My Essays will not only be enlarged in number, but still more in substance. Along with them goes the little piece De Sapientia Veterum.”
And in his letter to Father Fulgentio, providing some details about his writings, he says: “My Essays will not only increase in number, but even more in depth. Along with them comes the short piece De Sapientia Veterum.”
In the Advancement of Learning he says:—
In the Advancement of Learning, he states:—
“There remaineth yet another use of poesy parabolical, opposite to that which we last mentioned; for that tendeth xxvto demonstrate and illustrate that which is taught or delivered, and this other to retire and obscure it; that is, when the secrets and mysteries of religion, policy, or philosophy are involved in fables or parables. Of this in divine poesy we see the use is authorized. In heathen poesy we see the exposition of fables doth fall out sometimes with great felicity; as in the fable that the giants being overthrown in their war against the gods, the earth, their mother, in revenge thereof brought forth Fame,—
“There’s another way to use parabolic poetry that’s the opposite of what we just talked about; this one tends to hide and obscure what’s being taught or conveyed, especially when the secrets and mysteries of religion, politics, or philosophy are buried in fables or parables. In divine poetry, this approach is accepted. In pagan poetry, we sometimes see successful interpretations of fables, like the one where the giants, after being defeated in their battle against the gods, are avenged by the earth, their mother, who gives birth to Fame.—
Illam Terra parens, irâ irritata Deorum,Extremam, ut perhibent, Cœo Enceladoque sororemProgenuit,expounded, that when princes and monarchs have suppressed actual and open rebels, then the malignity of the people, which is the mother of rebellion, doth bring forth libels and slanders, and taxations of the State, which is of the same kind with rebellion, but more feminine. So in the fable, that the rest of the gods having conspired to bind Jupiter, Pallas called Briareus, with his hundred hands, to his aid; expounded, that monarchies need not fear any curbing of their absoluteness by mighty subjects, as long as by wisdom they keep the hearts of the people, who will be sure to come in on their side. So in the fable, that Achilles was brought up under Chiron, the centaur, who was part a man and part a beast, expounded ingeniously, but corruptly by Machiavel, that it belongeth to the education and discipline of princes to know as well how to play the part of the lion in violence, and the fox in guile, as of the man in virtue and justice. Nevertheless, in many the like encounters, I do rather think that the fable was first, and the exposition then devised, than that the moral was first, and thereupon the fable framed. For I find it was an ancient vanity in Chrysippus, that troubled himself with great contention to fasten the assertions of the stoics upon the fictions of the ancient poets; but yet that all the fables and fictions of the poets were but pleasure, and not figure, I xxviinterpose no opinion. Surely, of those poets which are now extant, even Homer himself (notwithstanding he was made a kind of Scripture by the latter schools of the Grecians), yet I should without any difficulty pronounce that his fables had no such inwardness in his own meaning; but what they might have upon a more original tradition, is not easy to affirm; for he was not the inventor of many of them.”
It explained that when kings and rulers have faced actual and open rebels, the people's resentment, which is the root of rebellion, leads to rumors and accusations, and criticism of the State, which resembles rebellion but is less aggressive. In the fable, when the other gods plotted to bind Jupiter, Pallas called on Briareus, with his hundred hands, for assistance; this suggests that monarchies don’t need to fear losing their absolute power to powerful subjects as long as they wisely keep the loyalty of the people, who will undoubtedly support them. Similarly, in the fable of Achilles being trained by Chiron, the centaur, who was part man and part beast, Machiavelli interpreted it cleverly but mistakenly, claiming that it’s important for rulers to balance a lion’s strength in violence with a fox’s cunning in deceit, alongside human virtues. However, I often think that in many similar stories, the fable came first, and the interpretation was created later, rather than the morality being the starting point from which the fable was developed. I notice that there was an old obsession in Chrysippus, who painstakingly tried to connect Stoic beliefs with the myths of ancient poets; yet, I believe that all the myths and tales of poets were simply for entertainment and not meant for deeper meaning. Certainly, among the poets we still have today, even Homer himself (though later raised to a kind of Scripture by later Greek schools), I would confidently say that his fables don’t carry profound meaning in his own interpretation; rather, any significance they may have from older traditions is hard to pinpoint, as he wasn’t the creator of many of them.
In the treatise De Augmentis the same sentiments will be found, with a slight alteration in the expressions. He says:—
In the treatise De Augmentis, you'll find the same ideas presented, with a few changes in the wording. He states:—
“There is another use of parabolical poesy opposite to the former, which tendeth to the folding up of those things, the dignity whereof deserves to be retired and distinguished, as with a drawn curtain; that is, when the secrets and mysteries of religion, policy, and philosophy are veiled and invested with fables and parables. But whether there be any mystical sense couched under the ancient fables of the poets, may admit some doubt; and, indeed, for our part, we incline to this opinion, as to think that there was an infused mystery in many of the ancient fables of the poets. Neither doth it move us that these matters are left commonly to school-boys and grammarians, and so are embased, that we should therefore make a slight judgment upon them, but contrariwise, because it is clear that the writings which recite those fables, of all the writings of men, next to sacred writ, are the most ancient; and that the fables themselves are far more ancient than they (being they are alleged by those writers, not as excogitated by them, but as credited and recepted before) seem to be, like a thin rarefied air, which, from the traditions of more ancient nations, fell into the flutes of the Grecians.”
“There's another way to interpret parabolic poetry that contrasts with the first, which tends to highlight things that should be kept hidden and separate, like drawing a curtain. This occurs when the secrets and mysteries of religion, politics, and philosophy are hidden behind fables and parables. However, it’s somewhat unclear if there's a deeper meaning concealed within the ancient fables of poets; in fact, we often believe that many of these ancient poets' fables have hidden mysteries within them. We’re not influenced by the idea that these topics are typically reserved for schoolboys and grammarians, which can devalue them. Instead, it’s clear that the writings telling these fables are, after sacred texts, some of the oldest human writings. The fables themselves are even older, as those writers refer to them not as their own creations, but as stories that were already widely recognized. They appear to be like a thin, rarefied air that, originating from the traditions of even more ancient cultures, flowed into the flutes of the Greeks.”
Of this tract, Archbishop Tenison, in his Baconiana, says:—
Of this tract, Archbishop Tenison, in his Baconiana, says:—
“In the seventh place, I may reckon his book De Sapientia Veterum, written by him in Latin, and set forth a second time with enlargement; and translated into English by Sir Arthur Gorges; a book in which the sages of former times are rendered more wise than it may be they were, by so dexterous an interpreter of their fables. It is this book which Mr. Sandys means, in those words which he hath put before his notes on the Metamorphosis of Ovid. ‘Of modern writers, I have received the greatest light from Geraldus, Pontanus, Ficinus, Vives, Comes, Scaliger, Sabinus, Pierius, and the crown of the latter, the Viscount of St. Albans.’
“In the seventh spot, I can mention his book De Sapientia Veterum, which he wrote in Latin and later published again with extra content; it was translated into English by Sir Arthur Gorges. This book makes the wise figures of the past seem even wiser, thanks to such a skilled interpreter of their stories. It’s this book that Mr. Sandys refers to in the introduction he provided before his notes on Ovid's Metamorphosis. ‘Among modern writers, I have learned the most from Geraldus, Pontanus, Ficinus, Vives, Comes, Scaliger, Sabinus, Pierius, and the standout of them all, the Viscount of St. Albans.’”
“It is true, the design of this book was instruction in natural and civil matters, either couched by the ancients under those fictions, or rather made to seem to be so by his lordship’s wit, in the opening and applying of them. But because the first ground of it is poetical story, therefore, let it have this place till a fitter be found for it.”
“It’s true that the purpose of this book was to teach about natural and civil matters, either presented by the ancients in those stories or made to seem that way through his lordship’s cleverness in introducing and explaining them. But since its foundation is a poetic story, let it remain here until a more suitable place is found for it.”
The author of Bacon’s Life, in the Biographia Britannica, says:—
The author of Bacon’s Life, in the Biographia Britannica, says:—
“That he might relieve himself a little from the severity of these studies, and, as it were, amuse himself with erecting a magnificent pavilion, while his great palace of philosophy was building, he composed and sent abroad, in 1610, his celebrated treatise of the Wisdom of the Ancients, in which he showed that none had studied them more closely, was better acquainted with their beauties, or had pierced deeper into their meaning. There have been very few books published, either in this or any other nation, which either deserved or met with more general applause than this, and scarce any that are like to retain it longer, for in this performance Sir Francis Bacon gave a singular proof of his capacity to please all parties in literature, as in his political conduct he stood fair with all the parties in the nation. The admirers of antiquity were charmed with this discourse, which seems expressly calculated to justify their xxviiiadmiration; and, on the other hand, their opposites were no less pleased with a piece from which they thought they could demonstrate that the sagacity of a modern genius had found out much better meanings for the ancients than ever were meant by them.”
“To take a break from the seriousness of his studies and entertain himself by building an impressive pavilion while working on his grand palace of philosophy, he wrote and published, in 1610, his famous treatise on the Wisdom of the Ancients. In it, he showed that no one had studied them more thoroughly, understood their strengths better, or dug deeper into their meanings. Very few books published, either in this country or elsewhere, have received as much praise or deserved it as this one, and hardly any are likely to keep that praise for longer. In this work, Sir Francis Bacon uniquely showcased his ability to appeal to all sides of literature, just as he was amicable with all factions in his political actions. The admirers of antiquity were thrilled by this discourse, which seemed specifically designed to validate their admiration; conversely, those who opposed them found equal pleasure in a work that they believed demonstrated how the insights of a modern thinker had uncovered far better meanings for the ancients than they ever intended.”
And Mallet, in his Life of Bacon, says:—
And Mallet, in his Life of Bacon, says:—
“In 1610 he published another treatise, entitled, Of the Wisdom of the Ancients. This work bears the same stamp of an original and inventive genius with his other performances. Resolving not to tread in the steps of those who had gone before him, men, according to his own expression, not learned beyond certain commonplaces, he strikes out a new tract for himself, and enters into the most secret recesses of this wild and shadowy region, so as to appear new on a known and beaten subject. Upon the whole, if we cannot bring ourselves readily to believe that there is all the physical, moral, and political meaning veiled under those fables of antiquity, which he has discovered in them, we must own that it required no common penetration to be mistaken with so great an appearance of probability on his side. Though it still remains doubtful whether the ancients were so knowing as he attempts to show they were, the variety and depth of his own knowledge are, in that very attempt, unquestionable.”
In 1610, he published another work titled Of the Wisdom of the Ancients. This piece showcases the same original and creative brilliance as his other writings. Rather than following the paths established by those before him—whom he described as lacking education beyond certain basic concepts—he carves out a new direction, exploring the hidden depths of this mysterious and obscure subject to offer fresh insights on a familiar topic. Overall, while we may find it hard to fully accept that there is so much physical, moral, and political meaning hidden in the ancient fables he claims to reveal, we must acknowledge that it required exceptional insight to present his arguments with such a convincing appearance of validity. Although it's still unclear whether the ancients were as knowledgeable as he suggests, the variety and depth of his own understanding are undeniably evident in his efforts.
In the year 1619 this tract was translated by Sir Arthur Gorges. Prefixed to the work are two letters; the one to the Earl of Salisbury, the other to the University of Cambridge, which Gorges omits, and dedicates his translation to the high and illustrious princess the Lady Elizabeth of Great Britain, Duchess of Baviare, Countess Palatine of Rheine, and chief electress of the empire.
In 1619, this piece was translated by Sir Arthur Gorges. At the beginning of the work, there are two letters; one is addressed to the Earl of Salisbury, and the other to the University of Cambridge, which Gorges leaves out, dedicating his translation to the esteemed and distinguished Princess Lady Elizabeth of Great Britain, Duchess of Bavaria, Countess Palatine of the Rhine, and chief electress of the empire.
This translation, it should be noted, was publishedxxix during the life of Lord Bacon by a great admirer of his works.
This translation was publishedxxix while Lord Bacon was alive by someone who greatly admired his works.
The editions of this work with which I am acquainted are:—
The versions of this work that I know of are:—
Year. | Language. | Printer. | Place. | Size. |
1609 | Latin, | R. Barker, | London, | 12mo. |
1617 | ” | J. Bill, | ” | ” |
1618 | Italian, | G. Bill, | ” | ” |
1619 | English, | J. Bill, | ” | ” |
1620 | ” | ” | ” | ” |
1633 | Latin, | F. Maire, | Lug. Bat., | ” |
1634 | ” | F. Kingston, | London, | ” |
1638 | ” | E. Griffin, | ” | Folio. |
1691 | ” | H. Wetstein, | Amsterdam, | 12mo. |
1804 | French, | H. Frantin, | Dijon, | 8vo. |
NOTICE
OF
Francis Bacon.
Francis Bacon, the subject of the following memoir, was the youngest son of highly remarkable parents. His father, Sir Nicholas Bacon, was an eminent lawyer, and for twenty years Keeper of the Seals and Privy Counsellor to Queen Elizabeth. Sir Nicholas was styled by Camden sacris conciliis alterum columen; he was the author of some unpublished discourses on law and politics, and of a commentary on the minor prophets. He discharged the duties of his high office with exemplary propriety and wisdom; he preserved through life the integrity of a good man, and the moderation and simplicity of a great one. He had inscribed over the entrance of his hall, at Gorhambury, the motto, mediocria firma; and when the Queen, in a progress, paid him a visit there, she remarked to him that his house was too small for him. “Madam,” answered the Lord Keeper, “my house is well, but it is you2 that have made me too great for my house.” This anecdote has been preserved by his son,3 who, had he as carefully retained the lesson of practical wisdom it contained, might have avoided the misfortunes and sorrows of his checkered life.
Francis Bacon, the focus of the following memoir, was the youngest son of truly remarkable parents. His father, Sir Nicholas Bacon, was a prominent lawyer and for twenty years served as the Keeper of the Seals and Privy Counselor to Queen Elizabeth. Sir Nicholas was referred to by Camden as sacris conciliis alterum columen; he authored some unpublished discourses on law and politics and a commentary on the minor prophets. He fulfilled his high office with exemplary propriety and wisdom; he maintained throughout his life the integrity of a good man, alongside the moderation and simplicity of a great one. He had the motto mediocria firma inscribed over the entrance of his hall at Gorhambury, and when the Queen visited him during a progress, she commented that his house was too small for him. “Madam,” replied the Lord Keeper, “my house is fine, but it is you2 that have made me too great for my house.” This anecdote has been recorded by his son,3 who, had he carefully learned the lesson of practical wisdom it conveyed, might have avoided the misfortunes and sorrows of his tumultuous life.
Bacon’s mother, Anne Cooke, was the daughter of Sir Anthony Cooke, tutor to King Edward the Sixth; like the young ladies of her time, like Lady Jane Grey, like Queen Elizabeth, she received an excellent classical education; her sister, Lady Burleigh, was pronounced by Roger Ascham, Queen Elizabeth’s preceptor, to be, with the exception of Lady Jane Grey, the best Greek scholar among the young women of England.4 Anne Cooke, the future Lady Bacon, corresponded in Greek with Bishop Jewel, and translated from the Latin this divine’s Apologia; a task which she performed so well that it is said the good prelate could not discover an inaccuracy or suggest an alteration. She also translated from the Italian a volume of sermons on fate and freewill, written by Bernardo Ochino, an Italian reformer. Francis Bacon, the youngest of five sons, 3 inherited the classical learning and taste of both his parents.
Bacon’s mother, Anne Cooke, was the daughter of Sir Anthony Cooke, who was the tutor to King Edward the Sixth. Like the young women of her time, including Lady Jane Grey and Queen Elizabeth, she received a top-notch classical education. Her sister, Lady Burleigh, was recognized by Roger Ascham, who taught Queen Elizabeth, as being, aside from Lady Jane Grey, the best Greek scholar among young women in England.4 Anne Cooke, who would become Lady Bacon, corresponded in Greek with Bishop Jewel and translated this divine’s Apologia from Latin; she did such an excellent job that it’s said the good bishop couldn’t find any mistakes or suggest any changes. She also translated from Italian a volume of sermons on fate and free will, written by Bernardo Ochino, an Italian reformer. Francis Bacon, the youngest of five sons, inherited the classical knowledge and taste from both his parents.
He was born at York House, in the Strand, London, on the 22d of January, 1560-61. His health, when he was a boy, was delicate; a circumstance which may perhaps account for his early love of sedentary pursuits, and probably the early gravity of his demeanor. Queen Elizabeth, he tells us, took particular delight in “trying him with questions,” when he was quite a child, and was so much pleased with the sense and manliness of his answers that she used jocularly to call him “her young Lord Keeper of the Seals.” Bacon himself relates that while he was a boy, the Queen once asked him his age; the precocious courtier readily replied that he “was just two years younger than her happy reign.” He is said, also, when very young, to have stolen away from his playfellows in order to investigate the cause of a singular echo in St. James’s Fields, which attracted his attention.
He was born at York House, in the Strand, London, on January 22, 1560-61. His health was fragile when he was a boy, which might explain his early passion for quiet activities and likely contributed to his serious demeanor. Queen Elizabeth enjoyed “testing him with questions” when he was just a child and was so impressed by the sense and maturity of his responses that she humorously referred to him as “her young Lord Keeper of the Seals.” Bacon himself recounts that when he was a boy, the Queen once asked him his age; the precocious young courtier quickly replied that he “was just two years younger than her happy reign.” Additionally, it's said that when he was very young, he would sneak away from his playmates to investigate a peculiar echo in St. James’s Fields that caught his interest.
Until the age of thirteen he remained under the tuition of his accomplished mother, aided by a private tutor only; under their care he attained the elements of the classics, that education preliminary to the studies of the University. At thirteen he was sent to Trinity College, Cambridge, where his father had been educated. Here he studied diligently the great models of antiquity, mathematics, and philosophy, worshipped, however, but indevoutly at the shrine of Aristotle, whom, according to Raw4ley, his chaplain and biographer, he already derided “for the unfruitfulness of the way,—being only strong for disputation, but barren of the production of works for the life of man.” He remained three years at this seat of learning, without, however, taking a degree at his departure.
Until he turned thirteen, he was taught by his talented mother, with the help of a private tutor. Under their guidance, he learned the basics of the classics, which prepared him for university studies. At thirteen, he was sent to Trinity College, Cambridge, where his father had studied. There, he worked hard studying the great works of the past, along with mathematics and philosophy, but he didn’t completely devote himself to Aristotle, whom Raw4ley, his chaplain and biographer, noted he already mocked “for the unfruitfulness of the way—being only strong for argument, but producing nothing beneficial for human life.” He spent three years at this institution of learning, but he did not graduate when he left.
When he was but sixteen years old he began his travels, the indispensable end of every finished education in England. He repaired to Paris, where he resided some time under the care of Sir Amyas Paulet, the English minister at the court of France.
When he was just sixteen, he started his travels, a necessary part of every completed education in England. He went to Paris, where he stayed for a while under the supervision of Sir Amyas Paulet, the English minister at the French court.
Here he invented an ingenious method of writing in cipher; an art which he probably cultivated with a view to a diplomatic career.
Here, he came up with a clever way of writing in code, a skill he likely developed for a future in diplomacy.
He visited several of the provinces of France and of the towns of Italy. Italy was then the country in which human knowledge in all its branches was most successfully cultivated. It is related by Signor Cancellieri that Bacon, when at Rome, presented himself as a candidate to the Academy of the Lincei, and was not admitted.5 He remained on the continent for three years, until his father’s death, in 1580. The melancholy event, which bereft him of his parent, at the age of nineteen, was fatal to his prospects. His father had intended to purchase an estate for his youngest son, as he had done for his other sons; but he dying before this intention was 5realized, the money was equally divided between all the children; so that Francis inherited but one fifth of that fortune intended for him alone. He was the only one of the sons that was left unprovided for. He had now “to study to live,” instead of “living to study.” He wished, to use his own language, “to become a true pioneer in that mine of truth which lies so deep.” He applied to the government for a provision which his father’s interest would easily have secured him, and by which he might dispense with a profession. The Queen must have looked with favor upon the son of a minister, who had served her faithfully for twenty long years, and upon a young man whom, when he was a child, she had caressed, she had distinguished by the appellation of her “young Lord Keeper.” But Francis Bacon was abandoned, and perhaps opposed by the colleague and nearest friend of his father, the brother-in-law of his mother, his maternal uncle, Lord Burleigh, then Prime Minister, who feared for his son the rivalry of his all-talented nephew. It is a trick common to envy and detraction, to convert a man’s very qualities into their concomitant defects; and because Bacon was a great thinker, he was represented as unfit for the active duties of business, as “a man rather of show than of depth,” as “a speculative man, indulging himself in philosophical reveries, and calculated more to perplex than to promote public business.”6 Thus was the future ornament 6of his country and of mankind sacrificed to Robert, afterwards Sir Robert Cecil, Earl of Salisbury, of whose history fame has learned but little, save the execution of Essex and Mary Queen of Scots, the name, and this petty act of mean jealousy of his father! In the disposal of patronage and place, acts and even motives of this species are not so unfrequent as the world would appear to imagine. In all ages, it is to be feared, many and great, as in Shakspeare’s time, are,
He traveled to several provinces in France and towns in Italy. At that time, Italy was the place where human knowledge was flourishing the most. Signor Cancellieri recounts that Bacon, while in Rome, sought to join the Academy of the Lincei but was not accepted.5 He stayed on the continent for three years until his father passed away in 1580. The unfortunate event, which left him without a parent at the age of nineteen, severely affected his future. His father had planned to buy an estate for his youngest son, as he had for his other sons; however, he died before this plan could be carried out, and the money was split among all the children, meaning Francis only inherited one-fifth of the fortune that was meant for him alone. He was the only son left without any support. Now he had “to study to live,” instead of “living to study.” He wanted, in his own words, “to become a true pioneer in that mine of truth which lies so deep.” He requested financial support from the government, which his father's connections could have easily secured for him, allowing him to avoid having to take up a profession. The Queen must have favored the son of a minister who had served her loyally for twenty years and a young man whom she had affectionately known as her “young Lord Keeper” when he was a child. But Francis Bacon was let down, possibly opposed by his father's colleague and close friend, his mother’s brother, Lord Burleigh, who was then Prime Minister and worried about his son competing with his highly talented nephew. Jealousy and spite often twist a person’s strengths into weaknesses; because Bacon was a deep thinker, he was depicted as unfit for the practicalities of business, described as “a man more about show than substance,” as “a speculative individual lost in philosophical dreams, more likely to confuse than to advance public affairs.”6 Thus, the future pride of his country and humanity was sacrificed to Robert, later Sir Robert Cecil, Earl of Salisbury, of whose legacy history has recorded little aside from his involvement in the executions of Essex and Mary Queen of Scots, his name, and this petty act of jealousy against his father! Such acts and motivations are more common in the distribution of favors and positions than the world seems to realize. Throughout history, it is to be feared, many significant instances, just like in Shakespeare’s time, are
It is, however, but justice to the morals of Lord Burleigh, to add that he was insensible to literary merit; he thought a hundred pounds too great a reward to be given to Spenser for what he termed “an old song,” for so he denominated the Faery Queen.
It’s only fair to note Lord Burleigh's morals; he was indifferent to literary quality. He believed that a hundred pounds was too much to pay Spenser for what he called “an old song,” referring to the Faery Queen.
Bacon then selected the law as his profession; and in 1580 he was entered of Gray’s Inn;7 he resisted the temptations of his companions and friends, (for his company was much courted), and diligently pursued the study he had chosen; but he did not at this time entirely lose sight of his philosophical speculations, for he then published his Temporis partus maximus, or The Greatest Birth of Time. This work, notwithstanding its pompous title, was unnoticed or rather fell stillborn from the press; the 7sole trace of it is found in one of his letters to Father Fulgentio.
Bacon chose law as his career, and in 1580 he enrolled at Gray’s Inn;7 he resisted the temptations of his popular friends and actively focused on his studies. However, he didn’t completely give up his philosophical ideas, as he published his Temporis partus maximus, or The Greatest Birth of Time, during this time. Despite its grand title, this work went completely unnoticed and basically failed after being published; the only reference to it is found in one of his letters to Father Fulgentio.
In 1586, he was called to the bar; his practice there appears to have been limited, although not without success; for the Queen and the Court are said to have gone to hear him when he was engaged in any celebrated cause. He was, at this period of his life, frequently admitted to the Queen’s presence and conversation. He was appointed her Majesty’s Counsel Extraordinary,8 but he had no salary and small fees.
In 1586, he was called to the bar; his practice there seems to have been limited, though not without success, as the Queen and the Court reportedly attended to hear him during any high-profile cases. At this stage of his life, he was often allowed to be in the Queen’s presence and speak with her. He was appointed her Majesty’s Counsel Extraordinary,8 but he received no salary and only small fees.
In 1592, his uncle, the Lord Treasurer, procured for him the reversion of the registrarship of the Star Chamber, worth sixteen hundred pounds (forty thousand francs) a year; but the office did not become vacant till twenty years after, so that, as Bacon justly observes, “it might mend his prospects, but did not fill his barns.”
In 1592, his uncle, the Lord Treasurer, secured for him the future position of registrar of the Star Chamber, which was valued at sixteen hundred pounds (forty thousand francs) a year; however, the position didn’t open up until twenty years later, so, as Bacon rightly points out, “it might improve his prospects, but didn’t fill his barns.”
A parliament was summoned in 1593, and Bacon was returned to the House of Commons, for the County of Middlesex; he distinguished himself here as a speaker. “The fear of every man who heard him,” says his contemporary, Ben Jonson, “was lest he should make an end.” He made, however, on one occasion a speech which much displeased the Queen and Court. Elizabeth directed the Lord 8 Keeper to intimate to him that he must expect neither favor nor promotion; the repentant courtier replied in writing, that “her Majesty’s favor was dearer to him than his life.”9
A parliament was called in 1593, and Bacon was elected to the House of Commons for the County of Middlesex; he stood out as a speaker. “Everyone who heard him was afraid he would never stop,” said his contemporary, Ben Jonson. However, on one occasion, he gave a speech that greatly upset the Queen and the court. Elizabeth instructed the Lord Keeper to let him know that he should not expect any favor or advancement; the regretful courtier responded in writing that “her Majesty’s favor was more precious to him than his life.”9
In the following year the situation of Solicitor-General10 became vacant. Bacon ardently aspired to it. He applied successively to Lord Burleigh, his uncle, to Lord Puckering, his father’s successor, to the Earl of Essex, their rival, and finally to the Queen herself, accompanying his letters, as was the custom of the times, with a present, a jewel.11 But once more he saw mediocrity preferred, and himself rejected. A Serjeant Fleming was appointed her Majesty’s Solicitor-General. Bacon, overwhelmed by this disappointment, wished to retire from public life, and to reside abroad. “I hoped,” said he in a letter to Sir Robert Cecil, “her Majesty would not be offended that, not able to endure the sun, I fled into the shade.”
In the following year, the position of Solicitor-General10 became open. Bacon was eager to get the job. He reached out one after another to Lord Burleigh, his uncle, to Lord Puckering, his father’s successor, to the Earl of Essex, their rival, and finally to the Queen herself, sending his letters with a gift, a jewel, as was the custom at the time.11 But once again, he saw that mediocrity was chosen over him, and he was turned down. A Serjeant Fleming was appointed as her Majesty’s Solicitor-General. Bacon, crushed by this disappointment, wanted to step away from public life and live abroad. “I hoped,” he wrote in a letter to Sir Robert Cecil, “her Majesty would not be upset that, unable to endure the sun, I fled into the shade.”
The Earl of Essex, whose mind, says Mr. Macaulay, “naturally disposed to admiration of all that 9is great and beautiful, was fascinated by the genius and the accomplishments of Bacon,”12 had exerted every effort in Bacon’s behalf; to use his own language, he “spent all his power, might, authority, and amity;” he now sought to indemnify him, and, with royal munificence, presented him with an estate of the value of nearly two thousand pounds, a sum worth perhaps four or five times the amount in the money of our days. If anything could enhance the benefaction, it was the delicacy with which it was conferred, or, as Bacon himself expresses it, “with so kind and noble circumstances as the manner was worth more than the matter.”
The Earl of Essex, whose mindset, according to Mr. Macaulay, “naturally leaned towards admiration for everything that is great and beautiful, was captivated by Bacon’s genius and achievements,” had put in every effort for Bacon's sake; to quote him, he “exerted all his power, influence, authority, and friendship;” he now aimed to compensate him and, with royal generosity, gifted him an estate worth nearly two thousand pounds, a sum that would be equivalent to four or five times that amount today. If anything could make the gift more significant, it was the thoughtfulness with which it was given, or as Bacon himself put it, “with such kind and noble circumstances that the way it was done was worth more than the content itself.”
Bacon published his Essays in 1597; he considered them but as the “recreations of his other studies.” The idea of them was probably first suggested by Montaigne’s Essais, but there is little resemblance between the two works beyond the titles. The first edition contained but ten Essays, which were shorter than they now are. The work was reprinted in 1598, with little or no variation; again in 1606; and in 1612 there was a fourth edition, etc. However, he afterwards, he says, “enlarged it both in number and weight;” but it did not assume its present form until the ninth edition, in 1625, that is, twenty-eight years after its first publication, and one year before the death of the author. It appeared under the new title of The Essaies or Covnsels Civill and Morall, of Francis Lo. Vervlam, 10 Viscovnt St. Alban. Newly enlarged. This is not followed by the Religious Meditations, Places of Perswasion and Disswasion, seene and allowed. The Essays were soon translated into Italian with the title of Saggi Morali del Signore Francesco Bacono, Cavagliero Inglese, Gran Cancelliero d’ Inghilterra. This translation was dedicated to Cosmo de Medici, Grand Duke of Tuscany; and was reprinted in London in 1618. Of the three Essays added after Bacon’s decease, two of them, Of a King and Of Death, are not genuine; the Fragment of an Essay on Fame alone is Bacon’s.
Bacon published his Essays in 1597; he saw them as the “breaks from his other studies.” The idea was probably first inspired by Montaigne’s Essais, but there isn’t much similarity between the two works beyond the titles. The first edition only had ten Essays, which were shorter than they are now. The work was reprinted in 1598, with little or no changes; again in 1606; and in 1612, there was a fourth edition, etc. However, he later stated that he “expanded it both in number and depth;” but it didn’t take its current shape until the ninth edition in 1625, which was twenty-eight years after its first publication and one year before the author's death. It was released under the new title The Essaies or Covnsels Civill and Morall, of Francis Lo. Vervlam, 10 Viscovnt St. Alban. Newly enlarged. This is not followed by the Religious Meditations, Places of Perswasion and Disswasion, seene and allowed. The Essays were soon translated into Italian with the title Saggi Morali del Signore Francesco Bacono, Cavagliero Inglese, Gran Cancelliero d’ Inghilterra. This translation was dedicated to Cosmo de Medici, Grand Duke of Tuscany, and was reprinted in London in 1618. Of the three Essays added after Bacon’s death, two of them, Of a King and Of Death, are not authentic; only the Fragment of an Essay on Fame is genuinely Bacon’s.
In this same year (1597) he again took his seat in Parliament. He soon made ample amends for his opposition speech in the previous session; but this time he gained the favor of the Court without forfeiting his popularity in the House of Commons.
In this same year (1597), he took his seat in Parliament again. He quickly made up for his opposing speech from the last session; but this time, he won the Court's approval without losing his popularity in the House of Commons.
He now thought of strengthening his interest, or increasing his fortune, by a matrimonial connection; and he sought the hand of a rich widow, Lady Hatton, his second cousin; but here he was again doomed to disappointment; a preference was given to his old rival, the Attorney-General, Sir Edward Coke, notwithstanding the “seven objections to him—his six children and himself.” But although Bacon was perhaps unaware of it, the rejection of his suit was one of the happiest events of his life; for the eccentric manners and violent temper of the lady rendered her a torment to all around her, and11 probably most of all to her husband. In reality, as has been wittily observed, the lady was doubly kind to him; “she rejected him, and she accepted his enemy.”
He now considered boosting his interests or increasing his wealth through a marriage; he aimed for the hand of a wealthy widow, Lady Hatton, who was his second cousin. However, he faced disappointment again as preference was given to his old rival, the Attorney-General, Sir Edward Coke, despite the “seven objections to him—his six children and himself.” But even though Bacon might not have realized it, the rejection of his proposal was one of the best things that ever happened to him; the lady's eccentric behavior and fiery temperament made her unbearable for everyone around her, likely most of all for her husband. In truth, as has been humorously pointed out, the lady was actually doing him a favor; “she rejected him, and she chose his enemy.”
Another mortification awaited him at this period. A relentless creditor, a usurer, had him arrested for a debt of three hundred pounds, and he was conveyed to a spunging-house, where he was confined for a few days, until arrangements could be made to satisfy the claim or the claimant.
Another humiliation was waiting for him during this time. A relentless creditor, a loan shark, had him arrested for a debt of three hundred pounds, and he was taken to a debtor's prison, where he was held for a few days until arrangements could be made to settle the debt or pay the creditor.
We now arrive at a painfully sad point in the life of Bacon; a dark foul spot, which should be hidden forever, did not history, like the magistrate of Egypt that interrogated the dead, demand that the truth, the whole truth, should be told.
We now reach a deeply sad moment in Bacon's life; a dark stain that should be concealed forever, if not for history, like the Egyptian magistrate who questioned the dead, demanding that the truth, the whole truth, be revealed.
We have seen that between Bacon and the Earl of Essex, all was disinterested affection on the part of the latter; the Earl employed his good offices for him, exerted heart and soul to insure his success as Solicitor-General, and, on Bacon’s failure, conferred on him a princely favor, a gift of no ordinary value.
We have seen that between Bacon and the Earl of Essex, the latter acted out of pure goodwill. The Earl used his influence to help him, put in a lot of effort to ensure his success as Solicitor-General, and when Bacon failed, he granted him an incredible favor, a gift of significant value.
When Essex’s fortunes declined, and the Earl fell into disgrace, Bacon endeavored to mediate between the Queen and her favorite. The case became hopeless. Essex left his command in Ireland without leave, was ordered in confinement, and after a long imprisonment and trial before the Privy Council, he was liberated. Irritated by the refusal of a favor he solicited, he was betrayed into reflections on the12 Queen’s age and person, which were never to be forgiven, and he engaged in a conspiracy to seize on the Queen, and to settle a new plan of government. On the failure of this attempt, he was arrested, committed to the Tower, and brought to trial for high treason before the House of Peers. During his long captivity, who does not expect to see Bacon, his friend, a frequent visitor in his cell? Before the two tribunals, can we fail to meet Bacon, his counsel, at his side? We trace Bacon at Court, where, he assures us, after Elizabeth’s death, that he endeavored to appease and reconcile the Queen; but the place was too distant from the prison: for he never visited there his fallen friend.
When Essex’s fortunes went downhill and the Earl fell out of favor, Bacon tried to mediate between the Queen and her favorite. It became hopeless. Essex left his command in Ireland without permission, was ordered into confinement, and after a long imprisonment and trial before the Privy Council, he was released. Frustrated by the denial of a favor he requested, he made unkind remarks about the Queen’s age and looks that were unforgivable, and he got involved in a plot to capture the Queen and establish a new government. After this attempt failed, he was arrested, sent to the Tower, and put on trial for high treason before the House of Peers. During his long imprisonment, can we not expect to see Bacon, his friend, visiting him often in his cell? Before the two courts, how can we not find Bacon as his counsel by his side? We see Bacon at Court, where he claims that after Elizabeth’s death, he tried to appease and reconcile the Queen; however, the distance from the prison was too great, as he never visited his fallen friend there.
At the first trial, Bacon did indeed make his appearance, but as “her Majesty’s Counsel extraordinary,” not for the defence, but for the prosecution of the prisoner. But he may be expected at least to have treated him leniently? He admits he did not, on account, as he tells us, of the “superior duty he owed to the Queen’s fame and honor in a public proceeding.” But hitherto, the Earl’s liberty alone had been endangered; now, his life is at stake. Do not the manifold favors, the munificent benefactions all arise in the generous mind of Bacon? Does he not waive all thought of interest and promotion and worldly honor to devote himself wholly to the sacred task of saving his patron, benefactor, and friend? Her Majesty’s Counsel extraordinary appeared in the place of the Solicitor-General, to reply13 to Essex’s defence; he compared the accused first to Cain, then to Pisistratus. The Earl made a pathetic appeal to his judges; Bacon showed he had not answered his objections, and compared him to the Duke of Guise, the most odious comparison he could have instituted. Essex was condemned; the Queen wavered in her resolution to execute him; his friend’s intercession might perhaps have been able to save Essex from an ignominious death. Did Bacon, in his turn, “spend all his power, might, and amity?” The Queen’s Counsel extraordinary might have offended his sovereign by his importunity, and have been forgotten in the impending vacancy of the office of Solicitor-General! Essex died on the scaffold. But the execution rendered the Queen unpopular, and she was received with mournful silence when she appeared in public. She ordered a pamphlet to be written to justify the execution; she made choice of Bacon as the writer; the courtier did not decline the task, but published A Declaration of the Practices and Treasons attempted and committed by Robert, late Earle of Essex and his Complices, against her Maiestie and her Kingdoms. This faithless friend, to use the language of Macaulay, “exerted his professional talents to shed the Earl’s blood, and his literary talents to blacken the Earl’s memory.”
At the first trial, Bacon did show up, but as “Her Majesty’s Counsel Extraordinary,” not to defend the defendant, but to prosecute him. Shouldn’t he have been lenient? He claims he wasn’t because of the “greater duty he owed to the Queen’s reputation and honor in a public matter.” Until now, the Earl’s freedom had been in jeopardy; now, his life is on the line. Don’t all the various favors and generous gifts come from Bacon’s noble spirit? Doesn’t he set aside any thoughts of personal gain or ambition to fully commit to the important task of saving his patron, benefactor, and friend? The Queen’s Counsel Extraordinary took the place of the Solicitor-General to respond to Essex’s defense; he first compared the accused to Cain, then to Pisistratus. The Earl made an emotional plea to his judges; Bacon showed that he hadn’t addressed the objections and compared him to the Duke of Guise, the most contemptible comparison he could have made. Essex was sentenced; the Queen hesitated about carrying out the execution; perhaps his friend's plea could have saved Essex from a disgraceful death. Did Bacon, in turn, “expend all his power, strength, and goodwill?” The Queen’s Counsel Extraordinary could have angered his sovereign by pushing too hard and might have been forgotten in the upcoming vacancy for Solicitor-General! Essex was executed. However, the execution made the Queen unpopular, and she was met with somber silence when she appeared in public. She ordered a pamphlet to justify the execution and chose Bacon as the writer; the courtier accepted the task and published A Declaration of the Practices and Treasons attempted and committed by Robert, late Earle of Essex and his Complices, against her Maiestie and her Kingdoms. This disloyal friend, to quote Macaulay, “used his professional skills to spill the Earl’s blood, and his literary skills to tarnish the Earl’s memory.”
The memory of Essex suffered but little from the attack of the pamphlet; the base pamphleteer’s memory is blackened forever, and to his fair name of “the14 wisest, brightest,” has been appended the “meanest of mankind.” But let us cast a pall over this act, this moral murder, perpetrated by the now degraded orator, degraded philosopher, the now most degraded of men.
The memory of Essex wasn't significantly harmed by the pamphlet's attack; the reputation of the lowly pamphleteer is tarnished forever, and the once fair title of “the14 wisest, brightest” has now been tainted with “the meanest of mankind.” But let's overshadow this act, this moral crime committed by the now disgraced speaker, the fallen philosopher, the most degraded man of all.
Elizabeth died in 1601; and before the arrival of James, in England, Bacon wrote him a pedantic letter, probably to gratify the taste of the pedant king; but he did not forget in it, “his late dear sovereign Mistress—a princess happy in all things, but most happy—in such a successor.”
Elizabeth passed away in 1601, and before James arrived in England, Bacon wrote him a long-winded letter, likely to please the scholarly king. However, he didn’t forget to mention “his late dear sovereign Mistress—a princess fortunate in everything, but especially fortunate—in such a successor.”
Bacon solicited the honor of knighthood, a distinction much lavished at this period. At the King’s coronation, he knelt down in company with above three hundred gentlemen; but “he rose Sir Francis.” He sought the hand of a rich alderman’s daughter, Miss Barnham, who consented to become Lady Bacon.
Bacon requested the honor of becoming a knight, a title that was quite common during this time. At the King’s coronation, he knelt down along with over three hundred gentlemen; but “he stood up as Sir Francis.” He pursued the daughter of a wealthy alderman, Miss Barnham, who agreed to become Lady Bacon.
The Earl of Southampton, Shakspeare’s generous patron and friend, who had been convicted of high treason in the late reign, now received the King’s pardon. This called to all men’s minds the fate of the unhappy Earl of Essex, and of his odiously ungrateful accuser; the latter unadvisedly published the Sir Francis Bacon, his Apologie in certaine imputations concerning the late Earle of Essex; a defence which, in the estimation of one of his biographers, Lord Campbell, has injured him more with posterity than all the attacks of his enemies.
The Earl of Southampton, Shakespeare’s generous patron and friend, who had been found guilty of high treason in the previous reign, now received the King’s pardon. This reminded everyone of the fate of the unfortunate Earl of Essex and his shamefully ungrateful accuser; the latter foolishly published the Sir Francis Bacon, his Apologie in certaine imputations concerning the late Earle of Essex; a defense that, according to one of his biographers, Lord Campbell, has harmed his reputation with posterity more than all the attacks from his enemies.
In the new Parliament, he represented the borough15 of Ipswich; he spoke frequently, and obtained the good graces of the King by the support he gave to James’s favorite plan of a union of England and Scotland; a measure by no means palatable to the King’s new subjects.
In the new Parliament, he represented the borough15 of Ipswich; he spoke often and gained the favor of the King by supporting James’s favored plan for a union of England and Scotland, a move that was definitely not well-received by the King’s new subjects.
The object of all his hopes, the price, perhaps, of his conduct to Essex, seemed in 1606 to be within his reach; but he was once more to be disappointed. His old enemy, Sir Edward Coke, prevented the vacancy. The following year, however, after long and humiliating solicitation, he attained the office to which he had so long aspired, and was appointed Solicitor-General to the Crown.
The focus of all his hopes, possibly the reward for his actions towards Essex, seemed in 1606 to be within his grasp; but yet again, he faced disappointment. His longtime rival, Sir Edward Coke, blocked the opportunity. However, the following year, after lengthy and humiliating attempts, he finally achieved the position he had desired for so long and was appointed Solicitor-General to the Crown.
Official advancement was now the object nearest his heart, and he longed to be Attorney-General.13
Official advancement was now what he desired the most, and he yearned to be Attorney-General.13
In 1613, by a master stroke of policy, he created a vacancy for himself as Attorney-General, and managed at the same time to disserve his old enemy, Coke, by getting him preferred in rank, but at the expense of considerable pecuniary loss.
In 1613, through a brilliant move, he made a vacancy for himself as Attorney-General, while also managing to undermine his old rival, Coke, by promoting him in rank, but at a significant financial cost.
After his new appointment, he was reëlected to his seat in the House of Commons; he had gained 16so much popularity there, that the House admitted him, although it resolved to exclude future Attorneys-General; a resolution rescinded by later Parliaments.
After his new appointment, he was reelected to his seat in the House of Commons; he had gained 16 so much popularity there that the House accepted him, even though it decided to exclude future Attorneys-General, a decision later overturned by subsequent Parliaments.
The Attorney-General, as may be supposed, did not lack zeal in his master’s service and for his master’s prerogative. One case, in particular, was atrocious. An aged clergyman, named Peacham, was prosecuted for high treason for a sermon which he had neither preached nor published; the unfortunate old man was apprehended, put to the torture in presence of the Attorney-General, and as the latter himself tells us, was examined “before torture, between torture, and after torture,” although Bacon must have been fully aware that the laws of England did not sanction torture to extort confession. Bacon tampered with the judges, and obtained a conviction; but the government durst not carry the sentence into execution. Peacham languished in prison till the ensuing year, when Providence rescued him from the hands of human justice.
The Attorney-General, as you'd expect, was quite eager in his boss's service and for his boss's authority. One particular case was shocking. An elderly clergyman named Peacham was prosecuted for high treason for a sermon he neither preached nor published; the poor old man was arrested, tortured in front of the Attorney-General, and as the Attorney-General himself recounts, was examined “before torture, between torture, and after torture,” even though Bacon must have known that English law didn’t allow torture to force a confession. Bacon influenced the judges and got a conviction; however, the government was too afraid to carry out the sentence. Peacham suffered in prison until the following year, when fate saved him from the hands of human justice.
In 1616, Bacon was offered the formal promise of the Chancellorship, or an actual appointment as Privy Councillor; he was too prudent not to prefer an appointment to a promise, and he was accordingly nominated to the functions of member of the Privy Council. His present leisure enabled him to prosecute vigorously his Novum Organum, but he turned aside to occupy himself with a proposition for the amendment of the laws of England, on which17 Lord Campbell, assuredly the most competent of judges, passes a high encomium.
In 1616, Bacon was offered a formal promise of the Chancellorship, or an actual appointment as a Privy Councillor; he was too wise not to prefer an appointment to a promise, so he was nominated as a member of the Privy Council. His free time allowed him to work vigorously on his Novum Organum, but he chose to focus on a proposal for amending the laws of England, which17 Lord Campbell, undoubtedly one of the best judges, praised highly.
At length, in 1617, Sir Francis Bacon attained the end of the ambition of his life, he became Lord Keeper of the Seals, with the functions, though not the title, of Lord High Chancellor of England. His promotion to this dignity gave general satisfaction; his own university, Cambridge, congratulated him; Oxford imitated the example; the world expected a perfect judge, formed from his own model in his Essay of Judicature. He took his seat in the Court of Chancery with the utmost pomp and parade.
At last, in 1617, Sir Francis Bacon achieved the goal he had pursued his entire life: he became Lord Keeper of the Seals, with the responsibilities, though not the title, of Lord High Chancellor of England. His rise to this position was widely welcomed; his own university, Cambridge, congratulated him, and Oxford followed suit. The world anticipated a flawless judge, shaped by his own ideals presented in his Essay of Judicature. He took his place in the Court of Chancery with great ceremony and display.
The Lord Keeper now endeavored to “feed fat the ancient grudge” he bore Coke. He deprived him of the office of Chief Justice, and erased his name from the list of privy councillors. Coke imagined a plan of raising his falling fortunes; he projected a marriage between his daughter by his second wife, a very rich heiress, and Sir John Villiers, the brother of Buckingham, the King’s favorite. Bacon was alarmed, wrote to the King, and used expressions of disparagement towards the favorite, his new patron, to whom he was indebted for the Seals he held. The King and his minion were equally indignant; and they did not conceal from him their resentment. On the return of the court, Bacon hastened to the residence of Buckingham; being denied admittance, he waited two whole days in the ante-chamber with the Great Seal of England in his hand. When at length he obtained access,18 the Lord Keeper threw himself and the Great Seal on the ground, kissed the favorite’s feet, and vowed never to rise till he was forgiven! It must after this have been difficult indeed for him to rise again in the world’s esteem or his own.
The Lord Keeper now tried to “feed the ancient grudge” he had against Coke. He took away his position as Chief Justice and removed his name from the list of privy councillors. Coke came up with a plan to improve his declining fortunes; he proposed a marriage between his daughter from his second wife, a very wealthy heiress, and Sir John Villiers, the brother of Buckingham, the King’s favorite. Bacon was worried, wrote to the King, and spoke negatively about the favorite, his new patron, to whom he owed his position. The King and his favorite were both outraged; they didn’t hide their anger from him. When the court returned, Bacon rushed to Buckingham’s house; after being denied entry, he waited two whole days in the waiting room with the Great Seal of England in his hand. Finally, when he was allowed in,18 the Lord Keeper threw himself and the Great Seal on the ground, kissed the favorite’s feet, and vowed not to get up until he was forgiven! After this, it must have been incredibly difficult for him to regain anyone's respect or his own.
Bacon was made to purchase at a dear price his reinstatement in the good graces of Buckingham. The favorite constantly wrote to the judge in behalf of one of the parties, and in the end, says Lord Campbell, intimated that he was to dictate the decree. Nor did Bacon once remonstrate against this unwarrantable interference on the part of the man to whom he had himself recommended “by no means to interpose himself, either by word or letter in any cause depending on any court of justice.” The Lord Keeper received soon after, in 1618, the reward of his “many faithful services” by the higher title of Lord High Chancellor of England, and by the peerage with the name of Baron of Verulam.
Bacon had to pay a high price to regain Buckingham's favor. The favorite frequently communicated with the judge on behalf of one of the parties, and in the end, as Lord Campbell notes, suggested that he was going to dictate the ruling. Bacon never protested this unacceptable interference from the very person he had advised “by no means to involve himself, either by word or letter, in any case before a court of justice.” Shortly after, in 1618, the Lord Keeper was rewarded for his “many faithful services” with the elevated title of Lord High Chancellor of England and was granted a peerage as Baron of Verulam.
The new Minister of Justice lent himself with his wonted complaisance to a most outrageous act of injustice, which Macaulay stigmatizes as a “dastardly murder,” that of the execution of Sir Walter Raleigh, under a sentence pronounced sixteen years before; Sir Walter having been in the interval invested with the high command of Admiral of the fleet. Such an act it was the imperative duty of the first magistrate of the realm not to promote, but to resist to the full extent of his power; and the Chancellor alone could issue the warrant for the execution!
The new Minister of Justice showed his usual willingness to participate in an appalling act of injustice, which Macaulay describes as a “cowardly murder,” that of executing Sir Walter Raleigh, based on a sentence given sixteen years earlier; Sir Walter had been appointed Admiral of the fleet in the meantime. It was the urgent responsibility of the highest official of the realm not to support such an act, but to oppose it with all his power; and only the Chancellor could issue the warrant for the execution!
In 1620, he published what is usually considered his greatest work, his Novum Organum (New Instrument or Method), which forms the second part of the Instauratio Magna (Great Restoration of the Sciences). This work had occupied Bacon’s leisure for nearly thirty years. Such was the care he bestowed on it, that Rawley, his chaplain and biographer, states that he had seen about twelve autograph copies of it, corrected and improved until it assumed the shape in which it appeared. Previous to the publication of the Novum Organum, says the illustrious Sir John Herschel, “natural philosophy, in any legitimate and extensive sense of the word, could hardly be said to exist.”14
In 1620, he published what is generally recognized as his greatest work, his Novum Organum (New Instrument or Method), which is the second part of the Instauratio Magna (Great Restoration of the Sciences). This work occupied Bacon’s free time for nearly thirty years. He put so much effort into it that Rawley, his chaplain and biographer, mentions he had seen about twelve autograph copies that were corrected and refined until they reached the form in which they were published. Before the release of the Novum Organum, the renowned Sir John Herschel remarked, “natural philosophy, in any legitimate and extensive sense of the word, could hardly be said to exist.”14
It cannot be expected that a work destined completely to change the state of science, we had almost said of nature, should not be assailed by that prejudice which is ever ready to raise its loud but unmeaning voice against whatever is new, how great or good soever it may be. Bacon’s doctrine was accused of being calculated to produce “dangerous revolutions,” to “subvert governments and the authority of religion.” Some called on the present age and posterity to rise high in their resentment against “the Bacon-faced generation,” for so were the experimentalists termed. The old cry of irreligion, nay, even of atheism, was raised against the man who had said: “I would rather believe all the fables in the Legend, and the Talmud, and the Alcoran, than that 20this universal frame is without a mind.”15 But Bacon had to encounter the prejudices even of the learned. Cuffe, the Earl of Essex’s secretary, a man celebrated for his attainments, said of the Instauratio Magna, “a fool could not have written such a book, and a wise man would not.” King James said, it was “like the peace of God, that surpasseth all understanding.” And even Harvey, the discoverer of the circulation of the blood, said to Aubrey: “Bacon is no great philosopher; he writes philosophy like a Lord Chancellor.” Rawley, his secretary and his biographer, laments, some years after his friend’s death, that “his fame is greater and sounds louder in foreign parts abroad than at home in his own nation; thereby verifying that divine sentence: A prophet is not without honor, save in his own country and in his own house.” Bacon was for some time without honor “in his own country and in his own house.” But truth on this, as on all other occasions, triumphs in the end. Bacon’s assailants are forgotten; Bacon will be remembered with gratitude and veneration forever.
It can't be expected that a work intended to completely change the field of science, and we might even say nature, wouldn’t be attacked by the biases that are always ready to raise their loud but meaningless voices against anything new, no matter how great or good it might be. Bacon's ideas were accused of aiming to create “dangerous revolutions” and to “overturn governments and the authority of religion.” Some called for the current generation and future ones to rise in their anger against the “Bacon-faced generation,” which is what the experimentalists were called. The old complaint of irreligion, even atheism, was directed at the man who said: “I would rather believe all the fables in the Legend, and the Talmud, and the Alcoran, than that 20this entire universe is without a mind.”15 But Bacon also had to deal with the biases of the educated. Cuffe, the secretary of the Earl of Essex, a man known for his knowledge, commented on the Instauratio Magna, saying, “a fool couldn't have written such a book, and a wise man wouldn't.” King James remarked that it was “like the peace of God, which surpasses all understanding.” Even Harvey, the discoverer of blood circulation, told Aubrey: “Bacon is no great philosopher; he writes philosophy like a Lord Chancellor.” Rawley, his secretary and biographer, expressed regret, years after his friend’s death, that “his fame is greater and sounds louder in foreign parts abroad than at home in his own nation; thereby proving that divine saying: A prophet is not without honor, except in his own country and in his own house.” For a time, Bacon had no honor “in his own country and in his own house.” But truth, as it does in all other cases, ultimately prevails. Bacon's critics are forgotten; Bacon will be remembered with gratitude and respect forever.
He was again, in 1621, promoted in the peerage to be Viscount Saint-Albans; his patent particularly celebrating his “integrity in the administration of justice.”
He was once again promoted in the peerage in 1621, becoming Viscount Saint-Albans; his patent specifically noted his “integrity in the administration of justice.”
In this same year the Parliament assembled. The House of Commons first voted the subsidies demanded by the Crown, and next proceeded, as was 21usual in those times, to the redress of grievances. A committee of the House was appointed to inquire into “the abuses of Courts of Justice.” A report of this committee charged the Lord Chancellor with corruption, and specified two cases; in the first of which Aubrey, a suitor in his court, stated that he had presented the Lord Chancellor with a hundred pounds; and Egerton, another suitor in his court, with four hundred pounds in addition to a former piece of plate of the value of fifty pounds; in both cases decisions had been given against the parties whose presents had been received. (Lord Campbell asserts that in the case of Egerton both parties had made the Chancellor presents.)16 His enemies, it is said, estimated his illicit gains at a hundred thousand pounds; a statement which, it is more than probable, is greatly exaggerated.17 “I never had,” said Bacon in his defence, “bribe or reward in my eye or thought when I pronounced sentence or order.” This is an acknowledgment of the fact, and perhaps an aggravation of the offence. He 22then addressed “an humble submission” to the House, a kind of general admission, in which he invoked as a plea of excuse vitia temporis.
In that same year, Parliament came together. The House of Commons first approved the subsidies requested by the Crown, and then, as was common at the time, moved on to address grievances. A committee from the House was set up to look into “the abuses of Courts of Justice.” This committee's report accused the Lord Chancellor of corruption and highlighted two cases: in the first, Aubrey, who had a case in his court, claimed he had given the Lord Chancellor one hundred pounds; and Egerton, another party involved in his court, had given an additional four hundred pounds on top of a previous gift of a piece of plate worth fifty pounds; in both situations, decisions had gone against the individuals who had made the gifts. (Lord Campbell argues that in Egerton's case, both parties had given gifts to the Chancellor.) His opponents reportedly estimated his illegal gains at a hundred thousand pounds, which is likely an exaggeration. “I never had,” said Bacon in his defense, “a bribe or reward in my sight or thoughts when I issued a sentence or order.” This acknowledges the reality and may even make the offense worse. He then made “an humble submission” to the House, a sort of general admission where he invoked as a plea for excuse vitia temporis.
How widely different from this is his own language! It is fair justice to appeal from the judge to the tribunal of the philosopher and moralist; it is appealing from Philip drunk to Philip sober; unhappily it is likewise
How different this is from his own language! It's fair to appeal from the judge to the philosopher and moralist; it's like appealing from Philip when he’s drunk to Philip when he’s sober; unfortunately, it is also
He says, in his Essay of Great Place: “For corruption: do not only bind thine own hands, or thy servant’s hands from taking, but bind the hands of suitors from offering. For integrity used doth the one; but integrity professed, and with a manifest detestation of bribery, doth the other; and avoid not only the fault, but the suspicion.”18 He says again, in the same Essay: “Set it down to thyself, as well to create good precedents as to follow them.”
He says in his Essay of Great Place: “For corruption: don’t just prevent yourself or your servant from taking bribes, but also stop those seeking favors from offering them. Acting with integrity does the former, but claiming integrity and openly rejecting bribery does the latter; and avoid not only the act itself but also the suspicion of it.”18 He also says in the same Essay: “Make it a point to both create good examples and to follow them.”
But the allegation that it was a custom of the times requires examination. It was a custom of the times in reality to make presents to superiors. Queen Elizabeth received them as New Year’s gifts from functionaries of all ranks, from her prime minister down to Charles Smith, the dust-man (see note 1, page 7), and this custom probably continued under her successor, and may have been applied to other high functionaries, but it does not appear to have 23been in legitimate use in the courts of judicature. Coke, himself Chief Justice, was Bacon’s principal accuser; and, although an enemy, he has been said to have conducted himself with moderation and propriety on this occasion only. Lord Campbell, Chief Justice of the Court of Queen’s Bench, and author of the Lives of the Chancellors and Chief Justices of England, repels the plea, as inadmissible. It cannot be denied that if Bacon extended the practice to the courts of justice, he has heaped coals of fire on his head; for applied to his own case personally it would be sufficiently odious; but what odium would not that man deserve who should systematize, nay, legitimize a practice that must inevitably poison the stream of justice at its fountain-head! What execration could be too great, if that man were the most intelligent, the wisest of his century, one of the most dignified in rank in the land, clad in spotless ermine, the emblem of purity, in short, the Minister of Justice!
But the claim that it was a common practice of the time needs to be examined. It was indeed a common practice to give gifts to superiors. Queen Elizabeth received them as New Year’s gifts from officials of all ranks, from her prime minister down to Charles Smith, the garbage man (see note 1, page 7), and this custom likely continued under her successor and may have also applied to other high officials. However, it doesn’t seem to have been properly used in the courts of law. Coke, who was the Chief Justice, was Bacon’s main accuser, and although he was an opponent, he reportedly acted with moderation and propriety on this occasion alone. Lord Campbell, Chief Justice of the Court of Queen’s Bench and author of the Lives of the Chancellors and Chief Justices of England, dismisses the argument as unacceptable. It’s undeniable that if Bacon applied this practice to the courts of justice, he would have brought a terrible fate upon himself; for if applied personally to his own situation, it would be incredibly distasteful. But what kind of disgrace would not that person deserve who would systematize, indeed legitimize, a practice that would inevitably corrupt the very foundation of justice? What condemnation could be too severe, if that person were the most intelligent, the wisest of his time, one of the highest-ranking individuals in the country, dressed in spotless ermine, a symbol of purity, in short, the Minister of Justice!
The Lords resolved that Bacon should be called upon to put in a particular answer to each of the special charges preferred against him. The formal articles with proofs in support were communicated to him. The House received the “confession and humble submission of me, the Lord Chancellor.” In this document, Bacon acknowledges himself to be guilty of corruption; and in reply to each special charge admits in every instance the receipt of money or valuable things from the suitors in his court; but alleging in some cases that it was after judgment,24 or as New Year’s gifts, a custom of the times, or for prior services. A committee of nine temporal and three spiritual lords was appointed to ascertain whether it was he who had subscribed this document. The committee repaired to his residence, were received in the hall where he had been accustomed to sit as judge, and merely asked him if the signature affixed to the paper they exhibited to him was his. He passionately exclaimed: “My lords, it is my act, my hand, my heart. I beseech your lordships to be merciful to a broken reed.” The committee withdrew, overwhelmed with grief at the sight of such greatness so fallen.
The Lords decided that Bacon should be asked to provide a specific response to each of the serious charges against him. The formal articles with supporting evidence were shared with him. The House received the “confession and humble submission of me, the Lord Chancellor.” In this document, Bacon admits to being guilty of corruption; in response to each charge, he acknowledges receiving money or valuable items from the individuals in his court, claiming in some cases that it was after a judgment, or as New Year’s gifts, which was a common practice at the time, or for past services. A committee of nine temporal lords and three spiritual lords was appointed to confirm whether he had signed this document. The committee went to his home, where they were received in the hall where he used to sit as judge, and simply asked him if the signature on the paper they showed him was his. He passionately exclaimed: “My lords, it is my act, my hand, my heart. I beseech your lordships to be merciful to a broken reed.” The committee left, deeply saddened by the sight of such a great figure brought so low.
Four commissioners dispatched by the King demanded the Great Seal of the Chancellor, confined to his bed by sickness and sorrow and want of sustenance; for he refused to take any food. He hid his face in his hand, and delivered up that Great Seal for the attainment of which he “had sullied his integrity, had resigned his independence, had violated the most sacred obligations of friendship and gratitude, had flattered the worthless, had persecuted the innocent, had tampered with judges, had tortured prisoners, had plundered suitors, had wasted on paltry intrigues all the powers of the most exquisitely constructed intellect that has ever been bestowed on any of the children of men.”19
Four commissioners sent by the King demanded the Great Seal from the Chancellor, who was bedridden due to illness, sorrow, and lack of food; he refused to eat. He buried his face in his hand and surrendered that Great Seal for which he "had compromised his integrity, given up his independence, broken the most sacred duties of friendship and gratitude, flattered the undeserving, persecuted the innocent, influenced judges, tortured prisoners, exploited suitors, and wasted all the talents of the most brilliantly constructed mind ever given to any of humankind.”19
All this he did to be Lord High Chancellor of England; and, had he not been the unworthy min25ister of James, he might have been, to use the beautiful language of Hallam, “the high-priest of nature.”
All this he did to become the Lord High Chancellor of England; and, if he hadn't been the unworthy minister of James, he might have been, to use Hallam's beautiful words, “the high priest of nature.”
On the 3d of May, he was unanimously declared to be guilty, and he was sentenced to a fine of forty thousand pounds, to be imprisoned in the Tower during the King’s pleasure, to be incapable of holding any public office, and of sitting in Parliament or of coming within the verge of the court.20 Such was the sentence pronounced on the man whom three months before the King delighted to honor for “his integrity in the administration of justice.”
On May 3rd, he was unanimously found guilty and sentenced to a fine of forty thousand pounds, imprisoned in the Tower for as long as the King wished, ineligible to hold any public office, to sit in Parliament, or to come within the vicinity of the court.20 This was the sentence given to the man whom, just three months earlier, the King had delighted to honor for “his integrity in the administration of justice.”
The fatal verdict affected his health so materially that the judgment could not receive immediate execution; he could not be conveyed to the Tower until the 31st of May; the following day he was liberated. He repaired to the house of Sir John Vaughan, who held a situation in the prince’s household.21 He wished to retire to his own residence at York House; but this was refused. He was ordered to proceed to his seat at Gorhambury, whence he was not to remove, and where he remained, though very reluctantly, till the ensuing spring.
The fatal verdict impacted his health so significantly that the judgment couldn't be carried out immediately; he couldn't be taken to the Tower until May 31st, and the next day he was released. He went to the home of Sir John Vaughan, who worked in the prince's household.21 He wanted to go back to his own place at York House, but that was denied. He was ordered to go to his residence at Gorhambury, from where he wasn't allowed to leave, and he stayed there, although very reluctantly, until the following spring.
The heavy fine was remitted. But as he had 26lived in great pomp, he had economized naught from his legitimate or ill-gotten gains. As he was now insolvent, a pension of twelve hundred pounds a year was bestowed on him; from his estate and other revenues he derived thirteen hundred pounds per annum more. On the 17th of October, his remaining penalties were remitted. It cannot but strike the reader as a most remarkable circumstance that, within eighteen months of the condemnation, all the penalties were successively remitted. Would this induce the belief that he was but the scape-goat of the court, that the condemnation was purely political? It is, we believe, to be explained ostensibly by the advanced age of Bacon, but really by the circumstance that the King’s favorite, Buckingham, was an accomplice.
The heavy fine was canceled. However, since he had lived in great luxury, he hadn't saved anything from his legitimate or ill-gotten wealth. Now that he was broke, he was granted a pension of twelve hundred pounds a year; in addition to his estate and other income, he made another thirteen hundred pounds annually. On October 17th, his remaining penalties were lifted. It's striking for the reader that within eighteen months of his conviction, all penalties were gradually removed. Does this suggest that he was just a scapegoat for the court, and that the conviction was purely political? This is likely explained on the surface by Bacon's old age, but is really due to the fact that the King's favorite, Buckingham, was involved.
Bacon discovered, alas! when it was too late, that the talent God had given him he had “misspent in things for which he was least fit;” or as Thomson has beautifully expressed it:22—
Bacon realized, unfortunately! when it was too late, that the talent God had given him he had “wasted on things he was least suited for;” or as Thomson has expressed so poetically:22—
It is gratifying to turn from the melancholy scenes exhibited by the political life of Bacon, to behold him 27in his study in the deep search of truth; no contrast is more striking than that between the chancellor and the philosopher, or, as Macaulay has well termed it, “Bacon seeking for truth, and Bacon seeking for the Seals—Bacon in speculation, and Bacon in action.” From amidst clouds and darkness we emerge into the full blaze and splendor of midday light.
It’s satisfying to shift away from the sad aspects of Bacon's political life and see him in his study, deeply searching for truth. There's no clearer contrast than that between him as chancellor and as philosopher, or as Macaulay aptly described it, “Bacon seeking for truth, and Bacon seeking for the Seals—Bacon in speculation, and Bacon in action.” From the midst of clouds and darkness, we step into the bright and dazzling light of midday.
We now find Bacon wholly devoting himself to the pursuits for which nature adapted him, and from which no extent of occupation could entirely detach him. The author redeemed the man; in the philosopher and the poet there was no weakness, no corruption.
We now see Bacon fully dedicating himself to the pursuits he was naturally suited for, and no amount of work could ever completely pull him away from them. The author saved the man; in the philosopher and the poet, there was no weakness, no corruption.
Here the writer yielded not to vitia temporis; but combated them with might and main, with heart and soul.
Here, the writer did not give in to vitia temporis; instead, they fought against them with all their strength, heart, and soul.
In 1623, he published the Life of Henry VII. In a letter addressed to the Queen of Bohemia with a copy, he says pathetically: “’Time was I had honor without leisure, and now I have leisure without honor.” But his honor without leisure had precipitated him into “bottomless perdition;” his leisure without honor retrieved his name, and raised him again to an unattainable height.
In 1623, he published the Life of Henry VII. In a letter to the Queen of Bohemia with a copy, he expresses sadly: “There was a time when I had honor without any free time, and now I have free time without honor.” But his honor without free time had led him to “bottomless ruin;” his free time without honor restored his reputation and lifted him back to an unreachable height.
In the following year, he printed his Latin translation of the Advancement of Learning, under the title of De Dignitate et Augmentis Scientiarum.
In the following year, he published his Latin translation of the Advancement of Learning, titled De Dignitate et Augmentis Scientiarum.
This was not, however, a mere translation; for he made in it omissions and alterations; and appears to have added about one third new matter; in short, he remodelled it. His work, replete with poetry and beautiful imagery, was received with applause throughout Europe. It was reprinted in France in 1624, one year after its appearance in England. It was immediately translated into French and Italian, and was published in Holland, the great book-mart of that time, in 1645, 1650, and 1662.
This was not just a simple translation; he made omissions and changes, and it seems he added about a third of new content; in short, he reworked it. His version, filled with poetry and beautiful imagery, was praised all over Europe. It was reprinted in France in 1624, a year after it came out in England. It was quickly translated into French and Italian, and it was published in Holland, the major publishing hub of that time, in 1645, 1650, and 1662.
In 1624, he solicited of the King a remission of the sentence, to the end, says he, “that blot of ignominy may be removed from me and from my memory with posterity.” The King granted him a full pardon. But he never more took his seat in the House of Lords. When the new Parliament met, after the accession of Charles the First, age, infirmity, and tardy wisdom had extinguished the ambition of Baron Verulam, Viscount St. Albans. When the writ of summons to the Parliament reached him, he exclaimed: “I have done with such vanities!”
In 1624, he asked the King for a pardon to remove the stain of disgrace from his life and from how future generations would remember him. The King granted him a full pardon. However, he never returned to his seat in the House of Lords. When the new Parliament met after Charles the First came to power, age, illness, and a late sense of wisdom had extinguished the ambitions of Baron Verulam, Viscount St. Albans. When the summons to Parliament arrived, he exclaimed, “I’m done with such foolishness!”
But the philosopher pursued his labor of love. He published new editions of his writings, and translated them into Latin, from the mistaken notion that in that language alone could they be rescued from oblivion. His crabbed latinity is now read but by few, or even may be said to be nearly forgotten; while his noble, majestic English is read over the29 whole British empire, on which the sun never sets, is studied and admired throughout the old world and the new, and it will be so by generations still unborn; it will descend to posterity in company with his contemporary, Shakspeare (whose name he never mentions), and will endure as long as the great and glorious language itself; indeed, as he foretold of his Essays, it “will live as long as books last.”
But the philosopher continued his labor of love. He published new editions of his writings and translated them into Latin, mistakenly believing that only in that language could they be saved from being forgotten. His awkward Latin is now read by few and can even be said to be nearly forgotten; meanwhile, his noble, powerful English is read throughout the29 entire British Empire, where the sun never sets, studied and admired across both the old and new worlds, and it will continue to be so for generations yet to come; it will be handed down to future generations alongside his contemporary, Shakespeare (whose name he never mentions), and will last as long as the great and glorious language itself; indeed, as he predicted about his Essays, it “will live as long as books last.”
In the translation of his works into Latin, he was assisted by Rawley, his future biographer, and his two friends, Ben Jonson, the poet, and Hobbes, the philosopher.
In translating his works into Latin, he got help from Rawley, who would later write his biography, along with his two friends, the poet Ben Jonson and the philosopher Hobbes.
He wrote for his “own recreation,” amongst very serious studies, a Collection of Apophthegms, New and Old, said to have been dictated in one rainy day, but probably the result of several “rainy days.” This contains many excellent jocular anecdotes, and has been, perhaps, with too much indulgence, pronounced by Macaulay to be the best jest-book in the world.
He wrote for his “own enjoyment,” alongside very serious studies, a Collection of Apophthegms, New and Old, which is said to have been put together on one rainy day, but is probably the result of several “rainy days.” This collection includes many great funny stories and has been, perhaps a bit too generously, claimed by Macaulay to be the best joke book in the world.
He commenced a Digest of the Laws of England, but he soon discontinued it, because it was “a work of assistance, and that which he could not master by his own forces and pen.” James the First had not sufficient elevation of mind to afford him the means of securing the assistance he required.
He started a Digest of the Laws of England, but he quickly stopped working on it because it was “a project that needed help, and one he couldn't handle on his own.” James the First didn't have the open-mindedness to help him get the support he needed.
He wrote his will with his own hand on the 19th of December, 1625. He directs that he shall be interred in St. Michael’s Church, near St. Albans: “There was my mother buried, and it is the parish30 church of my mansion-house at Gorhambury.... For my name and memory, I leave it to men’s charitable speeches, and to foreign nations, and the next ages.” This supreme act of filial piety towards his gifted mother is affecting. Let no “uncharitable” word be uttered over his last solemn behest; foreign nations and all ages will not refuse a tribute of homage to his genius! Gassendi presents an analysis of his labors, and pays a tribute of admiration to their author; Descartes has mentioned him with encomium; Malebranche quotes him as an authority; Puffendorff expressed admiration of him; the University of Oxford presented to him, after his fall, an address, in which he is termed “a mighty Hercules, who had by his own hand greatly advanced those pillars in the learned world which by the rest of the world were supposed immovable.” Leibnitz ascribed to him the revival of true philosophy; Newton had studied him so closely that he adopted even his phraseology; Voltaire and D’Alembert have rendered him popular in France. The modern philosophers of all Europe regard him reverentially as the father of experimental philosophy.
He wrote his will by hand on December 19, 1625. He requests to be buried in St. Michael’s Church, near St. Albans: “That’s where my mother was buried, and it's the parish church of my house at Gorhambury.... I leave my name and memory to people’s kind words, to foreign nations, and to future generations.” This final act of devotion to his talented mother is moving. Let no “unkind” words be spoken over his last wishes; foreign nations and all generations will pay tribute to his genius! Gassendi analyzes his work and admires its author; Descartes has praised him; Malebranche cites him as an authority; Puffendorf expressed his admiration for him; the University of Oxford presented him, after his passing, with a statement calling him “a mighty Hercules, who by his own hand greatly advanced those pillars in the learned world which the rest of the world thought were immovable.” Leibniz credited him with reviving true philosophy; Newton studied him so closely that he even adopted his way of speaking; Voltaire and D’Alembert made him well-known in France. Modern philosophers across Europe regard him with deep respect as the father of experimental philosophy.
He attempted at this late period of his life a metrical translation into English of the Psalms of David; although his prose is full of poetry, his verse has but little of the divine art.
He tried late in his life to create a poetic translation of the Psalms of David into English; even though his prose is full of poetry, his verse lacks much of the divine artistry.
He again declined to take his seat as a peer in Charles’s second Parliament; but the last stage of his life displayed more dignity and real greatness31 than the “pride, pomp, and circumstance” of his high offices and honors. The public of England and of “foreign nations” forgot the necessity of “charitable speeches” and anticipated “the next ages.” The most distinguished foreigners repaired to Gray’s Inn to pay their respects to him. The Marquis d’Effiat, who brought over to England the Princess Henrietta Maria, the wife of Charles the First, went to see him. Bacon, confined to his bed, but unwilling to decline the visit, received him with the curtains drawn. “You resemble the angels,” said the French minister to him, “we hear those beings continually talked of; we believe them superior to mankind; and we never have the consolation to see them.”
He again refused to take his seat as a member of Charles’s second Parliament; however, the final years of his life showed more dignity and true greatness than the “pride, pomp, and circumstance” of his high offices and honors. The people of England and even “foreign nations” forgot the need for “charitable speeches” and looked ahead to “the next ages.” The most notable foreigners visited Gray’s Inn to pay their respects to him. The Marquis d’Effiat, who brought the Princess Henrietta Maria, wife of Charles the First, to England, came to see him. Bacon, stuck in bed but not wanting to decline the visit, received him with the curtains drawn. “You resemble the angels,” said the French minister to him, “we hear about those beings all the time; we believe they are superior to humans, yet we never have the comfort of actually seeing them.”
But in ill health and infirmity he continued his studies and experiments; as it occurred to him that snow might preserve animal substances from putrefaction as well as salt, he tried the experiment, and stuffed a fowl with snow with his own hands. “The great apostle of experimental philosophy was destined to become its martyr;” he took cold. From his bed he dictated a letter to the Earl of Arundel, to whose house he had been conveyed. “I was likely to have had the fortune of Caïus Plinius the Elder, who lost his life by trying an experiment about the burning of the Mount Vesuvius. For I was also desirous to try an experiment or two touching the conservation and induration of bodies. As for the experiment itself, it succeeded excellently32 well.” He had, indeed, the fortune of Pliny the Elder; for he never recovered from the effects of his cold, which brought on fever and a complaint of the chest; and he expired on the 9th of April, 1626, in the sixty-sixth year of his age. Thus died, a victim to his devotion to science, Francis Bacon, whose noble death is an expiation of the errors of his life, and who was, as has been justly observed, notwithstanding all his faults, one of the greatest ornaments and benefactors of the human race.
But despite being in poor health and feeling weak, he kept up with his studies and experiments. He thought that snow might preserve animal materials from rotting just like salt does, so he decided to test the idea and stuffed a bird with snow himself. "The great advocate of experimental science was destined to become its martyr;" he caught a cold. From his bed, he wrote a letter to the Earl of Arundel, where he had been taken. "I was about to meet the fate of Caïus Plinius the Elder, who lost his life trying to experiment on the eruption of Mount Vesuvius. I too wanted to try a couple of experiments about preserving and hardening bodies. As for the experiment itself, it succeeded really well." He truly had the same fate as Pliny the Elder; he never recovered from his cold, which led to a fever and a chest ailment, and he died on April 9, 1626, at the age of sixty-six. Thus died Francis Bacon, a martyr to his dedication to science, whose noble death serves as a redemption for his life's mistakes, and who, despite all his flaws, has been rightly recognized as one of the greatest contributors and benefactors to humanity.
No account has been preserved of his funeral; but probably it was private. Sir Thomas Meautys, his faithful secretary, erected at his own expense a monument to Bacon’s memory. Bacon is represented sitting, reclining on his hand, and absorbed in meditation. The effigy bears the inscription: sic sedebat.
No record of his funeral has survived; but it was likely private. Sir Thomas Meautys, his devoted secretary, paid for a monument in Bacon’s honor. The statue shows Bacon sitting, resting on his hand, deep in thought. The inscription reads: sic sedebat.
The singular fact ought not to be omitted, that notwithstanding the immense sums that had been received by him, legitimately or otherwise, he died insolvent. The fault of his life had been that he never adapted his expenses to his income; perhaps even he never calculated them. To what irretrievable ruin did not this lead him? To disgrace and dishonor, in the midst of his career; to insolvency at its end. His love of worldly grandeur was uncontrollable, or at least uncontrolled. “The virtue of prosperity is temperance,” says he himself; but this virtue he did not possess. His stately bark rode proudly over the waves, unmindful of the rocks; on one of these, alas! it split and foundered.
It's important to note that despite the huge amounts of money he received, whether legally or not, he died broke. The problem with his life was that he never adjusted his spending to match his income; he may not have even bothered to calculate it. This led him to an irreversible downfall: disgrace and dishonor in the middle of his career, and bankruptcy at the end. His desire for worldly success was overwhelming, or at least unchecked. “The virtue of prosperity is moderation,” he himself said, but he lacked this quality. His grand ship sailed confidently over the waves, ignoring the rocks; on one of these, sadly, it crashed and sank.
Bacon was very prepossessing in his person; he was in stature above the middle size; his forehead was broad and high, of an intellectual appearance; his eye was lively and expressive; and his countenance bore early the marks of deep thought.
Bacon was quite appealing in his appearance; he was taller than average; his forehead was broad and high, giving him an intellectual look; his eyes were bright and expressive; and his face showed early signs of deep thought.
It might be mentioned here with instruction to the reader, that few men were more impressed than Bacon with the value of time, the most precious element of life. He assiduously employed the smallest portions of it; considering justly that the days, the hours, nay minutes of existence require the greatest care at our hands; the weeks, months, and years have been wisely said to take care of themselves. His chaplain, Rawley, remarks: “Nullum momentum aut temporis segmentum perire et intercidere passus est,” he suffered no moment nor fragment of time to pass away unprofitably. It is this circumstance that explains to us the great things he accomplished even in the most busy part of his life.
It's worth noting that few people valued time more than Bacon, seeing it as the most precious part of life. He made sure to use even the smallest bits of it wisely, recognizing that every day, hour, and even minute of our lives deserves our utmost attention; weeks, months, and years, as they say, tend to take care of themselves. His chaplain, Rawley, noted: “Nullum momentum aut temporis segmentum perire et intercidere passus est,” meaning he didn’t let any moment or piece of time go by unproductively. This is why he achieved so much, even during the busiest times of his life.
The whole of Bacon’s biography has been admirably recapitulated by Lord Campbell23 in the following paragraph:—
The entirety of Bacon's biography has been well summarized by Lord Campbell23 in the following paragraph:—
“We have seen him taught his alphabet by his mother; patted on the head by Queen Elizabeth; mocking the worshippers of Aristotle at Cambridge; catching the first glimpses of his great discoveries, and yet uncertain whether the light was from heaven; associating with the learned and the gay at the court of France; devoting himself to Bracton24 and 34the Year Books in Gray’s Inn; throwing aside the musty folios of the law to write a moral Essay, to make an experiment in natural philosophy, or to detect the fallacies which had hitherto obstructed the progress of useful truth; contented for a time with taking “all knowledge for his province;” roused from these speculations by the stings of vulgar ambition; plying all the arts of flattery to gain official advancement by royal and courtly favor; entering the House of Commons, and displaying powers of oratory of which he had been unconscious; being seduced by the love of popular applause, for a brief space becoming a patriot; making amends, by defending all the worst excesses of prerogative; publishing to the world lucubrations on morals, which show the nicest perception of what is honorable and beautiful as well as prudent, in the conduct of life; yet the son of a Lord Keeper, the nephew of the prime minister, a Queen’s counsel, with the first practice at the bar, arrested for debt, and languishing in a spunging-house; tired with vain solicitations to his own kindred for promotion, joining the party of their opponent, and after experiencing the most generous kindness from the young and chivalrous head of it, assisting to bring him to the scaffold, and to blacken his memory; seeking, by a mercenary marriage to repair his broken fortunes; on the accession of a new sovereign offering up the most servile adulation to a pedant whom he utterly despised; infinitely gratified by being permitted to kneel down, with three hundred others, to receive the honor of knighthood; truckling to a worthless favorite with the most slavish subserviency that he might be appointed a law-officer of the Crown; then giving the most admirable advice for the compilation and emendation of the laws of England, and helping to inflict torture on a poor parson whom he wished to hang as a traitor for writing an unpublished and 35unpreached sermon; attracting the notice of all Europe by his philosophical works, which established a new era in the mode of investigating the phenomena both of matter and mind; basely intriguing in the meanwhile for further promotion, and writing secret letters to his sovereign to disparage his rivals; riding proudly between the Lord High Treasurer and Lord Privy Seal, preceded by his mace-bearer and purse-bearer, and followed by a long line of nobles and judges, to be installed in the office of Lord High Chancellor; by and by, settling with his servants the account of the bribes they had received for him; a little embarrassed by being obliged, out of decency, the case being so clear, to decide against the party whose money he had pocketed, but stifling the misgivings of conscience by the splendor and flattery which he now commanded; struck to the earth by the discovery of his corruption; taking to his bed, and refusing sustenance; confessing the truth of the charges brought against him, and abjectly imploring mercy; nobly rallying from his disgrace, and engaging in new literary undertakings, which have added to the splendor of his name; still exhibiting a touch of his ancient vanity, and, in the midst of pecuniary embarrassment, refusing to ‘be stripped of his feathers;’25 inspired, nevertheless, with all his youthful zeal for science, in conducting his last experiment of ‘stuffing a fowl with snow to preserve it,’ which succeeded ‘excellently well,’ but brought him to his grave; and, as the closing act of a life so checkered, making his will, whereby, conscious of the shame he had incurred among his contemporaries, but impressed with a swelling conviction of what he had achieved for mankind, he bequeathed his ‘name and memory to men’s charitable speeches, to foreign nations, and the next ages.’”
“We’ve watched him learn the alphabet from his mother; get patted on the head by Queen Elizabeth; make fun of Aristotle’s followers at Cambridge; begin to notice the early signs of his great discoveries, unsure if the insight was divine; socialize with the educated and lively people at the French court; dedicate himself to Bracton__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ and the Year Books in Gray’s Inn; abandon dusty law books to write a moral essay, experiment in natural philosophy, or point out the flaws that had hindered the advancement of useful truth; initially content with claiming “all knowledge for his realm;” stirred from these thoughts by common ambition; using all the flattery he could muster to gain official status through royal and courtly favor; entering the House of Commons and displaying oratory skills he didn’t know he possessed; tempted by the desire for public applause, momentarily becoming a patriot; making amends by defending all the worst abuses of power; publishing writings on morals that demonstrate a deep understanding of honor, beauty, and prudence in life; yet, despite being the son of a Lord Keeper, the nephew of a prime minister, and a Queen’s counsel with the best practice at the bar, he was arrested for debt and ended up in a debtor's prison; tired of begging his relatives for promotion, he switched sides to join their opponents and, after receiving generous support from their young and noble leader, helped lead him to the scaffold and tarnish his legacy; trying to improve his fortune through a financially motivated marriage; when a new sovereign rose to power, he offered the most submissive praise to a pedant he utterly despised; immensely pleased to be allowed to kneel alongside three hundred others to receive a knighthood; fawning over a worthless favorite with excessive subservience to be appointed a law officer of the Crown; then providing excellent advice for drafting and improving England’s laws, while also helping to torture a poor parson he wanted to hang as a traitor for writing an unpublished sermon; gaining recognition across Europe for his philosophical works that marked a new era in exploring both matter and mind; secretly scheming for more promotions, writing hidden letters to his sovereign to undermine his rivals; riding proudly between the Lord High Treasurer and Lord Privy Seal, with his mace-bearer and purse-bearer leading the way, followed by a long line of nobles and judges, to be installed as Lord High Chancellor; later settling up with his servants about the bribes they had accepted on his behalf; a bit uneasy because he had to go against the party whose money he had taken, but pushing aside his conscience thanks to the grandeur and flattery he now enjoyed; brought down by the revelation of his corruption; taking to his bed and refusing food; confessing to the charges against him and begging for mercy; rising nobly from his disgrace and taking on new literary projects that enhanced his legacy; still showing traces of his old vanity, and despite financial difficulties, refusing to be ‘stripped of his feathers;’__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__ yet inspired, with youthful enthusiasm for science, conducting his last experiment of ‘stuffing a bird with snow to preserve it,’ which succeeded ‘very well,’ but led to his demise; and, as the final act of a life so full of ups and downs, writing his will, feeling the shame he had earned among his contemporaries, yet filled with pride over what he had done for humanity, leaving his ‘name and memory to men’s charitable speeches, to foreign nations, and to future ages.’”
After this brilliant recapitulation of the principal facts of Bacon’s eventful life, there remains the 36difficult task of examining his character as a writer and philosopher; and then of presenting some observations on his principal works. As these subjects have occupied the attention of the master minds and most elegant writers of England, we shall unhesitatingly present the reader with the opinions of these, the most competent judges in each special department.
After this insightful summary of the key events in Bacon’s remarkable life, we have the challenging job of exploring his character as a writer and philosopher, and then sharing some thoughts on his major works. Since these topics have captivated the attention of the greatest thinkers and finest writers in England, we will confidently provide the reader with the views of these expert judges in their respective fields.
But first, let the philosopher speak for himself.
But first, let the philosopher share his own thoughts.
The end and aim of the writings of Bacon are best described by himself, as these descriptions may be gleaned from his various works. He taught, to use his own language, the means, not of the “amplification of the power of one man over his country, nor of the amplification of the power of that country over other nations; but the amplification of the power and kingdom of mankind over the world.”26 “A restitution of man to the sovereignty of nature.”27 “The enlarging the bounds of human empire to the effecting of all things possible.”28 From the enlargement of reason, he did not separate the growth of virtue; for he thought that “truth and goodness were one, differing but as the seal and the print, for truth prints goodness.”29
The goal and purpose of Bacon's writings are best explained by him, as these insights can be gathered from his various works. He stated, in his own words, the means not to “expand the power of one person over their country, nor the power of that country over other nations; but to expand the power and dominion of humanity over the world.”26 “A restoration of humanity to the control of nature.”27 “To extend the limits of human influence to achieve all that is possible.”28 He believed that the expansion of reason was connected to the growth of virtue; for he thought that “truth and goodness were the same, differing only like the seal and its impression, as truth reflects goodness.”29
The art which Bacon taught, has been well said to be “the art of inventing arts.”
The art that Bacon taught has been rightly described as “the art of inventing arts.”
The great qualities of his mind, as they are exhibited in his works, have been well portrayed by the 37pen of Sir James Mackintosh. We subjoin the opinion of this elegant writer in his own words:
The great qualities of his mind, as shown in his works, have been well captured by the 37 pen of Sir James Mackintosh. We include the opinion of this talented writer in his own words:
“It is easy to describe his transcendent merit in general terms of commendation: for some of his great qualities lie on the surface of his writings. But that in which he most excelled all other men, was in the range and compass of his intellectual view—the power of contemplating many and distant objects together, without indistinctness or confusion—which he himself has called the discursive or comprehensive understanding. This wide-ranging intellect was illuminated by the brightest Fancy that ever contented itself with the office of only ministering to Reason: and from this singular relation of the two grand faculties of man, it has resulted, that his philosophy, though illustrated still more than adorned by the utmost splendor of imagery, continues still subject to the undivided supremacy of intellect. In the midst of all the prodigality of an imagination which, had it been independent, would have been poetical, his opinions remained severely rational.
“It’s simple to highlight his exceptional qualities through general praise: some of his great traits are clear in his writings. However, what truly distinguished him from others was the wide-ranging and profound nature of his intellect—his ability to consider many distant ideas at once, clearly and without confusion—which he called discursive or comprehensive understanding. This expansive intellect was enhanced by the most vivid imagination that ever played a supporting role to Reason: and from this unique relationship between the two main faculties of humanity, his philosophy, while featuring stunning imagery, still remains firmly rooted in pure intellect. Despite the extravagant imagination that, if left unrestrained, could have been poetic, his ideas remained rigorously rational.”
“It is not so easy to conceive, or at least to describe, other equally essential elements of his greatness, and conditions of his success. He is probably a single instance of a mind which, in philosophizing, always reaches the point of elevation whence the whole prospect is commanded, without ever rising to such a distance as to lose a distinct perception of every part of it.”30
“It’s not easy to grasp, or at least to articulate, other equally significant aspects of his greatness and the factors that contributed to his success. He seems to be a unique case of a mind that, while philosophizing, always reaches a high enough perspective to see the whole landscape, yet never so far away that he loses sight of any detail.”30
Mr. Macaulay speaks of the following peculiarity of Bacon’s understanding:31—
Mr. Macaulay talks about this unique aspect of Bacon’s understanding:31—
“With great minuteness of observation he had an amplitude of comprehension such as has never yet been vouchsafed to any other human being. The small fine mind of La Bruyère had not a more delicate tact than the large intel38lect of Bacon. The “Essays” contain abundant proofs that no nice feature of character, no peculiarity in the ordering of a house, a garden, or a court-masque, could escape the notice of one whose mind was capable of taking in the whole world of knowledge. His understanding resembled the tent which the fairy Paribanou gave to prince Ahmed. Fold it, and it seemed a toy for the hand of the lady. Spread it, and the armies of powerful sultans might repose beneath its shade.
“With incredible attention to detail, he had a depth of understanding that no one else has ever had. The subtle insights of La Bruyère were no more refined than the broad intellect of Bacon. The “Essays” are filled with evidence that no minor aspect of character, no unique arrangement of a home, garden, or court performance could escape the notice of someone whose mind covered the entire scope of knowledge. His understanding was like the tent that the fairy Paribanou gave to Prince Ahmed. When folded, it looked like a toy for a lady’s hand. When spread out, powerful sultans' armies could rest under its shade.”
“In keenness of observation he has been equalled, though, perhaps, never surpassed. But the largeness of his mind was all his own. The glance with which he surveyed the intellectual universe, resembled that which the archangel, from the golden threshold of heaven, darted down into the new creation.
“In terms of observation, he was matched, but perhaps never surpassed. However, the range of his mind was uniquely his. The way he viewed the intellectual world was like the archangel looking down from the golden gates of heaven into the new creation.”
Bacon’s philosophy is, to use an expression of his own, “the servant and interpreter of nature;” he cultivated it in the leisure left him by the assiduous study and practice of the law and by the willing duties of a courtier; it was rather the recreation than the business of his life; “my business,” said he, “found rest in my contemplations;” but his very recreations rendered him, according to Leibnitz, the father of experimental philosophy, and, according to all, the originator of all its results, of all later discoveries in chemistry and the arts, in short, of all modern science and its applications.
Bacon’s philosophy is, to use his own words, “the servant and interpreter of nature;” he developed it during the free time he had after diligently studying and practicing law, and fulfilling his duties as a courtier; it was more of a pastime than his main focus in life; “my work,” he said, “found rest in my reflections;” however, these very pastimes made him, as Leibniz noted, the father of experimental philosophy, and, as everyone agrees, the source of all its outcomes, the basis for all later discoveries in chemistry and the arts, in short, the foundation of all modern science and its applications.
Mr. Macaulay is of opinion that the two leading principles of his philosophy are utility and progress; that the ethics of his inductive method are to do good, to do more and more good, to mankind.
Mr. Macaulay believes that the two main principles of his philosophy are utility and progress; that the ethics of his inductive method focus on doing good, doing even more good, for humanity.
Lord Campbell believes that a most perfect body of ethics might be made out from the writings of Bacon.
Lord Campbell believes that a completely perfect system of ethics could be created from Bacon's writings.
The origin of his philosophy was the conviction with which he was impressed of the insufficiency of that of the ancients, or rather of that of Aristotle, which reigned with almost undisputed sway throughout Europe. He reverenced antiquity for its great works, its great men; but not because of its ancientness; he deemed its decrees worthy of reverential consideration, but did not think they admitted of no appeal; he was not a bigot to antiquity or a contemner of modern times. He happily combated that undue and blind submission to the authority of ancient times for the mere reason that they are older than our own, alleging truly that “ANTIQUITAS SECULI JUVENTUS MUNDI, that our times are the ancient times, when the world is ancient, and not those which we account ancient, ordine retrogrado, by a computation backward from ourselves.”32
The origin of his philosophy came from his strong belief in the inadequacy of the ideas from the ancients, particularly Aristotle, whose thoughts dominated Europe almost without challenge. He respected the past for its significant works and influential individuals, but not just because they were old; he believed that its teachings deserved careful consideration but didn’t think they were beyond question. He was neither a zealous advocate for the past nor dismissive of modern times. He effectively challenged the blind obedience to ancient authority simply because it was older than our current time, rightly claiming that “Antiquity of the world's youth, that our times are the ancient times, when the world is ancient, and not those which we consider ancient, ordine retrogrado, by counting backward from ourselves.”32
Throwing off, then, all allegiance to antiquity, he appealed directly from Aristotle to nature, from reasoning to experiment.
Throwing off all loyalty to the past, he appealed directly from Aristotle to nature, from reasoning to experimentation.
But let us invoke the testimony of an eminent philosopher, Sir John Herschel:—
But let's refer to the words of a notable philosopher, Sir John Herschel:—
“By the discoveries of Copernicus, Kepler, and Galileo, the errors of the Aristotelian philosophy were effectually overturned on a plain appeal to the facts of nature; but it remained to show, on broad and general principles, how and why Aristotle was in the wrong; to set in evidence the peculiar weakness of his method of philosophizing, and to substitute in its place a stronger and better. This important task was executed by Francis Bacon, Lord Verulam, who will therefore justly be looked upon in all future ages as the great reformer of philosophy, though his own actual contributions to the stock of physical truths were small, and his ideas of particular points strongly tinctured with mistakes and errors, which were the fault rather of the general want of physical information of the age than of any narrowness of view on his own part; of this he was fully aware. It has been attempted by some to lessen the merit of this great achievement, by showing that the inductive method had been practised in many instances, both ancient and modern, by the mere instinct of mankind; but it is not the introduction of inductive reasoning, as a new and hitherto untried process, which characterizes the Baconian philosophy, but his keen perception, and his broad and spirit-stirring, almost enthusiastic, announcement of its paramount importance, as the alpha and omega of science, as the grand and only chain for the linking together of physical truths, and the eventual key to every discovery and every application. Those who would deny him his just glory on such grounds would refuse to Jenner or to Howard their civic crowns, because a few farmers in a remote province had, time out of mind, been acquainted with vaccination, or philanthropists, in all ages, had occasionally visited the prisoner in his dungeon.”
“Thanks to the discoveries of Copernicus, Kepler, and Galileo, the weaknesses of Aristotelian philosophy were effectively challenged through clear observations of nature. However, it was still important to show, on broad general principles, how and why Aristotle was mistaken; to point out the specific flaws in his thinking, and to replace it with a stronger, better approach. This essential task was undertaken by Francis Bacon, Lord Verulam, who will rightly be regarded by future generations as the great reformer of philosophy, despite his minimal contributions to physical knowledge and significant flaws in some of his views—errors largely due to the general lack of understanding of physics at the time rather than any narrow-mindedness on his part; he was fully aware of this. Some have tried to downplay this achievement by claiming that the inductive method had been used in various instances, both ancient and modern, simply as a matter of human instinct. But what defines Bacon's philosophy is not the introduction of inductive reasoning as a new method; it's his keen insight and bold, inspiring assertion of its critical importance as the essence of science, as the essential link connecting physical truths and ultimately serving as the key to all discoveries and applications. Those who would deny him his rightful credit on such grounds would similarly undermine the achievements of Jenner or Howard just because a few farmers in a distant region had known about vaccination for ages, or because philanthropists have periodically visited prisoners throughout history.”
“It is to our immortal countryman Bacon,” says he, again, “that we owe the broad announcement of this grand and fertile principle; and the development of the idea, that the whole of natural philosophy consists entirely of a series of 41inductive generalizations, commencing with the most circumstantially stated particulars, and carried up to universal laws, or axioms, which comprehend in their statements every subordinate degree of generality and of a corresponding series of inverted reasoning from generals to particulars, by which these axioms are traced back into their remotest consequences, and all particular propositions deduced from them, as well those by whose immediate consideration we rose to their discovery, as those of which we had no previous knowledge....
“It is to our immortal countryman Bacon,” he adds, “that we owe the clear articulation of this grand and fertile principle; and the development of the notion that all of natural philosophy is entirely composed of a series of 41inductive generalizations, beginning with the most detailed specifics and moving toward universal laws, or axioms, that cover every level of generality in their statements. This includes a corresponding series of reasoning that goes from general principles back to specifics, allowing these axioms to be traced back to their furthest consequences, with all specific propositions derived from them, including those that directly led us to their discovery, as well as those we had no prior knowledge of…”
“It would seem that a union of two qualities almost opposite to each other—a going forth of the thoughts in two directions, and a sudden transfer of ideas from a remote station in one to an equally distant one in the other—is required to start the first idea of applying science. Among the Greeks, this point was attained by Archimedes, but attained too late, on the eve of that great eclipse of science which was destined to continue for nearly eighteen centuries, till Galileo in Italy, and Bacon in England, at once dispelled the darkness; the one, by his inventions and discoveries; the other, by the irresistible force of his arguments and eloquence.”33
“It seems you need a combination of two almost opposing qualities—a flow of thoughts in two directions, and a quick transfer of ideas from one distant point to another equally far away—to ignite the initial idea of applying science. Among the Greeks, Archimedes reached this point, but he did so too late, just before the great decline of science that would last nearly eighteen centuries, until Galileo in Italy and Bacon in England finally restored understanding; one through his inventions and discoveries, the other with the compelling strength of his arguments and eloquence.”33
His style is copious, comprehensive, and smooth; it does not flow with the softness of the purling rill, but rather with the strength, fulness, and swelling of a majestic river, and the rude harmony of the mountain stream. His images are replete with poetry and thought; they always illustrate his subject. Hallam is of opinion that the modern writer that comes nearest to him is Burke. “He had,” said Addison, “the sound, distinct, comprehensive knowledge of Aristotle, with all the beautiful lights, graces, and 42 embellishments of Cicero. One does not know which to admire most in his writings, the strength of reason, force of style, or brightness of imagination.”34
His style is rich, thorough, and smooth; it doesn’t flow with the gentleness of a babbling brook, but rather with the strength, fullness, and grandeur of a majestic river, along with the rugged beauty of a mountain stream. His imagery is full of poetry and thought; it always serves to illustrate his subject. Hallam believes that the modern writer who comes closest to him is Burke. “He had,” said Addison, “the solid, clear, comprehensive knowledge of Aristotle, combined with all the beautiful insights, charms, and embellishments of Cicero. It’s hard to decide what to admire most in his writings: the strength of his reasoning, the power of his style, or the brilliance of his imagination.”42
Bacon improved so much the melody, elegance, and force of English prose, that we may apply to him what was said of Augustus with regard to Rome: lateritiam invenit, marmoream reliquit; he found it brick, and he left it marble. Mr. Hallam’s opinion differs somewhat from this; it is as follows:—
Bacon greatly enhanced the melody, elegance, and strength of English prose, so we can say about him what was said of Augustus regarding Rome: lateritiam invenit, marmoream reliquit; he found it brick and left it marble. Mr. Hallam’s opinion differs somewhat from this; it is as follows:—
“The style of Bacon has an idiosyncrasy which we might expect from his genius. It can rarely indeed happen, and only in men of secondary talents, that the language they use is not, by its very choice and collocation, as well as its meaning, the representative of an individuality that distinguishes their turn of thought. Bacon is elaborate, sententious, often witty, often metaphorical; nothing could be spared; his analogies are generally striking and novel; his style is clear, precise, forcible; yet there is some degree of stiffness about it, and in mere language he is inferior to Raleigh.”35
“Bacon's style is unique and reflects his genius. It's uncommon, especially with less talented individuals, for the language to not show their distinctive thought processes through word choice and structure. Bacon's writing is detailed, sharp, often witty, and frequently employs metaphors; nothing is left out. His analogies are typically striking and original; his style is clear, precise, and powerful; however, it has a certain stiffness, and in terms of pure language, he doesn't quite measure up to Raleigh.”35
It is a most remarkable characteristic of Bacon, and one in which Burke resembled him, that his imagination grew stronger with his increasing years, and his style richer and softer. “The fruit came first,” says Mr. Macaulay, “and remained till the last; the blossoms did not appear till late. In eloquence, in sweetness and variety of expression, and in richness of illustration, his later writings are far 43 superior to those of his youth.” His earliest Essays have as much truth and cogent reasoning as his latest; but these are far superior in grace and beauty. A most striking illustration of this is afforded by one of the last Essays, added a year before Bacon’s death, that of Adversity (Essay V.), than which naught can be more graceful and beautiful.
Bacon had a remarkable trait, similar to Burke, in that his imagination became stronger as he got older, and his writing style became richer and softer. “The fruit came first,” says Mr. Macaulay, “and stayed until the end; the blossoms didn’t show up until later. In terms of eloquence, sweetness, variety of expression, and richness of illustration, his later writings are much better than those from his youth.” His earliest Essays contain just as much truth and solid reasoning as his latest ones, but the latter are much more graceful and beautiful. A striking example of this is found in one of his last Essays, added a year before Bacon’s death, titled Adversity (Essay V.), which is incredibly graceful and beautiful.
The account of Bacon’s works will necessarily be very succinct, and, we fear, imperfect. We shall, however, for each of them, call in the aid of the most competent judges, whose award public opinion will not reverse.
The overview of Bacon's works will inevitably be brief, and we worry it may be lacking. However, for each of them, we will enlist the help of the most qualified experts, whose opinions the public won't change.
ESSAYS.
Bacon published his Essays in 1597. They were, in the estimation of Mr. Hallam, the first in time and in excellence of English writings on moral prudence. Of the fifty-eight Essays, of which the work is now composed, ten only appeared in the first edition. But to these were added Religious Meditations, Places of Perswasion and Disswasion, Seene and allowed; many of which were afterwards embodied in the Essays. These Essays were: 1. Of Studie; 2. Of Discourse; 3. Of Ceremonies and Respects; 4. Of Followers and Friends; 5. Of Sutors; 6. Of Expence; 7. Of Regiment of Health; 8. Of Honor and Reputation; 9. Of Faction; 10. Of Negociating. In the edition of 1612, “The Essaies of Sr Francis Bacon Knight, the King’s Atturny Generall,” were increased to forty-one.
Bacon published his Essays in 1597. According to Mr. Hallam, they are the earliest and finest English writings on moral wisdom. Out of the fifty-eight Essays that make up the work today, only ten were included in the first edition. To these, Religious Meditations, Places of Perswasion and Disswasion, Seene and allowed were added; many of which were later included in the Essays. The Essays were: 1. Of Study; 2. Of Discourse; 3. Of Ceremonies and Respects; 4. Of Followers and Friends; 5. Of Suitors; 6. Of Expense; 7. Of the Regiment of Health; 8. Of Honor and Reputation; 9. Of Faction; 10. Of Negotiating. In the 1612 edition, “The Essays of Sr Francis Bacon Knight, the King’s Attorney General,” were expanded to forty-one.
The new Essays added are: 1. Of Religion; 2. Of Death; 3. Of Goodnesse, and Goodnesse of Nature; 4. Of Cunning; 5. Of Marriage and Single Life; 6. Of Parents and Children; 7. Of Nobility; 8. Of Great Place; 9. Of Empire; 10. Of Counsell; 11. Of Dispatch; 12. Of Love; 13. Of Friendship; 14. Of Atheism; 15. Of Superstition; 16. Of Wisedome for a Man’s selfe; 20. Of seeming wise; 21. Of Riches; 22. Of Ambition; 23. Of Young Men and Age; 24. Of Beauty; 25. Of Deformity; 26. Of Nature in Men; 27. Of Custom and Education; 28. Of Fortune; 35. Of Praise; 36. Of Judicature; 37. of Vaine-Glory; 38. Of Greatnesse of Kingdomes; 39. Of the Publique; 40. Of Warre and Peace.
The new essays added are: 1. On Religion; 2. On Death; 3. On Goodness and the Goodness of Nature; 4. On Cunning; 5. On Marriage and Single Life; 6. On Parents and Children; 7. On Nobility; 8. On Great Places; 9. On Empire; 10. On Counsel; 11. On Dispatch; 12. On Love; 13. On Friendship; 14. On Atheism; 15. On Superstition; 16. On Wisdom for a Man’s Self; 20. On Appearing Wise; 21. On Wealth; 22. On Ambition; 23. On Young People and Age; 24. On Beauty; 25. On Deformity; 26. On Nature in People; 27. On Custom and Education; 28. On Fortune; 35. On Praise; 36. On Judgments; 37. On Vanity; 38. On the Greatness of Kingdoms; 39. On the Public; 40. On War and Peace.
These forty-one Essays were afterwards again augmented to fifty-eight, with the new title of The Essaies or Covnsels, Civill and Morall; they were likewise improved by corrections, additions, and illustrations. By the peculiarity of Bacon, already noticed, the later Essays rise in beauty and interest.
These forty-one essays were later expanded to fifty-eight, with the new title of The Essays or Counsels, Civil and Moral; they were also enhanced with corrections, additions, and examples. Due to Bacon's distinctive style, which has already been mentioned, the later essays are more beautiful and engaging.
Bacon considered his Essays but as “the recreations of his other studies.” He has entitled them, in the Latin translation, Sermones fideles, sive Interiora rerum. The idea of them, as has been already mentioned, was suggested by those of Montaigne; but there is but little resemblance between the two productions. Montaigne is natural, ingenuous, sportive. Bacon’s “Essays or Counsels, civil and moral,” “the fragments of his conceits,” as he styles them, are all study, art, and gravity; but the reflections in them45 are true and profound. Montaigne confessedly painted himself, declared that he was the matter of his own book,36 while with Bacon the man was merged in the author and the philosopher, who propounded like Seneca, and somewhat in Seneca’s style, the maxims of practical wisdom, that, to use Bacon’s own language, “come home to men’s business and bosoms,” and clothed them in a garb, new, elegant, and rich, hitherto unknown in England. But our author, if we may judge by the matter and even manner of his Essays, may have had in view, not so much Montaigne’s Essais as Seneca’s Letters to Lucilius. The Essay of Death is obviously founded on Seneca’s Epistles on this subject. That he was well acquainted with Seneca’s Letters, is incontrovertible. He alludes to them thus in the dedication to Prince Henry, in 1612: “The word (Essays),” says he, “is late, but the thing is ancient; for Seneca’s Epistles to Lucilius, if you mark them well, are but Essays, that is, dispersed meditations, though conveyed in the form of epistles.” Bacon justly foretold of his Essays that they “would live as long as books last.”
Bacon saw his Essays as just “the break from his other studies.” He called them, in the Latin translation, Sermones fideles, sive Interiora rerum. As previously mentioned, the concept was inspired by Montaigne's work; however, there's only a slight similarity between the two. Montaigne is natural, genuine, and playful. Bacon’s “Essays or Counsels, civil and moral,” which he refers to as “the fragments of his thoughts,” are all about study, art, and seriousness; yet the insights within them45 are true and deep. Montaigne openly portrayed himself, claiming he was the subject of his own book,36 while in Bacon's case, the man blended into the author and philosopher, who, similar to Seneca and somewhat in his style, presented the maxims of practical wisdom that, as Bacon himself put it, “hit home to people’s lives and hearts,” and dressed them in a fresh, elegant, and rich style previously unseen in England. However, judging by the content and even the style of his Essays, it seems Bacon might have looked more to Montaigne's Essais than to Seneca’s Letters to Lucilius. The Essay on Death is clearly based on Seneca’s letters on that topic. It's indisputable that he was well-acquainted with Seneca’s Letters. He references them in the dedication to Prince Henry in 1612: “The term (Essays),” he says, “is new, but the concept is old; for Seneca’s Epistles to Lucilius, if you look closely, are basically Essays, meaning scattered reflections, though presented as letters.” Bacon accurately predicted that his Essays “would last as long as books exist.”
The following is the opinion of Dugald Stewart, himself an eminent philosopher and elegant writer:
The following is the opinion of Dugald Stewart, an accomplished philosopher and skilled writer:
“His Essays are the best known and most popular of all his works. It is also one of those where the superiority of his genius appears to the greatest advantage; the novelty and depth of his reflections often receiving a strong relief from triteness of the subject. It may be read from beginning to end in a few hours; and yet, after the twentieth perusal, one seldom fails to remark in it something unobserved before. This, indeed, is a characteristic of all Bacon’s writings, and only to be accounted for by the inexhaustible aliment they furnish to our own thoughts, and the sympathetic activity they impart to our torpid faculties.”37
“His Essays are the most famous and popular of all his works. They truly highlight his genius; the originality and depth of his thoughts stand out even with everyday topics. You can read them from start to finish in just a few hours, yet even after your twentieth reading, you’re likely to find something new. This applies to all of Bacon’s writings, which can only be explained by the endless inspiration they offer for our own ideas and the active engagement they foster in our often sluggish minds.”37
The reader will, perhaps, be rather gratified than wearied with another appreciation of this valuable production of our young moralist of twenty-six. It is of no incompetent judge,—Mr. Hallam.
The reader may feel more pleased than tired by another review of this valuable work from our young philosopher at the age of twenty-six. It comes from a credible source—Mr. Hallam.
“The transcendent strength of Bacon’s mind is visible in the whole tenor of these Essays, unequal as they must be from the very nature of such compositions. They are deeper and more discriminating than any earlier, or almost any later work in the English language, full of recondite observation, long matured and carefully sifted. It is true that we might wish for more vivacity and ease; Bacon, who had much wit, had little gayety; his Essays are consequently stiff and grave where the subject might have been touched with a lively hand; thus it is in those on Gardens and on Building. The sentences have sometimes too apophthegmatic a form and want coherence; the historical instances, though far less frequent than with Montaigne, have a little the look of pedantry to our eyes. But it is from this condensation, from this 47gravity, that the work derives its peculiar impressiveness. Few books are more quoted, and what is not always the case with such books, we may add that few are more generally read. In this respect they lead the van of our prose literature; for no gentleman is ashamed of owning that he has not read the Elizabethan writers; but it would be somewhat derogatory to a man of the slightest claim to polite letters, were he unacquainted with the Essays of Bacon. It is, indeed, little worth while to read this or any other book for reputation sake; but very few in our language so well repay the pains, or afford more nourishment to the thoughts. They might be judiciously introduced, with a small number more, into a sound method of education, one that should make wisdom, rather than mere knowledge, its object, and might become a text-book of examination in our schools.”38
The impressive strength of Bacon’s mind is clear throughout these Essays, which are, by their nature, somewhat inconsistent. They offer more depth and insight than earlier or almost any later English work, packed with thoughtful observations that have been carefully considered and refined. While we might wish for a bit more liveliness and ease, Bacon, despite his sharp wit, was not particularly cheerful; as a result, his Essays can feel rigid and serious when the topic could have been tackled with more playfulness, as seen in his essays on Gardens and Building. Sometimes, the sentences come off as overly aphoristic and lack coherence; the historical examples, though less frequent than in Montaigne’s writings, may seem somewhat pedantic to us. However, it's from this conciseness and seriousness that the work derives its distinct impact. Few books are quoted more often, and, unlike many similar titles, we can confidently say that few are read more widely. In this sense, they lead our prose literature; no gentleman feels embarrassed to admit he hasn’t read the Elizabethan authors, but it would be rather shameful for anyone with even a slight stake in literary knowledge to be unaware of Bacon’s Essays. While reading any book just for its reputation isn’t worthwhile, very few works in our language provide such rich rewards or provoke thought as effectively. They could be wisely included—with a few others—in a strong educational framework that values wisdom over mere knowledge and could serve as a textbook for examination in our schools.
ADVANCEMENT OF LEARNING.
The Advancement of Learning was published in 1605. It has usually been considered that the whole of Bacon’s philosophy is contained in this work, excepting, however, the second book of the Novum Organum. Of the Advancement of Learning he made a Latin translation, under the title of De Dignitate et Augmentis Scientiarum, which, however, contains about one third of new matter and some slight interpolations; a few omissions have been remarked in it.
The Advancement of Learning was published in 1605. It's generally thought that most of Bacon’s philosophy is included in this work, except for the second book of the Novum Organum. He created a Latin translation of the Advancement of Learning, titled De Dignitate et Augmentis Scientiarum, which contains about one third new material and some minor edits; a few omissions have been noted in it.
The Advancement of Learning is, as it were, to use his own language, “a small globe of the 48intellectual world, as truly and faithfully as I could discover with a note and description of those facts which seem to me not constantly occupate or not well converted by the labor of man. In which, if I have in any point receded from that which is commonly received, it hath been with a purpose of proceeding in melius and not in aliud, a mind of amendment and proficience, and not of change and difference. For I could not be true and constant to the argument I handle, if I were not willing to go beyond others, but yet not more willing than to have others go beyond me.”
The Advancement of Learning is, in his own words, “a small globe of the 48 intellectual world, as accurately and faithfully as I could find, with notes and descriptions of those facts that seem to me not to be continually pursued or sufficiently developed by human effort. In this work, if I have deviated in any way from the general consensus, it has been with the intention of improving in melius and not in aliud, with a mindset focused on correction and progress, not on change and difference. For I couldn’t be true and committed to the subject I am addressing if I were unwilling to surpass others, but I am just as willing to let others surpass me.”
The Advancement of Learning is divided into two parts; the former of which is intended to remove prejudices against the search after truth, by pointing out the causes which obstruct it; in the second, learning is divided into history, poetry, and philosophy, according to the faculties of the mind from which they emanate—memory, imagination, and reason. Our author states the deficiencies he observes in each.
The Advancement of Learning is split into two parts; the first aims to eliminate biases against the pursuit of truth by highlighting the reasons that hinder it. In the second part, learning is categorized into history, poetry, and philosophy, based on the mental faculties they arise from—memory, imagination, and reason. The author points out the shortcomings he sees in each category.
All the peculiar qualities of his style are fully developed in this noble monument of genius, one of the finest in English, or perhaps any other language; it is full of deep thought, keen observation, rich imagery, Attic wit, and apt illustration. Dugald Stewart and Hallam have both expressed their just admiration of the short paragraph on poesy; but, with all due deference, we must consider that the beautiful passage on the dignity and excellency of49 knowledge is surpassed by none. Can aught excel the noble comparison of the ship? The reader shall judge for himself.
All the unique qualities of his style are clearly showcased in this amazing work of genius, one of the best in English, or maybe even in any language; it's full of deep thought, sharp observation, vivid imagery, clever wit, and fitting examples. Dugald Stewart and Hallam have both praised the short paragraph on poetry; however, with all due respect, we have to say that the beautiful passage about the dignity and excellence of49knowledge is unmatched. Can anything surpass the powerful comparison of the ship? The reader can decide for themselves.
“If the invention of the ship was thought so noble, which carrieth riches and commodities from place to place, and consociateth the most remote regions in participation of their fruits; how much more are letters to be magnified, which, as ships, pass through the vast seas of time, and make ages so distant to participate of the wisdom, illuminations, and inventions, the one of the other?”
“If we view the invention of the ship as a significant achievement for moving wealth and goods from one location to another and linking distant regions to share resources, then how much more should we value letters, which, like ships, travel the immense oceans of time and enable different eras to exchange knowledge, ideas, and innovations?”
DE SAPIENTIA VETERUM.
The Wisdom of the Ancients, or rather, De sapientia veterum (for it was written in Latin), is a short treatise on the mythology of the ancients, by which Bacon endeavors to discover and to show the physical, moral, and political meanings it concealed. If the reader is not convinced that the ancients understood by these fables all that Bacon discovers in them, he must at least admit the probability of it, and be impressed with the penetration of the author and the variety and depth of his knowledge.
The Wisdom of the Ancients, or De sapientia veterum (since it was written in Latin), is a brief treatise on ancient mythology, in which Bacon seeks to uncover and display the physical, moral, and political meanings hidden within. If the reader isn't convinced that the ancients understood all that Bacon reveals in these tales, they should at least acknowledge the likelihood of it and appreciate the author's insight as well as the breadth and depth of his knowledge.
INSTAURATIO MAGNA.
The Instauratio Magna was published in 1620, while Bacon was still chancellor.
The Instauratio Magna was published in 1620, while Bacon was still chancellor.
In his dedication of it to James the First, in 1620, in which he says he has been engaged in it nearly thirty years, he pathetically remarks: “The reason50 why I have published it now, specially being imperfect, is, to speak plainly, because I number my days, and would have it saved.” His country and the world participate in the opinion of the philosopher, and would have deemed its loss one of the greatest to mankind.
In his dedication to James the First in 1620, where he mentions that he has been working on it for almost thirty years, he sadly notes: “The reason50 why I’m publishing it now, even though it’s not complete, is simply because I’m aware of how limited my time is, and I want it to be preserved.” His country and the world share the philosopher’s view and would see its loss as one of the greatest tragedies for humanity.
Such was the care with which it was composed, that Bacon transcribed it twelve times with his own hand.
Such was the attention given to its composition that Bacon wrote it out by hand twelve times.
It is divided into six parts. The first entitled Partitiones Scientiarum, or the divisions of knowledge possessed by mankind, in which the author has noted the deficiencies and imperfections of each. This he had already accomplished by his Advancement of Learning.
It is divided into six parts. The first is called Partitiones Scientiarum, or the divisions of knowledge that humanity holds, where the author has pointed out the shortcomings and flaws of each. He had already achieved this in his Advancement of Learning.
Part 2 is the Novum Organum Scientiarum, or new method of studying the sciences, a name probably suggested by Aristotle’s Organon (treatises on Logic). He intended it to be “the science of a better and more perfect use of reason in the investigation of things and of the true end of understanding.” This has been generally denominated the inductive method, i. e. the experimental method, from the principle of induction, or bringing together facts and drawing from them general principles or truths, by which the author proposes the advancement of all kinds of knowledge. In this consists preëminently the philosophy of Bacon. Not reasoning upon conjecture on the laws and properties of nature, but, as Bacon quaintly terms it, “asking51 questions of nature,” that is, making experiments, laboriously collecting facts first, and, after a sufficient number has been brought together, then forming systems or theories founded on them.
Part 2 is the Novum Organum Scientiarum, or new method of studying the sciences, a title likely inspired by Aristotle’s Organon (works on Logic). It aims to be “the science of a better and more perfect use of reason in exploring things and truly understanding.” This is commonly known as the inductive method, or the experimental method, based on the principle of induction, which means gathering facts and deriving general principles or truths from them. The author suggests that this approach can advance all kinds of knowledge. This is the main focus of Bacon's philosophy. Instead of reasoning based on guesses about nature's laws and properties, Bacon creatively refers to it as “asking51 questions of nature,” which means conducting experiments, carefully gathering facts first, and only after collecting enough of them, creating systems or theories based on those facts.
But this work is rather the summary of a more extensive one he designed, the aphorisms of it being rather, according to Hallam, “the heads or theses of chapters.” But some of these principles are of paramount importance. An instance may be afforded of this, extracted from the “Interpretation of Nature, and Man’s dominion over it.” It is the very first sentence in the Novum Organum. “Man, the servant and interpreter of nature, can only understand and act in proportion as he observes and contemplates the order of nature; more, he can neither know nor do.” This, as has justly been observed, is undoubtedly the foundation of all our real knowledge.
But this work is more of a summary of a larger one he intended, with its aphorisms being, according to Hallam, “the main points or theses of chapters.” Some of these principles are incredibly important. For example, take this excerpt from the “Interpretation of Nature, and Man’s dominion over it.” It's the very first sentence in the Novum Organum: “Man, the servant and interpreter of nature, can only understand and act to the extent that he observes and contemplates the order of nature; beyond that, he can neither know nor do.” This, as has been rightly pointed out, is undoubtedly the foundation of all our real knowledge.
The Novum Organum is so important, that we deem it desirable to present some more detailed accounts of it.
The Novum Organum is so significant that we think it’s worthwhile to provide more detailed information about it.
The body of the work is divided into two parts; the former of which is intended to serve as an introduction to the other, a preparation of the mind for receiving the doctrine.
The main body of the work is split into two parts; the first part is designed to be an introduction to the second, getting the reader's mind ready to understand the doctrine.
Bacon begins by endeavoring to remove the prejudices and to obtain fair attention to his doctrine. He compares philosophy to “a vast pyramid, which ought to have the history of nature for its basis;” he likens those who strive to erect by the force of abstract speculation to the giants of old, who,52 according to the poets, endeavored to throw Mount Ossa upon Pelion, and Olympus upon Ossa. The method of “anticipating nature,” he denounces “as rash, hasty, and unphilosophical;” whereas, “interpretations of nature, or real truths arrived at by deduction, cannot so suddenly arrest the mind; and when the conclusion actually arrives, it may so oppose prejudice, and appear so paradoxical as to be in danger of not being received, notwithstanding the evidence that supports it, like mysteries of faith.”
Bacon starts by trying to clear away biases and gain fair consideration for his ideas. He compares philosophy to “a huge pyramid that should be built on the foundation of nature's history;” he likens those who attempt to build it purely through abstract thinking to the giants of old, who, according to the poets, tried to stack Mount Ossa on Pelion, and Olympus on Ossa. He criticizes the method of “anticipating nature” as “reckless, rushed, and unphilosophical;” while “interpretations of nature, or real truths derived through deduction, can’t be grasped instantly; and when the conclusion finally comes, it may clash with existing beliefs and seem so odd that it risks not being accepted, despite the supporting evidence, much like the mysteries of faith.”
Bacon first attacks the “Idols of the Mind,” i. e. the great sources of prejudice, then the different false philosophical theories; he afterwards proceeds to show what are the characteristics of false systems, the causes of error in philosophy, and lastly the grounds of hope regarding the advancement of science.
Bacon first tackles the “Idols of the Mind,” meaning the major sources of bias, then addresses the various misleading philosophical theories. He then goes on to highlight the traits of false systems, the reasons for errors in philosophy, and finally the reasons for optimism about the progress of science.
He now aspires, to use his own language, “only to sow the seeds of pure truth for posterity, and not to be wanting in his assistance to the first beginning of great undertakings.” “Let the human race,” says he further, “regain their dominion over nature, which belongs to them by the bounty of their Maker, and right reason and sound religion will direct the use.”
He now aims, in his own words, “only to plant the seeds of pure truth for future generations, and to offer his support to the initial stages of great endeavors.” “Let humanity,” he continues, “reclaim their control over nature, which is theirs by the generosity of their Creator, and common sense and true faith will guide its use.”
The second part of the Novum Organum may be divided into three sections. The first is on the discovery of forms, i. e. causes in nature. The second section is composed of tables illustrative of the inductive method, and the third and last is53 styled the doctrine of instances, i. e. facts regarding the discovery of causes.
The second part of the Novum Organum can be divided into three sections. The first discusses the discovery of forms, meaning causes in nature. The second section includes tables that illustrate the inductive method, and the third and final section is53 called the doctrine of instances, which refers to facts about discovering causes.
Part the third of the Instauratio Magna was to be a Natural History, as he termed it, or rather a history of natural substances, in which the art of man had been employed, which would have been a history of universal nature.
Part three of the Instauratio Magna was meant to be a Natural History, as he called it, or more accurately, a history of natural substances where human skill had been applied, which would have comprised a history of universal nature.
Part 4, to be called Scala intellectus, or Intellectual Ladder, was intended to be, to use his own words, “types and models which place before our eyes the entire process of the mind in the discovery of truth, selecting various and remarkable instances.”
Part 4, titled Scala intellectus, or Intellectual Ladder, was meant to be, in his own words, “examples and models that show us the whole process of the mind in discovering truth, highlighting various and notable instances.”
He had designed in the fifth part to give specimens of the new philosophy; a few fragments only of this have been published. It was to be “the fragment of interest till the principal could be raised.”
He had planned in the fifth part to provide examples of the new philosophy; only a few fragments of this have been published. It was meant to be “the fragment of interest until the main material could be developed.”
The sixth and last part was “to display a perfect system of philosophy deduced and confirmed by a legitimate, sober, and exact inquiry according to the method he had laid down and invented.” “To perfect this last part,” says Bacon, “is above our powers and beyond our hopes.”
The sixth and final part was "to present a complete system of philosophy developed and validated through a legitimate, careful, and precise investigation based on the method he had established and created." "To complete this final part," Bacon states, "is beyond our abilities and beyond our expectations."
Let us return, however, for a moment to the commencement, to remark that he concludes the introduction by an eloquent prayer that his exertions may be rendered effectual to the attainment of truth and happiness. But he feels his own inability, for “his days are numbered,” to conduct mankind to the hoped for goal. It was given to him to point out the road to the promised land; but,54 like Moses, after having descried it from afar, it was denied him to enter the land to which he had led the way.
Let’s go back for a moment to the beginning and note that he ends the introduction with a moving prayer that his efforts may lead to truth and happiness. However, he feels his own limitations because “his days are numbered,” and he cannot guide humanity to the desired destination. He was able to show them the path to the promised land; but, 54 like Moses, after seeing it from a distance, he is not allowed to enter the land he has shown them the way to.
LIFE OF HENRY VII.
The Life of Henry VII., published in 1622, is, in the opinion of Hallam, “the first instance in our language of the application of philosophy to reasoning on public events in the manner of the ancients and the Italians. Praise upon Henry is too largely bestowed; but it was in the nature of Bacon to admire too much a crafty and selfish policy; and he thought also, no doubt, that so near an ancestor of his own sovereign should not be treated with severe impartiality.”39
The Life of Henry VII., published in 1622, is, according to Hallam, “the first instance in our language of applying philosophy to reasoning about public events like the ancients and the Italians did. Praise for Henry is excessive; however, it was in Bacon's nature to admire a cunning and self-serving strategy too much; and he probably also believed that a close ancestor of his own monarch shouldn’t be judged too harshly.”39
LETTERS.
His Letters published in his works are numerous; they are written in a stiff, ungraceful, formal style; but still, they frequently bear the impress of the writer’s greatness and genius. Fragments of them have been frequently quoted in the course of this notice; they have, perhaps, best served to exhibit more fully the man in all the relations of his public and private life.
His Letters published in his works are numerous; they are written in a rigid, awkward, formal style; but still, they often show the writer’s greatness and talent. We've frequently quoted parts of them throughout this notice; they may have best shown the man in all aspects of his public and private life.
MISCELLANEOUS PAPERS.
Amongst his miscellaneous papers there was found after his death a remarkable prayer, which Addison 55 deemed sufficiently beautiful to be published in the Tatler40 for Christmas, 1710. We extract a passage or two, that may serve to illustrate Bacon’s position or his character.
Among his various papers, a remarkable prayer was found after his death, which Addison thought was beautiful enough to be published in the Tatler for Christmas, 1710. We’ll share a passage or two that may help illustrate Bacon’s views or his character.
“I have, though in a despised weed, procured the good of all men. If any have been my enemies, I thought not of them, neither hath the sun almost set upon my displeasure; but I have been as a dove, free from superfluity of maliciousness.” “Just are thy judgments upon me for my sins, which are more in number than the sands of the sea, but have no proportion to thy mercies; for what are the sands of the sea? Earth, heaven, and all these are nothing to thy mercies.”
“Even when I'm at my lowest, I've still helped everyone. If someone has been my enemy, I haven't dwelled on that or held onto anger for long; instead, I've acted like a dove, free of unnecessary hostility.” “Your judgments against me are fair for my sins, which are more numerous than the grains of sand in the sea, but they mean nothing next to your mercies; what are the grains of sand to you? The earth, the heavens, and everything else are nothing compared to your mercies.”
Addison observes of this prayer, that for elevation of thought and greatness of expression, “it seems—rather the devotion of an angel than a man.”
Addison remarks about this prayer that for its elevated thought and grand expression, “it seems more like the devotion of an angel than that of a man.”
In taking leave of the life and the works of the greatest of philosophers, and alas! the least of men, we have endeavored to present a succinct but faithful narrative—“his glory not extenuated wherein he was worthy, nor his offences enforced, for which he suffered” merited obloquy with his own contemporaries and all posterity. Our endeavor has been
In saying goodbye to the life and works of the greatest philosopher, and sadly, the least of men, we’ve tried to provide a brief yet accurate account—“his glory not diminished where he was deserving, nor his wrongs exaggerated, for which he faced” deserved criticism from his own time and all generations to come. Our effort has been
But his failings, great as they were, are forgotten through his transcendent merit; his faults injured but few, and in his own time alone; his genius has benefited all mankind. The new direction he gave to philosophy was the indirect cause of all the modern 56 conquests of science over matter, or, as it were, over nature. What it has already accomplished, and may yet effect for the whole human race, is incalculable. Macaulay, the historian of England, has been likewise the eloquent narrator of the progress, that owes its origin to the genius of Francis Bacon.
But his shortcomings, as significant as they were, are overshadowed by his remarkable contributions; his mistakes harmed very few people, and only during his lifetime; his brilliance has benefited all of humanity. The new path he charted for philosophy indirectly spurred all the modern 56 advancements in science over matter, or, in other words, over nature. What it has already achieved, and what it may yet accomplish for all humankind, is immeasurable. Macaulay, the historian of England, has also been the compelling storyteller of the progress that originated from the genius of Francis Bacon.
“Ask a follower of Bacon,” says Macaulay, “what the new philosophy, as it was called in the time of Charles the Second, has effected for mankind, and his answer is ready: ‘It hath lengthened life; it has mitigated pain; it has extinguished diseases; it has increased the fertility of the soil; it has given new securities to the mariner; it has furnished new arms to the warrior; it has spanned great rivers and estuaries with bridges of form unknown to our fathers; it has guided the thunderbolt innocuously from heaven to earth; it has lighted up the night with the splendor of the day; it has extended the range of the human vision; it has multiplied the power of the human muscle; it has accelerated motion; it has annihilated distance; it has facilitated intercourse, correspondence, all friendly offices, all dispatch of business; it has enabled man to descend to the depths of the sea, to soar into the air, to penetrate securely into the noxious recesses of the earth, to traverse the land on cars which whirl along without horses, and the ocean in ships which sail against the wind. These are but a part of its fruits, and of its first-fruits. For it is a philosophy which never rests, which has never attained, which is never perfect. Its law is progress. A point which yesterday was invisible is its goal to-day, and will be its starting-post to-morrow.’”41
“If you ask a supporter of Bacon,” Macaulay says, “what the new philosophy—popular during the time of Charles the Second—has done for humanity, they'll have a quick reply: ‘It has extended life; it has decreased pain; it has eradicated diseases; it has improved soil fertility; it has enhanced safety for sailors; it has provided soldiers with new weapons; it has built bridges over large rivers and estuaries in ways our ancestors never imagined; it has safely channeled lightning from the sky to the ground; it has brightened the night like day; it has widened the limits of human vision; it has increased human strength; it has accelerated movement; it has removed distance; it has simplified communication, correspondence, friendly interactions, and business dealings; it has enabled people to dive to the ocean floor, soar into the sky, safely explore toxic parts of the earth, travel by land in horse-less carriages, and sail the seas in ships that can go against the wind. These are just a few of its benefits, and only the start of them. For this philosophy is one of continual progress. A goal that was invisible yesterday is its aim today, and will be its foundation tomorrow.’”41
ESSAYS.
I.—OF TRUTH.
What is truth? said jesting Pilate;42 and would not stay for an answer. Certainly, there be that delight in giddiness; and count it a bondage to fix a belief; affecting freewill in thinking as well as in acting. And though the sects of philosophers of that kind be gone, yet there remain certain discoursing wits which are of the same veins, though there be not so much blood in them as was in those of the ancients. But it is not only the difficulty and labor which men take in finding out of truth: nor again, that, when it is found, it imposeth upon men’s thoughts, that doth bring lies in favor; but a natural though corrupt love of the lie itself. One of the later schools43 of the Grecians examineth58 the matter, and is at a stand to think what should be in it that men should love lies; where neither they make for pleasure, as with poets; nor for advantage, as with the merchant, but for the lie’s sake. But I cannot tell; this same truth is a naked and open daylight, that doth not show the masks, and mummeries, and triumphs of the world, half so stately and daintily as candle-lights. Truth may perhaps come to the price of a pearl, that showeth best by day, but it will not rise to the price of a diamond or carbuncle, that showeth best in varied lights. A mixture of a lie doth ever add pleasure. Doth any man doubt, that if there were taken out of men’s minds vain opinions, flattering hopes, false valuations, imaginations as one would, and the like, but it would leave the minds of a number of men poor shrunken things, full of melancholy and indisposition, and unpleasing to themselves? One of the fathers,44 in great severity, called poesy “vinum dæmonum,”45 because it filleth the imagination, and yet it is but with the shadow of a lie. But it is not the lie that passeth through the mind, but the lie that sinketh in, and settleth in it, that doth the hurt, such as we spake of before. But howsoever these things are thus in men’s depraved judgments and affections, yet truth, which only doth judge itself, teacheth that the inquiry of truth, 59which is the love-making, or wooing of it, the knowledge of truth, which is the presence of it, and the belief of truth, which is the enjoying of it, is the sovereign good of human nature. The first creature of God, in the works of the days, was the light of the sense;46 the last was the light of reason;47 and his sabbath work, ever since, is the illumination of his Spirit. First, he breathed light upon the face of the matter, or chaos; then he breathed light into the face of man; and still he breatheth and inspireth light into the face of his chosen. The poet48 that beautified the sect,49 that was otherwise inferior to the rest, saith yet excellently well: “It is a 60pleasure to stand upon the shore, and to see ships tossed upon the sea; a pleasure to stand in the window of a castle, and to see a battle, and the adventures thereof below; but no pleasure is comparable to the standing upon the vantage-ground of truth” (a hill not to be commanded, and where the air is always clear and serene), “and to see the errors, and wanderings, and mists, and tempests, in the vale below;”50 so always that this prospect be with pity, and not with swelling or pride. Certainly it is heaven upon earth, to have a man’s mind move in charity, rest in providence, and turn upon the poles of truth.
What is truth? said joking Pilate; 42 and wouldn’t wait for an answer. Certainly, some people enjoy confusion and consider it a restriction to hold any belief, affecting free will in both thought and action. While the schools of philosophers who believed this are gone, there are still some clever thinkers around who share the same ideas, though they may lack the depth of the ancients. But it’s not just the difficulty and effort people take to discover the truth; nor is it merely that, once found, it imposes on people’s thoughts that brings lies into favor; it’s also a natural, yet corrupt, love for the lie itself. One of the later schools 43 of the Greeks examines this and wonders why people love lies, which neither entertain like poetry nor serve a purpose like trade, but are simply loved for their own sake. But I can’t explain it; the truth is a stark and open daylight that doesn’t hide the masks, pretenses, and triumphs of the world nearly as grandly as candlelight. Truth might be valuable like a pearl, which shines best in daylight, but it won’t reach the value of a diamond or ruby, which shine best in different kinds of light. Mixing in a lie always adds pleasure. Does anyone doubt that if we removed from people’s minds false opinions, flattering hopes, false values, and imaginary thoughts, it would leave many minds feeling poor, deflated, melancholic, and unpleasing to themselves? One of the fathers 44 harshly called poetry “the wine of demons” 45 because it fills the imagination, yet it’s just the shadow of a lie. However, it’s not the lie that briefly passes through the mind that causes harm, but the lie that sinks in and settles deep that does the damage, as we discussed earlier. Regardless of how these matters are perceived through distorted judgments and feelings, the truth, which only judges itself, teaches that the pursuit of truth, 59which is the courtship of it, the knowledge of truth, which is experiencing it, and the belief in truth, which is enjoying it, is the highest good of human nature. The first creation of God, in the works of the days, was the light of the senses; 46 the last was the light of reason; 47 and his ongoing work since then has been to illuminate his Spirit. First, he breathed light upon the face of matter or chaos; then he breathed light into the face of man; and still, he breathes and inspires light into the face of his chosen. The poet 48 who beautified the sect, 49 which was otherwise inferior to the rest, puts it perfectly: “It is a 60 pleasure to stand on the shore and watch ships tossed by the sea; a pleasure to stand in the window of a castle and see a battle and its adventures below; but no pleasure compares to standing on the vantage ground of truth” (a hill that can’t be overtaken, where the air is always clear and calm), “and witnessing the errors, wanderings, mists, and storms in the valley below;” 50 provided this view is with compassion, not arrogance or pride. Certainly, it’s heaven on earth to have one’s mind moved by love, resting in providence, and turning on the axes of truth.
To pass from theological and philosophical truth to the truth of civil business; it will be acknowledged, even by those that practise it not, that clear and round dealing is the honor of man’s nature, and that mixture of falsehood is like alloy in coin 61of gold and silver, which may make the metal work the better, but it embaseth it. For these winding and crooked courses are the goings of the serpent; which goeth basely upon the belly, and not upon the feet. There is no vice that doth so cover a man with shame, as to be found false and perfidious; and therefore Montaigne51 saith prettily, when he inquired the reason why the word of the lie should be such a disgrace, and such an odious charge: saith he, “If it be well weighed, to say that a man lieth, is as much as to say that he is brave towards God and a coward towards men. For a lie faces God, and shrinks from man;” surely, the wickedness of falsehood and breach of faith cannot possibly be so highly expressed, as in that it shall be the last peal to call the judgments of God upon the generations of men: it being foretold, that, when “Christ cometh,” he shall not “find faith upon the earth.”52
To shift from theological and philosophical truth to the truth of everyday life, it's recognized, even by those who don't engage in it, that honesty and straightforwardness are fundamental to human dignity, while a mix of dishonesty is like the impurities in gold and silver coins; it might make the metal easier to work with but devalues it. These deceptive and twisted paths resemble the movements of a snake, which crawls on its belly rather than walking on its feet. There is no vice that brings more shame than being exposed as dishonest and treacherous; as Montaigne aptly put it when he questioned why lying is such a disgraceful and contemptible accusation: he noted, “When you think about it, to say that a man lies is like saying he is bold before God and cowardly before men. For a lie confronts God and retreats from man;” indeed, the evil of deceit and betrayal of trust can hardly be articulated more strongly than in the notion that it will be the final call for God's judgment on humanity. It has been prophesied that when “Christ comes,” he will not “find faith on the earth.”
II.—OF DEATH.53
Men fear death as children fear to go in the dark; and as that natural fear in children is increased with tales, so is the other. Certainly, the contemplation of death, as the wages of sin, and passage to another world, is holy and religious; but the fear of it, as a tribute due unto nature, is weak. Yet in religious meditations there is sometimes mixture of vanity and of superstition. You shall read in some of the friars’ books of mortification, that a man should think with himself, what the pain is, if he have but his finger’s end pressed or tortured; and thereby imagine what the pains of death are, when the whole body is corrupted and dissolved; when many times death passeth with less pain than the torture of a limb, for the most vital parts are not the quickest of sense. And by him that spake only as a philosopher and natural man, it was well said, “Pompa mortis magis terret, quam mors ipsa.”54 Groans and convulsions, and a discolored face, and friends weeping, and blacks55 and obsequies, and the like, show death terrible. It is worthy the observing, that there is no passion 63in the mind of man so weak, but it mates and masters the fear of death; and therefore death is no such terrible enemy when a man hath so many attendants about him that can win the combat of him. Revenge triumphs over death; love slights it; honor aspireth to it; grief flieth to it; fear preoccupateth it; nay, we read, after Otho the emperor had slain himself, pity (which is the tenderest of affections) provoked many to die out of mere compassion to their sovereign, and as the truest sort of followers.56 Nay, Seneca57 adds niceness and satiety: “Cogita quamdiu eadem feceris; mori velle, non tantum fortis, aut miser, sed etiam fastidiosus potest.”58 A man would die, though he were neither valiant nor miserable, only upon a weariness to do the same thing so oft over and over. It is no less worthy to observe, how little alteration in good spirits the approaches of death make: for they appear to be the same men till the last instant. Augustus Cæsar died in a compliment: “Livia, conjugii nostri memor, vive et vale.”59 Tiberius in dissimulation, as Tacitus saith of him, “Jam Tiberium vires et corpus, non dissimulatio, deserebant:”60 Vespasian in a jest, sitting 64upon the stool,61 “Ut puto Deus fio;”62 Galba with a sentence, “Feri, si ex re sit populi Romani,”63 holding forth his neck; Septimus Severus in dispatch, “Adeste, si quid mihi restat agendum,”64 and the like. Certainly, the Stoics65 bestowed too much cost upon death, and by their great preparations made it appear more fearful. Better, saith he, “qui finem vitæ extremum inter munera ponit naturæ.”66 It is as natural to die as to be born; and to a little infant, perhaps, the one is as painful as the other. He that dies in an earnest pursuit, is like one that 65is wounded in hot blood, who, for the time, scarce feels the hurt; and therefore a mind fixed and bent upon somewhat that is good, doth avert the dolors of death; but, above all, believe it, the sweetest canticle is “Nunc dimittis,”67 when a man hath obtained worthy ends and expectations. Death hath this also, that it openeth the gate to good fame, and extinguisheth envy: “Extinctus amabitur idem.”68
Men fear death just like children fear the dark; and just as children's fear grows with scary stories, so does the fear of death. Certainly, thinking about death as a consequence of sin and a transition to another world is holy and religious; but fearing it, as a natural instinct, is weak. Yet, in religious reflections, there is often a mix of vanity and superstition. You may read in some of the friars' books on self-denial that a person should consider the pain of merely having their fingertip pressed or hurt, and thus imagine the pains of death when the entire body is decayed and broken down; often, death comes with less pain than the suffering of a limb, since the most vital parts don’t feel things as quickly. The philosopher said well, “The pomp of death frightens more than death itself.” Groans and convulsions, a discolored face, friends crying, and funerals and the like make death seem dreadful. It's interesting to note that there is no feeling in the human mind so weak that it can’t overcome the fear of death; and therefore, death isn’t such a terrible foe when someone has so many supporters around them that can help them bravely face it. Revenge conquers death; love disregards it; honor seeks it; grief goes to it; fear gets in first; indeed, we read that after Emperor Otho killed himself, pity (which is the softest of feelings) caused many to die simply out of compassion for their leader, and as the truest form of followers. Moreover, Seneca adds a touch of delicacy and boredom: “Think about how long you have done the same things; wanting to die is not only for the brave or the miserable, but also for the weary.” A person would choose to die, even if they were neither courageous nor unfortunate, just out of weariness from doing the same thing repeatedly. It is also noteworthy how little change in good spirits the approach of death brings: they seem to be the same people right up until the end. Augustus Caesar died in a compliment: “Livia, remembering our marriage, live and farewell.” Tiberius with pretense, as Tacitus mentions, “Now Tiberius' strength and body, not pretense, were abandoning him.” Vespasian joked, sitting on the toilet, “I think I'm becoming a god;” Galba with a statement, “Strike, if it serves the Roman people,” offering his neck; Septimus Severus with urgency, “Be present, if there’s anything I still need to do,” and so on. Certainly, the Stoics put too much emphasis on death, and through their great preparations, they made it appear more frightening. Better, he says, “who places the end of life among the gifts of nature.” It's as natural to die as it is to be born; and for a little infant, perhaps, one is as painful as the other. He who dies in earnest pursuit is like someone who is hurt in the heat of battle, who hardly feels the injury at the moment; and therefore, a mind focused and determined on something good can ward off the pains of death; but above all, believe this, the sweetest song is “Now let me depart,” when a person has achieved worthy goals and expectations. Death also has this advantage, that it opens the door to good reputation and extinguishes envy: “The dead will be loved the same.”
III.—OF UNITY IN RELIGION.
Religion being the chief band of human society, it is a happy thing when itself is well contained within the true band of unity. The quarrels and divisions about religion were evils unknown to the heathen. The reason was, because the religion of the heathen consisted rather in rites and ceremonies, than in any constant belief; for you may imagine what kind of faith theirs was, when the chief doctors and fathers of their church were the poets. 66 But the true God hath this attribute, that he is a jealous God; and therefore his worship and religion will endure no mixture nor partner. We shall therefore speak a few words concerning the unity of the church; what are the fruits thereof; what the bounds; and what the means.
Religion is the main bond of human society, so it’s a good thing when it’s held together by true unity. Conflicts and divisions over religion were unknown to the pagans. The reason for this is that their religion was more about rituals and ceremonies than any stable belief; you can picture the kind of faith they had when the main leaders and founders of their religion were poets. 66 But the true God has this characteristic: He is a jealous God; therefore, His worship and religion won’t tolerate any mixture or partnership. So, we will discuss a few things about the unity of the church; what its benefits are; what the limits are; and what the methods are.
The fruits of unity (next unto the well-pleasing of God, which is all in all), are two; the one towards those that are without the church, the other towards those that are within. For the former, it is certain that heresies and schisms are, of all others, the greatest scandals, yea, more than corruption of manners; for as in the natural body a wound or solution of continuity is worse than a corrupt humor, so in the spiritual; so that nothing doth so much keep men out of the church, and drive men out of the church, as breach of unity; and therefore, whensoever it cometh to that pass that one saith, “Ecce in Deserto,”69 another saith, “Ecce in penetralibus;”70 that is, when some men seek Christ in the conventicles of heretics, and others in an outward face of a church, that voice had need continually to sound in men’s ears, “nolite exire,” “go not out.” The doctor of the Gentiles (the propriety of whose vocation drew him to have a special care of those without) saith: “If a heathen71 come 67in, and hear you speak with several tongues, will he not say that you are mad?” and, certainly, it is little better: when atheists and profane persons do hear of so many discordant and contrary opinions in religion, it doth avert them from the church, and maketh them “to sit down in the chair of the scorners.”72 It is but a light thing to be vouched in so serious a matter, but yet it expresseth well the deformity. There is a master of scoffing, that, in his catalogue of books of a feigned library, sets down this title of a book, “The Morris-Dance73 of Heretics;” for, indeed, every sect of them hath a diverse posture, or cringe, by themselves, which cannot but move derision in worldlings and depraved politicians, who are apt to contemn holy things.
The benefits of unity (which please God above all else) are twofold: one for those outside the church and the other for those inside it. For outsiders, it's clear that heresies and divisions are the biggest scandals, even worse than moral corruption. Just like a wound in the body is worse than an infection, the same applies spiritually. Nothing keeps people from the church or drives them away more than a lack of unity. So, whenever one person says, “Look, here in the wilderness,” while another claims, “Look, here in the inner rooms,” meaning, when some look for Christ among the gatherings of heretics and others in a church's outward appearance, the warning to people should always be, “do not go out.” The Apostle Paul, who had a special concern for those outside the faith, said, “If an unbeliever comes in and hears you speaking in different tongues, will he not say that you are out of your mind?” It's not much better today. When atheists and those who disrespect religion hear so many conflicting opinions, it pushes them away from the church and makes them “sit in the seat of scoffers.” It's a small thing to point out in such a serious topic, but it clearly shows the deformity. There's a mocking figure who, in his made-up library, includes the title “The Morris-Dance of Heretics,” because indeed, every group of heretics has its own quirky stance that can only elicit ridicule from worldly people and corrupt politicians who are quick to dismiss the sacred.
As for the fruit towards those that are within, it is peace, which containeth infinite blessings; it establisheth faith; it kindleth charity; the outward 68peace of the church distilleth into peace of conscience, and it turneth the labors of writing and reading of controversies into treatises of mortification and devotion.
As for the benefits for those who are involved, it is peace, which holds countless blessings; it strengthens faith; it ignites love. The outward 68 peace of the church flows into inner peace of mind, transforming the efforts of writing and reading arguments into works of self-discipline and devotion.
Concerning the bounds of unity, the true placing of them importeth exceedingly. There appear to be two extremes; for to certain zealots all speech of pacification is odious. “Is it peace, Jehu?”—“What hast thou to do with peace? turn thee behind me.”74 Peace is not the matter, but following, and party. Contrariwise, certain Laodiceans75 and lukewarm persons think they may accommodate points of religion by middle ways, and taking part of both, and witty reconcilements, as if they would make an arbitrament between God and man. Both these extremes are to be avoided; which will be done if the league of Christians, penned by our Saviour himself, were in the two cross clauses thereof soundly and plainly expounded: “He that is not with us is against us;”76 and again, “He that is not against us, is with us;” that is, if the points fundamental, and of substance in religion, 69were truly discerned and distinguished from points not merely of faith, but of opinion, order, or good intention. This is a thing may seem to many a matter trivial, and done already; but if it were done less partially, it would be embraced more generally.
Regarding the limits of unity, it’s very important how we set them. There seem to be two extremes; for some fanatics, any talk of peace is detestable. “Is it peace, Jehu?”—“What does peace have to do with you? Come behind me.”74 Peace isn’t the focus, but rather following and loyalty to a group. On the other hand, some Laodiceans75 and indifferent people believe they can compromise on religious issues by taking a bit from both sides and clever reconciliations, as if trying to settle a dispute between God and man. Both of these extremes should be avoided; this can be accomplished if the Christian covenant, written by our Savior himself, is explained clearly and accurately in its two opposing clauses: “He that is not with us is against us;”76 and again, “He that is not against us is with us;” which means that the fundamental and essential points of religion,69 should be clearly identified and separated from issues that are simply matters of opinion, procedure, or good intentions. This may seem trivial to many and as something already addressed, but if it were approached with less bias, it would be accepted more widely.
Of this I may give only this advice, according to my small model. Men ought to take heed of rending God’s church by two kinds of controversies; the one is, when the matter of the point controverted is too small and light, not worth the heat and strife about it, kindled only by contradiction; for, as it is noted by one of the fathers, “Christ’s coat indeed had no seam, but the church’s vesture was of divers colors;” whereupon he saith, “In veste varietas sit, scissura non sit,”77 they be two things, unity and uniformity; the other is, when the matter of the point controverted is great, but it is driven to an over-great subtilty and obscurity, so that it becometh a thing rather ingenious than substantial. A man that is of judgment and understanding shall sometimes hear ignorant men differ, and know well within himself, that those which so differ mean one thing, and yet they themselves would never agree; and if it come so to pass in that distance of judgment, which is between man and man, shall we not think that God above, that knows the heart, doth not discern that frail men, in some of their contradictions, 70intend the same thing, and accepteth of both? The nature of such controversies is excellently expressed by St. Paul, in the warning and precept that he giveth concerning the same: “Devita profanas vocum novitates, et oppositiones falsi nominis scientiæ.”78 Men create oppositions which are not, and put them into new terms, so fixed as, whereas the meaning ought to govern the term, the term in effect governeth the meaning. There be also two false peaces, or unities; the one, when the peace is grounded but upon an implicit ignorance; for all colors will agree in the dark; the other, when it is pieced up upon a direct admission of contraries in fundamental points; for truth and falsehood, in such things, are like the iron and clay in the toes of Nebuchadnezzar’s image;79 they may cleave, but they will not incorporate.
Of this, I can only offer this advice based on my limited experience. People should be cautious about splitting God's church over two types of arguments; one is when the issue being debated is trivial and not worth the conflict it creates, sparked only by disagreement. As one of the early church fathers noted, “Christ’s coat had no seams, but the church’s attire was made of different colors;” thus, he said, “In the garment, there may be variety, but there should not be a tear,”77 highlighting two concepts: unity and uniformity. The second type occurs when the issue at hand is significant, but it becomes overly detailed and obscure, turning into something clever rather than meaningful. A person with good judgment may hear ignorant individuals arguing and know that they mean essentially the same thing, even if they would never agree with each other. Given this disparity in judgment between people, can we not think that God above, who knows the heart, understands that fragile humans, in some of their disagreements, are actually aiming for the same truth and accepts both? The nature of such disputes is well captured by St. Paul in the warning and command he gives regarding them: “Avoid profane new words and oppositions of falsely named knowledge.”78 People create divisions that aren’t real and frame them in new terms, to the point where the term starts to dominate the meaning instead of the other way around. There are also two false types of peace or unity; one is when the peace is based on unspoken ignorance, as all colors can blend in the dark; the other is when it’s maintained by directly accepting contradictions on fundamental issues, because truth and falsehood in these matters are like the iron and clay in the toes of Nebuchadnezzar’s image;79 they may stick together, but they will not truly unite.
Concerning the means of procuring unity, men must beware that, in the procuring or muniting of religious unity, they do not dissolve and deface the laws of charity and of human society. There be two swords amongst Christians, the spiritual and temporal, and both have their due office and place in the maintenance of religion; but we may not take up the third sword, which is Mahomet’s sword,80 71or like unto it; that is, to propagate religion by wars, or, by sanguinary persecutions, to force consciences; except it be in cases of overt scandal, blasphemy, or intermixture of practice against the state; much less to nourish seditions, to authorize conspiracies and rebellions, to put the sword into the people’s hands, and the like, tending to the subversion of all government, which is the ordinance of God; for this is but to dash the first table against the second, and so to consider men as Christians, as we forget that they are men. Lucretius the poet, when he beheld the act of Agamemnon, that could endure the sacrificing of his own daughter, exclaimed;—
Concerning how to achieve unity, people need to be careful that in seeking or maintaining religious unity, they don’t undermine the principles of charity and human society. There are two types of authority among Christians, the spiritual and the temporal, each with its own role in upholding religion; however, we cannot take up a third type of authority, which is the sword of Muhammad,80 71 or something similar; that is, we should not spread religion through wars or brutal persecutions that force people’s beliefs, except in cases of clear scandal, blasphemy, or actions against the state; even less should we encourage riots, support conspiracies or rebellions, or arm the populace, which only leads to the destruction of government, which is God’s order. This is simply clashing the first commandment against the second and forgetting that while we see people as Christians, we must remember they are also human beings. Lucretius the poet, when he witnessed Agamemnon’s act of sacrificing his own daughter, exclaimed;—
What would he have said, if he had known of the massacre in France,82 or the powder treason of England?83 He would have been seven times more epicure and atheist than he was; for as the temporal72 sword is to be drawn with great circumspection in cases of religion, so it is a thing monstrous to put it into the hands of the common people; let that be left unto the Anabaptists, and other furies. It was great blasphemy when the devil said, “I will ascend and be like the Highest;”84 but it is greater blasphemy to personate God, and bring him in saying, “I will descend, and be like the prince of darkness;” and what is it better, to make the cause of religion to descend to the cruel and execrable actions of murdering princes, butchery of people, and subversion of states and governments? Surely, this is to bring down the Holy Ghost, instead of the likeness of a dove, in the shape of a vulture or raven; and to set out of the bark of a Christian church a flag of a bark of pirates and assassins; therefore, it is most necessary that the church by doctrine and decree, princes by their sword, and all learnings, both Christian and moral, as by their Mercury rod,85 do damn and send to hell forever those facts and opinions tending to the support of the same, as hath been already in good part done. Surely, in counsels concerning religion, that counsel of the apostle would be prefixed: “Ira hominis non implet justitiam Dei;”86 and it was 73a notable observation of a wise father, and no less ingenuously confessed, that those which held and persuaded pressure of consciences, were commonly interested therein themselves for their own ends.
What would he have said if he had known about the massacre in France,82 or the plot against the government in England?83 He would have been even more of a hedonist and an atheist than he already was; for just as the use of force must be approached with caution in matters of faith, it is utterly wrong to place it in the hands of ordinary people; that should be left to the Anabaptists and other extremists. It was severe blasphemy when the devil proclaimed, “I will ascend and be like the Highest;”84 but it is even worse blasphemy to impersonate God and claim that He says, “I will descend and be like the prince of darkness;” and what difference does it make to turn the cause of religion into the violent and horrific acts of killing rulers, slaughtering people, and overthrowing states and governments? Surely, this is to bring down the Holy Spirit, not as a dove, but in the form of a vulture or raven; and to hoist from a Christian church the flag of pirates and assassins. Therefore, it is absolutely essential that the church, through doctrine and decree, princes with their sword, and all forms of education, both Christian and moral, like Mercury’s staff,85 condemn and banish forever those actions and beliefs that support such things, as has already been largely done. Surely, in discussions about religion, the apostle’s advice should be considered: “The anger of man does not accomplish the righteousness of God;”86 and it was a wise observation from a thoughtful father, honestly confessed, that those who insisted on coercing people’s consciences were often motivated by their own interests.
IV.—OF REVENGE.
Revenge is a kind of wild justice, which the more man’s nature runs to, the more ought law to weed it out; for as for the first wrong, it doth but offend the law, but the revenge of that wrong, putteth the law out of office. Certainly, in taking revenge, a man is but even with his enemy, but in passing it over, he is superior; for it is a prince’s part to pardon; and Solomon, I am sure, saith, “It is the glory of a man to pass by an offence.” That which is past is gone and irrevocable, and wise men have enough to do with things present and to come; therefore they do but trifle with themselves that labor in past matters. There is no man doth a wrong for the wrong’s sake, but thereby to purchase himself profit, or pleasure, or honor, or the like; therefore, why should I be angry with a man for loving himself better than me? And if any man should do wrong merely out of ill-nature, why, yet it is but like the thorn or briar, which prick and scratch, because they can do no other. The most tolerable sort of revenge is for those wrongs which74 there is no law to remedy; but then, let a man take heed the revenge be such as there is no law to punish, else a man’s enemy is still beforehand, and it is two for one. Some, when they take revenge, are desirous the party should know whence it cometh. This is the more generous; for the delight seemeth to be not so much in doing the hurt as in making the party repent; but base and crafty cowards are like the arrow that flieth in the dark. Cosmus, Duke of Florence,87 had a desperate saying against perfidious or neglecting friends, as if those wrongs were unpardonable. “You shall read,” saith he, “that we are commanded to forgive our enemies; but you never read that we are commanded to forgive our friends.” But yet the spirit of Job was in a better tune: “Shall we,” saith he, “take good at God’s hands, and not be content to take evil also?”88 and so of friends in a proportion. This is certain, that a man that studieth revenge keeps his own wounds green, which otherwise would heal and do well. Public revenges89 are for the most part fortunate; as that for the death of Cæsar;90 75for the death of Pertinax; for the death of Henry the Third of France;91 and many more. But in private revenges it is not so; nay, rather, vindictive persons live the life of witches, who, as they are mischievous, so end they unfortunate.
Vengeance is a kind of wild justice that, the more a person is inclined to it, the more the law should eliminate it. The initial wrong may offend the law, but seeking revenge puts the law aside. When a person takes revenge, they are only equal to their enemy, but by letting it go, they rise above it; as it is a prince’s role to pardon. Solomon certainly said, “It is the glory of a man to overlook an offense.” What is done is done and cannot be changed, and wise people have enough to deal with in the present and future; so, those who dwell on the past are merely wasting their time. No one does wrong just for the sake of doing wrong; they do it seeking some profit, pleasure, honor, or the like; so why should I be upset with someone for valuing themselves more than me? And if someone wrongs another purely out of malice, it’s like a thorn or briar that pricks and scratches simply because it can't do anything else. The most acceptable kind of revenge is for those wrongs that the law can't address; however, one should make sure the revenge is something the law won't punish, otherwise, the enemy has the upper hand, making it two against one. Some people, when seeking revenge, want the other party to know who is responsible. This is more noble, as the satisfaction seems to come not only from inflicting harm but from making the other party regret it; but cowardly and sneaky people are like arrows that strike in the dark. Cosmus, Duke of Florence,87 had a harsh saying about treacherous or neglectful friends, suggesting those wrongs are unforgivable. “You’ll find,” he said, “that we are told to forgive our enemies; but you will never find that we are told to forgive our friends.” Yet, Job had a better attitude: “Shall we,” he said, “accept good from God, but not also accept trouble?”88 The same goes for friends, proportionately. It’s clear that someone who fixates on revenge keeps their own wounds fresh, which could otherwise heal. Public acts of revenge89 are often successful, like those for the death of Caesar;90 for the death of Pertinax; for the death of Henry the Third of France;91 and many more. But private acts of revenge are different; in fact, vindictive individuals lead lives like witches, being harmful while ending up unfortunate themselves.
V.—OF ADVERSITY.
It was a high speech of Seneca (after the manner of the Stoics), that “the good things which belong to prosperity are to be wished, but the good things that belong to adversity are to be admired.” (“Bona rerum secundarum optabilia, adversarum mirabilia.”)92 Certainly, if miracles be the command over nature, they appear most in adversity. It is yet a higher speech of his than the other (much too high for a heathen), “It is true greatness to have in one the frailty of a man, and the security of a God.” (“Vere magnum habere fragilitatem hominis securitatem Dei.”)93 This would have done 76better in poesy, where transcendencies are more allowed, and the poets, indeed, have been busy with it; for it is, in effect, the thing which is figured in that strange fiction of the ancient poets,94 which seemeth not to be without mystery; nay, and to have some approach to the state of a Christian, “that Hercules, when he went to unbind Prometheus (by whom human nature is represented), sailed the length of the great ocean in an earthen pot or pitcher,” lively describing Christian resolution, that saileth in the frail bark of the flesh through the waves of the world. But to speak in a mean, the virtue of prosperity is temperance, the virtue of adversity is fortitude, which in morals is the more heroical virtue. Prosperity is the blessing of the Old Testament, adversity is the blessing of the New, which carrieth the greater benediction, and the clearer revelation of God’s favor. Yet even in the Old Testament, if you listen to David’s harp, you shall hear as many hearse-like airs95 as carols; and the pencil of the 77Holy Ghost hath labored more in describing the afflictions of Job than the felicities of Solomon. Prosperity is not without many fears and distastes; and adversity is not without comforts and hopes. We see, in needleworks and embroideries, it is more pleasing to have a lively work upon a sad and solemn ground, than to have a dark and melancholy work upon a lightsome ground: judge, therefore, of the pleasure of the heart by the pleasure of the eye. Certainly, virtue is like precious odors, most fragrant when they are incensed, or crushed; for prosperity doth best discover vice, but adversity doth best discover virtue.96
It was a profound statement by Seneca (in the style of the Stoics) that “the good things that come with prosperity are to be desired, but the good things that come with adversity are to be admired.” (“Bona rerum secundarum optabilia, adversarum mirabilia.”)92 Indeed, if miracles are considered mastery over nature, they are most evident in adversity. It's even more striking coming from him than the previous statement (too elevated for a pagan), “True greatness is to have the fragility of a human and the security of a God.” (“Vere magnum habere fragilitatem hominis securitatem Dei.”)93 This would have been better expressed in poetry, where high expressions are more accepted, and poets have certainly engaged with it; it essentially reflects the theme found in the ancient poets' strange tales,94 which seem to have some deeper meaning, resembling a Christian state—“that Hercules, when he went to free Prometheus (who symbolizes humanity), sailed across the vast ocean in a clay pot,” vividly illustrating the Christian resolve that navigates the fragile vessel of the body through the turbulent waves of the world. But generally speaking, the virtue of prosperity is temperance, while the virtue of adversity is fortitude, which is regarded as the more heroic virtue in moral terms. Prosperity is the blessing of the Old Testament, while adversity is the blessing of the New, which carries greater grace and a clearer insight into God’s favor. Yet even in the Old Testament, if you listen to David’s harp, you’ll hear just as many mournful tunes95 as joyful ones; the Holy Spirit's brush has worked more to depict Job’s sufferings than Solomon’s joys. Prosperity is not without numerous fears and discomforts; and adversity is not without solace and hopes. In needlework and embroidery, it is more pleasing to have a vibrant design on a somber background than a dark and gloomy design on a bright background: so consider the heart's pleasure through the eye's pleasure. Certainly, virtue is like precious scents, most fragrant when they are burned or crushed; for prosperity reveals vice best, but adversity reveals virtue best.96
VI.—OF SIMULATION AND DISSIMULATION.
Dissimulation is but a faint kind of policy, or wisdom; for it asketh a strong wit and a strong heart to know when to tell truth, and to do it; therefore it is the weaker sort of politicians that are the great dissemblers.
Deception is hardly a strong form of strategy or wisdom; it takes a sharp mind and a courageous heart to understand when to speak the truth and to do so. That's why it's usually the less capable politicians who are the biggest deceivers.
Tacitus saith, “Livia sorted well with the arts of her husband, and dissimulation of her son;97 attributing arts or policy to Augustus, and dissimulation to Tiberius:” and again, when Mucianus encourageth Vespasian to take arms against Vitellius, he saith, “We rise not against the piercing judgment of Augustus, nor the extreme caution or closeness of Tiberius.”98 These properties of arts or policy, and dissimulation or closeness, are indeed habits and faculties several, and to be distinguished; for if a man have that penetration of judgment as he can discern what things are to be laid open, and what to be secreted, and what to be showed at half-lights, and to whom and when (which indeed are arts of state, and arts of life, as Tacitus well calleth them), to him a habit of dissimulation is a hinderance and a poorness. But if a man cannot obtain to that judgment, then it is left to him generally to be close, and a dissembler; for where a man cannot choose or vary in particulars, there it is good to take the safest and wariest way in general, like the going softly by one 79that cannot well see. Certainly, the ablest men that ever were, have had all an openness and frankness of dealing, and a name of certainty and veracity: but then they were like horses well managed, for they could tell passing well when to stop or turn; and at such times, when they thought the case indeed required dissimulation, if then they used it, it came to pass that the former opinion spread abroad, of their good faith and clearness of dealing, made them almost invisible.
Tacitus says, “Livia skillfully managed her husband’s ways and her son’s deceit; attributing strategy to Augustus and deceit to Tiberius:” and again, when Mucianus encourages Vespasian to take up arms against Vitellius, he says, “We do not rise against the keen judgment of Augustus nor the extreme caution or secrecy of Tiberius.” These traits of strategy and deceit are indeed different habits and skills that need to be distinguished. If a person has such sharp judgment that they can discern which matters should be revealed, which should be kept secret, what should be shown only partially, and to whom and when (which are indeed strategies of politics and life, as Tacitus aptly calls them), then for them, being deceitful becomes a hindrance and a weakness. But if a person cannot reach that level of judgment, they are generally left to be secretive and deceptive; where one cannot choose or vary in specifics, it's wise to take the safest and most cautious approach overall, like someone moving carefully in the dark. Certainly, the most capable individuals throughout history have all shown openness and honesty in their dealings, having a reputation for reliability and truthfulness: but they were like well-trained horses, knowing exactly when to stop or turn. When they felt a situation genuinely required deceit, if they chose to use it, their earlier reputation for integrity and transparency made them almost undetectable.
There be three degrees of this hiding and veiling of a man’s self: the first, closeness, reservation, and secrecy; when a man leaveth himself without observation, or without hold to be taken, what he is: the second, dissimulation in the negative; when a man lets fall signs and arguments, that he is not that he is: and the third, simulation in the affirmative; when a man industriously and expressly feigns and pretends to be that he is not.
There are three levels of hiding and masking oneself: the first is being reserved and secretive; when a person allows themselves to go unnoticed or without being grasped for who they really are. The second is dissimulation in the negative; when someone drops hints and clues that they are not what they truly are. The third is simulation in the affirmative; when a person deliberately and unmistakably pretends to be something they are not.
For the first of these, secrecy, it is indeed the virtue of a confessor; and assuredly the secret man heareth many confessions; for who will open himself to a blab or a babbler? But if a man be thought secret, it inviteth discovery, as the more close air sucketh in the more open; and, as in confession, the revealing is not for worldly use, but for the ease of a man’s heart, so secret men come to the knowledge of many things in that kind; while men rather discharge their minds than impart their minds. In few words, mysteries are due to secrecy. Besides80 (to say truth), nakedness is uncomely, as well in mind as body; and it addeth no small reverence to men’s manners and actions, if they be not altogether open. As for talkers and futile persons, they are commonly vain and credulous withal; for he that talketh what he knoweth, will also talk what he knoweth not; therefore set it down, that a habit of secrecy is both politic and moral: and in this part it is good that a man’s face give his tongue leave to speak; for the discovery of a man’s self by the tracts99 of his countenance, is a great weakness and betraying, by how much it is many times more marked and believed than a man’s words.
For the first point, secrecy is indeed a virtue of a confessor; and certainly, a secretive person hears many confessions, because who would open up to someone who spills secrets? But when someone is perceived as secretive, it invites curiosity, just as more enclosed air draws in the more open spaces. In confession, revealing isn’t for worldly gain, but to ease a person's heart, and secretive people often learn many things in this way; while people tend to express their thoughts rather than share their innermost feelings. In short, secrets come from secrecy. Besides, to be completely open is unattractive, both in mind and body; it adds a level of respectability to a person's behavior and actions if they're not entirely transparent. As for chatterboxes and frivolous people, they are usually shallow and gullible; because someone who speaks on what they know will also speak on what they don’t know. So, it’s established that having a habit of secrecy is both strategic and ethical: it’s good for a person’s face to give their words permission to be spoken; because revealing oneself through facial expressions is a significant weakness and betrayal, often more noticeable and believed than a person’s words.
For the second, which is dissimulation, it followeth many times upon secrecy by a necessity; so that he that will be secret must be a dissembler in some degree; for men are too cunning to suffer a man to keep an indifferent carriage between both, and to be secret, without swaying the balance on either side. They will so beset a man with questions, and draw him on, and pick it out of him, that without an absurd silence, he must show an inclination one way; or if he do not, they will gather as much by his silence as by his speech. As for equivocations, or oraculous speeches, they cannot hold out long: so that no man can be secret, except he give himself a little scope of dissimulation, which is, as it were, but the skirts or train of secrecy.
For the second point, which is dissimulation, it often follows from the need for secrecy. So, anyone who wants to be secretive has to be a bit of a dissembler; people are too clever to allow someone to remain neutral and secretive at the same time without leaning one way or the other. They’ll bombard a person with questions, pull them in, and pry information out of them, so that, unless they choose to remain absurdly silent, they will inevitably show a preference one way. If they don't, others will read just as much from their silence as they would from their words. As for evasive answers or cryptic statements, those can't last long. So, no one can truly maintain secrecy unless they allow themselves a little room for dissimulation, which is basically just the edges or the overflow of secrecy.
But for the third degree, which is simulation and 81false profession, that I hold more culpable, and less politic, except it be in great and rare matters; and, therefore, a general custom of simulation (which is this last degree) is a vice rising either of a natural falseness, or fearfulness, or of a mind that hath some main faults; which because a man must needs disguise, it maketh him practise simulation in other things, lest his hand should be out of use.
But for the third degree, which is pretending and 81false representation, I find it more blameworthy and less wise, unless it concerns significant and rare issues; and therefore, a general habit of pretending (which is this last degree) is a flaw that stems either from a natural dishonesty, fear, or from a mind that has some major faults; which, because a person must disguise, leads them to practice pretending in other areas, so they don't lose the habit.
The advantages of simulation and dissimulation are three: first, to lay asleep opposition, and to surprise; for, where a man’s intentions are published, it is an alarum to call up all that are against them: the second is, to reserve to a man’s self a fair retreat; for if a man engage himself by a manifest declaration, he must go through or take a fall: the third is, the better to discover the mind of another; for to him that opens himself men will hardly show themselves adverse; but will (fair) let him go on, and turn their freedom of speech to freedom of thought; and therefore it is a good shrewd proverb of the Spaniard, “Tell a lie, and find a troth;”100 as if there were no way of discovery but by simulation. There be also three disadvantages to set it even; the first, that simulation and dissimulation commonly carry with them a show of fearfulness, which, in any business, doth spoil the feathers of round flying up to the mark; the second, that it puzzleth and perplexeth the conceits of many, that, perhaps, would otherwise coöperate with him, and 82makes a man walk almost alone to his own ends: the third, and greatest, is, that it depriveth a man of one of the most principal instruments for action, which is trust and belief. The best composition and temperature is, to have openness in fame and opinion, secrecy in habit, dissimulation in seasonable use, and a power to feign if there be no remedy.
The benefits of pretending and hiding the truth are threefold: first, to keep opposition at bay and catch others off guard; because when a person’s intentions are known, it alerts everyone who might oppose them. The second is to allow a person a safe way out; if a person commits to a clear declaration, they have to follow through or face a defeat. The third is to better understand another person's thoughts; because if someone reveals themselves, others are less likely to show their opposition; instead, they’ll let that person continue and change their openness into private thoughts. That’s why there's a wise Spanish saying, “Tell a lie, and find a truth,” as if there’s no way to discover anything without pretending. There are also three downsides to balance it out: first, that pretending and hiding often show a sense of fear, which can ruin the effectiveness of any endeavor; second, it confuses and complicates the thoughts of many who might have otherwise worked with him, making a person almost work alone toward their own goals; the third, and the biggest issue, is that it robs a person of one of the most important tools for taking action, which is trust and belief. The best approach is to be open in reputation and opinion, secretive in habits, use pretense when necessary, and have the ability to feign if there’s no other choice.
VII.—OF PARENTS AND CHILDREN.
The joys of parents are secret, and so are their griefs and fears; they cannot utter the one, nor they will not utter the other. Children sweeten labors, but they make misfortunes more bitter; they increase the cares of life, but they mitigate the remembrance of death. The perpetuity by generation is common to beasts; but memory, merit, and noble works, are proper to men: and surely a man shall see the noblest works and foundations have proceeded from childless men, which have sought to express the images of their minds where those of their bodies have failed; so the care of posterity is most in them that have no posterity. They that are the first raisers of their houses are most indulgent towards their children, beholding them as the continuance, not only of their kind, but of their work; and so both children and creatures.
The joys of parents are private, just like their sorrows and fears; they can't share one, and they won’t share the other. Children make the hard work sweeter, but they also make the tough times harder to handle; they add to life's worries but help soften the thought of death. The idea of passing on through generations is common to animals, but memory, achievement, and great deeds belong to humans: and it’s true that the greatest works and legacies have often come from those without children, who have aimed to show their ideas in ways that their own offspring couldn’t. So, the desire for a legacy is strongest in those who have no descendants. Those who are the first to establish their families tend to be more caring towards their children, seeing them as not just extensions of their lineage but also as extensions of their efforts; and in this way, both children and creations matter.
The difference in affection of parents towards their several children is many times unequal, and some83times unworthy, especially in the mother; as Solomon saith, “A wise son rejoiceth the father, but an ungracious son shames the mother.”101 A man shall see, where there is a house full of children, one or two of the eldest respected, and the youngest made wantons;102 but in the midst some that are, as it were, forgotten, who many times, nevertheless, prove the best. The illiberality of parents, in allowance towards their children, is a harmful error, makes them base, acquaints them with shifts, makes them sort with mean company, and makes them surfeit more when they come to plenty; and, therefore, the proof103 is best when men keep their authority towards their children, but not their purse. Men have a foolish manner (both parents, and schoolmasters, and servants), in creating and breeding an emulation between brothers during childhood, which many times sorteth104 to discord when they are men, and disturbeth families.105 The Italians 84make little difference between children and nephews, or near kinsfolk; but so they be of the lump, they care not, though they pass not through their own body; and, to say truth, in nature it is much a like matter; insomuch that we see a nephew sometimes resembleth an uncle or a kinsman more than his own parent, as the blood happens. Let parents choose betimes the vocations and courses they mean their children should take, for then they are most flexible; and let them not too much apply themselves to the disposition of their children, as thinking they will take best to that which they have most mind to. It is true, that if the affection or aptness of the children be extraordinary, then it is good not to cross it; but generally the precept is good, “Optimum elige, suave et facile illud faciet consuetudo.”106—Younger brothers are commonly fortunate, but seldom or never where the elder are disinherited.
The way parents show affection to their different children is often uneven and sometimes unfair, especially from the mother. As Solomon says, “A wise son brings joy to his father, but a worthless son brings shame to his mother.”101 In a household filled with children, you might see one or two of the oldest being respected, while the youngest are treated as spoiled brats;102 but in the mix, there are often some that seem ignored, who can turn out to be the best of the lot. The stinginess of parents when it comes to what they give their children is a harmful mistake; it makes them feel inferior, teaches them to rely on tricks, puts them in low company, and leads them to overindulge when they finally have more. The best approach is for parents to maintain their authority over their children without being stingy with money. Parents, teachers, and caregivers often mistakenly create rivalry among siblings in childhood, which can lead to discord in adulthood and disrupt families.105 The Italians make little distinction between children and nephews or close relatives; as long as they are part of the family, they don’t mind if they aren’t biologically related. Truly, in nature, it’s often quite similar; sometimes, a nephew resembles an uncle or relative more than his own parent, depending on the bloodline. Parents should choose early the paths and careers they want their children to follow, as kids are most adaptable at that stage; they shouldn’t overly focus on what their children might be inclined to do, thinking it will work best if it’s what they want. It’s true that if a child shows extraordinary talent or interest, it’s good not to oppose it; but generally, the rule is good: “Choose what is best, and habit will make it pleasant and easy.”106—Younger brothers usually have good fortune, but it’s rare when the older ones are disinherited.
VIII.—OF MARRIAGE AND SINGLE LIFE.
He that hath wife and children hath given hostages to fortune; for they are impediments to great enterprises, either of virtue or mischief. Certainly the best works, and of greatest merit for the public, have proceeded from the unmarried or childless men, 85which, both in affection and means, have married and endowed the public. Yet it were great reason that those that have children should have greatest care of future times, unto which they know they must transmit their dearest pledges. Some there are who, though they lead a single life, yet their thoughts do end with themselves, and account future times impertinences; nay, there are some other that account wife and children but as bills of charges; nay more, there are some foolish, rich, covetous men, that take a pride in having no children, because they may be thought so much the richer; for, perhaps they have heard some talk, “Such an one is a great rich man,” and another except to it, “Yea, but he hath a great charge of children;” as if it were an abatement to his riches. But the most ordinary cause of a single life is liberty, especially in certain self-pleasing and humorous minds, which are so sensible of every restraint, as they will go near to think their girdles and garters to be bonds and shackles. Unmarried men are best friends, best masters, best servants; but not always best subjects, for they are light to run away, and almost all fugitives are of that condition. A single life doth well with churchmen, for charity will hardly water the ground where it must first fill a pool.107 It is indifferent for judges and magistrates; for if they be facile 86and corrupt, you shall have a servant five times worse than a wife. For soldiers, I find the generals commonly, in their hortatives, put men in mind of their wives and children; and I think the despising of marriage amongst the Turks maketh the vulgar soldier more base. Certainly, wife and children are a kind of discipline of humanity; and single men, though they be many times more charitable, because their means are less exhaust, yet, on the other side, they are more cruel and hard-hearted (good to make severe inquisitors), because their tenderness is not so oft called upon. Grave natures, led by custom, and therefore constant, are commonly loving husbands, as was said of Ulysses, “Vetulam suam praetulit immortalitati.”108 Chaste women are often proud and froward, as presuming upon the merit of their chastity. It is one of the best bonds, both of chastity and obedience, in the wife, if she think her husband wise, which she will never do if she find him jealous. Wives are young men’s mistresses, companions for middle age, and old men’s nurses, so as a man may have a quarrel109 to marry when he will; but yet he was reputed one of the wise men that made answer to the question when a man should marry, “A young man not yet, an elder 87man not at all.”110 It is often seen that bad husbands have very good wives; whether it be that it raiseth the price of their husbands’ kindness when it comes, or that the wives take a pride in their patience; but this never fails, if the bad husbands were of their own choosing, against their friends’ consent, for then they will be sure to make good their own folly.
He who has a wife and children has made a commitment to fate; they can hold back great achievements, whether good or bad. Certainly, the best and most significant contributions to society have come from men who are single or without children, 85 as they have the freedom and resources to support the greater good. However, it's only reasonable that those with children should care the most about the future, knowing they have their beloved offspring to consider. Some people, even though they live alone, focus only on themselves and see the future as irrelevant; there are others who view a wife and children merely as financial burdens. Moreover, there are some foolish, wealthy, greedy men who take pride in not having children because it makes them seem richer; they might have heard someone say, “That guy is really wealthy,” and another person would add, “Yes, but he has a lot of children to support,” as if that should lessen his wealth. The most common reason for being single is the desire for freedom, especially in some self-indulgent and whimsical individuals who feel constrained by any kind of obligation, to the point where they consider belts and garters to be chains. Unmarried men tend to be the best friends, the best bosses, and the best employees, but not always the best citizens, as they are more likely to go AWOL; almost all runaways are in that category. A single life suits churchmen well because charity rarely flourishes in an environment that also must fill a large emotional reservoir.107 It is acceptable for judges and officials; if they are easily swayed and corrupt, a servant can be far worse than a wife. Among soldiers, commanders often remind their troops of their wives and children in speeches, and I believe the lack of respect for marriage among Turks causes them to have a lower-quality fighting force. Clearly, a wife and children instill a sense of humanity; and while single men might often be more generous due to having fewer financial obligations, they can also be more ruthless and callous (good for being tough interrogators) since their compassion is not frequently tested. Serious individuals, influenced by habit and therefore constant, tend to be loving husbands, as it was said of Ulysses, “He preferred his old wife to immortality.”108 Chaste women can be arrogant and difficult, feeling self-important because of their purity. One of the best ways to ensure chastity and obedience in a wife is if she believes her husband is wise, which she will never think if she sees him as jealous. Wives are the lovers of young men, companions of middle-aged men, and caretakers of older men, so a man can find reasons to marry whenever he wants; yet one wise man was known to respond to the question of when a man should marry with, “Not when young, and never when older.”110 It is often observed that poor husbands end up with great wives; this could either increase the value of their husbands' eventual affection or stem from the wives taking pride in their endurance. However, this never fails to happen if the bad husbands were chosen by their wives against the advice of friends, as they will then surely find a way to validate their own poor choice.
IX.—OF ENVY.
There be none of the affections which have been noted to fascinate or bewitch, but love and envy. They both have vehement wishes; they frame themselves readily into imaginations and suggestions, and they come easily into the eye, especially upon the presence of the objects which are the points that conduce to fascination, if any such thing there be. We see, likewise, the Scripture calleth envy an evil eye;111 and the astrologers call the evil influences of 88the stars evil aspects; so that still there seemeth to be acknowledged, in the act of envy, an ejaculation, or irradiation of the eye; nay, some have been so curious as to note that the times, when the stroke or percussion of an envious eye doth most hurt, are, when the party envied is beheld in glory or triumph, for that sets an edge upon envy; and besides, at such times, the spirits of the person envied do come forth most into the outward parts, and so meet the blow.
There are no feelings that have been noted to captivate or enchant quite like love and envy. Both have intense desires; they easily form into thoughts and suggestions and quickly catch the eye, especially when the objects of fascination are present, if such things exist. We also see in the Scriptures that envy is called an evil eye;111 and astrologers refer to the harmful influences of the stars as evil aspects; so it seems there is still recognition of an outward expression, or a glare, in the act of envy. In fact, some have been so observant as to point out that envy strikes hardest when the person being envied is seen in their glory or success, as it sharpens feelings of envy; additionally, at such times, the emotions of the envied person are most outwardly visible and thus feel the impact.
But, leaving these curiosities (though not unworthy to be thought on in fit place), we will handle what persons are apt to envy others; what persons are most subject to be envied themselves; and what is the difference between public and private envy.
But, setting aside these curiosities (though they deserve to be considered in the right context), we will discuss who tends to envy others, who is most likely to be envied themselves, and what the difference is between public and private envy.
A man that hath no virtue in himself, ever envieth virtue in others; for men’s minds will either feed upon their own good, or upon others’ evil; and who wanteth the one will prey upon the other; and whoso is out of hope to attain to another’s virtue, will seek to come at even hand112 by depressing another’s fortune.
A man who has no virtue in himself always envies the virtue in others; because people's minds will either thrive on their own goodness or on the misfortunes of others. Those who lack the first will prey on the second, and whoever feels hopeless about achieving someone else's virtue will try to level the playing field by bringing down another's success.
A man that is busy and inquisitive, is commonly envious; for to know much of other men’s matters cannot be, because all that ado may concern his own estate; therefore, it must needs be that he taketh a kind of play-pleasure in looking upon the fortunes of others; neither can he that mindeth but his own business find much matter for envy; for 89envy is a gadding passion, and walketh the streets, and doth not keep home: “Non est curiosus, quin idem sit malevolus.”113
A man who is busy and curious is often envious; wanting to know a lot about other people's affairs can't be good for him, as all that distraction may affect his own situation. Therefore, he must find some strange pleasure in observing the fortunes of others. Also, someone focused solely on their own business wouldn’t have much to be envious about; envy is a restless emotion that goes out and doesn't stay home: “Non est curiosus, quin idem sit malevolus.”113
Men of noble birth are noted to be envious towards new men when they rise, for the distance is altered; and it is like a deceit of the eye, that when others come on they think themselves go back.
Noblemen tend to feel envious of newcomers when they succeed, as their status shifts; it's like an optical illusion, making them feel like they are losing ground when others advance.
Deformed persons and eunuchs, and old men and bastards, are envious; for he that cannot possibly mend his own case, will do what he can to impair another’s; except these defects light upon a very brave and heroical nature, which thinketh to make his natural wants part of his honor; in that it should be said, “That a eunuch, or a lame man, did such great matters,” affecting the honor of a miracle; as it was in Narses114 the eunuch, and Agesilaus and Tamerlane,115 that were lame men.
Deformed individuals, eunuchs, old men, and bastards are often envious; for those who cannot improve their own situation tend to do what they can to undermine others. However, these shortcomings may not apply to someone with a very brave and heroic character, who views their natural limitations as part of their honor. It should be said, "A eunuch or a disabled person accomplished such great feats," achieving the honor of a miracle, as exemplified by Narses114 the eunuch, and Agesilaus and Tamerlane,115 who were both disabled.
The same is the case of men that rise after calamities and misfortunes; for they are as men fallen out with the times, and think other men’s harms a redemption of their own sufferings.
The same goes for men who rise after hardships and misfortunes; they are like those who have fallen out of sync with the times, believing that others' suffering somehow makes up for their own pain.
They that desire to excel in too many matters, out of levity and vainglory, are ever envious, for they cannot want work; it being impossible but many, in some one of those things, should surpass them; which was the character of Adrian the emperor, that mortally envied poets and painters, and artificers in works, wherein he had a vein to excel.116
Those who want to be great at too many things, out of silliness and pride, are always envious because they can’t help but have too much on their plate; it’s unavoidable that some will outshine them in at least one of those areas. This was true for Emperor Adrian, who was intensely jealous of poets, painters, and craftsmen in skills where he had the potential to excel.116
Lastly, near kinsfolk and fellows in office, and those that have been bred together, are more apt to envy their equals when they are raised; for it doth upbraid unto them their own fortunes, and pointeth at them, and cometh oftener into their remembrance, and incurreth likewise more into the note117 of others; and envy ever redoubleth from speech and fame. Cain’s envy was the more vile and malignant towards his brother Abel, because when his sacrifice was better accepted, there was nobody to look on. Thus much for those that are apt to envy.
Lastly, close relatives and coworkers, as well as those who have grown up together, are more likely to envy their peers when they achieve success; because it highlights their own situations, it stands out to them, comes to mind more often, and is noticed more by others; and envy always increases through talk and reputation. Cain's envy was especially wicked and harmful toward his brother Abel because when his sacrifice was accepted more favorably, there was no one else around to witness it. That's all for those who are prone to envy.
Concerning those that are more or less subject to envy: First, persons of eminent virtue, when they are advanced, are less envied, for their fortune seemeth but due unto them; and no man envieth 91the payment of a debt, but rewards and liberality rather. Again, envy is ever joined with the comparing of a man’s self; and where there is no comparison, no envy; and therefore kings are not envied but by kings. Nevertheless, it is to be noted, that unworthy persons are most envied at their first coming in, and afterwards overcome it better; whereas, contrariwise, persons of worth and merit are most envied when their fortune continueth long; for by that time, though their virtue be the same, yet it hath not the same lustre; for fresh men grow up that darken it.
Regarding those who are more or less prone to envy: First, people of great virtue, when they achieve success, are less envied because their fortune seems deserved. Nobody envies the payment of a debt, but rather the rewards and generosity. Moreover, envy is always linked to comparing oneself to others; where there’s no comparison, there’s no envy. Therefore, kings are only envied by other kings. However, it's important to note that unworthy individuals are most envied when they first arrive, but they handle it better over time. In contrast, individuals of worth and merit are most envied when their fortune lasts a long time; by then, even though their virtue remains the same, it doesn’t shine as brightly because new talents emerge that overshadow it.
Persons of noble blood are less envied in their rising; for it seemeth but right done to their birth: besides, there seemeth not so much added to their fortune; and envy is as the sunbeams, that beat hotter upon a bank or steep rising ground, than upon a flat; and, for the same reason, those that are advanced by degrees are less envied than those that are advanced suddenly, and per saltum.118
People of noble birth are envied less when they rise in status; it feels like a natural progression for them. Plus, it doesn’t seem like their wealth increases as much. Envy is like sunlight that shines hotter on a hill or steep slope than on flat ground; for the same reason, those who rise gradually are envied less than those who make sudden leaps. per saltum.118
Those that have joined with their honor great travels, cares, or perils, are less subject to envy; for men think that they earn their honors hardly, and pity them sometimes, and pity ever healeth envy. Wherefore you shall observe, that the more deep and sober sort of politic persons, in their greatness, are ever bemoaning themselves what a life they lead, chanting a quanta patimur;119 not that they feel 92it so, but only to abate the edge of envy; but this is to be understood of business that is laid upon men, and not such as they call unto themselves; for nothing increaseth envy more than an unnecessary and ambitious engrossing of business; and nothing doth extinguish envy more than for a great person to preserve all other inferior officers in their full rights and preëminences of their places; for, by that means, there be so many screens between him and envy.
Those who have achieved great honors through journeys, challenges, or dangers are less likely to be envied; people believe they’ve earned their accolades through hard work, and they sometimes feel pity for them, which always lessens envy. Therefore, you’ll notice that the more thoughtful and serious political figures, in their positions of power, often lament the lives they lead, singing a quanta patimur; not because they genuinely feel this way, but just to soften the sting of envy. However, this applies to responsibilities that are imposed on individuals, not those they seek out themselves; because nothing increases envy more than unnecessarily and ambitiously taking on too much work, and nothing reduces envy more than a powerful person ensuring that all their subordinate officers retain their full rights and privileges. This creates many barriers between them and envy.
Above all, those are most subject to envy, which carry the greatness of their fortunes in an insolent and proud manner; being never well but while they are showing how great they are, either by outward pomp, or by triumphing over all opposition or competition. Whereas wise men will rather do sacrifice to envy, in suffering themselves, sometimes of purpose, to be crossed and overborne in things that do not much concern them. Notwithstanding, so much is true, that the carriage of greatness in a plain and open manner (so it be without arrogancy and vainglory), doth draw less envy than if it be in a more crafty and cunning fashion; for in that course a man doth but disavow fortune, and seemeth to be conscious of his own want in worth, and doth but teach others to envy him.
Above all, those who flaunt their wealth in an arrogant and proud way are the most susceptible to envy; they are only happy when they're displaying their greatness, whether through outward displays of extravagance or by defeating all opposition. In contrast, wise people are more likely to appease envy by deliberately allowing themselves to be challenged and pushed aside in matters that don't affect them much. However, it's true that displaying greatness in a straightforward and genuine way (as long as it's not arrogant or boastful) attracts less envy than when it's done in a sly and cunning manner. In that approach, a person is essentially denying their fortune, appearing aware of their own lack of worth, and just teaching others to envy them.
Lastly, to conclude this part, as we said in the beginning that the act of envy had somewhat in it of witchcraft, so there is no other cure of envy but the cure of witchcraft; and that is, to remove93 the lot (as they call it), and to lay it upon another; for which purpose, the wiser sort of great persons bring in ever upon the stage somebody upon whom to derive the envy that would come upon themselves; sometimes upon ministers and servants, sometimes upon colleagues and associates, and the like; and, for that turn, there are never wanting some persons of violent and undertaking natures, who, so they may have power and business, will take it at any cost.
Lastly, to wrap up this section, as we mentioned at the start, the act of envy has a bit of a magical quality to it, so the only way to cure envy is through a sort of magic remedy; that is, to shift the blame (as they say) to someone else. For this reason, the more astute individuals among the elite often bring someone into the spotlight to redirect the envy that would otherwise fall on them; sometimes targeting ministers and servants, other times colleagues and associates, and so on. To serve this purpose, there are always individuals with strong, ambitious personalities who, in exchange for power and influence, are willing to take on this role at any cost.
Now, to speak of public envy: there is yet some good in public envy, whereas in private there is none; for public envy is as an ostracism,120 that eclipseth men when they grow too great; and therefore it is a bridle also to great ones, to keep them within bounds.
Now, let's talk about public envy: there is some value in public envy, while private envy has none. Public envy acts like an ostracism,120 that overshadows people when they become too powerful; therefore, it also serves as a restraint for the powerful, keeping them in check.
This envy, being in the Latin word invidia,121 goeth in the modern languages by the name of discontentment, of which we shall speak in handling sedition. It is a disease in a state like to infection; for as infection spreadeth upon that which is sound, and tainteth it, so, when envy is gotten once into a state, it traduceth even the best actions thereof, and turneth them into an ill odor; and therefore there is little won by intermingling of plausible actions; for that doth argue but a weakness and fear of envy, 94which hurteth so much the more, as it is likewise usual in infections, which, if you fear them, you call them upon you.
This envy, derived from the Latin word invidia, is referred to in modern languages as discontentment, which we will discuss when talking about sedition. It's a disease in a state, similar to an infection; just as an infection spreads to things that are healthy and contaminates them, when envy takes hold in a state, it tarnishes even the best actions and turns them into something negative. So, there's little to gain from mixing in seemingly good actions; that only shows a weakness and fear of envy, 94 which hurts even more, just like with infections, where if you fear them, you end up attracting them to yourself.
This public envy seemeth to beat chiefly upon principal officers or ministers, rather than upon kings and estates themselves. But this is a sure rule, that if the envy upon the minister be great, when the cause of it in him is small; or if the envy be general in a manner upon all the ministers of an estate, then the envy (though hidden) is truly upon the state itself. And so much of public envy or discontentment, and the difference thereof from private envy, which was handled in the first place.
This public envy tends to focus more on key officials or ministers rather than on the kings and the institutions themselves. However, it's a solid rule that if the envy directed at a minister is high while the reasons for it in that individual are minor, or if the envy is widespread among all the ministers of a state, then the real envy (even if it's not obvious) is actually aimed at the state itself. This highlights the public's envy or dissatisfaction, as well as how it differs from private envy, which was discussed earlier.
We will add this in general, touching the affection of envy, that, of all other affections, it is the most importune and continual; for of other affections there is occasion given but now and then; and therefore it was well said, “Invidia festos dies non agit:”122 for it is ever working upon some or other. And it is also noted, that love and envy do make a man pine, which other affections do not, because they are not so continual. It is also the vilest affection, and the most depraved; for which cause it is the proper attribute of the devil, who is called “The envious man, that soweth tares amongst the wheat by night;”123 as it always cometh to pass that envy worketh subtilely, and in the dark, and to the prejudice of good things, such as is the wheat.
We’ll add this in general, addressing the feeling of envy, which, of all other emotions, is the most intrusive and persistent. Other emotions arise only now and then; hence, it’s accurately said, “Envy does not observe festive days,”122 because it’s always at work on someone or something. It’s also noted that love and envy can make a person suffer, unlike other emotions, as they’re not as constant. Furthermore, it’s the most contemptible and corrupt feeling, which is why it’s fittingly attributed to the devil, who is called “The envious man who sows tares among the wheat by night,”123 since envy often acts subtly and in the dark, harming good things, like the wheat.
X.—OF LOVE.
The stage is more beholding124 to love than the life of man; for as to the stage, love is ever matter of comedies, and now and then of tragedies; but in life it doth much mischief, sometimes like a Siren, sometimes like a Fury. You may observe, that, amongst all the great and worthy persons (whereof the memory remaineth, either ancient or recent), there is not one that hath been transported to the mad degree of love, which shows that great spirits and great business do keep out this weak passion. You must except, nevertheless, Marcus Antonius, the half partner of the empire of Rome, and Appius Claudius,125 the decemvir and lawgiver; whereof the former was indeed a voluptuous man, and inordinate, but the latter was an austere and wise man; and therefore it seems (though rarely) that love can find entrance, not only into an open heart, but also into a heart well fortified, if watch be not well kept. It is a poor saying of Epicurus, “Satis magnum alter alteri theatrum sumus;”126 as if man, 96made for the contemplation of heaven and all noble objects, should do nothing but kneel before a little idol, and make himself subject, though not of the mouth (as beasts are) yet of the eye, which was given him for higher purposes. It is a strange thing to note the excess of this passion, and how it braves the nature and value of things, by this, that the speaking in a perpetual hyperbole is comely in nothing but in love, neither is it merely in the phrase; for whereas it hath been well said, “That the arch flatterer, with whom all the petty flatterers have intelligence, is a man’s self;” certainly, the lover is more; for there was never proud man thought so absurdly well of himself as the lover doth of the person loved; and therefore it was well said, “That it is impossible to love and to be wise.”127 Neither doth this weakness appear to others only, and not to the party loved, but to the loved most of all, except the love be reciprocal; for it is a true rule, that love is ever rewarded, either with the 97reciprocal, or with an inward and secret contempt; by how much the more men ought to beware of this passion, which loseth not only other things, but itself. As for the other losses, the poet’s relation128 doth well figure them: “That he that preferred Helena, quitted the gifts of Juno and Pallas;” for whosoever esteemeth too much of amorous affection, quitteth both riches and wisdom. This passion hath his floods in the very times of weakness, which are, great prosperity and great adversity, though this latter hath been less observed; both which times kindle love, and make it more fervent, and therefore show it to be the child of folly. They do best who, if they cannot but admit love, yet make it keep quarter, and sever it wholly from their serious affairs and actions of life; for if it check once with business, it troubleth men’s fortunes, and maketh men that they can nowise be true to their own ends. I know not how, but martial men are given to love; I think it is, but as they are given to wine, for perils commonly ask to be paid in pleasures. There is in man’s nature a secret inclination and motion towards love of others, which, if it be not spent upon some one or a few, doth naturally spread itself towards many, and maketh men become humane and charitable, as it is seen sometimes in friars. Nuptial love maketh mankind, friendly love perfecteth it, but wanton love corrupted and embaseth it.
The platform is more conducive124 to love than real life; on stage, love is mostly a subject of comedies and sometimes of tragedies, but in real life, it often causes trouble, sometimes like a Siren, other times like a Fury. You can see that among all the great and remarkable people (both ancient and modern), none have been driven to the extreme of love, which shows that powerful minds and significant pursuits tend to resist this fragile emotion. However, you must make an exception for Marcus Antonius, a co-ruler of the Roman Empire, and Appius Claudius,125 the decemvir and lawmaker; the former was indeed indulgent and excessive, while the latter was serious and wise. Therefore, it seems (though infrequently) that love can breach not just an open heart but also a well-guarded one, if one does not keep a close watch. Epicurus once said, “We are enough theater for each other;”126 suggesting that man, made for contemplating the heavens and noble pursuits, should do nothing but kneel before a tiny idol and submit himself, not just in speech like animals do, but also to the sight, which was given him for greater purposes. It's remarkable to observe the intensity of this passion and how it challenges the essence and worth of things, as speaking in constant exaggeration is only acceptable in love, and it’s not just in the words; for it has been aptly said, “The greatest flatterer, with whom all the minor flatterers collude, is a man himself;” and certainly, the lover is even more so, for no proud person has ever thought so absurdly well of themselves as a lover does of the one they love; hence the saying, “That it's impossible to love and to be wise.”127 This weakness is not only evident to others but most of all to the loved one, unless the love is mutual; for it is a true principle that love is always reciprocated, either with mutual affection or with an internal and secret disdain; thus, men should be cautious of this passion, which not only loses other things but itself as well. Regarding the other losses, the poet’s lines128 illustrate them well: “He who chose Helena gave up the gifts of Juno and Pallas;” for whoever values romantic affection too highly relinquishes both wealth and wisdom. This passion swells during times of vulnerability, which are great success and great hardship, though the latter is less noted; both periods ignite love and intensify it, showing it to be a product of folly. Those who manage well, if they cannot avoid love, should keep it at bay and completely separate from their serious endeavors and life actions; for if it intersects with business, it disrupts people’s fortunes and prevents them from being true to their own goals. I don’t know why, but warriors tend to fall in love; I suspect it’s similar to how they turn to alcohol, as dangers commonly demand compensation in pleasures. There’s a hidden tendency in human nature toward loving others, which, if not directed toward one or a few, naturally spreads to many and makes people more humane and charitable, as sometimes seen with friars. Marital love creates humanity, friendly love perfects it, but lustful love distorts and diminishes it.
XI.—OF GREAT PLACE.129
Men in great place are thrice servants—servants of the sovereign or state, servants of fame, and servants of business; so as they have no freedom, neither in their persons, nor in their actions, nor in their times. It is a strange desire to seek power and to lose liberty; or to seek power over others, and to lose power over a man’s self. The rising unto place is laborious, and by pains men come to greater pains; and it is sometimes base, and by indignities men come to dignities. The standing is slippery, and the regress is either a downfall, or at least an eclipse, which is a melancholy thing: “Cum non sis qui fueris, non esse cur velis vivere.”130 Nay, retire men cannot when they would, neither will they when it were reason; but are impatient of privateness even in age and sickness, which require the shadow; like old townsmen, that will be still sitting at their street door, though thereby they offer age to scorn. Certainly, great persons had need to borrow other men’s opinions to think themselves happy; for if they judge by their own feeling, they cannot find it; but if they think with themselves what other men think of them, and that other men would fain be as they are, then they are 99happy as it were by report, when, perhaps, they find the contrary within; for they are the first that find their own griefs, though they be the last that find their own faults. Certainly, men in great fortunes are strangers to themselves, and while they are in the puzzle of business, they have no time to tend their health either of body or mind.
People in high positions are like three kinds of servants—servants to the government or state, servants to their reputation, and servants to their work; they have no freedom, neither in their personal lives, nor in their actions, nor in how they spend their time. It's a strange desire to seek power and lose freedom; or to dominate others while losing control over oneself. Achieving a high position is hard work, and through struggles, people often face more struggles; sometimes it's humiliating, and through indignities, they come to attain respect. Holding onto such a position is precarious, and stepping back can lead to a fall, or at least a dimming of one's status, which is a sad situation: “When you are not who you once were, there’s no reason to want to live.”130 Indeed, people in high positions can't step back when they want to, nor do they want to when it's reasonable; they are restless for public attention even in their old age and sickness, which require solitude; like elderly townsfolk who remain sitting at their doorsteps, even though it invites mockery of their age. Certainly, influential people need to reference others' opinions to feel happy; for if they rely on their own feelings, they can’t find happiness; but if they reflect on how others view them, and that others might wish to be like them, then they feel99 happy in a way, even if they actually feel the opposite inside; because they are the first to recognize their own suffering, while they are the last to see their own flaws. Indeed, people with great fortunes are often strangers to themselves, and while caught up in their business affairs, they have no time to care for their health, whether physical or mental.
In place, there is license to do good and evil, whereof the latter is a curse; for in evil, the best condition is not to will, the second not to can. But power to do good is the true and lawful end of aspiring; for good thoughts, though God accept them, yet towards men are little better than good dreams, except they be put in act; and that cannot be without power and place, as the vantage and commanding ground. Merit and good works are the end of man’s motion, and conscience of the same is the accomplishment of man’s rest; for if a man can be partaker of God’s theatre, he shall likewise be partaker of God’s rest. “Et conversus Deus, ut aspiceret opera, quæ fecerunt manus suæ, vidit quod omnia essent bona nimis;”132 and then the Sabbath.
In our world, we have the freedom to do both good and evil, but the latter is a curse; because with evil, the best state is not to want to do it, and the second best is not to have the ability to do it. However, having the power to do good is the real and rightful goal of ambition; for good intentions, even if accepted by God, do little for others unless they are put into action. And that can’t happen without the ability and opportunity, which provide the advantage and control needed. Good deeds and merits are the ultimate purpose of human effort, and being aware of this is what brings a person peace; for if someone can participate in God's creation, they will also share in God's peace. “Et conversus Deus, ut aspiceret opera, quæ fecerunt manus suæ, vidit quod omnia essent bona nimis;”132 and then the Sabbath.
In the discharge of thy place, set before thee the best examples; for imitation is a globe of precepts, and after a time set before thee thine own example; and examine thyself strictly whether thou didst not best at first. Neglect not also the examples of those that have carried themselves ill in the same place; not to set off thyself by taxing their memory, but to direct thyself what to avoid. Reform, therefore, without bravery or scandal of former times and persons; but yet set it down to thyself, as well to create good precedents as to follow them. Reduce things to the first institution, and observe wherein and how they have degenerated; but yet ask counsel of both times—of the ancient time what is best, and of the latter time what is fittest. Seek to make thy course regular, that men may know beforehand what they may expect; but be not too positive and peremptory, and express thyself well when thou digressest from thy rule. Preserve the right of thy place, but stir not questions of jurisdiction; and rather assume thy right in silence, and de facto,133 than voice it with claims and challenges. Preserve likewise the rights of inferior places; and think it more honor to direct in chief than to be busy in all. Embrace and invite helps and advices touching the execution of thy place; and do not drive away such as bring thee information, as meddlers, but accept of them in good part. The vices of authority are chiefly four: delays, corruption, roughness, and facility. For delays, 101give easy access, keep times appointed, go through with that which is in hand, and interlace not business but of necessity. For corruption, do not only bind thine own hands or thy servant’s hands from taking, but bind the hands of suitors also from offering; for integrity used doth the one, but integrity professed, and with a manifest detestation of bribery, doth the other; and avoid not only the fault, but the suspicion. Whosoever is found variable, and changeth manifestly without manifest cause, giveth suspicion of corruption; therefore, always when thou changest thine opinion or course, profess it plainly, and declare it, together with the reasons that move thee to change, and do not think to steal it. A servant or a favorite, if he be inward, and no other apparent cause of esteem, is commonly thought but a by-way to close corruption. For roughness, it is a needless cause of discontent: severity breedeth fear, but roughness breedeth hate. Even reproofs from authority ought to be grave, and not taunting. As for facility,134 it is worse than bribery, for bribes come but now and then; but if importunity or idle respects135 lead a man, he shall never be without; as Solomon saith, “To respect persons is not good; for such a man will transgress for a piece of bread.”136
In your role, look up to the best examples; because imitating them is a collection of guidelines, and eventually reflect on your own conduct; and critically assess if you started better. Also, consider the examples of those who have acted poorly in the same role; not to elevate yourself by criticizing them, but to guide yourself on what to avoid. So, make improvements without drawing attention to past mistakes or people; yet, keep in mind, it's just as important to create good examples as it is to follow them. Bring things back to their original purpose, and observe how and why they've declined; but also seek wisdom from both the past—what was best then—and the present—what works best now. Aim for a consistent approach so that people know what to expect; but don't be overly rigid and make sure to communicate clearly when you deviate from your guidelines. Maintain the rights of your position, but don’t challenge issues of authority; instead, assert your rights quietly and in practice, rather than making loud claims. Also, respect the rights of those in lower positions; and consider it more honorable to lead than to meddle in everything. Welcome and invite help and advice related to your role; and don’t push away those who provide information, treating them as intruders, but rather accept them graciously. The faults of authority primarily revolve around four: delays, corruption, harshness, and excessive leniency. Regarding delays, make access easy, stick to appointed times, follow through on tasks, and only mix business when necessary. As for corruption, don’t just stop yourself or your staff from accepting bribes; prevent those seeking favors from even offering them; because practicing integrity does the former, while professing integrity and openly rejecting bribery does the latter; and avoid not just the act but also the suspicion of it. Anyone who frequently changes their mind or course without a clear reason raises doubts about corruption; therefore, whenever you change your opinion or direction, state it clearly and explain the reasons behind it, rather than trying to keep it hidden. A close associate or favorite, if they hold a significant position and there’s no other obvious reason for their favor, often appears to be a channel for hidden corruption. Concerning harshness, it causes unnecessary dissatisfaction: severity creates fear, while harshness fosters hatred. Even criticisms from authority should be serious, not mocking. On leniency, it’s worse than bribery, since bribes happen only occasionally; but if someone is consistently accommodating or swayed by trivial matters, they’ll never be free of such issues. As Solomon said, “To show favoritism is not good; for such a person will sin for a loaf of bread.”
It is most true that was anciently spoken: “A place showeth the man; and it showeth some to the better, and some to the worse:” “Omnium consensu capax imperii, nisi imperasset,”137 saith Tacitus of Galba; but of Vespasian he saith, “Solus imperantium, Vespasianus mutatus in melius;”138 though the one was meant of sufficiency, the other of manners and affection. It is an assured sign of a worthy and generous spirit, whom honor amends; for honor is, or should be, the place of virtue; and as in nature things move violently to their place, and calmly in their place, so virtue in ambition is violent, in authority settled and calm. All rising to great place is by a winding stair; and if there be factions, it is good to side a man’s self whilst he is in the rising, and to balance himself when he is placed. Use the memory of thy predecessor fairly and tenderly; for if thou dost not, it is a debt will sure be paid when thou art gone. If thou have colleagues, respect them; and rather call them when they look not for it, than exclude them when they have reason to look to be called. Be not too sensible or too remembering of thy place in conversation and private answers to suitors; but let it rather be said, “When he sits in place, he is another man.”
It’s very true what has been said for a long time: “A place shows who a person is; some for the better and some for the worse.” Tacitus mentions Galba with the saying, “Everyone agrees he was capable of leadership, but he never led;” but about Vespasian, he says, “Only Vespasian changed for the better;” although the first was about ability, the second was about character and feelings. It's a sure sign of a worthy and generous spirit if honor improves someone; because honor is, or should be, where virtue resides. Just as in nature things move violently to find their place but settle down calmly once there, ambition is fervent while seeking greatness but becomes steady and composed in authority. Achieving high status is like climbing a spiral staircase; if there are factions, it’s wise to align yourself while you're still rising, then find balance once you've established yourself. Handle the memory of your predecessor with care, because if you don’t, that debt will definitely come due after you’re gone. If you have colleagues, show them respect, and it’s better to invite them unexpectedly than to leave them feeling excluded when they deserve to be included. Don’t be overly conscious of your position in conversation or when giving private responses to requests; instead, let it be said, “When he’s in position, he’s a different person.”
XII.—OF BOLDNESS.
It is a trivial grammar-school text, but yet worthy a wise man’s consideration. Question was asked of Demosthenes, what was the chief part of an orator? He answered, Action. What next?—Action. What next again?—Action.139 He said it that knew it best, and had, by nature, himself no advantage in that he commended. A strange thing, that that part of an orator which is but superficial, and rather the virtue of a player, should be placed so high above those other noble parts of invention, elocution, and the rest; nay, almost alone, as if it were all in all. But the reason is plain. There is in human nature generally more of the fool than of the wise; and therefore, those faculties by which the foolish part of men’s minds is taken are most potent. Wonderful like is the case of boldness in civil business. What first?—Boldness: what second and third?—Boldness. And yet boldness is a child of ignorance and baseness, far inferior to other parts; but, nevertheless, it doth fascinate, and bind hand and foot those that are either shallow in judgment or weak in courage, which are the greatest part, yea, and prevaileth with wise man at weak times; therefore, we see it hath done wonders in popular states, but with senates and princes less, and more, ever upon the first entrance of bold persons into action than 104 soon after; for boldness is an ill keeper of promise. Surely, as there are mountebanks for the natural body, so are there mountebanks for the politic body; men that undertake great cures, and perhaps have been lucky in two or three experiments, but want the grounds of science, and therefore cannot hold out; nay, you shall see a bold fellow many times do Mahomet’s miracle. Mahomet made the people believe that he would call a hill to him, and from the top of it offer up his prayers for the observers of his law. The people assembled; Mahomet called the hill to come to him again and again; and when the hill stood still, he was never a whit abashed, but said, “If the hill will not come to Mahomet, Mahomet will go to the hill.” So these men, when they have promised great matters and failed most shamefully, yet, if they have the perfection of boldness, they will but slight it over, and make a turn, and no more ado. Certainly, to men of great judgment, bold persons are a sport to behold; nay, and to the vulgar also boldness hath somewhat of the ridiculous; for if absurdity be the subject of laughter, doubt you not but great boldness is seldom without some absurdity; especially it is a sport to see when a bold fellow is out of countenance, for that puts his face into a most shrunken and wooden posture, as needs it must; for in bashfulness the spirits do a little go and come, but with bold men, upon like occasion, they stand at a stay; like a stale at chess, where it is no mate, but yet the game cannot stir; but this105 last were fitter for a satire than for a serious observation. This is well to be weighed, that boldness is ever blind, for it seeth not dangers and inconveniences; therefore, it is ill in counsel, good in execution; so that the right use of bold persons is, that they never command in chief, but be seconds and under the direction of others; for in counsel it is good to see dangers; and in execution not to see them except they be very great.
It's a simple grammar-school text, but still worth considering for a wise person. Someone asked Demosthenes what the most important quality of an orator is. He replied, “Action.” What next?—Action. What next again?—Action.139 He said it because he knew it best and didn’t have any natural advantage in the skill he praised. It's strange that what is just a superficial part of oratory, and more like an actor's talent, is held above the other noble aspects of invention, eloquence, and the rest; almost as if it were everything. But the reason is clear. Generally, there’s more foolishness than wisdom in human nature; thus, the abilities that appeal to the foolish side of people are the most powerful. The same goes for boldness in social matters. What first?—Boldness: what second and third?—Boldness. And yet, boldness comes from ignorance and a lack of character, far less valuable than other qualities; but still, it captivates and binds those who are either shallow-minded or lacking in courage, which makes up the majority, and even affects wise people during weak moments; hence, we see it achieve wonders in popular states but less so with senates and leaders, and it’s more effective at the initial entry of bold individuals into action than soon after; because boldness doesn’t keep promises well. Surely, just as there are frauds for physical issues, there are also frauds for political matters; people who take on huge tasks and might have been lucky in a few attempts but lack scientific knowledge and can’t maintain their efforts; indeed, you’ll often see a bold person achieve Mahomet’s miracle. Mahomet made people believe he could summon a hill, and from its top, offer prayers for his followers. The crowd gathered; Mahomet called the hill to come to him again and again; and when the hill didn’t move, he wasn’t at all fazed, saying, “If the hill won’t come to Mahomet, Mahomet will go to the hill.” So these individuals, when they promise big things and fail miserably, if they possess enough boldness, will just brush it off and make a pivot, and that’s the end of it. Certainly, to those with good judgment, bold people are amusing to watch; and even for the common folks, boldness often has a humorous side; because if absurdity is a laughingstock, you can be sure that great boldness typically isn't without some absurdity; especially amusing is when a bold person becomes flustered, as it leads to a very stiff and awkward expression, as it naturally must; because in embarrassment, emotions fluctuate slightly, but for bold people, in similar situations, their emotions remain frozen; like a stale piece in chess, where there’s no checkmate, but the game can’t move forward; but this last point would be better suited for a satire rather than a serious observation. It’s important to note that boldness is always blind, as it doesn’t see dangers and drawbacks; therefore, it’s poor in planning but good in execution; so the proper use of bold individuals is that they should never lead but rather support and follow the direction of others; because in planning, it’s good to recognize dangers; and in execution, it’s best not to recognize them unless they are very significant.
XIII.—OF GOODNESS, AND GOODNESS OF NATURE.
I take goodness in this sense, the affecting of the weal of men, which is that the Grecians call philanthropia; and the word humanity, as it is used, is a little too light to express it. Goodness I call the habit, and goodness of nature the inclination. This, of all virtues and dignities of the mind, is the greatest, being the character of the Deity; and without it man is a busy, mischievous, wretched thing, no better than a kind of vermin. Goodness answers to the theological virtue charity, and admits no excess but error. The desire of power in excess caused the angels to fall;140 the desire of knowledge 106in excess caused man to fall; but in charity there is no excess, neither can angel or man come in danger by it. The inclination to goodness is imprinted deeply in the nature of man, insomuch that if it issue not towards men, it will take unto other living creatures; as it is seen in the Turks, a cruel people, who nevertheless are kind to beasts, and give alms to dogs and birds; insomuch, as Busbechius141 reporteth, a Christian boy in Constantinople had like to have been stoned for gagging in a waggishness a long-billed fowl.142 Errors, indeed, in this 107virtue, of goodness or charity, may be committed. The Italians have an ungracious proverb: “Tanto buon che val niente;” “So good, that he is good for nothing;” and one of the doctors of Italy, Nicholas Machiavel,143 had the confidence to put in writing, almost in plain terms, “That the Christian faith had given up good men in prey to those that are tyrannical and unjust;”144 which he spake, because, indeed, there was never law, or sect, or opinion did so much magnify goodness as the Christian religion doth; therefore, to avoid the scandal and the danger both, it is good to take knowledge of the errors of a habit so excellent. Seek the good of other men, but be not in bondage to their faces or fancies; for that is but facility or softness, which taketh an honest mind 108prisoner. Neither give thou Æsop’s cock a gem, who would be better pleased and happier if he had had a barley-corn. The example of God teacheth the lesson truly: “He sendeth his rain, and maketh his sun to shine upon the just and the unjust;”145 but he doth not rain wealth, nor shine honor and virtues upon men equally; common benefits are to be communicate with all, but peculiar benefits with choice. And beware how, in making the portraiture, thou breakest the pattern; for divinity maketh the love of ourselves the pattern, the love of our neighbors but the portraiture: “Sell all thou hast, and give it to the poor, and follow me;”146 but sell not all thou hast, except thou come and follow me; that is, except thou have a vocation wherein thou mayest do as much good with little means as with great; for otherwise, in feeding the streams thou driest the fountain. Neither is there only a habit of goodness directed by right reason, but there is in some men, even in nature, a disposition towards it; as, on the other side, there is a natural malignity, for there be that in their nature do not affect the good of 109others. The lighter sort of malignity turneth but to a crossness, or frowardness, or aptness to oppose, or difficileness, or the like; but the deeper sort to envy, and mere mischief. Such men in other men’s calamities are, as it were, in season, and are ever on the loading part; not so good as the dogs that licked Lazarus’s sores,147 but like flies that are still buzzing upon any thing that is raw; misanthropi, that make it their practice to bring men to the bough, and yet have never a tree for the purpose in their gardens, as Timon148 had. Such dispositions are the very errors of human nature, and yet they are the fittest timber to make great politics of; like to knee timber,149 that is good for ships that are ordained to be tossed, but not for building houses that shall stand firm. The parts and signs of goodness are many. If a man be gracious and courteous to strangers, it shows he is a citizen of the world, 110and that his heart is no island cut off from other lands, but a continent that joins to them; if he be compassionate towards the afflictions of others, it shows that his heart is like the noble tree that is wounded itself when it gives the balm;150 if he easily pardons and remits offences, it shows that his mind is planted above injuries, so that he cannot be shot; if he be thankful for small benefits, it shows that he weighs men’s minds, and not their trash; but, above all, if he have St. Paul’s perfection, that he would wish to be an anathema151 from Christ for the salvation of his brethren, it shows much of a divine nature, and a kind of conformity with Christ himself.
I'm taking goodness in this context as the concern for the welfare of people, which the Greeks call philanthropia; and the term humanity, as it is commonly used, feels a bit too trivial to capture it. I refer to goodness as a habit, and the goodness of nature as the inclination towards it. This virtue, above all others and the greatness of the mind, is the highest, being a reflection of the Divine; without it, humanity is just a busy, troublesome, miserable being, not much better than a pest. Goodness corresponds to the theological virtue of charity, and there’s no excess in it, only deviations. The excessive desire for power led to the fall of angels; 140 the excessive desire for knowledge caused humanity's downfall; but in charity, there is no excess, nor can angels or humans be endangered by it. The inclination towards goodness is deeply ingrained in human nature, to the extent that if it isn’t directed towards people, it will turn to other living creatures; as seen in the Turks, a cruel people, who are nevertheless kind to animals and give to dogs and birds; indeed, Busbechius141 reports that a Christian boy in Constantinople nearly got stoned for teasing a long-billed bird. 142 Errors can indeed happen in this virtue of goodness or charity. The Italians have an unkind saying: “So good that he is good for nothing;” and one Italian thinker, Nicholas Machiavelli,143 had the audacity to write nearly outright, “The Christian faith has allowed good men to fall prey to the tyrannical and unjust;”144 which he said because, truly, no other law, belief, or doctrine elevates goodness as much as Christianity does; thus, to avoid scandal and danger, it’s wise to be aware of the shortcomings of such an admirable quality. Seek the welfare of others, but don’t be enslaved by their appearances or whims; that’s merely weakness or softness that ensnares an honest mind. 106 Also, don’t give Aesop’s cock a gem, who would be happier with a grain of barley. God’s example teaches this lesson rightly: “He sends his rain and makes his sun shine on both good and bad;”145 but he doesn’t shower wealth, nor shine honor and virtues equally on all; common benefits should be shared with everyone, but special benefits should be given with discretion. And be careful that in creating an ideal, you don't distort the original; for the divine sets the love of ourselves as the model, and the love of our neighbors as the representation: “Sell all you have and give it to the poor, and follow me;”146 but do not sell all you possess unless you come and follow me; meaning, unless you have a purpose where you can do as much good with little means as with much; otherwise, by feeding the streams, you drain the fountain. There is not just a habit of goodness guided by reason, but there is also in some people, even naturally, a tendency towards it; just as, conversely, some have a natural inclination towards malice, as some do not care for others' well-being. The lighter form of malice might take the shape of stubbornness, opposition, or difficulty, but the deeper form turns into envy and pure harm. Such individuals thrive on the misfortunes of others, almost as if they are waiting for it, and they always lean towards the negative; not even as compassionate as the dogs that licked Lazarus’s sores,147 but more like flies buzzing around anything that is decaying; misanthropes that make it their goal to bring others down but have no real means to do so, unlike Timon148 who had a tree for that purpose. Such tendencies represent the flaws in human nature, yet they can often be the perfect material for significant politics; similar to knee timber,149 which is suitable for ships that are meant to be tossed about, but not for constructing houses that should remain sturdy. The signs and markers of goodness are numerous. If someone is kind and courteous to strangers, it shows they belong to the world, 110 and that their heart is not isolated like an island but part of a larger landmass; if they are compassionate towards the suffering of others, it indicates that their heart is like a noble tree that is harmed itself to provide healing; 150 if they easily forgive and let go of offenses, it shows that their mind is above grievances, making it impervious to harm; if they appreciate small favors, it reflects that they value people's intentions rather than trivial matters; but above all, if they possess St. Paul's ideal, wishing they could be cast away from Christ for the salvation of others, it shows a divine nature and a profound similarity to Christ himself.
XIV.—OF NOBILITY.
We will speak of nobility, first, as a portion of an estate, then as a condition of particular persons. A monarchy, where there is no nobility at all, is ever a pure and absolute tyranny as that of the Turks; for nobility attempers sovereignty, and draws the 111eyes of the people somewhat aside from the line royal: but for democracies they need it not; and they are commonly more quiet and less subject to sedition than where there are stirps of nobles; for men’s eyes are upon the business, and not upon the persons; or if upon the persons, it is for the business sake, as fittest, and not for flags and pedigree. We see the Switzers last well, notwithstanding their diversity of religion and of cantons; for utility is their bond, and not respects.152 The United Provinces of the Low Countries153 in their government excel; for where there is an equality the consultations are more indifferent, and the payments and tributes more cheerful. A great and potent nobility addeth majesty to a monarch, but diminisheth power, and putteth life and spirit into the people, but presseth their fortune. It is well when nobles are not too great for sovereignty nor for justice; and yet maintained in that height, as the insolency of inferiors may be broken upon them, before it come on too fast upon the majesty of kings. A numerous nobility causeth poverty and inconvenience in a state, for it is a surcharge of expense; and besides, it being of necessity that many of the nobility fall in time to be weak in fortune, it maketh a kind of disproportion between honor and means.
We will discuss nobility, first as part of an estate, then as a status of specific individuals. A monarchy without any nobility tends to become a pure and absolute tyranny, like that of the Turks; because nobility tempers power and shifts the attention of the people away from the royal line. Democracies don’t need it; they are usually more stable and less prone to rebellion than those with noble classes, as people's focus is on the issues rather than individuals. If attention does fall on individuals, it's for the sake of the issues, as the most fitting, rather than for titles and lineage. We see this in the Swiss, who thrive despite their religious and regional differences; their unity comes from practicality, not status.152 The United Provinces of the Low Countries153 excel in governance; where there is equality, discussions are more impartial, and taxes and tributes are paid more willingly. A strong and powerful nobility adds grandeur to a monarch but diminishes their power, invigorates the populace but burdens their fortune. It's beneficial when nobles aren't too powerful compared to sovereignty or justice; yet, they should be maintained at a level where the arrogance of commoners can be checked before it poses a threat to the dignity of kings. A large nobility creates poverty and problems within a state, as it adds to expenses; and since it's inevitable that many nobles eventually find themselves in financial trouble, it creates a kind of imbalance between honor and resources.
As for nobility in particular persons, it is a reverend thing to see an ancient castle or building not in decay, or to see a fair timber-tree sound and perfect; how much more to behold an ancient noble family, which hath stood against the waves and weathers of time! For new nobility is but the act of power, but ancient nobility is the act of time. Those that are first raised to nobility are commonly more virtuous,154 but less innocent than their descendants; for there is rarely any rising but by a commixture of good and evil arts; but it is reason the memory of their virtues remain to their posterity, and their faults die with themselves. Nobility of birth commonly abateth industry, and he that is not industrious, envieth him that is; besides, noble persons cannot go much higher; and he that standeth at a stay when others rise, can hardly avoid motions of envy.155 On the other side, nobility extinguisheth the passive envy from others towards them, because they are in possession of honor. Certainly, kings that have able men of their nobility shall find ease in employing them, and a better slide into their business; for people naturally bend to them, as born in some sort to command.
As for nobility in specific individuals, it's truly impressive to see an ancient castle or building not in ruins, or to spot a healthy, strong tree; how much more remarkable is it to witness an ancient noble family that has weathered the storms of time! New nobility is just the result of power, while ancient nobility is the result of time. Those who first attain nobility are usually more virtuous, but less innocent than their descendants; because there is rarely any rise without a mix of good and bad actions. It makes sense that the memory of their virtues lives on in their descendants, while their faults fade away with them. Nobility by birth often lessens motivation, and those who lack drive tend to envy those who are hardworking; furthermore, noble individuals can't rise much higher, and those who stand still while others advance can hardly avoid feelings of envy. On the flip side, nobility reduces passive envy from others directed at them, since they hold positions of honor. Certainly, kings with capable noble advisors will find it easier to employ them and better navigate their affairs; people naturally gravitate toward them, as if they are meant to lead.
XV.—OF SEDITIONS AND TROUBLES.
Shepherds of people had need know the calendars of tempests in state, which are commonly greatest when things grow to equality; as natural tempests are greatest about the equinoctia,156 and as there are certain hollow blasts of wind and secret swellings of seas before a tempest, so are there in states:—
Shepherds of people need to understand the timing of political storms, which usually reach their peak when things are balanced; just as natural storms are most intense around the equinoxes,156 and just like there are certain underground gusts of wind and hidden rises in the ocean before a storm, the same is true in politics:—
Libels and licentious discourses against the state, when they are frequent and open; and in like sort false news, often running up and down, to the disadvantage of the state, and hastily embraced, are amongst the signs of troubles. Virgil, giving the pedigree of Fame, saith she was sister to the giants:—
Libels and inappropriate talks against the state, when they happen often and openly; and similarly, false news that spreads quickly and is taken seriously, are signs of trouble. Virgil, describing the family tree of Fame, says she was the sister of the giants:—
As if fames were the relics of seditions past; but they are no less indeed the preludes of seditions to come. Howsoever, he noteth it right, that 114seditious tumults and seditious fames differ no more but as brother and sister, masculine and feminine; especially if it come to that, that the best actions of a state, and the most plausible, and which ought to give greatest contentment, are taken in ill sense, and traduced; for that shows the envy great, as Tacitus saith, “Conflatâ magnâ, invidiâ, seu bene, seu male, gesta premunt.”159 Neither doth it follow, that because these fames are a sign of troubles, that the suppressing of them with too much severity should be a remedy of troubles; for the despising of them many times checks them best, and the going about to stop them doth but make a wonder long-lived. Also that kind of obedience, which Tacitus speaketh of, is to be held suspected: “Erant in officio, sed tamen qui mallent imperantium mandata interpretari, quam exsequi;”160 disputing, excusing, cavilling upon mandates and directions, is a kind of shaking off the yoke, and assay of disobedience; especially if, in those disputings, they which are for the direction speak fearfully and tenderly, and those that are against it audaciously.
As if rumors were remnants of past rebellions; but they are also definitely the beginnings of future uprisings. However, he rightly notes that seditious riots and seditious rumors differ no more than a brother and sister, masculine and feminine; especially when the best actions of a state, which are the most commendable and should bring the greatest satisfaction, are misunderstood and slandered; for that shows significant envy, as Tacitus says, “Conflatâ magnâ, invidiâ, seu bene, seu male, gesta premunt.”159 Neither does it follow that because these rumors indicate troubles, suppressing them too harshly would be a solution for those troubles; often, ignoring them helps manage them best, and the attempt to silence them only makes the rumor more enduring. Also, that kind of obedience that Tacitus speaks of should be viewed with suspicion: “Erant in officio, sed tamen qui mallent imperantium mandata interpretari, quam exsequi;”160 arguing, excusing, and nitpicking over orders and directions is a way of shaking off the yoke and testing disobedience; especially when those who support the direction speak cautiously and those who oppose it speak boldly.
Also, as Machiavel noteth well, when princes, that ought to be common parents, make themselves as a party, and lean to a side; it is as a boat that is overthrown by uneven weight on the one side, as was well seen in the time of Henry the Third of France; for first himself entered league161 for the extirpation of the Protestants, and presently after the same league was turned upon himself; for when the authority of princes is made but an accessary to a cause, and that there be other bands that tie faster than the band of sovereignty, kings begin to be put almost out of possession.
Also, as Machiavelli points out, when princes, who should act as common parents, choose sides and lean toward one party, it’s like a boat capsizing due to uneven weight on one side. This was clearly demonstrated during the reign of Henry the Third of France. He initially joined a coalition aimed at wiping out the Protestants, but soon the same coalition turned against him. When royal authority is reduced to being just a support for a cause, and when there are stronger ties than those of sovereignty, kings risk losing their hold on power.
Also, when discords, and quarrels, and factions are carried openly and audaciously, it is a sign the reverence of government is lost; for the motions of the greatest persons in a government ought to be as the motions of the planets under “primum mobile,”162 according to the old opinion, which is, that every of them is carried swiftly by the highest motion, and softly in their own motion; and therefore, when great ones in their own particular motion move violently, and as Tacitus expresseth it well, “liberius 116quam ut imperantium meminissent,”163 it is a sign the orbs are out of frame; for reverence is that wherewith princes are girt from God, who threateneth the dissolving thereof: “Solvam cingula regum.”164
Also, when conflicts, arguments, and factions are displayed openly and boldly, it's a sign that respect for the government has been lost. The actions of the highest officials in a government should be like the movements of the planets under the "primum mobile," according to ancient beliefs, which suggest that each of them moves swiftly due to a higher force, while also moving gently on their own. Therefore, when those in power move violently in their own interests, and as Tacitus aptly puts it, “more freely than they remember the commands,” it indicates that the order has broken down. For reverence is what surrounds princes from God, who threatens to take it away: “I will loosen the bonds of kings.”
So when any of the four pillars of government are mainly shaken or weakened (which are religion, justice, counsel, and treasure), men had need to pray for fair weather. But let us pass from this part of predictions (concerning which, nevertheless, more light may be taken from that which followeth), and let us speak first of the materials of seditions; then of the motives of them; and thirdly of the remedies.
So when any of the four pillars of government—religion, justice, counsel, and treasury—are significantly shaken or weakened, people need to hope for better times. But let’s move on from this part of predictions (about which, however, more insights can be gained from what comes next), and let’s talk first about the causes of uprisings; then about the reasons behind them; and finally about the solutions.
Concerning the materials of seditions, it is a thing well to be considered, for the surest way to prevent seditions (if the times do bear it), is to take away the matter of them; for if there be fuel prepared, it is hard to tell whence the spark shall come that shall set it on fire. The matter of seditions is of two kinds, much poverty and much discontentment. It is certain, so many overthrown estates, so many votes for troubles. Lucan noteth well the state of Rome before the civil war:—
Regarding the causes of uprisings, it's important to think about them carefully. The best way to prevent upheaval (if the situation allows) is to eliminate the reasons behind it, because if there's fuel ready, it's hard to predict where the spark will come from that ignites it. The causes of uprisings fall into two main categories: widespread poverty and significant dissatisfaction. It’s clear that the more fallen empires there are, the more likely we are to see unrest. Lucan accurately describes the state of Rome before the civil war:—
This same “multis utile bellum,”166 is an assured and infallible sign of a state disposed to seditions and troubles; and if this poverty and broken estate in the better sort be joined with a want and necessity in the mean people, the danger is imminent and great; for the rebellions of the belly are the worst. As for discontentments, they are in the politic body like to humors in the natural, which are apt to gather a preternatural heat and to inflame; and let no prince measure the danger of them by this, whether they be just or unjust; for that were to imagine people to be too reasonable, who do often spurn at their own good; nor yet by this, whether the griefs whereupon they rise be in fact great or small; for they are the most dangerous discontentments where the fear is greater than the feeling: “Dolendi modus, timendi non item.”167 Besides, in great oppressions, the same things that provoke the patience, do withal mate168 the courage; but in fears it is not so; neither let any prince or state be secure concerning discontentments, because they have been often or have been long, and yet no peril hath ensued; for as it is true that every vapor or fume doth not turn into a storm, so it is nevertheless true that storms, though they blow 118over divers times, yet may fall at last; and, as the Spanish proverb noteth well, “The cord breaketh at the last by the weakest pull.”169
This same “multis utile bellum,”166 is a clear and sure sign of a state prone to unrest and troubles; and if this poverty and broken state among the better-off is combined with a lack and need among the common people, the danger is imminent and significant; for the rebellions driven by hunger are the worst. As for discontent, it’s in the political body like bad humors in the natural body, which can build up unnatural heat and ignite; and no ruler should measure the danger of discontent by whether it’s justified or not; that would be to assume people are too reasonable, as they often go against their own interests; nor should they judge it based on whether the grievances that spark the uprising are actually big or small; because it’s the most dangerous discontent when the fear is greater than the actual pain: “Dolendi modus, timendi non item.”167 Besides, in times of great oppression, the very things that test patience also dull courage; but it’s different with fear; and no prince or state should feel safe regarding discontent just because it has happened frequently or for a long time without any danger arising; for while it’s true that not every vapor or fume becomes a storm, it’s also true that storms, although they may blow over various times, can still strike eventually; and, as the Spanish proverb wisely says, “The cord breaks at last by the weakest pull.”169
The causes and motives of seditions are, innovation in religion, taxes, alteration of laws and customs, breaking of privileges, general oppression, advancement of unworthy persons, strangers, dearths, disbanded soldiers, factions grown desperate, and whatsoever in offending people joineth and knitteth them in a common cause.
The reasons and motivations behind uprisings include changes in religion, taxes, alterations to laws and customs, violations of privileges, widespread oppression, the promotion of unsuitable individuals, outsiders, shortages, unemployed soldiers, desperate factions, and anything that brings people together in shared grievances.
For the remedies, there may be some general preservatives, whereof we will speak; as for the just cure, it must answer to the particular disease, and so be left to counsel rather than rule.
For the treatments, there might be some general preventative measures, which we will discuss; however, for the specific cure, it needs to address the unique illness, and therefore should be left to advice rather than strict guidelines.
The first remedy, or prevention, is to remove, by all means possible, that material cause of sedition whereof we spake, which is, want and poverty in the estate;170 to which purpose serveth the opening and well-balancing of trade; the cherishing of manufactures; the banishing of idleness; the repressing of waste and excess by sumptuary laws;171 the improvement and husbanding of the soil; the regulating of prices of things vendible; the moderating of taxes and tributes, and the like. Generally, it is 119to be foreseen that the population of a kingdom (especially if it be not mown down by wars) do not exceed the stock of the kingdom which should maintain them; neither is the population to be reckoned only by number; for a smaller number, that spend more and earn less, do wear out an estate sooner than a greater number that live lower and gather more. Therefore the multiplying of nobility and other degrees of quality, in an over-proportion to the common people, doth speedily bring a state to necessity; and so doth likewise an overgrown clergy, for they bring nothing to the stock;172 and in like manner, when more are bred scholars than preferments can take off.
The first solution, or prevention, is to eliminate, by all means possible, the root cause of unrest that we mentioned, which is need and poverty in society;170 to achieve this, we should open and balance trade; promote manufacturing; eliminate idleness; control waste and excess through spending laws;171 improve and manage the land; regulate the prices of goods; moderate taxes and tributes, among other actions. Generally, we need to ensure that the population of a kingdom (especially if it isn't decimated by war) does not exceed the resources of the kingdom that should support them; also, population should not be counted only by number, since a smaller group that spends more and earns less can deplete resources faster than a larger group that spends less and saves more. Therefore, increasing the nobility and other high-status groups in comparison to the common people can quickly lead a state into hardship; the same goes for an excessively large clergy, as they do not contribute to the resources;172 and similarly, when there are more scholars than positions available.
It is likewise to be remembered, that, forasmuch as the increase of any estate must be upon the foreigner173 (for whatsoever is somewhere gotten is somewhere lost), there be but three things which one nation selleth unto another; the commodity, as nature yieldeth it; the manufacture; and the vecture, or carriage; so that, if these three wheels go, wealth will flow as in a spring tide. And it cometh many times to pass, that, “materiam superabit 120opus,”174 that the work and carriage is more worth than the material, and enricheth a state more; as is notably seen in the Low Countrymen, who have the best mines175 above ground in the world.
It should also be noted that, since the growth of any wealth must come from abroad (because whatever is gained in one place is lost in another), there are only three things that one nation sells to another: the raw materials, the manufactured goods, and the transportation. When these three components are functioning well, wealth will flow like a rising tide. Often, the saying holds true that "the work surpasses the material," meaning that the value of the labor and transportation is greater than that of the raw materials, which can enrich a nation even more. This is clearly demonstrated by the people of the Low Countries, who have the best mines above ground in the world.
Above all things, good policy is to be used, that the treasure and moneys in a state be not gathered into few hands; for, otherwise, a state may have a great stock, and yet starve. And money is like muck,176 not good except it be spread. This is done chiefly by suppressing, or, at the least, keeping a strait hand upon the devouring trades of usury, engrossing177 great pasturages, and the like.
Above all, it's important to have good policies so that wealth and money in a state aren't concentrated in just a few hands; otherwise, a state might have plenty of resources and still suffer from lack. Money is like manure, not useful unless it's spread out. This is mainly achieved by controlling, or at least keeping a tight grip on, the exploitative practices of usury, monopolizing large pastures, and similar activities.
For removing discontentments, or, at least, the danger of them, there is in every state (as we know) two portions of subjects, the nobles and the commonalty. When one of these is discontent, the danger is not great; for common people are of slow motion, if they be not excited by the greater sort; and the greater sort are of small strength, except the multitude be apt and ready to move of themselves; then is the danger, when the greater sort 121do but wait for the troubling of the waters amongst the meaner, that then they may declare themselves. The poets feign that the rest of the gods would have bound Jupiter, which he hearing of, by the counsel of Pallas, sent for Briareus, with his hundred hands, to come in to his aid; an emblem, no doubt, to show how safe it is for monarchs to make sure of the good-will of common people.
To address discontent, or at least minimize the risk of it, every state has two groups of people: the nobles and the common folks. When one of these groups is unhappy, the risk isn't too high; common people tend to be slow to act unless stirred up by the nobility, and the nobility doesn't have much power unless the masses are ready to rally on their own. The real danger arises when the nobility just waits for unrest among the common people, looking for a chance to reveal their positions. The poets tell a tale of how the other gods wanted to bind Jupiter, and upon hearing this, he summoned Briareus, who had a hundred hands, for assistance; this story clearly illustrates how important it is for rulers to secure the support of the common people.
To give moderate liberty for griefs and discontentments to evaporate (so it be without too great insolency or bravery), is a safe way; for he that turneth the humors back, and maketh the wound bleed inwards, endangereth malign ulcers and pernicious imposthumations.
To allow some freedom for sadness and frustrations to fade away (as long as it's not too excessive or arrogant) is a wise approach; for those who suppress their feelings and let the pain build up inside risk serious complications and harmful infections.
The part of Epimetheus178 might well become Prometheus, in the case of discontentments, for there is not a better provision against them. Epimetheus, when griefs and evils flew abroad, at last shut the lid, and kept Hope in the bottom of the vessel. Certainly, the politic and artificial nourish122ing and entertaining of hopes, and carrying men from hopes to hopes, is one of the best antidotes against the poison of discontentments; and it is a certain sign of a wise government and proceeding, when it can hold men’s hearts by hopes, when it cannot by satisfaction; and when it can handle things in such manner as no evil shall appear so peremptory, but that it hath some outlet of hope; which is the less hard to do, because both particular persons and factions are apt enough to flatter themselves, or at least to brave that which they believe not.
The role of Epimetheus might actually become Prometheus in times of discontent because there’s no better way to deal with it. Epimetheus, when troubles and misfortunes spread, eventually closed the lid and kept Hope at the bottom of the vessel. Certainly, the skillful and careful nurturing and fostering of hopes, moving people from one hope to another, is one of the best remedies against the poison of discontent. It's a clear sign of wise leadership when it can keep people's hearts by offering hope, even when it can't provide satisfaction. It shows a smart approach when things are managed so that no problem seems so overwhelming that there's not a glimmer of hope; and this is easier to achieve since both individuals and groups often tend to reassure themselves or at least pretend to be brave about what they don't truly believe.
Also the foresight and prevention, that there be no likely or fit head whereunto discontented persons may resort, and under whom they may join, is a known but an excellent point of caution. I understand a fit head to be one that hath greatness and reputation, that hath confidence with the discontented party, and upon whom they turn their eyes, and that is thought discontented in his own particular: which kind of persons are either to be won and reconciled to the state, and that in a fast and true manner; or to be fronted with some other of the same party that may oppose them, and so divide the reputation. Generally, the dividing and breaking of all factions and combinations that are adverse to the state, and setting them at distance, or, at least, distrust amongst themselves, is not one of the worst remedies; for it is a desperate case, if those that hold with the proceeding of the state be full of discord and faction, and those that are against it be entire and united.
Also, it's important to anticipate and prevent the emergence of any potential leaders that discontented individuals might gravitate towards and rally under. A suitable leader would be someone who has power and status, who commands trust from the dissatisfied group, and who they see as similarly discontented. Such individuals need to be either brought back in line with the state, and do so genuinely and swiftly, or challenged by someone else from the same faction to weaken their influence by creating division. In general, breaking apart and disrupting all opposing factions and groups that challenge the state, and fostering distrust among them, is a useful strategy. It's a dire situation if those who support the state's actions are divided and conflicted, while those against it are unified and cohesive.
I have noted, that some witty and sharp speeches, which have fallen from princes, have given fire to seditions. Cæsar did himself infinite hurt in that speech—“Sylla nescivit literas, non potuit dictare,”179 for it did utterly cut off that hope which men had entertained, that he would, at one time or other, give over his dictatorship. Galba undid himself by that speech, “Legi a se militem, non emi;”180 for it put the soldiers out of hope of the donative. Probus, likewise, by that speech, “Si vixero, non opus erit amplius Romano imperio militibus;”181 a speech of great despair for the soldiers, and many the like. Surely princes had need, in tender matters and ticklish times, to beware what they say, especially in these short speeches, which fly abroad like darts, and are thought to be shot out of their secret intentions; for as for large discourses, they are flat things, and not so much noted.
I’ve noticed that some clever and sharp comments made by rulers have sparked rebellions. Caesar caused himself a lot of trouble with that remark—“Sylla didn’t know letters, he couldn’t dictate,”179 because it completely crushed any hope people had that he would eventually step down from his dictatorship. Galba harmed himself with his statement, “I chose my soldier, I didn’t buy him;”180 which disappointed the soldiers regarding the bonus. Probus also made a damaging comment when he said, “If I live, there’ll be no more need for soldiers in the Roman Empire;”181 a statement that was truly hopeless for the soldiers, among many others. Clearly, rulers need to be cautious about what they say in sensitive situations and critical times, especially with these brief remarks that spread like arrows and are believed to reflect their hidden intentions; because longer speeches tend to be dull and aren’t as closely watched.
Lastly, let princes, against all events, not be without some great person, one or rather more, of military valor, near unto them, for the repressing of seditions in their beginnings; for without that, there useth to be more trepidation in court upon the first breaking out of troubles than were fit, and the state runneth the danger of that which Tacitus saith: “Atque is habitus animorum fuit, ut pessimum facinus auderent pauci, plures vellent, omnes paterentur:”182 but let such military persons be assured, and well reputed of, rather than factious and popular; holding also good correspondence with the other great men in the state, or else the remedy is worse than the disease.
Lastly, let princes always have at least one or more strong military leaders by their side to help suppress rebellions right from the start. Without this, there tends to be more panic in the court when troubles first arise than is appropriate, and the state risks what Tacitus describes: “Atque is habitus animorum fuit, ut pessimum facinus auderent pauci, plures vellent, omnes paterentur:”182 but such military leaders should be reliable and respected, rather than divisive and overly popular; they should also maintain good relationships with other important figures in the state, or else the solution could be worse than the problem.
XVI.—OF ATHEISM.
I had rather believe all the fables in the legends,183 and the Talmud,184 and the Alcoran, than that this universal frame is without a mind; and, therefore, God never wrought miracle to convince atheism, 125because his ordinary works convince it. It is true, that a little philosophy185 inclineth man’s mind to atheism, but depth in philosophy bringeth men’s minds about to religion; for while the mind of man looketh upon second causes scattered, it may sometimes rest in them, and go no further; but when it beholdeth the chain of them confederate, and linked together, it must needs fly to Providence and Deity. Nay, even that school which is most accused of atheism, doth most demonstrate religion: that is, the school of Leucippus,186 and Democritus,187 and Epicurus; for it is a thousand times more credible that four mutable elements, and one immutable fifth essence,188 duly and eternally placed, need no God, than that an army of infinite small portions, or seeds unplaced, should have produced this order and beauty without a divine marshal. The Scripture saith, “The fool hath said in his heart, there is no 126God;”189 it is not said, “The fool hath thought in his heart;” so as he rather saith it by rote to himself, as that he would have, than that he can thoroughly believe it, or be persuaded of it; for none deny there is a God, but those for whom it maketh190 that there were no God. It appeareth in nothing more, that atheism is rather in the lip than in the heart of man, than by this, that atheists will ever be talking of that their opinion, as if they fainted in it within themselves, and would be glad to be strengthened by the consent of others; nay more, you shall have atheists strive to get disciples, as it fareth with other sects; and, which is most of all, you shall have of them that will suffer for atheism, and not recant; whereas, if they did truly think that there were no such thing as God, why should they trouble themselves? Epicurus is charged, that he did but dissemble for his credit’s sake, when he affirmed there were blessed natures, but such as enjoyed themselves without having respect to the government of the world. Wherein they say he did temporize, though in secret he thought there was no God; but certainly he is traduced, for his words are noble and divine: “Non Deos vulgi negare profanum; sed vulgi opiniones Diis applicare profanum.”191 Plato could have said 127no more; and, although he had the confidence to deny the administration, he had not the power to deny the nature. The Indians192 of the west have names for their particular gods, though they have no name for God; as if the heathens should have had the names Jupiter, Apollo, Mars, &c., but not the word Deus, which shows that even those barbarous people have the notion, though they have not the latitude and extent of it; so that against atheists the very savages take part with the very subtlest philosophers. The contemplative atheist is rare; a Diagoras,193 a Bion,194 a Lucian,195 perhaps, and some others, and yet they seem to be more than they are; for that all that impugn a received religion, or superstition, are, by the adverse part, branded with the name of atheists. But the great atheists indeed are hypocrites, which are ever handling holy things, but without feeling, so as they must needs be 128cauterized in the end. The causes of atheism are: divisions in religion, if they be many; for any one main division addeth zeal to both sides, but many divisions introduce atheism. Another is, scandal of priests, when it is come to that which St. Bernard saith: “Non est jam dicere, ut populus, sic sacerdos; quia nec sic populus, ut sacerdos.”196 A third is, custom of profane scoffing in holy matters, which doth by little and little deface the reverence of religion: and lastly, learned times, specially with peace and prosperity; for troubles and adversities do more bow men’s minds to religion. They that deny a God destroy a man’s nobility, for certainly man is of kin to the beasts by his body; and if he be not of kin to God by his spirit, he is a base and ignoble creature. It destroys likewise magnanimity, and the raising of human nature; for, take an example of a dog, and mark what a generosity and courage he will put on when he finds himself maintained by a man, who, to him, is instead of a God, or “melior natura;”197 which courage is manifestly such as that creature, without that confidence of a better nature than his own, could never attain. So 129man, when he resteth and assureth himself upon divine protection and favor, gathereth a force and faith, which human nature in itself could not obtain; therefore, as atheism is in all respects hateful, so in this, that it depriveth human nature of the means to exalt itself above human frailty. As it is in particular persons, so it is in nations: never was there such a state for magnanimity as Rome. Of this state hear what Cicero saith: “Quam volumus, licet, Patres conscripti, nos amemus, tamen nec numero Hispanos, nec robore Gallos, nec calliditate Pœnos, nec artibus Græcos, nec denique hoc ipso hujus gentis et terræ domestico nativoque sensu Italos ipsos et Latinos; sed pietate, ac religione, atque hâc unâ sapientiâ, quod Deorum immortalium numine omnia regi, gubernarique perspeximus, omnes gentes, nationesque superavimus.”198
I have rather believe all the stories in the legends,183 and the Talmud,184 and the Quran, than that this universe exists without a mind; and so, God never performed a miracle to convince atheists, 125 because His regular works already convince them. It's true that a little philosophy185 can lead a person's mind toward atheism, but deep philosophy brings people back to religion; for while the human mind looks at second causes separately, it sometimes stops there and doesn't go further; but when it sees the chain of these causes connected and linked together, it inevitably turns to Providence and the divine. In fact, even the school most often accused of atheism demonstrates religion the most: that is, the school of Leucippus,186 and Democritus,187 and Epicurus; for it is a thousand times more credible that four changeable elements and one unchangeable essence188 arranged and eternally placed need no God than that an infinite number of small parts or seeds, randomly placed, could have produced this order and beauty without a divine guide. The Scriptures say, "The fool has said in his heart, there is no 126 God;"189 it does not say, "The fool has thought in his heart;" suggesting that he says it to himself more as something he wants than as something he truly believes or is convinced of; for no one denies there is a God, except those for whom it serves190 to claim there is no God. It is evident in no way more than this: that atheism is more about what people say than what they truly feel, as atheists will always talk about their beliefs as if they are trying to convince themselves and want the agreement of others; furthermore, you'll find atheists attempting to gain followers, as is common with other groups; and most importantly, you'll find some willing to suffer for atheism and not retract their views; yet, if they truly believed there was no God, why would they bother? Epicurus is accused of pretending for the sake of his reputation when he claimed that there were blessed beings enjoying themselves without concerning themselves with the world's governance. They say he was just playing along, secretly believing there was no God; but he is misrepresented because his words are noble and divine: "It's profane to deny the gods of the masses; but it's profane to apply the opinions of the masses to the gods."191 Plato could not have said more; and although he had the audacity to deny governance, he lacked the power to deny nature. The indigenous people192 of the west have names for their specific gods, even though they have no name for God; as if the pagans had names like Jupiter, Apollo, Mars, etc., but not the word God, which shows that even those primitive people have a concept of the divine, even if they do not have the full scope of it; so against atheists, even the most primitive people side with the most sophisticated philosophers. True contemplative atheists are rare; a Diagoras,193 a Bion,194 a Lucian,195 perhaps, and a few others, yet they seem to be more than they are; for anyone who challenges an accepted religion or superstition is labeled an atheist by the opposing side. But the real atheists are indeed hypocrites, constantly talking about sacred things but without genuine feeling, leading them to ultimately be cauterized. The causes of atheism include: many divisions in religion; for a single major division increases zeal on both sides, but multiple divisions lead to atheism. Another reason is the scandal of priests, when it has come to that which St. Bernard said: "It can no longer be said, as the people, so the priest; for neither is the people as the priest."196 A third is the habit of making fun of sacred matters, which gradually erodes the respect for religion; and lastly, times of learning, especially during peace and prosperity; for troubles and hardships tend to lead people more towards religion. Those who deny God destroy a person's nobility; for certainly, man is related to animals by his body; and if he is not related to God by his spirit, he is a base and unworthy creature. It also undermines greatness and the elevation of human nature; for, consider a dog, and notice the bravery and courage it displays when it knows it is cared for by a human, who, to it, is a kind of God or "higher nature;"197 which courage is clearly such that without that confidence in a greater being than itself, it could never achieve. Just as 129 man, when he rests and reassures himself of divine protection and favor, gathers strength and faith, which human nature alone could not attain; therefore, as atheism is despised for many reasons, it is particularly so in its ability to deprive human nature of the means to rise above human weakness. Just as it is with individuals, so it is with nations: never has there been such a state for greatness as Rome. From this state, hear what Cicero says: “Whatever we wish, although, esteemed Senators, we may be loved, we neither have the numbers of the Spaniards, nor the strength of the Gauls, nor the cunning of the Carthaginians, nor the arts of the Greeks, nor ultimately this native feeling of this nation and land, but we have surpassed all peoples and nations through our piety, religion, and this one wisdom, by recognizing that all things are governed and directed by the will of the immortal gods.”198
XVII.—OF SUPERSTITION.
It were better to have no opinion of God at all, than such an opinion as is unworthy of him; for the one is unbelief, the other is contumely,199 and certainly superstition is the reproach of the Deity. Plutarch saith well to that purpose: “Surely,” saith he, “I had rather a great deal men should say there was no such man at all as Plutarch, than that they should say that there was one Plutarch that would eat his children200 as soon as they were born,” as the poets speak of Saturn; and, as the contumely is greater towards God, so the danger is greater towards men. Atheism leaves a man to sense, to philosophy, to natural piety, to laws, to reputation, all which may be guides to an outward moral virtue, though religion were not; but superstition dismounts all these, and erecteth an absolute monarchy in the minds of men. Therefore atheism did never perturb states; for it makes men wary of themselves, as looking no further, and we see the times inclined to atheism (as the time of Augustus Cæsar) were civil times; but superstition hath been the confusion 131of many states, and bringeth in a new primum mobile,201 that ravisheth all the spheres of government. The master of superstition is the people, and in all superstition wise men follow fools; and arguments are fitted to practice in a reversed order. It was gravely said by some of the prelates in the Council of Trent,202 where the doctrine of the schoolmen bare great sway, that the schoolmen were like astronomers, which did feign eccentrics203 and epicycles,204 and such engines of orbs to save205 the phenomena, though they knew there were no such things; and, in like manner, that the schoolmen had framed a number of subtle and intricate axioms and theorems, to save the practice of the Church. The causes of superstition are, pleasing and sensual rites and ceremonies; excess of outward and pharisaical holiness; over-great reverence of traditions, which cannot but load the Church; the stratagems of prelates for their own ambition and lucre; the favoring too much of good intentions, which openeth the gate to conceits and novelties; the taking an aim at divine matters by human, which cannot but breed mixture 132of imaginations; and, lastly, barbarous times, especially joined with calamities and disasters. Superstition, without a veil, is a deformed thing; for, as it addeth deformity to an ape to be so like a man, so the similitude of superstition to religion makes it the more deformed; and as wholesome meat corrupteth to little worms, so good forms and orders corrupt into a number of petty observances. There is a superstition in avoiding superstition, when men think to do best if they go furthest from the superstition formerly received; therefore care would be had that (as it fareth in ill purgings) the good be not taken away with the bad, which commonly is done when the people is the reformer.
It is better to have no opinion about God at all than to have an opinion that doesn't honor Him; for one is simply unbelief, while the other is an insult,199 and definitely superstition is a disgrace to the Divine. Plutarch wisely stated: “I would much rather people claim there was no such person as Plutarch than that they say there was one Plutarch who would eat his children200 as soon as they were born,” like the poets say of Saturn; and just as the insult is greater against God, so too is the danger greater for mankind. Atheism leaves a person to rely on their senses, philosophy, natural feelings, laws, and reputation—all of which can guide someone toward outward moral virtue, even without religion; but superstition dismantles all these and establishes a complete dictatorship in people's minds. Therefore, atheism has never disturbed societies; it makes people cautious of themselves, as they don’t look beyond themselves, and we see that times inclined toward atheism (like during the time of Augustus Caesar) were civil times; but superstition has caused the chaos131 of many societies, introducing a new primum mobile,201 that disrupts all spheres of governance. The master of superstition is the people, and in all superstition, wise individuals follow foolish ones; and arguments are shaped to fit practices in an inverted order. Some prelates at the Council of Trent,202 where the doctrine of the scholastics held great influence, seriously remarked that the scholastics were like astronomers, who invented eccentric paths203 and epicycles204 and such mechanisms to explain205 the phenomena, even though they knew those things didn’t exist; similarly, the scholastics had created many subtle and complex axioms and theories to uphold the practices of the Church. The causes of superstition include appealing and sensory rites and ceremonies; an excess of outward and pharisaical holiness; excessive reverence for traditions, which inevitably burdens the Church; the schemes of prelates for their own ambition and profit; placing too much trust in good intentions, which opens the door to misconceptions and new ideas; the attempt to address divine matters through human means, which can’t help but mix imaginations; and finally, barbaric times, especially when combined with calamities and disasters. Superstition, when exposed, is a grotesque thing; for just as it adds ugliness to an ape for it to resemble a human, the similarity of superstition to religion makes it even more grotesque; and just as wholesome food can corrupt into little worms, good forms and orders can decay into a myriad of trivial customs. There’s a superstition in avoiding superstition when people think they’re doing the right thing by straying as far as possible from previously accepted superstitions; therefore, care must be taken that (as can happen during severe purging) the good isn’t removed along with the bad, which often occurs when the people are the ones reforming.
XVIII.—OF TRAVEL.
Travel, in the younger sort, is a part of education; in the elder, a part of experience. He that travelleth into a country before he hath some entrance into the language, goeth to school, and not to travel. That young men travel under some tutor or grave servant, I allow well, so that he be such a one that hath the language, and hath been in the country before; whereby he may be able to tell them what things are worthy to be seen in the country where they go, what acquaintances they are to seek, what exercises or discipline the place133 yieldeth; for else young men shall go hooded, and look abroad little. It is a strange thing that, in sea voyages, where there is nothing to be seen but sky and sea, men should make diaries; but in land travel, wherein so much is to be observed, for the most part they omit it, as if chance were fitter to be registered than observation. Let diaries, therefore, be brought in use. The things to be seen and observed are, the courts of princes, especially when they give audience to ambassadors; the courts of justice, while they sit and hear causes; and so of consistories206 ecclesiastic; the churches and monasteries, with the monuments which are therein extant; the walls and fortifications of cities and towns; and so the havens and harbors, antiquities and ruins, libraries, colleges, disputations, and lectures, where any are; shipping and navies; houses and gardens of state and pleasure, near great cities; armories, arsenals, magazines, exchanges, burses, warehouses, exercises of horsemanship, fencing, training of soldiers, and the like; comedies, such whereunto the better sort of persons do resort; treasuries of jewels and robes; cabinets and rarities; and, to conclude, whatsoever is memorable in the places where they go, after all which the tutors or servants ought to make diligent inquiry. As for triumphs, masks, feasts, weddings, funerals, capital executions, and such shows, men need not to be put in mind of them; yet they are not to be neglected. If you 134will have a young man to put his travel into a little room, and in short time to gather much, this you must do: first, as was said, he must have some entrance into the language before he goeth; then he must have such a servant, or tutor, as knoweth the country, as was likewise said; let him carry with him also some card or book, describing the country where he travelleth, which will be a good key to his inquiry; let him keep also a diary; let him not stay long in one city or town, more or less, as the place deserveth, but not long; nay, when he stayeth in one city or town, let him change his lodging from one end and part of the town to another, which is a great adamant of acquaintance; let him sequester himself from the company of his countrymen, and diet in such places where there is good company of the nation where he travelleth; let him, upon his removes from one place to another, procure recommendation to some person of quality residing in the place whither he removeth, that he may use his favor in those things he desireth to see or know: thus he may abridge his travel with much profit. As for the acquaintance which is to be sought in travel, that which is most of all profitable, is acquaintance with the secretaries and employed men207 of ambassadors, for so in travelling in one country he shall suck the experience of many; let him also see and visit eminent persons in all kinds which are of great name abroad, that he may be 135able to tell how the life agreeth with the fame. For quarrels, they are with care and discretion to be avoided; they are commonly for mistresses, healths,208 place, and words; and let a man beware how he keepeth company with choleric and quarrelsome persons, for they will engage him into their own quarrels. When a traveller returneth home, let him not leave the countries where he hath travelled altogether behind him, but maintain a correspondence by letters with those of his acquaintance which are of most worth; and let his travel appear rather in his discourse than in his apparel or gesture, and in his discourse let him be rather advised in his answers, than forward to tell stories; and let it appear that he doth not change his country manners for those of foreign parts, but only prick in some flowers of that he hath learned abroad into the customs of his own country.
Traveling for young people is part of their education; for older individuals, it's part of their experience. If someone travels to a country without any knowledge of the language, they're really just going to school, not traveling. I think it's good for young men to travel with a tutor or a knowledgeable servant, as long as that person speaks the language and has been to the country before. This way, they can point out things worth seeing, who to meet, and what activities or local customs are available; otherwise, young men will just wander around without really seeing anything. It’s odd that on sea voyages, where there’s only sky and water, people keep diaries, but on land trips, where there’s so much to see, they often skip it, as if random events should be recorded instead of actual observations. So, let's encourage diaries. Things to see and observe include the courts of kings, especially when they’re receiving ambassadors; the courts of justice while they’re hearing cases; and church councils; also, the churches and monasteries with their monuments; the walls and defenses of cities; as well as the ports, historical sites, libraries, colleges, debates, and lectures wherever they occur; ships and navies; the grand houses and gardens near major cities; armories, storage facilities, markets, warehouses; and activities like horseback riding, fencing, and military training; also, performances and shows that attract a refined audience; treasures of jewels and clothing; collections and rarities; and, in short, anything memorable about the places they visit, all of which tutors or servants should investigate thoroughly. As for celebrations, parades, feasts, weddings, funerals, public executions, and similar events, people usually remember those without prompting; however, they shouldn’t be overlooked. If you want a young person to make the most of their travels in a short period, here’s what to do: first, as mentioned, they should learn some of the language before they go; second, they need a servant or tutor who knows the country, as previously stated; they should also bring a map or guidebook about the country they’re visiting, which will help with their inquiries; they should keep a diary; they shouldn’t linger too long in any city, just enough to appreciate it, but not excessively; when they do stay in a city, they should switch up their accommodations from one part of town to another to meet more people; they should avoid hanging out with fellow countrymen and dine where they can mingle with locals; when moving from one place to another, they should seek a recommendation from someone notable in the new location to help them with what they want to see or learn: this way, they can gain a lot from their travels in a short time. Regarding the people to meet while traveling, the most beneficial connections are with the secretaries and aides of ambassadors, as this way a traveler can gain the insights of many experiences in one visit; they should also meet distinguished individuals known abroad to see how their lives compare to their reputations. As for conflicts, they should be avoided with care and caution; they often arise from relationships, drinking, status, and words; be careful about associating with hot-tempered and confrontational people, as they will drag you into their disputes. When a traveler returns home, they shouldn’t completely forget the countries they visited but keep in touch through letters with valuable acquaintances; and their travels should shine through their conversations rather than their clothing or mannerisms; they should be thoughtful in their responses rather than eager to share stories; and it should be clear that they don’t abandon their own customs for foreign ways but instead incorporate some of what they've learned abroad into their home culture.
XIX.—OF EMPIRE.
It is a miserable state of mind to have few things to desire, and many things to fear; and yet that commonly is the case of kings, who, being, at the highest, want matter of desire,209 which makes their 136minds more languishing; and have many representations of perils and shadows, which makes their minds the less clear; and this is one reason, also, of that effect which the Scripture speaketh of, “that the king’s heart is inscrutable;”210 for multitude of jealousies, and lack of some predominant desire, that should marshal and put in order all the rest, maketh any man’s heart hard to find or sound. Hence it comes, likewise, that princes many times make themselves desires, and set their hearts upon toys: sometimes upon a building; sometimes upon erecting of an order; sometimes upon the advancing of a person; sometimes upon obtaining excellency in some art or feat of the hand,—as Nero for playing on the harp; Domitian for certainty of the hand with the arrow; Commodus for playing at fence;211 Caracalla for driving chariots, and the like. This seemeth incredible unto those that know not the principle, that the mind of man is more cheered and refreshed by profiting in small things than by standing at a stay212 in great. We see, also, that kings that have been fortunate conquerors in their first years, it being not possible for them to go forward infinitely, but that they must have some check or arrest in their fortunes, turn in their latter years to be superstitious and melancholy; as did 137Alexander the Great, Diocletian,213 and, in our memory, Charles the Fifth,214 and others; for he that is used to go forward, and findeth a stop, falleth out of his own favor, and is not the thing he was.
It is a miserable state of mind to have few things to desire and many things to fear; and yet that is often the situation for kings, who, at the peak of power, lack genuine desires,209 which makes them feel more unsettled; and they are constantly faced with dangers and shadows, which clouds their judgment. This is also one reason for what the Scripture mentions, “that the king’s heart is inscrutable;”210 because a multitude of jealousies and the absence of a strong desire that could organize and prioritize their thoughts makes anyone's heart difficult to understand. Consequently, it often happens that princes create their own desires and fixate on trivial things: sometimes on a building project; sometimes on establishing an order; sometimes on promoting someone; sometimes on achieving excellence in a particular skill or art—like Nero with playing the harp; Domitian with his accuracy in archery; Commodus with fencing;211 Caracalla with chariot racing, and so on. This seems unbelievable to those who don’t understand that the human mind finds more joy and refreshment in small achievements than in stagnating in grand ones.212 We also observe that kings who were initially successful conquerors, knowing they can’t continue progressing indefinitely but must face some setbacks in their fortunes, often become superstitious and melancholic in their later years, like Alexander the Great, Diocletian,213 and, in our time, Charles the Fifth,214 among others; for someone who is used to moving forward and suddenly hits a wall loses their own sense of favor and is no longer the person they once were.
To speak now of the true temper of empire, it is a thing rare and hard to keep, for both temper and distemper consist of contraries; but it is one thing to mingle contraries, another to interchange them. The answer of Apollonius to Vespasian is full of excellent instruction. Vespasian asked him, “What was Nero’s overthrow?” He answered, “Nero could touch and tune the harp well; but in government sometimes he used to wind the pins too high, sometimes to let them down too low.”215 And certain it is, that nothing destroyeth authority so much as the unequal and untimely interchange of power pressed too far, and relaxed too much.
To talk about the true nature of an empire now, it's a rare and difficult thing to maintain, because both stability and instability come from opposites; but mixing opposites is different from switching them. Apollonius’s response to Vespasian offers great wisdom. Vespasian asked him, “What caused Nero’s downfall?” He replied, “Nero could play the harp well; but in governance, sometimes he tightened the strings too much, and other times he loosened them too much.”215 And it's clear that nothing undermines authority more than the inconsistent and poorly timed exchange of power taken to extremes or completely relaxed.
This is true, that the wisdom of all these latter times in princes’ affairs is rather fine deliveries, and shiftings of dangers and mischiefs, when they are near, than solid and grounded courses to keep them aloof; but this is but to try masteries with fortune, and let men beware how they neglect and suffer matter of trouble to be prepared. For no man can forbid the spark, nor tell whence it may come. 138 The difficulties in princes’ business are many and great; but the greatest difficulty is often in their own mind. For it is common with princes (saith Tacitus) to will contradictories: “Sunt plerumque regum voluntates vehementes, et inter se contrariæ;”216 for it is the solecism of power to think to command the end, and yet not to endure the mean.
This is true: the wisdom of modern rulers often comes from clever strategies and avoiding dangers when they appear, instead of having solid plans to keep them at bay. However, this is just tempting fate, and people should be cautious not to let problems build up. No one can prevent a spark or predict where it might come from. 138 The challenges in the affairs of rulers are many and significant, but often the biggest challenge lies in their own mindset. It is common for rulers, as Tacitus says, to have conflicting desires: “Sunt plerumque regum voluntates vehementes, et inter se contrariæ;”216 because it is a flaw of power to think one can control the outcome while refusing to endure the process.
Kings have to deal with their neighbors, their wives, their children, their prelates or clergy, their nobles, their second nobles or gentlemen, their merchants, their commons, and their men of war; and from all these arise dangers, if care and circumspection be not used.
Kings must manage their neighbors, their wives, their children, their clergy, their nobles, their lesser nobles or gentlemen, their merchants, their common people, and their soldiers; and from all of these come dangers if they are not careful and attentive.
First, for their neighbors, there can no general rule be given (the occasions are so variable), save one which ever holdeth; which is, that princes do keep due sentinel, that none of their neighbors do overgrow so (by increase of territory, by embracing of trade, by approaches, or the like), as they become more able to annoy them than they were; and this is generally the work of standing counsels to foresee and to hinder it. During that triumvirate of kings, King Henry the Eighth of England, Francis the First, King of France,217 and Charles the Fifth, Emperor, there was such a watch kept that 139none of the three could win a palm of ground, but the other two would straightways balance it, either by confederation, or, if need were, by a war; and would not, in any wise, take up peace at interest; and the like was done by that league (which Guicciardini218 saith was the security of Italy) made between Ferdinando, King of Naples, Lorenzius Medicis, and Ludovicus Sforza, potentates, the one of Florence, the other of Milan. Neither is the opinion of some of the schoolmen to be received, that a war cannot justly be made, but upon a precedent injury or provocation; for there is no question, but a just fear of an imminent danger, though there be no blow given, is a lawful cause of a war.
First, there can't be a general rule for neighbors since the situations vary so much, except for one principle that always applies: that rulers must watch carefully to ensure none of their neighbors grow stronger (by gaining land, engaging in trade, or similar means) to the point where they can harm them more than before. This is typically the job of ongoing councils to anticipate and prevent such threats. During the time of the three kings—King Henry the Eighth of England, Francis the First, King of France,217 and Charles the Fifth, Emperor—there was such vigilance that none of the three could gain even a bit of territory without the other two responding immediately, either through alliances or, if necessary, through war; they would not, under any circumstances, maintain peace for the sake of convenience. The same was true for the league (which Guicciardini218 claimed was Italy's safeguard) formed between Ferdinando, King of Naples, Lorenzo de' Medici, and Ludovico Sforza, the powerful leaders of Florence and Milan, respectively. The view of some scholars that war can only be justified if there has already been an injury or provocation is also incorrect; there's no doubt that a legitimate fear of imminent danger, even without any attack occurring, is a valid reason for war.
For their wives, there are cruel examples of them. Livia is infamed219 for the poisoning of her husband; Roxolana, Solyman’s wife,220 was the destruction of 140that renowned prince, Sultan Mustapha, and otherwise troubled his house and succession; Edward the Second of England’s Queen221 had the principal hand in the deposing and murder of her husband.
For their wives, there are harsh examples of them. Livia is infamous219 for poisoning her husband; Roxolana, Solyman's wife,220 was responsible for the downfall of that famous prince, Sultan Mustapha, and caused turmoil in his household and succession; Edward the Second of England's Queen221 played a key role in the deposition and murder of her husband.
This kind of danger is then to be feared chiefly when the wives have plots for the raising of their own children, or else that they be advoutresses.222
This kind of danger should be mainly feared when the wives have plans for raising their own children, or if they are engaging in affairs.222
For their children, the tragedies likewise of dangers from them have been many; and generally the entering of fathers into suspicion of their children hath been ever unfortunate. The destruction of Mustapha (that we named before) was so fatal to Solyman’s line, as the succession of the Turks from Solyman until this day is suspected to be untrue, and of strange blood; for that Selymus the Second was thought to be supposititious.223 The destruction of Crispus, a young prince of rare towardness, by Constantinus the Great, his father, was in like manner fatal to his house; for both Constantinus and Constance, his sons, died violent deaths; and Constantius, his other son, did little better, who died indeed of sickness, but after that Julianus had taken arms against him. The destruction of Demetrius,224 son to Philip the Second of Macedon, turned upon 141the father, who died of repentance. And many like examples there are; but few or none where the fathers had good by such distrust, except it were where the sons were up in open arms against them; as was Selymus the First against Bajazet, and the three sons of Henry the Second, King of England.
For their children, the tragedies and dangers have been numerous; and generally, when fathers start to suspect their children, it often leads to misfortune. The downfall of Mustapha (as mentioned earlier) was so disastrous for Solyman’s lineage that the succession of Turks from Solyman to this day is doubted to be legitimate and of pure blood; it was believed that Selymus the Second was illegitimate.223 The demise of Crispus, a promising young prince, by his father Constantinus the Great, was similarly disastrous for his family; both Constantinus and his sons, Constantius and Constance, met violent ends, while Constantius, although he died of illness, did so after Julianus had revolted against him. The downfall of Demetrius,224 son of Philip the Second of Macedon, ultimately fell back on his father, who died consumed by regret. There are many similar examples, but few, if any, where fathers benefited from such distrust, except in cases where the sons openly rebelled against them; like Selymus the First against Bajazet, and the three sons of Henry the Second, King of England.
For their prelates, when they are proud and great, there is also danger from them; as it was in the times of Anselmus225 and Thomas Becket, Archbishops of Canterbury, who, with their crosiers, did almost try it with the king’s sword; and yet they had to deal with stout and haughty kings; William Rufus, Henry the First, and Henry the Second. The danger is not from that state, but where it hath a dependence of foreign authority; or where the churchmen come in and are elected, not by the collation of the King, or particular patrons, but by the people.
For their leaders, when they are arrogant and powerful, there’s also a risk from them; just like in the times of Anselm225 and Thomas Becket, Archbishops of Canterbury, who nearly confronted the king with their staffs. Yet, they had to contend with strong and proud kings like William Rufus, Henry the First, and Henry the Second. The real danger doesn’t come from that position, but arises when it relies on foreign authority; or when the clergy are chosen not by the king or specific patrons, but by the people.
For their nobles, to keep them at a distance it is not amiss; but to depress them may make a king more absolute, but less safe, and less able to perform anything that he desires. I have noted it in my History of King Henry the Seventh of England, who depressed his nobility, whereupon it came to pass that his times were full of difficulties and 142troubles; for the nobility, though they continued loyal unto him, yet did they not coöperate with him in his business; so that, in effect, he was fain to do all things himself.
To keep their nobles at a distance isn’t a bad idea; however, putting them down might make a king more powerful but also less secure and less able to achieve his goals. I noticed this in my History of King Henry the Seventh of England, who brought down his nobility, resulting in his reign being filled with challenges and troubles. Even though the nobility remained loyal to him, they didn’t support him in his efforts, so he basically had to handle everything on his own. 142
For their second nobles, there is not much danger from them, being a body dispersed. They may sometimes discourse high, but that doth little hurt; besides, they are a counterpoise to the higher nobility, that they grow not too potent; and, lastly, being the most immediate in authority with the common people, they do best temper popular commotions.
For their second nobles, there isn’t much danger from them since they are a scattered group. They might sometimes talk big, but that doesn’t cause much harm; besides, they balance out the higher nobility so that it doesn’t become too powerful. Lastly, being closest to the common people, they do the best job of calming any public unrest.
For their merchants, they are “vena porta:”226 and if they flourish not, a kingdom may have good limbs, but will have empty veins, and nourish little. Taxes and imposts upon them do seldom good to the king’s revenue, for that which he wins227 in the hundred228 he loseth in the shire; the particular rates being increased, but the total bulk of trading rather decreased.
For their merchants, they are the "veins of the kingdom:"226 and if they don’t thrive, a kingdom may have strong limbs, but its veins will be empty and bring little nourishment. Taxes and tariffs on them rarely benefit the king’s revenue, because what he gains227 in one area228 he loses in another; even though individual rates go up, the overall volume of trade tends to decrease.
For their commons, there is little danger from them, except it be where they have great and potent heads; or where you meddle with the point of religion, or their customs, or means of life.
For their shared resources, there's not much risk from them, unless they have powerful leaders; or if you get involved with their beliefs, traditions, or way of living.
For their men of war, it is a dangerous state 143where they live and remain in a body, and are used to donatives; whereof we see examples in the Janizaries229 and Prætorian bands of Rome; but trainings of men, and arming them in several places, and under several commanders, and without donatives, are things of defence and no danger.
For their soldiers, it’s a risky situation 143where they live and stay together and rely on pay; we see this in the Janissaries229 and the Praetorian Guard of Rome. However, training men and arming them in different locations, under various leaders, and without relying on pay, are defensive measures with no threat.
Princes are like to heavenly bodies, which cause good or evil times; and which have much veneration, but no rest. All precepts concerning kings are in effect comprehended in those two remembrances, “Memento quod es homo;”230 and “Memento quod es Deus,”231 or “vice Dei;”232 the one bridleth their power and the other their will.
Princes are like heavenly bodies that create good or bad times; they're highly respected, but they never find peace. All the rules about kings can basically be summed up in these two reminders, “Remember that you are human;”230 and “Remember that you are God,”231 or “in place of God;”232 the first keeps their power in check and the second regulates their will.
XX.—OF COUNSEL.
The greatest trust between man and man is the trust of giving counsel; for in other confidences men commit the parts of life, their lands, their goods, their children, their credit, some particular affair; but to such as they make their counsellors they commit the whole; by how much the more they 144are obliged to all faith and integrity. The wisest princes need not think it any diminution to their greatness, or derogation to their sufficiency to rely upon counsel. God himself is not without, but hath made it one of the great names of his blessed Son, “The Counsellor.”233 Solomon hath pronounced that, “in counsel is stability.”234 Things will have their first or second agitation: if they be not tossed upon the arguments of counsel, they will be tossed upon the waves of fortune, and be full of inconstancy, doing and undoing, like the reeling of a drunken man. Solomon’s son235 found the force of counsel, as his father saw the necessity of it; for the beloved kingdom of God was first rent and broken by ill counsel; upon which counsel there are set for our instruction the two marks whereby bad counsel is forever best discerned, that it was young counsel for the persons, and violent counsel for the matter.
The greatest trust between people is the trust of giving advice; because in other confessions, individuals entrust parts of their lives—like their property, assets, children, reputation, or specific matters. But to those they choose as advisors, they entrust everything; they are bound to uphold faith and integrity even more. The wisest leaders shouldn’t consider relying on advice as a sign of weakness or incapability. Even God recognizes this and has made it one of the esteemed titles of His blessed Son, “The Counsellor.”233 Solomon stated that “in counsel is stability.”234 Situations will face their initial or secondary challenges; if they aren’t examined through the lens of advice, they will be tossed around by the unpredictable tides of chance and will lack consistency, doing and undoing, like a drunk person staggering. Solomon’s son235 experienced the power of advice, as his father acknowledged its necessity; for the cherished kingdom of God was first torn apart by poor counsel; and in that counsel lie the two signs by which bad advice is always recognized: it was young in terms of the individuals involved and violent regarding the issue at hand.
The ancient times do set forth in figure both the incorporation and inseparable conjunction of counsel with kings, and the wise and politic use of counsel by kings; the one, in that they say Jupiter did marry Metis, which signifieth counsel; whereby they intend that sovereignty is married to counsel; the 145other in that which followeth, which was thus: they say, after Jupiter was married to Metis, she conceived by him and was with child; but Jupiter suffered her not to stay till she brought forth, but eat her up; whereby he became himself with child, and was delivered of Pallas armed, out of his head.236 Which monstrous fable containeth a secret of empire, how kings are to make use of their council of state; that first, they ought to refer matters unto them, which is the first begetting or impregnation; but when they are elaborate, moulded, and shaped in the womb of their counsel, and grow ripe and ready to be brought forth, that then they suffer not their council to go through with the resolution and direction, as if it depended on them; but take the matter back into their own hands, and make it appear to the world, that the decrees and final directions (which, because they come forth with prudence and power, are resembled to Pallas armed), proceeded from themselves; and not only from their authority, but (the more to add reputation to themselves) from their head and device.
In ancient times, there’s a clear representation of how advice is essential and closely tied to kings, and how kings wisely and strategically use that advice. This is illustrated by the story of Jupiter marrying Metis, which represents counsel; this implies that sovereign power is united with advice. The other part of the story goes like this: after Jupiter married Metis, she became pregnant. However, he didn’t let her give birth; instead, he swallowed her, which resulted in him becoming pregnant himself and giving birth to the armed Pallas from his head. This strange tale reveals a secret about ruling: how kings should utilize their state council. First, they should present issues to them, which symbolizes the initial conception. But when those issues are developed, shaped, and ready to be finalized in the council’s mind, kings shouldn’t let their advice conclude the decision as if it solely rested with them. Instead, they should take the matter back into their own hands and make it clear to everyone that the wise and powerful resolutions, which are likened to the armed Pallas, came from them. This way, they not only assert their authority but also enhance their reputation by claiming these ideas as their own.
Let us now speak of the inconveniences of counsel, and of the remedies. The inconveniences that have been noted in calling and using counsel are three: first, the revealing of affairs, whereby they become less secret; secondly, the weakening of the authority of princes, as if they were less of themselves; thirdly, the danger of being unfaithfully 146counselled, and more for the good of them that counsel than of him that is counselled; for which inconveniences, the doctrine of Italy, and practice of France, in some kings’ times, hath introduced cabinet councils; a remedy worse than the disease.237
Let’s talk about the downsides of seeking advice and the solutions. The drawbacks of asking for and using counsel are threefold: first, it leads to the sharing of secrets, making them less confidential; second, it undermines the authority of rulers, as if they are somehow diminished; and third, there’s the risk of receiving advice that’s untrustworthy and more beneficial to the advisors than to the person seeking advice. To address these issues, Italy’s teachings and France’s practices during certain kings’ reigns introduced private councils, which ended up being a worse solution than the original problem.146
As to secrecy, princes are not bound to communicate all matters with all counsellors, but may extract and select; neither is it necessary that he that consulteth what he should do, should declare what he will do; but let princes beware that the unsecreting of their affairs comes not from themselves; and, as for cabinet councils, it may be their motto, “Plenus rimarum sum:”238 one futile person, that maketh it his glory to tell, will do more hurt than many that know it their duty to conceal. It is true, there be some affairs which require extreme secrecy, which will hardly go beyond one or two persons besides the king. Neither are those counsels unprosperous; for, besides the secrecy, they commonly go on constantly in one spirit of direction without distraction; but then it must be a prudent king, such as is able to grind with a hand-mill;239 and those inward counsellors had need also to be wise men, and especially true and trusty to the king’s ends; as it was with King Henry the 147Seventh of England, who, in his greatest business, imparted himself to none, except it were to Morton240 and Fox.241
Regarding secrecy, princes aren't required to share everything with all their advisors; they can choose what to reveal and what to withhold. It's also not necessary for someone seeking advice to disclose their plans. However, princes should be cautious that their private matters don't become public knowledge through their own actions. As for confidential meetings, their guiding principle might be, “Plenus rimarum sum:”238 because one careless person who takes pride in gossiping can cause more damage than many who understand the importance of keeping things private. It's true that some matters demand a high level of secrecy, often involving only one or two people aside from the king. Such discussions can be successful; besides the confidentiality, they tend to have a unified focus without any distractions. But it requires a wise king, one who knows how to manage things carefully;239 and those close advisors must also be wise, especially loyal and trustworthy regarding the king's objectives. This was the case with King Henry the 147Seventh of England, who in his most significant matters only confided in Morton240 and Fox.241
For weakening of authority, the fable242 showeth the remedy; nay, the majesty of kings is rather exalted than diminished when they are in the chair of council; neither was there ever prince bereaved of his dependencies by his council, except where there hath been either an over-greatness in one counsellor, or an over-strict combination in divers, which are things soon found and holpen.243
For the weakening of authority, the fable242 shows the solution; in fact, the power of kings is actually enhanced rather than diminished when they are in the council chair; nor has there ever been a prince stripped of his advisors by his council, except in cases where there has been either excessive power in one advisor or a too-strict alliance among several, which are issues that can be easily identified and resolved.243
For the last inconvenience, that men will counsel with an eye to themselves; certainly, “non inveniet fidem super terram,”244 is meant of the nature of times,245 and not of all particular persons. There be 148that are in nature faithful and sincere, and plain and direct, not crafty and involved: let princes, above all, draw to themselves such natures. Besides, counsellors are not commonly so united, but that one counsellor keepeth sentinel over another; so that if any do counsel out of faction or private ends, it commonly comes to the king’s ear; but the best remedy is, if princes know their counsellors, as well as their counsellors know them:—
For the last issue, that people will give advice based on their own interests; clearly, “non inveniet fidem super terram,”244 refers to the nature of the times,245 and not to every individual. There are 148 who are by nature honest, sincere, straightforward, not manipulative or complicated: princes, above all, should surround themselves with such individuals. Furthermore, counselors are usually not so united that one doesn’t keep an eye on another; so if anyone advises out of personal agendas or private interests, it often reaches the king's ears; but the best solution is for princes to know their counselors as well as their counselors know them:—
And on the other side, counsellors should not be too speculative into their sovereign’s person. The true composition of a counsellor is, rather to be skilful in their master’s business than in his nature;247 for then he is like to advise him, and not to feed his humor. It is of singular use to princes, if they take the opinions of their council both separately and together; for private opinion is more free, but opinion before others is more reverend. In private, men are more bold in their own humors; and in consort, men are more obnoxious248 to others’ humors; therefore it is good to take both; and of the inferior sort rather in private, to preserve freedom; of the greater, rather in consort, to preserve respect. It is in vain for princes to take counsel 149concerning matters, if they take no counsel likewise concerning persons; for all matters are as dead images; and the life of the execution of affairs resteth in the good choice of persons. Neither is it enough to consult concerning persons, “secundum genera,”249 as in an idea or mathematical description, what the kind and character of the person should be; for the greatest errors are committed, and the most judgment is shown, in the choice of individuals. It was truly said, “Optimi consiliarii mortui:”250 “books will speak plain when counsellors blanch;”251 therefore it is good to be conversant in them, specially the books of such as themselves have been actors upon the stage.
And on the other hand, counselors shouldn't be too speculative about their leader's character. The essence of a counselor is to be skilled in their master's business rather than in his nature; for then they are likely to advise him, rather than just indulge his whims. It's particularly useful for rulers to consider the opinions of their council both individually and collectively; private opinions are freer, while opinions expressed in front of others carry more respect. In private, people are bolder in sharing their true thoughts; in a group, they are more influenced by others' opinions; therefore, it's beneficial to gather both types of feedback, and from lower-ranking individuals more in private to maintain that freedom; from higher-ranking individuals more in a group to maintain respect. It is pointless for leaders to seek advice on issues if they don't also seek advice on people; all issues are like lifeless images, and the execution of plans depends on good choices of people. It is not enough to discuss individuals "according to categories," as in an idea or mathematical description, about what type and character a person should be; the biggest mistakes are made, and the most judgment is displayed, in the selection of specific individuals. It has been rightly said, "The best advisors are dead": "books will speak plainly when counselors hesitate"; therefore, it is wise to be well-read, especially in the works of those who have themselves been active participants in such matters.
The councils at this day in most places are but familiar meetings, where matters are rather talked on than debated; and they run too swift to the order or act of council. It were better that in causes of weight, the matter were propounded one day and not spoken to till the next day; “In nocte consilium;”252 so was it done in the commission of 150union253 between England and Scotland, which was a grave and orderly assembly. I commend set days for petitions; for both it gives the suitors more certainty for their attendance, and it frees the meetings for matters of estate, that they may “hoc agere.”254 In choice of committees for ripening business for the council, it is better to choose indifferent persons, than to make an indifferency by putting in those that are strong on both sides. I commend, also, standing commissions; as for trade, for treasure, for war, for suits, for some provinces; for where there be divers particular councils, and but one council of estate (as it is in Spain), they are in effect no more than standing commissions, save that they have greater authority. Let such as are to inform councils out of their particular professions (as lawyers, seamen, mintmen, and the like) be first heard before committees; and then, as occasion serves, before the council; and let them not come in multitudes, or in a tribunitious255 manner; for that is to clamor councils, not to inform them. A long table and a square table, or seats about the walls, seem things of form, but are things of substance; for at a long table a few at the upper end, in effect, sway all the business; but in the 151other form there is more use of the counsellors’ opinions that sit lower. A king, when he presides in council, let him beware how he opens his own inclination too much in that which he propoundeth; for else counsellors will but take the wind of him, and, instead of giving free counsel, will sing him a song of “placebo.”256
The councils nowadays are mostly casual gatherings where issues are discussed rather than thoroughly debated; they hurry through the agenda. It would be better for serious matters to be presented one day and left for discussion the next day; "In nocte consilium;" so it was done in the commission of 150union between England and Scotland, which was a serious and organized assembly. I recommend having set days for petitions; it provides more certainty for those involved and keeps the meetings focused on important matters, allowing them to "hoc agere." In choosing committees to prepare business for the council, it’s better to select neutral individuals rather than create bias by including strong supporters from both sides. I also advocate for standing commissions for trade, finance, military matters, legal issues, and some regions; because where there are several specific councils and only one main council (as in Spain), they are essentially standing commissions but with greater authority. Those tasked with informing councils from their specific fields (like lawyers, sailors, mint workers, etc.) should be heard first by committees; then, as necessary, before the council. They shouldn't come in large groups or in a disruptive manner; that’s just shouting at councils, not informing them. The arrangement of a long table versus a square table, or having seats around the walls, may seem like a matter of style, but it actually affects substance; at a long table, a few people at the head can dominate the discussion, while the other setup allows for more input from the lower-ranking counselors. When a king leads a council, he should be careful not to reveal his own preferences too much when proposing matters; otherwise, the counselors will just gauge his feelings and, instead of giving honest advice, will just echo what he wants to hear, singing him a tune of "placebo."
XXI.—OF DELAYS.
Fortune is like the market, where, many times, if you can stay a little, the price will fall; and again, it is sometimes like Sibylla’s offer,257 which at first 152offereth the commodity at full, then consumeth part and part, and still holdeth up the price; for occasion (as it is in the common verse) “turneth a bald noddle,258 after she hath presented her locks in front, and no hold taken;” or, at least, turneth the handle of the bottle first to be received, and after the belly, which is hard to clasp.259 There is surely no greater wisdom than well to time the beginnings and onsets of things. Dangers are no more light, if they once seem light; and more dangers have deceived men than forced them; nay, it were better to meet some dangers half-way, though they come nothing near, than to keep too long a watch upon their approaches; for if a man watch too long, it is odds he will fall asleep. On the other side, to be deceived with too long shadows (as some have been when the moon was low, and shone on their enemies’ back), and so to shoot off before the time; or to teach dangers to come on by over early buckling towards them, is another extreme. The ripeness or unripeness of the occasion (as we said) must ever be well weighed; and generally it is good to commit the beginnings of all great actions to Argus with his hundred eyes, and the ends to Briareus with his hundred hands, first to watch and then to speed; for the helmet of Pluto,260 which maketh the politic man go invisible, is secrecy in the council, and celerity in 153the execution; for when things are once come to the execution, there is no secrecy comparable to celerity; like the motion of a bullet in the air, which flieth so swift as it outruns the eye.
Destiny is like the market, where often, if you can just hold on a bit, the prices will drop; and sometimes, it’s like Sibylla’s offer,257 which initially provides the full value but then gradually consumes part of it and maintains the price. As the saying goes, “occasion turns a bald head,258 after it has shown its hair in front, and there’s no grip taken;” or at least it turns the bottle's opening first to be received, and then the body, which is hard to hold.259 There’s definitely no greater wisdom than knowing when to start things. Dangers don’t become lighter just because they seem so at first; in fact, more dangers have caught people off guard than forced them; it’s better to meet some dangers halfway, even if they don’t come close, than to watch them approach for too long; because if someone keeps watching too long, they’re likely to fall asleep. On the flip side, being tricked by long shadows (like when some people have been misled under a low moon shining on their enemies' backs) leads to acting too soon; or encouraging dangers to approach by preparing too early is another extreme. The timing of an opportunity (as we mentioned) must always be carefully considered; generally, it’s wise to entrust the beginnings of significant actions to Argus with his hundred eyes, and the endings to Briareus with his hundred hands, first to observe and then to act; because the helmet of Pluto,260 which makes a savvy person invisible, means secrecy in planning and speed in execution; because once things reach execution, there’s no secrecy that matches speed, like the motion of a bullet in the air, which flies so quickly it outruns the eye.
XXII.—OF CUNNING.
We take cunning for a sinister, or crooked wisdom; and, certainly, there is great difference between a cunning man and a wise man, not only in point of honesty, but in point of ability. There be that can pack the cards,261 and yet cannot play well; so there are some that are good in canvasses and factions, that are otherwise weak men. Again, it is one thing to understand persons, and another thing to understand matters; for many are perfect in men’s humors that are not greatly capable of the real part of business, which is the constitution of one that hath studied men more than books. Such men are fitter for practice than for counsel, and they are good but in their own alley. Turn them to new men, and they have lost their aim; so as the old rule, to know a fool from a wise man, “Mitte ambos nudos ad ignotos, et videbis,”262 doth scarce hold 154for them; and, because these cunning men are like haberdashers263 of small wares, it is not amiss to set forth their shop.
We see cunning as a sort of deceitful or questionable wisdom; and, indeed, there’s a significant difference between a cunning person and a wise person, not just in terms of honesty, but also in terms of skill. Some people can shuffle the cards,261 but still can't play well; similarly, there are those who excel in politics and divisions, yet are actually quite weak. Furthermore, understanding people is different from understanding situations; many might be great at reading others' moods but fall short when it comes to the real work of business, which is someone who has learned about people more than from books. Such individuals are better suited for action than for advice, and they excel only in familiar environments. Introduce them to new people, and they lose their focus; therefore, the old saying to distinguish a wise person from a fool, “Mitte ambos nudos ad ignotos, et videbis,”262 hardly applies to them; and since these cunning people are like small shopkeepers263 in their limited goods, it's fitting to showcase their shop.
It is a point of cunning to wait upon264 him with whom you speak with your eye, as the Jesuits give it in precept; for there be many wise men that have secret hearts and transparent countenances; yet this would be done with a demure abasing of your eye sometimes, as the Jesuits also do use.
It’s a clever move to wait on264 the person you’re communicating with through your gaze, as the Jesuits advise; because there are many wise people who have hidden motives yet outwardly honest faces. However, you should do this while occasionally lowering your gaze in a modest way, as the Jesuits also practice.
Another is, that when you have any thing to obtain of present dispatch, you entertain and amuse the party with whom you deal with some other discourse, that he be not too much awake to make objections. I knew a counsellor and secretary that never came to Queen Elizabeth of England, with bills to sign, but he would always first put her into some discourse of estate,265 that she might the less mind the bills.
Another thing is that when you need to get something done quickly, you engage the person you're dealing with in some other conversation so they're not too alert to raise objections. I knew a counselor and secretary who never approached Queen Elizabeth of England with bills to sign without first getting her involved in some discussion about state matters,265 so she would pay less attention to the bills.
The like surprise may be made by moving things266 when the party is in haste, and cannot stay to consider advisedly of that is moved.
The same surprise can happen by moving things266 when the party is in a hurry and can't take the time to think carefully about what is being moved.
If a man would cross a business that he doubts some other would handsomely and effectually move, let him pretend to wish it well, and move it himself, in such sort as may foil it.
If a man wants to ruin a business he doubts someone else will successfully run, let him act like he wishes it well and take charge himself, doing so in a way that sabotages it.
The breaking off in the midst of that one was about to say, as if he took himself up, breeds a greater appetite in him with whom you confer to know more.
The interruption in the middle of what someone was about to say, as if they were stopping themselves, creates a stronger desire in the person you're talking to for more information.
And because it works better when any thing seemeth to be gotten from you by question than if you offer it of yourself, you may lay a bait for a question, by showing another visage and countenance than you are wont; to the end, to give occasion for the party to ask what the matter is of the change, as Nehemiah267 did: “And I had not, before that time, been sad before the king.”
And since it’s more effective when people feel they’re getting something from you by asking rather than you just offering it up, you can invite questions by presenting a different look and demeanor than usual. This will prompt the other person to ask what’s behind the change, like Nehemiah267 did: “And I had not, before that time, been sad before the king.”
In things that are tender and unpleasing, it is good to break the ice by some whose words are of less weight, and to reserve the more weighty voice to come in as by chance, so that he may be asked the question upon the other’s speech; as Narcissus did, in relating to Claudius the marriage268 of Messalina and Silius.
In situations that are sensitive and uncomfortable, it's helpful to ease into the conversation with someone whose words carry less significance, while holding back the more impactful comments for a later time, so that the important person can respond to what the other person has said; similar to how Narcissus talked to Claudius about the marriage268 of Messalina and Silius.
In things that a man would not be seen in himself, it is a point of cunning to borrow the name of the 156world; as to say, “The world says,” or “There is a speech abroad.”
In matters where a person wouldn't want to be identified directly, it's clever to use the name of the 156world, like saying, “People say,” or “There's a rumor going around.”
I knew one, that when he wrote a letter, he would put that which was most material in a postscript, as if it had been a by-matter.
I knew one person who, when he wrote a letter, would include the most important information in a postscript, as if it were an afterthought.
I knew another, that when he came to have speech,269 he would pass over that that he intended most; and go forth and come back again, and speak of it as a thing that he had almost forgot.
I knew someone else who, when he started to talk,269 would skip over what he meant the most; he would leave and return, mentioning it as if it was something he nearly forgot.
Some procure themselves to be surprised at such times as it is like the party that they work upon will suddenly come upon them, and to be found with a letter in their hand, or doing somewhat which they are not accustomed, to the end they may be apposed of270 those things which of themselves they are desirous to utter.
Some people pretend to be surprised at moments when they think the person they’re with will suddenly catch them off guard, and they might be found holding a letter or doing something unusual, so that they can be asked about those things they actually want to say.
It is a point of cunning to let fall those words in a man’s own name, which he would have another man learn and use, and thereupon take advantage. I knew two that were competitors for the secretary’s place in Queen Elizabeth’s time, and yet kept good quarter271 between themselves, and would confer one with another upon the business; and the one of them said, that to be a secretary in the declination of a monarchy was a ticklish thing, and that he did not affect it;272 the other straight caught up those words, and discoursed with divers of his friends, that he had no reason to desire to be secretary in the 157declination of a monarchy. The first man took hold of it, and found means it was told the queen, who, hearing of a declination of a monarchy, took it so ill, as she would never after hear of the other’s suit.
It’s clever to drop words in a person's own name that he wants someone else to hear and use, so he can take advantage of it. I knew two people who were competing for the secretary position during Queen Elizabeth’s reign, yet they maintained a good relationship with each other and discussed the issue together. One of them remarked that being a secretary during the decline of a monarchy was a risky thing, and he wasn't interested in it; the other one immediately picked up on those words and mentioned to several friends that he had no reason to want to be secretary during the decline of a monarchy. The first guy seized on this and managed to share it with the queen, who, upon hearing about the decline of a monarchy, took it so poorly that she would never consider the other’s candidacy again.
There is a cunning, which we in England call “the turning of the cat in the pan;” which is, when that which a man says to another, he lays it as if another had said it to him; and, to say truth, it is not easy, when such a matter passed between two, to make it appear from which of them it first moved and began.
There’s a clever trick that we in England refer to as “the turning of the cat in the pan.” This is when someone takes what another person says and presents it as if they were the ones who heard it from someone else. To be honest, it’s not easy to tell who originally started the conversation when something like this happens between two people.
It is a way that some men have, to glance and dart at others by justifying themselves by negatives; as to say, “This I do not;” as Tigellinus did towards Burrhus: “Se non diversas spes, sed incolumitatem imperatoris simpliciter spectare.”273
It’s common for some men to look at others and throw shade while justifying their own actions by saying what they don’t do; like Tigellinus did with Burrhus: “Not to pursue different hopes, but simply to consider the safety of the emperor.”273
Some have in readiness so many tales and stories, as there is nothing they would insinuate, but they can wrap it into a tale;274 which serveth both to keep themselves more in guard, and to make others carry it with more pleasure.
Some people have so many stories ready to go that they can turn anything into a tale; 274 which helps them stay alert and makes it more enjoyable for others to listen.
It is a good point of cunning for a man to shape the answer he would have in his own words and propositions; for it makes the other party stick the less.
It’s a clever strategy for a person to frame the response they want in their own words and ideas; it makes it less likely for the other person to push back.
It is strange how long some men will lie in wait to speak somewhat they desire to say; and how far about they will fetch,275 and how many other matters they will beat over to come near it. It is a thing of great patience, but yet of much use.
It’s odd how long some guys will wait to say what they really want to say; and how many roundabout ways they’ll go, and how many other topics they’ll discuss just to get to it. It takes a lot of patience, but it’s still quite useful.
A sudden, bold, and unexpected question doth many times surprise a man, and lay him open. Like to him, that, having changed his name, and walking in Paul’s,276 another suddenly came behind him and called him by his true name, whereat straightways he looked back.
A sudden, bold, and unexpected question often surprises a person and reveals their true self. It's like someone who has changed their name, and while walking in Paul’s,276 someone suddenly comes up behind them and calls them by their real name, which makes them turn around immediately.
But these small wares and petty points of cunning are infinite, and it were a good deed to make a list of them; for that nothing doth more hurt in a state than that cunning men pass for wise.
But these small items and little tricks are countless, and it would be a good idea to make a list of them; because nothing hurts a society more than clever people being mistaken for wise ones.
But certainly, some there are that know the resorts277 and falls278 of business that cannot sink into the main of it;279 like a house that hath convenient stairs and entries, but never a fair room. Therefore you shall see them find out pretty looses280 in the conclusion, but are noways able to examine or debate matters; and yet commonly they take advantage of their inability, and would be thought wits of direction. Some build rather upon the 159abusing of others, and (as we now say) putting tricks upon them, than upon soundness of their own proceedings; but Solomon saith: “Prudens advertit ad gressus suos; stultus divertit ad dolos.”281
But definitely, there are some who understand the ups and downs of business that can’t really grasp the whole picture; like a house that has nice stairs and entrances but lacks a proper room. So you’ll see them discover some nice loopholes in the end, but they’re not at all able to analyze or discuss things; yet, they often take advantage of their lack of understanding and want to be seen as clever strategists. Some rely more on deceiving others and (as we say now) pulling tricks on them, rather than on the strength of their own actions; but as Solomon says: “The wise pay attention to their steps; the fool turns to deceit.”
XXIII.—OF WISDOM FOR A MAN’S SELF.
An ant is a wise creature for itself, but it is a shrewd282 thing in an orchard or garden; and certainly, men that are great lovers of themselves waste the public. Divide with reason between self-love and society; and be so true to thyself as thou be not false to others, specially to thy king and country. It is a poor centre of a man’s actions, himself. It is right earth; for that only stands fast upon his own centre;283 whereas all things that have affinity with the heavens, move upon the centre of another, which they benefit. The referring of all to a man’s self is more tolerable in a sovereign prince, because themselves are not only themselves, but their good and evil is at the peril of the public fortune; but it is a desperate evil in a servant to a prince, or 160a citizen in a republic; for whatsoever affairs pass such a man’s hands, he crooketh them to his own ends, which must needs be often eccentric to the ends of his master or state. Therefore, let princes or states choose such servants as have not this mark; except they mean their service should be made but the accessary. That which maketh the effect more pernicious is, that all proportion is lost. It were disproportion enough for the servant’s good to be preferred before the master’s; but yet it is a greater extreme, when a little good of the servant shall carry things against a great good of the master. And yet that is the case of bad officers, treasurers, ambassadors, generals, and other false and corrupt servants; which set a bias upon their bowl, of their own petty ends and envies, to the overthrow of their master’s great and important affairs; and, for the most part, the good such servants receive is after the model of their own fortune; but the hurt they sell for that good is after the model of their master’s fortune. And certainly, it is the nature of extreme self-lovers, as they will set a house on fire, an it were but to roast their eggs; and yet these men many times hold credit with their masters, because their study is but to please them, and profit themselves; and for either respect they will abandon the good of their affairs.
An ant is a smart creature in its own way, but it can be a cunning thing in an orchard or garden; and clearly, people who are obsessed with themselves end up wasting what belongs to everyone. Find a balance between self-love and society; and be true to yourself without being deceitful to others, especially to your king and country. It's a poor basis for a person’s actions to revolve solely around themselves. It is stable ground; as that alone stands firmly on its own center; whereas everything that has a connection to the heavens revolves around the center of another, which they benefit. It’s more acceptable for a sovereign prince to refer everything back to themselves because they are not just individuals; their actions can impact the public’s well-being. However, it’s a serious issue for a servant to a prince or a citizen in a republic; because whatever tasks such a person handles, they twist them to suit their own purposes, which often conflict with the goals of their master or the state. Therefore, princes or governments should choose servants who do not have this characteristic, unless they intend for their service to be merely supplementary. What makes the situation more harmful is that all balance is lost. It is already disproportionate for a servant's interests to take precedence over their master's; but it’s even worse when a small benefit for the servant outweighs a significant benefit for the master. That is the reality for corrupt officials, treasurers, ambassadors, generals, and other dishonest and corrupt servants, who manipulate situations for their own petty goals and jealously, damaging their master's significant and critical matters. Generally, the benefit such servants gain aligns with their own fortunes, while the harm they cause is based on their master’s fortune. Indeed, the worst kind of self-absorbed individuals will burn down a house just to fry their eggs; yet, these individuals often maintain favor with their masters because their aim is solely to please them and enrich themselves; and for either reason, they will neglect the good of their responsibilities.
Wisdom for a man’s self is, in many branches thereof, a depraved thing. It is the wisdom of rats, that will be sure to leave a house somewhat before161 it fall; it is the wisdom of the fox, that thrusts out the badger who digged and made room for him; it is the wisdom of crocodiles, that shed tears when they would devour. But that which is specially to be noted is, that those which (as Cicero says of Pompey) are “sui amantes, sine rivali,”284 are many times unfortunate; and whereas they have all their times sacrificed to themselves, they become in the end themselves sacrifices to the inconstancy of fortune, whose wings they thought by their self-wisdom to have pinioned.
Wisdom for a person’s own sake is, in many ways, a twisted thing. It’s like the wisdom of rats, which know to leave a place before it collapses; it’s the wisdom of a fox that pushes out the badger who dug the burrow for it; it’s like the wisdom of crocodiles, who cry tears when they want to eat. But what’s especially noteworthy is that those who, as Cicero said about Pompey, are “self-loving, without rivals,” often end up unlucky; and while they have dedicated all their efforts to themselves, they ultimately become sacrifices to the unpredictability of fortune, whose wings they thought to have pinned down with their self-centered wisdom.
XXIV.—OF INNOVATIONS.
As the births of living creatures at first are ill-shapen, so are all innovations, which are the births of time; yet, notwithstanding, as those that first bring honor into their family are commonly more worthy than most that succeed, so the first precedent (if it be good) is seldom attained by imitation; for ill to man’s nature as it stands perverted, hath a natural motion strongest in continuance, but good, as a forced motion, strongest at first. Surely, every medicine285 is an innovation, and he that will not apply new remedies must expect new evils, for time is the greatest innovator; and if time, of course, 162alter things to the worse, and wisdom and counsel shall not alter them to the better, what shall be the end? It is true, that what is settled by custom, though it be not good, yet, at least, it is fit; and those things which have long gone together, are, as it were, confederate within themselves;286 whereas new things piece not so well; but, though they help by their utility, yet they trouble by their inconformity; besides, they are like strangers, more admired and less favored. All this is true, if time stood still, which, contrariwise, moveth so round, that a froward retention of custom is as turbulent a thing as an innovation; and they that reverence too much old times are but a scorn to the new. It were good, therefore, that men in their innovations would follow the example of time itself, which indeed innovateth greatly, but quietly, and by degrees scarce to be perceived; for, otherwise, whatsoever is new is unlooked for, and ever it mends some and pairs287 other; and he that is holpen, takes it for a fortune, and thanks the time; and he that is hurt, for a wrong, and imputeth it to the author. It is good, also, not to try experiments in states, except the necessity be urgent, or the utility evident; and well to beware that it be the reformation that draweth on the change, and not the desire of change that pretendeth the reformation; and lastly, that the novelty, though it be not rejected, yet be held for a suspect,288 and, as 163the Scripture saith, “That we make a stand upon the ancient way, and then look about us, and discover what is the straight and right way, and so to walk in it.”289
Just like the births of living creatures begin as imperfect, all new ideas, which emerge over time, also start off awkwardly. However, just as those who first bring honor to their family are often more deserving than most who follow, the original example (if it’s good) is rarely matched by imitation. This is because what is wrong with human nature, in its twisted state, has a natural tendency to persist over time, while what is good, being a forced change, is often strongest at the beginning. After all, every treatment285 is a new idea, and those who refuse to adopt new solutions should expect new problems, since time is the greatest innovator. If time naturally makes things worse and wisdom and guidance don’t improve them, then what will be the outcome? It’s true that what is established by tradition, even if it’s not good, is at least familiar. Those practices that have coexisted for a long time are, in a way, allies to each other;286 whereas new ideas don’t fit together as well. Although they can be helpful, they often create confusion due to their lack of harmony; besides, they are like outsiders—more admired but less welcomed. All of this holds true if time were to stand still, but in reality, time moves so quickly that clinging stubbornly to old customs is just as disruptive as embracing new ideas. People who overly honor the past can often dismiss the new. Therefore, it would be wise for people in their innovations to follow the example of time itself, which indeed changes things significantly, but subtly, and almost imperceptibly. Otherwise, anything new is unexpected, and while it may benefit some, it can disadvantage others. Those who benefit often see it as good fortune and thank the passage of time, while those who suffer view it as a wrongdoing and blame the source. It’s also wise not to experiment in governance unless absolutely necessary or clearly beneficial; and one should be cautious that it's truly reform that drives the change, not simply the desire for change that claims to be reform. Lastly, even if the new idea isn’t outright rejected, it should be approached with suspicion,288 and, as the Scripture says, “We should stand at the crossroads and look for the ancient paths, and see which one is good and right, and walk in it.”289
XXV.—OF DISPATCH.
Affected dispatch is one of the most dangerous things to business that can be; it is like that which the physicians call predigestion, or hasty digestion, which is sure to fill the body full of crudities, and secret seeds of diseases. Therefore, measure not dispatch by the times of sitting, but by the advancement of the business; and as in races, it is not the large stride, or high lift, that makes the speed, so in business, the keeping close to the matter, and not taking of it too much at once, procureth dispatch. It is the care of some, only to come off speedily for the time, or to contrive some false periods of business, because they may seem men of dispatch; but it is one thing to abbreviate by contracting,290 another by cutting off; and business so handled at several sittings, or meetings, goeth commonly backward and forward in an unsteady manner. I knew a wise 164man291 that had it for a byword, when he saw men hasten to a conclusion, “Stay a little, that we may make an end the sooner.”
Affected dispatch is one of the most dangerous things for a business; it's like what doctors call predigestion or hasty digestion, which will definitely fill the body with impurities and hidden seeds of diseases. So, don't measure dispatch by the time spent but by how far the business has progressed. Just like in races, it's not the big stride or high lift that makes you fast; in business, staying focused on the matter and not overwhelming yourself all at once leads to better dispatch. Some people only care about finishing quickly or creating false timelines to seem efficient, but there's a big difference between shortening by condensing and shortening by cutting off. Business handled in multiple sessions often moves back and forth in an unstable way. I knew a wise man who had a saying: when he saw people rushing to a conclusion, he would say, “Wait a little, so we can finish sooner.”
On the other side, true dispatch is a rich thing; for time is the measure of business, as money is of wares; and business is bought at a dear hand where there is small dispatch. The Spartans and Spaniards have been noted to be of small dispatch: “Mi venga la muerte de Spagna;” “Let my death come from Spain;” for then it will be sure to be long in coming.
On the other hand, true efficiency is valuable; time is the measure of business, just as money is for goods; and business costs a lot when there isn’t much efficiency. The Spartans and Spaniards have been known for their slow pace: “Mi venga la muerte de Spagna;” “Let my death come from Spain;” because then it’s sure to take a long time to arrive.
Give good hearing to those that give the first information in business, and rather direct them in the beginning, than interrupt them in the continuance of their speeches; for he that is put out of his own order will go forward and backward, and be more tedious while he waits upon his memory, than he could have been if he had gone on in his own course; but sometimes it is seen that the moderator is more troublesome than the actor.
Listen carefully to those who provide the initial information in a discussion, and guide them from the start instead of interrupting them in the middle of their speech. When someone loses their train of thought, they will stammer and take much longer trying to remember what they wanted to say than if they had been allowed to continue in their own way. However, it’s sometimes the case that the moderator can be more disruptive than the speaker.
Iterations are commonly loss of time; but there is no such gain of time as to iterate often the state of the question; for it chaseth away many a frivolous speech as it is coming forth. Long and curious speeches are as fit for dispatch as a robe, or mantle, with a long train, is for a race. Prefaces, and passages,292 and excusations,293 and other speeches 165of reference to the person, are great wastes of time; and though they seem to proceed of modesty, they are bravery.294 Yet beware of being too material when there is any impediment, or obstruction in men’s wills; for preoccupation of mind295 ever requireth preface of speech, like a fomentation to make the unguent enter.
Iterations are often a waste of time, but repeatedly stating the question can save time because it cuts off unnecessary chatter before it even starts. Long, elaborate speeches are as suitable for a quick meeting as a long gown with a train is for a race. Introductions, side notes,292 and excuses,293 as well as other comments about the person, are big time wasters; and while they might seem polite, they come off as pretentious.294 However, be careful not to be too direct when there’s a stumbling block in people’s attitudes, as a distracted mind295 always needs a little lead-in, much like a warm-up is needed to help ointment absorb.
Above all things, order and distribution, and singling out of parts, is the life of dispatch, so as the distribution be not too subtile; for he that doth not divide will never enter well into business; and he that divideth too much will never come out of it clearly. To choose time is to save time; and an unseasonable motion is but beating the air. There be three parts of business,—the preparation; the debate, or examination; and the perfection. Whereof, if you look for dispatch, let the middle only be the work of many, and the first and last the work of few. The proceeding, upon somewhat conceived in writing, doth for the most part facilitate dispatch; for though it should be wholly rejected, yet that negative is more pregnant of direction than an indefinite, as ashes are more generative than dust.
Above all else, organization and distribution, along with focusing on specific parts, are essential for efficiency, as long as the distribution isn’t overly intricate; because those who fail to divide their work will struggle to succeed in business, and those who over-divide will never see clear results. Choosing the right time means saving time; an ill-timed action is just pointless effort. There are three stages of business—preparation, discussion or review, and completion. If you want efficiency, let the discussion be handled by many people, while the preparation and completion should be managed by a few. Working from something written down usually helps with efficiency; even if the written plan is completely scrapped, that rejection still offers more clarity than a vague idea, just as ashes hold more potential than dust.
XXVI.—OF SEEMING WISE.
It hath been an opinion, that the French are wiser than they seem, and the Spaniards seem wiser than they are; but howsoever it be between nations, certainly it is so between man and man; for, as the apostle saith of godliness, “Having a show of godliness, but denying the power thereof,”296 so certainly there are, in points of wisdom and sufficiency, that do nothing, or little very solemnly,—“magno conatu nugas.”297 It is a ridiculous thing, and fit for a satire to persons of judgment, to see what shifts these formalists have, and what prospectives to make superficies to seem body, that hath depth and bulk. Some are so close and reserved, as they will not show their wares but by a dark light, and seem always to keep back somewhat; and when they know within themselves they speak of that they do not well know, would nevertheless seem to others to know of that which they may not well speak. Some help themselves with countenance and gesture, and are wise by signs; as Cicero saith of Piso, that when he answered him, he fetched one of his brows up to his forehead, and bent the other down to his chin: “Respondes, altero ad frontem sublato, altero ad mentum depresso 167supercilio; crudelitatem tibi non placere.”298 Some think to bear it by speaking a great word, and being peremptory; and go on, and take by admittance that which they cannot make good. Some, whatsoever is beyond their reach, will seem to despise or make light of it as impertinent or curious, and so would have their ignorance seem judgment. Some are never without a difference, and commonly by amusing men with a subtilty, blanch the matter; of whom A. Gellius saith, “Hominem delirum, qui verborum minutiis rerum frangit pondera.”299 Of which kind also Plato, in his Protagoras, bringeth in Prodicus in scorn, and maketh him make a speech that consisteth of distinctions from the beginning to the end.300 Generally such men, in all deliberations, find ease to be301 of the negative side, and affect a credit to object and foretell difficulties; for when propositions are denied, there is an end of them, but if they be allowed, it requireth a new work; which false point of wisdom is the bane of business. To conclude, there is no decaying merchant, or inward beggar,302 168hath so many tricks to uphold the credit of their wealth, as these empty persons have to maintain the credit of their sufficiency. Seeming wise men may make shift to get opinion, but let no man choose them for employment; for certainly, you were better take for business a man somewhat absurd than over-formal.
It has been said that the French are smarter than they appear, and the Spaniards seem smarter than they actually are; but no matter how it is between nations, it's definitely true between individuals. As the apostle said about godliness, “Having a show of godliness, but denying the power thereof,”296 there are certainly people who present themselves as wise and competent but do little more than put on a show—“magno conatu nugas.”297 It's ridiculous and worthy of satire to see the lengths these pretentious people go to, and how they create an illusion to make their superficial appearance seem substantial and meaningful. Some are so secretive and reserved that they won’t reveal their goods except in dim light, always holding back something; and even when they know deep down that they’re talking about things they don’t truly understand, they still want to appear knowledgeable about things they might not articulate well. Some rely on their demeanor and gestures, acting wise through body language. Cicero mentioned Piso, saying that when he answered him, he raised one eyebrow up toward his forehead and lowered the other toward his chin: “Respondes, altero ad frontem sublato, altero ad mentum depresso supercilio; crudelitatem tibi non placere.”298 Some think they can manage the impression they give by using grandiose language and being assertive, moving forward as if they accept ideas they can’t truly support. Others, when faced with information that exceeds their understanding, tend to dismiss or belittle it as irrelevant or overly curious, pretending their ignorance is actually wisdom. Some always introduce distinctions, often confusing people with their subtlety, which is why A. Gellius describes them as “Hominem delirum, qui verborum minutiis rerum frangit pondera.”299 Plato, too, in his Protagoras, ridicules Prodicus by having him give a speech filled with distinctions from start to finish.300 Generally, these types of people find it easier to take a negative stance in discussions, and they seek to earn respect by raising objections and predicting difficulties. When propositions are denied, that’s the end of it; but if they’re accepted, it necessitates further work. This false sense of wisdom is detrimental to progress. In conclusion, no failing merchant or internal beggar302 has as many tricks to maintain their financial credibility as these hollow individuals do to uphold their perceived competence. Seeming wise individuals might manage to gain a good reputation, but no one should choose them for important tasks; for it’s definitely better to select someone slightly absurd than overly formal for work.
XXVII.—OF FRIENDSHIP.
It had been hard for him that spake it, to have put more truth and untruth together in few words than in that speech: “Whosoever is delighted in solitude, is either a wild beast or a god:”303 for it is most true, that a natural and secret hatred and aversion towards society in any man hath somewhat of the savage beast; but it is most untrue, that it should have any character at all of the divine nature, except it proceed, not out of a pleasure in solitude, but out of a love and desire to sequester a man’s self for a higher conversation; such as is found to have been falsely and feignedly in some of the heathen; as Epimenides,304 the Candian; Numa, the Roman; 169Empedocles, the Sicilian; and Apollonius, of Tyana; and truly and really in divers of the ancient hermits and holy fathers of the church. But little do men perceive what solitude is, and how far it extendeth; for a crowd is not company, and faces are but a gallery of pictures, and talk but a tinkling cymbal, where there is no love. The Latin adage meeteth with it a little: “Magna civitas, magna solitudo:”305 because in a great town friends are scattered, so that there is not that fellowship, for the most part, which is in less neighborhoods: but we may go further, and affirm most truly, that it is a mere and miserable solitude to want true friends, without which the world is but a wilderness; and even in this sense also of solitude, whosoever in the frame of his nature and affections is unfit for friendship, he taketh it of the beasts, and not from humanity.
It was difficult for the person who said it to combine more truth and falsehood in so few words than in that statement: “Whoever enjoys solitude is either a wild animal or a god:”303 because it is absolutely true that a natural and hidden hatred and dislike of society in anyone has some characteristics of a savage beast; but it is completely false to suggest that it reflects any divine nature, unless it stems not from a love of solitude, but from a desire to isolate oneself for a higher purpose; like what has been falsely claimed by some ancient philosophers such as Epimenides,304 the Cretan; Numa, the Roman; 169Empedocles, the Sicilian; and Apollonius, of Tyana; and truly seen in various ancient hermits and holy fathers of the church. However, most people don’t understand what solitude really is and how far it extends; because a crowd isn’t true companionship, and faces are just a gallery of images, while conversation is merely a clanging cymbal where there’s no love. The Latin saying touches on this somewhat: “Magna civitas, magna solitudo:”305 because in a large city, friends are scattered, resulting in less camaraderie than in smaller communities. But we can go further and claim with great certainty that it is truly a sad and miserable solitude to lack true friends, without which the world is simply a wilderness; and even in this sense of solitude, whoever is naturally and emotionally unfit for friendship resembles beasts rather than humans.
A principal fruit of friendship is the ease and discharge of the fulness and swellings of the heart, 170which passions of all kinds do cause and induce. We know diseases of stoppings and suffocations are the most dangerous in the body, and it is not much otherwise in the mind. You may take sarza306 to open the liver, steel to open the spleen, flower of sulphur for the lungs, castoreum307 for the brain, but no receipt openeth the heart but a true friend, to whom you may impart griefs, joys, fears, hopes, suspicions, counsels, and whatsoever lieth upon the heart to oppress it, in a kind of civil shrift or confession.
A major benefit of friendship is the relief and release of the fullness and pressure in our hearts, 170which are caused by all kinds of emotions. We know that blockages and suffocations can be the most dangerous issues in the body, and it's pretty much the same in the mind. You can take herbal remedies to open the liver, medication to help with the spleen, sulfur for the lungs, or beaver oil for the brain, but nothing can truly open the heart except a true friend, to whom you can share your sorrows, joys, fears, hopes, doubts, advice, and anything else weighing on your heart like a form of honest confession.
It is a strange thing to observe how high a rate great kings and monarchs do set upon this fruit of friendship whereof we speak; so great, as they purchase it many times at the hazard of their own safety and greatness; for princes, in regard of the distance of their fortune from that of their subjects and servants, cannot gather this fruit, except (to make themselves capable thereof) they raise some persons to be as it were companions, and almost equals to themselves, which many times sorteth to inconvenience. The modern languages give unto such persons the name of favorites, or privadoes, as if it were matter of grace or conversation; but the Roman name attaineth the true use and cause thereof, naming them “participes curarum;”308 for it is that which tieth the knot. And we see plainly that this hath been 171done, not by weak and passionate princes only, but by the wisest and most politic that ever reigned, who have oftentimes joined to themselves some of their servants, whom both themselves have called friends, and allowed others likewise to call them in the same manner, using the word which is received between private men.
It's interesting to see how much value great kings and monarchs place on the benefits of friendship we're discussing; so much so that they often risk their own safety and power to attain it. Princes, due to the disparity between their fortunes and those of their subjects and servants, can’t enjoy this benefit unless they promote certain individuals to be, in a sense, their companions and almost equals, which often leads to complications. Modern languages refer to these people as favorites or close associates, implying it's about favor or camaraderie; however, the Roman term captures the true purpose, calling them “participes curarum;” 308 because that’s what truly binds the relationship. It's clear that this has been done not only by weak and emotional rulers but also by the wisest and most strategic ones who have often taken some of their servants as friends, allowing others to refer to them in the same familiar way, using terminology often used among private individuals.
L. Sylla, when he commanded Rome, raised Pompey (after surnamed the Great) to that height, that Pompey vaunted himself for Sylla’s overmatch; for when he had carried the consulship for a friend of his, against the pursuit of Sylla, and that Sylla did a little resent thereat, and began to speak great, Pompey turned upon him again, and, in effect, bade him be quiet; for that more men adored the sun rising than the sun setting.309 With Julius Cæsar, Decimus Brutus had obtained that interest, as he set him down in his testament for heir in remainder after his nephew; and this was the man that had power with him to draw him forth to his death; for when Cæsar would have discharged the senate, in regard of some ill presages, and specially a dream of Calphurnia, this man lifted him gently by the arm out of his chair, telling him he hoped he would not dismiss the senate till his wife had dreamt a better dream;310 and it seemeth his favor was so great, as Antonius, in a letter which is recited verbatim in one of Cicero’s 172Philippics, calleth him venefica, “witch,” as if he had enchanted Cæsar.311 Augustus raised Agrippa (though of mean birth) to that height, as, when he consulted with Mæcenas about the marriage of his daughter Julia, Mæcenas took the liberty to tell him, that he must either marry his daughter to Agrippa, or take away his life; there was no third way, he had made him so great. With Tiberius Cæsar, Sejanus had ascended to that height, as they two were termed and reckoned as a pair of friends. Tiberius, in a letter to him, saith, “Hæc pro amicitiâ nostrâ non occultavi;”312 and the whole senate dedicated an altar to Friendship, as to a goddess, in respect of the great dearness of friendship between them two. The like, or more, was between Septimius Severus and Plautianus; for he forced his eldest son to marry the daughter of Plautianus, and would often maintain Plautianus in doing affronts to his son; and did write, also, in a letter to the senate, by these words: “I love the man so well, as I wish he may over-live me.”313 Now, if these princes had been as a Trajan, or a Marcus Aurelius, a man might have thought that this had proceeded of an abundant goodness of nature; but being men so wise,314 of such strength and severity of mind, and so extreme lovers 173of themselves, as all these were, it proveth most plainly that they found their own felicity (though as great as ever happened to mortal men) but as an half-piece, except they might have a friend to make it entire; and yet, which is more, they were princes that had wives, sons, nephews; and yet all these could not supply the comfort of friendship.
L. Sylla, when he was in charge of Rome, elevated Pompey (later known as Pompey the Great) to such a position that Pompey bragged he was Sylla's superior. After he got a friend elected consul despite Sylla’s objections, and Sylla showed some annoyance and began to act grand, Pompey snapped back at him, basically telling him to calm down because more people admired the rising sun than the setting sun.309 With Julius Caesar, Decimus Brutus had gained such favor that he was named in Caesar's will as the heir after Caesar's nephew; this was the same man who had the influence to lead Caesar to his doom. When Caesar wanted to dismiss the Senate due to some bad omens, especially a dream of Calphurnia's, this man gently pulled him up from his chair and told him he hoped he wouldn't dismiss the Senate until his wife had a better dream;310 and it seems his favor was so significant that Antonius, in a letter quoted verbatim in one of Cicero’s172Philippics, called him venefica, meaning "witch," as if he had cast a spell over Caesar.311 Augustus promoted Agrippa (despite his humble origins) to such a level that when he discussed marrying his daughter Julia with Mæcenas, Mæcenas felt bold enough to say he had to either marry his daughter to Agrippa or have Agrippa killed; there was no other option, given Agrippa's high status. With Tiberius Caesar, Sejanus rose to such prominence that they were known as a pair of friends. Tiberius wrote to him, saying, “I have not hidden this from you for the sake of our friendship;”312 and the entire Senate dedicated an altar to Friendship, treating it like a goddess, due to the deep bond between the two. A similar, if not stronger, connection existed between Septimius Severus and Plautianus; for Severus forced his eldest son to marry Plautianus’s daughter and often supported Plautianus in disrespecting his son, even writing in a letter to the Senate: “I love the man so much that I hope he outlives me.”313 Now, if these rulers had been like Trajan or Marcus Aurelius, one might think this stemmed from a natural kindness; but since these were all wise men with strong and stern minds, and intense self-love, it clearly shows they found their own happiness (even as great as any mortal could achieve) only as a partial fulfillment, unless they had a friend to make it whole; and what's more, they were rulers with wives, sons, and nephews; yet none of these could replace the comfort of friendship.
It is not to be forgotten what Comineus315 observeth of his first master, Duke Charles the Hardy,316 namely, that he would communicate his secrets with none, and, least of all, those secrets which troubled him most. Whereupon he goeth on, and saith, that towards his latter time, that closeness did impair and a little perish his understanding. Surely, Comineus might have made the same judgment, also, if it had pleased him, of his second master, Louis the Eleventh, whose closeness was indeed his tormentor. The parable of Pythagoras is dark, but true: “Cor ne edito,” “eat not the heart.”317 Certainly, if a 174man would give it a hard phrase, those that want friends to open themselves unto are cannibals of their own hearts; but one thing is most admirable (wherewith I will conclude this first fruit of friendship), which is, that this communicating of a man’s self to his friend works two contrary effects, for it redoubleth joys, and cutteth griefs in halves; for there is no man that imparteth his joys to his friend, but he joyeth the more; and no man that imparteth his griefs to his friend, but he grieveth the less. So that it is, in truth, of operation upon a man’s mind of like virtue as the alchemists used to attribute to their stone for man’s body, that it worketh all contrary effects, but still to the good and benefit of nature. But yet, without praying in aid of alchemists, there is a manifest image of this in the ordinary course of nature; for, in bodies, union strengtheneth and cherisheth any natural action; and, on the other side, weakeneth and dulleth any violent impression; and even so it is of minds.
It shouldn’t be forgotten what Comineus315 observed about his first master, Duke Charles the Bold,316 which is that he would share his secrets with no one, especially not those that troubled him the most. He goes on to say that in his later years, that secrecy affected and somewhat diminished his understanding. Certainly, Comineus could have made the same observation about his second master, Louis the Eleventh, whose secrecy was indeed a burden to him. The saying of Pythagoras is dark but true: “Cor ne edito,” “don’t eat the heart.”317 Indeed, if one wanted to put it harshly, those who lack friends to confide in are like cannibals consuming their own hearts; but one thing is most remarkable (with which I will conclude this first insight into friendship), which is that sharing oneself with a friend produces two opposing effects: it doubles joy and divides grief. No one shares their joys with a friend without feeling even happier, and no one shares their sorrows with a friend without feeling less sorrow. In truth, it has an effect on a person’s mind similar to what alchemists claim their stone does for the body, as it creates entirely opposite effects, yet still serves the good and benefit of nature. However, without calling upon alchemists for support, there is a clear example of this in the natural order; for, in physical bodies, unity strengthens and nurtures any natural action, while, on the other hand, it weakens and dulls any violent impact; and it is the same for minds.
The second fruit of friendship is healthful and sovereign for the understanding, as the first is for the affections; for friendship maketh indeed a fair day in the affections from storm and tempests, but it maketh daylight in the understanding, out of darkness and confusion of thoughts. Neither is this to be understood only of faithful counsel, which a man receiveth from his friend; but before you come to that, certain it is, that whosoever hath his mind fraught with many thoughts, his wits and175 understanding do clarify and break up in the communicating and discoursing with another; he tosseth his thoughts more easily; he marshalleth them more orderly; he seeth how they look when they are turned into words; finally, he waxeth wiser than himself; and that more by an hour’s discourse than by a day’s meditation. It was well said by Themistocles to the king of Persia: “That speech was like cloth of Arras,318 opened and put abroad, whereby the imagery doth appear in figure; whereas in thoughts they lie but as in packs.”319 Neither is this second fruit of friendship, in opening the understanding, restrained only to such friends as are able to give a man counsel (they indeed are best), but even without that a man learneth of himself, and bringeth his own thoughts to light, and whetteth his wits as against a stone, which itself cuts not. In a word, a man were better relate himself to a statue or picture, than to suffer his thoughts to pass in smother.
The second benefit of friendship is that it is both healthy and powerful for understanding, just as the first benefit is for emotions. Friendship indeed brings a clear and pleasant day to our emotions, shielding us from storms and chaos, but it also brings clarity to our understanding, dispelling darkness and confusion in our thoughts. This isn’t just about the reliable advice one gets from a friend; before that even happens, it’s evident that anyone who is burdened with numerous thoughts finds that speaking and discussing with another person helps clarify and organize their ideas. They can arrange their thoughts more effectively; they see how they appear when expressed in words; ultimately, they become wiser than they were alone, gaining insights from an hour of conversation rather than a day of contemplation. Themistocles aptly told the Persian king that speech is like a tapestry, revealing images when it’s spread out, whereas thoughts are just piled up. This benefit of friendship in enhancing understanding isn’t limited to friends who can give advice (though they are the best); even without that, a person learns from themselves, brings their own thoughts into the open, and sharpens their mind against a challenge, which itself doesn’t have cutting power. In short, it's better for someone to relate to a statue or a picture than to let their thoughts remain hidden and unexpressed.
Add now, to make this second fruit of friendship complete, that other point which lieth more open, and falleth within vulgar observation; which is faithful counsel from a friend. Heraclitus saith well, in one of his enigmas, “Dry light is ever the best;”320 and certain it is, that the light that a man 176receiveth by counsel from another, is drier and purer than that which cometh from his own understanding and judgment, which is ever infused and drenched in his affections and customs. So, as there is as much difference between the counsel that a friend giveth, and that a man giveth himself, as there is between the counsel of a friend and of a flatterer; for there is no such flatterer as is a man’s self, and there is no such remedy against flattery of a man’s self, as the liberty of a friend. Counsel is of two sorts,—the one concerning manners, the other concerning business; for the first, the best preservative to keep the mind in health, is the faithful admonition of a friend. The calling of a man’s self to a strict account is a medicine sometimes too piercing and corrosive; reading good books of morality is a little flat and dead; observing our faults in others is sometimes improper for our case; but the best receipt (best, I say, to work, and best to take), is the admonition of a friend. It is a strange thing to behold what gross errors and extreme absurdities many (especially of the greater sort) do commit for want of a friend to tell them of them, to the great damage both of their fame and fortune; for, as St. James saith, they are as men “that look sometimes into a glass, and presently forget their own shape and favor.”321 As for business, a man may think, if he will, that two eyes see no more than one; or, that a gamester seeth always more 177than a looker-on; or, that a man in anger is as wise as he that has said over the four and twenty letters;322 or, that a musket may be shot off as well upon the arm as upon a rest;323 and such other fond and high imaginations, to think himself all in all; but when all is done, the help of good counsel is that which setteth business straight. And if any man think that he will take counsel, but it shall be by pieces, asking counsel in one business of one man, and in another business of another man; it is well (that is to say, better, perhaps, than if he asked none at all); but he runneth two dangers,—one, that he shall not be faithfully counselled; for it is a rare thing, except it be from a perfect and entire friend, to have counsel given, but such as shall be bowed and crooked to some ends which he hath that giveth it; the other, that he shall have counsel given, hurtful and unsafe (though with good meaning), and mixed partly of mischief, and partly of remedy; even as if you would call a physician, that is thought good for the cure of the disease you complain of, but is unacquainted with your body; and, therefore, may put you in a way for a present cure, but overthroweth your health in some other kind, and so cure the disease and kill the patient. 178 But a friend, that is wholly acquainted with a man’s estate, will beware, by furthering any present business, how he dasheth upon other inconvenience; and, therefore, rest not upon scattered counsels; they will rather distract and mislead, than settle and direct.
Add now, to complete this second aspect of friendship, that other point which is more obvious and comes from common observation: faithful advice from a friend. Heraclitus rightly said in one of his riddles, “Dry light is always the best;” and it’s clear that the insight a person gains from the counsel of another is drier and purer than that which arises from their own understanding and judgment, which is always influenced and saturated by their emotions and habits. So, there’s as much difference between the advice a friend gives and the advice one gives themselves as there is between a friend’s counsel and a flatterer’s; because there’s no flattery worse than self-deception, and the best antidote to self-flattery is the honesty of a friend. Counsel comes in two forms—one that deals with behavior, and the other with practical matters; for the latter, the best way to keep the mind healthy is through the honest warnings of a friend. Holding oneself accountable can sometimes be too harsh and relentless; reading good moral books can feel a bit flat and lifeless; observing our flaws in others may not fit our situation; but the most effective remedy (I say, the best to apply and to receive) is the advice from a friend. It’s astonishing to see the gross mistakes and ridiculous things many people (especially those in higher positions) do due to the lack of a friend to point them out, which can seriously damage their reputation and wealth; for, as St. James says, they are like people “who look into a mirror and immediately forget what they look like.” As for practical matters, one might think that two eyes don’t see more than one, or that a gambler sees more than a bystander; or that someone angry is as wise as someone who’s recited the alphabet; or that a gun can be fired equally well from the shoulder or from a rest; and other foolish and grand ideas to believe oneself to be all-knowing; but in reality, good advice is what sets matters straight. And if someone thinks they’ll gather advice bit by bit, asking one person for one issue and another person for a different issue; it’s decent (that is to say, perhaps better than asking none at all); but there are two dangers—one, that they won’t receive honest advice; because it’s rare, unless it comes from a true and complete friend, to get counsel that isn’t skewed for some agenda from the giver; the second danger is that they may receive advice that is harmful and unsafe (even if well-intentioned), and a mix of both bad and good advice; like calling in a doctor who’s thought to be good for the illness you have but doesn’t know your medical history; they might suggest something that provides immediate relief but harms your overall health, curing one issue while killing the patient. But a friend who fully understands a person’s situation will be careful, when supporting any immediate concern, not to cause other troubles; therefore, do not rely on scattered bits of advice; they are more likely to confuse and mislead than to clarify and guide.
After these two noble fruits of friendship (peace in the affections, and support of the judgment), followeth the last fruit, which is like the pomegranate, full of many kernels; I mean aid, and bearing a part in all actions and occasions. Here the best way to represent to life the manifold use of friendship, is to cast and see how many things there are which a man cannot do himself; and then it will appear that it was a sparing speech of the ancients to say, “that a friend is another himself,” for that a friend is far more than himself. Men have their time, and die many times in desire of some things which they principally take to heart; the bestowing of a child, the finishing of a work, or the like. If a man have a true friend, he may rest almost secure that the care of those things will continue after him; so that a man hath, as it were, two lives in his desires. A man hath a body, and that body is confined to a place; but where friendship is, all offices of life are, as it were, granted to him and his deputy, for he may exercise them by his friend. How many things are there, which a man cannot, with any face or comeliness, say or do himself? A man can scarce allege his own merits with modesty,179 much less extol them; a man cannot sometimes brook to supplicate, or beg, and a number of the like; but all these things are graceful in a friend’s mouth, which are blushing in a man’s own. So, again, a man’s person hath many proper relations which he cannot put off. A man cannot speak to his son but as a father; to his wife but as a husband; to his enemy but upon terms; whereas, a friend may speak as the case requires, and not as it sorteth with the person. But to enumerate these things were endless; I have given the rule, where a man cannot fitly play his own part. If he have not a friend, he may quit the stage.
After these two valuable aspects of friendship (emotional peace and support for judgment) comes the final aspect, which is like a pomegranate, full of many seeds; I’m talking about help and participating in all actions and situations. The best way to show the varied uses of friendship is to consider how many things a person cannot do alone; then it becomes clear that it was an understatement for the ancients to say, “a friend is another self,” because a friend is much more than that. People have their time and mourn many times for things they deeply desire; raising a child, completing a project, and so on. If someone has a true friend, they can feel almost certain that those concerns will be cared for even after they’re gone; thus, a person has, in a sense, two lives in their ambitions. A person has a body, and that body is limited to a specific place; but where there is friendship, all aspects of life are, so to speak, delegated to him and his representative, as he can carry them out through his friend. How many things are there that a person cannot gracefully say or do themselves? It’s hard to mention one’s own strengths with any modesty, let alone brag about them; sometimes it’s difficult to ask for help or beg, and many similar situations arise; but all these things sound appropriate coming from a friend’s lips, which would be awkward for the person themselves. Similarly, a person holds many inherent roles they cannot shake off. A person can only address their son as a father; their wife as a husband; their enemy under specific terms; while a friend can speak based on the situation, not according to the role. To list all these things would take forever; I have given the guideline for situations where a person cannot properly perform their own role. Without a friend, they might as well leave the scene.
XXVIII.—OF EXPENSE.
Riches are for spending, and spending for honor and good actions; therefore, extraordinary expense must be limited by the worth of the occasion; for voluntary undoing may be as well for a man’s country as for the kingdom of heaven; but ordinary expense ought to be limited by a man’s estate, and governed with such regard, as it be within his compass, and not subject to deceit and abuse of servants, and ordered to the best show, that the bills may be less than the estimation abroad. Certainly, if a man will keep but of even hand, his ordinary180 expenses ought to be but to the half of his receipts; and, if he think to wax rich, but to the third part. It is no baseness for the greatest to descend and look into their own estate. Some forbear it, not upon negligence alone, but doubting to bring themselves into melancholy, in respect they shall find it broken; but wounds cannot be cured without searching. He that cannot look into his own estate at all, had need both choose well those whom he employeth, and change them often; for new are more timorous, and less subtle. He that can look into his estate but seldom, it behooveth him to turn all to certainties. A man had need, if he be plentiful in some kind of expense, to be as saving again in some other: as, if he be plentiful in diet, to be saving in apparel; if he be plentiful in the hall, to be saving in the stable; and the like. For he that is plentiful in expenses of all kinds, will hardly be preserved from decay. In clearing324 of a man’s estate, he may as well hurt himself in being too sudden, as in letting it run on too long; for hasty selling is commonly as disadvantageable as interest. Besides, he that clears at once will relapse; for, finding himself out of straits, he will revert to his customs; but he that cleareth by degrees induceth a habit of frugality, and gaineth as well upon his mind as upon his estate. Certainly, who hath a state to repair, may not despise small things; and, commonly, it is less dishonorable to abridge petty 181charges, than to stoop to petty gettings. A man ought warily to begin charges, which once begun will continue; but in matters that return not, he may be more magnificent.
Riches is meant for spending, and spending is for honor and good deeds; therefore, extravagant expenses should be limited by the significance of the occasion. Acting generously can benefit a person's country just as much as it can the kingdom of heaven; however, regular expenses should match a person's financial situation and be managed wisely, so they stay within their means and aren’t subject to fraud or exploitation by servants, and arranged in a way that keeps costs lower than public perception. If a person aims to maintain balance, their regular180 expenses should typically be half of what they earn; if they want to save up, then only a third. It’s not beneath the greatest of individuals to check their own finances. Some avoid this, not just out of negligence, but out of fear of discovering their situation is worse than expected. Yet, wounds cannot heal without investigation. If someone can’t examine their own finances at all, they need to be very careful about who they hire and be prepared to change them frequently, as new hires are often more cautious and less cunning. For those who check their finances infrequently, it’s best to turn everything into certainties. If a person has high expenses in one area, they should be frugal in another: for example, if they spend lavishly on food, they should cut back on clothing; if they are generous with meals, they should be economical in their transportation, and so on. Those who indulge in all types of expenses will find it hard to avoid financial decline. When assessing a person’s finances, being too hasty can be just as harmful as procrastinating; for selling hastily is often as disadvantageous as taking on debt. Moreover, someone who resolves their finances all at once may fall back into their old habits; conversely, someone who gradually reduces expenses develops a habit of frugality, benefiting both their mindset and their finances. Certainly, anyone needing to fix their situation must not overlook small expenses; generally, it’s less shameful to cut down on small costs than to settle for small earnings. A person should be cautious when starting ongoing expenses, as once begun, they tend to stick; however, in matters that don’t recur, they can afford to be more extravagant.
XXIX.—OF THE TRUE GREATNESS OF KINGDOMS AND ESTATES.
The speech of Themistocles, the Athenian, which was haughty and arrogant, in taking so much to himself, had been a grave and wise observation and censure, applied at large to others. Desired at a feast to touch a lute, he said, “He could not fiddle, but yet he could make a small town a great city.”325 These words (holpen a little with a metaphor) may express two different abilities in those that deal in business of estate; for if a true survey be taken of counsellors and statesmen, there may be found (though rarely) those which can make a small state great, and yet cannot fiddle: as, on the other side there will be found a great many that can fiddle very cunningly, but yet are so far from being able to make a small state great, as their gift lieth the other way,—to bring a great and flourishing estate to ruin and decay. And certainly, those degenerate arts and shifts, whereby many counsellors and governors gain both favor with their masters and 182estimation with the vulgar, deserve no better name than fiddling; being things rather pleasing for the time, and graceful to themselves only, than tending to the weal and advancement of the state which they serve. There are also (no doubt) counsellors and governors which may be held sufficient, “negotiis pares,”326 able to manage affairs, and to keep them from precipices and manifest inconveniences; which, nevertheless, are far from the ability to raise and amplify an estate in power, means, and fortune. But be the workmen what they may be, let us speak of the work; that is, the true greatness of kingdoms and estates, and the means thereof. An argument fit for great and mighty princes to have in their hand; to the end, that neither by overmeasuring their forces, they lose themselves in vain enterprises: nor, on the other side, by undervaluing them, they descend to fearful and pusillanimous counsels.
The speech of Themistocles, the Athenian, was arrogant and self-important, as he addressed himself to others. When invited to play the lute at a feast, he remarked, “I can't play, but I can turn a small town into a great city.”325 These words (with a bit of metaphor) may highlight two different skills in those involved in governance; for a careful assessment of advisors and politicians may reveal (though rarely) those who can elevate a small state, yet lack musical ability: on the flip side, there are many who can play very skillfully but are far from being able to elevate a small state—they tend to bring a thriving estate to ruin and decline instead. Indeed, those corrupt tactics and tricks that allow many advisors and leaders to gain favor with their superiors and respect from the masses deserve no better label than fiddling; they are more about short-term enjoyment and personal grace than about benefiting and advancing the state they serve. There are also, without a doubt, advisors and leaders who may be considered competent, “negotiis pares,”326 capable of managing affairs and preventing serious mishaps; however, they are far from being able to enhance and expand a state’s power, resources, and fortune. But regardless of who the workers may be, let’s focus on the work itself; that is, the true greatness of kingdoms and estates, and the methods to achieve it. This is a topic suitable for great and powerful princes to consider, so they neither overestimate their capabilities and get caught up in futile ventures nor underestimate them and resort to fearful and timid strategies.
The greatness of an estate, in bulk and territory, doth fall under measure; and the greatness of finances and revenue doth fall under computation. The population may appear by musters, and the number and greatness of cities and towns by cards and maps; but yet there is not anything amongst civil affairs more subject to error than the right valuation and true judgment concerning the power and forces of an estate. The kingdom of heaven is compared, not to any great kernel, or nut, but to 183a grain of mustard-seed;327 which is one of the least grains, but hath in it a property and spirit hastily to get up and spread. So are there states great in territory, and yet not apt to enlarge or command; and some that have but a small dimension of stem, and yet apt to be the foundations of great monarchies.
The size of an estate, in terms of land and area, can be measured, and the size of finances and income can be calculated. The population can be determined by census, and the number and size of cities and towns can be seen on maps; however, when it comes to civil matters, nothing is more prone to error than accurately assessing the value and true judgment about the strength and resources of an estate. The kingdom of heaven is compared not to a large kernel or nut, but to a 183a grain of mustard-seed;327 which is one of the tiniest seeds, yet it has the ability and energy to grow quickly and spread. Similarly, there are states that may be large in territory but are not able to expand or wield power; and others that have only a small amount of land, yet can serve as the foundation for great empires.
Walled towns, stored arsenals and armories, goodly races of horse, chariots of war, elephants, ordnance, artillery, and the like; all this is but a sheep in a lion’s skin, except the breed and disposition of the people be stout and warlike. Nay, number itself in armies importeth not much, where the people is of weak courage; for, as Virgil saith, “It never troubles a wolf how many the sheep be.”328 The army of the Persians in the plains of Arbela was such a vast sea of people, as it did somewhat astonish the commanders in Alexander’s army, who came to him, therefore, and wished him to set upon them by night; but he answered, “He would not pilfer the victory;” and the defeat was easy.329—When Tigranes,330 the Armenian, being encamped 184upon a hill with four hundred thousand men, discovered the army of the Romans, being not above fourteen thousand, marching towards him, he made himself merry with it, and said, “Yonder men are too many for an ambassage, and too few for a fight;” but before the sun set, he found them enow to give him the chase with infinite slaughter. Many are the examples of the great odds between number and courage; so that a man may truly make a judgment, that the principal point of greatness in any state is to have a race of military men. Neither is money the sinews of war (as it is trivially said), where the sinews of men’s arms, in base and effeminate people, are failing: for Solon said well to Crœsus (when in ostentation he showed him his gold), “Sir, if any other come that hath better iron than you, he will be master of all this gold.” Therefore, let any prince or state, think soberly of his forces, except his militia of natives be of good and valiant soldiers; and let princes, on the other side, that have subjects of martial disposition, know their own strength, unless they be otherwise wanting unto themselves. As for mercenary forces (which is the help in this case), all examples show that, whatsoever estate or prince doth rest upon them, he may spread his feathers for a time, but he will mew them soon after.
Walled towns, stockpiled weapons and armories, fine horses, war chariots, elephants, cannons, artillery, and the like; all of this is just a wolf in sheep's clothing unless the people are brave and ready for battle. Even the size of an army doesn’t mean much if the soldiers are timid; as Virgil said, "It never troubles a wolf how many the sheep are." The Persian army in the plains of Arbela was such a massive sea of people that it surprised the commanders in Alexander's army, who came to him asking to attack at night. But he replied that he wouldn't "steal the victory," and the defeat was easy. When Tigranes, the Armenian, was camped on a hill with four hundred thousand men and spotted the Roman army of only about fourteen thousand approaching, he joked, saying, "Those guys are too many for an ambassador and too few for a fight." But by sunset, he realized they were enough to chase him down with devastating losses. There are many examples showing the significant difference between numbers and courage; thus, one can accurately conclude that the key to greatness in any state is to have a strong military class. Moreover, money isn’t the primary driver of war (as is commonly claimed) when the strength of men from weak and effeminate people is lacking. Solon wisely told Crœsus (when he flaunted his gold), "Sir, if someone else comes with better iron than you, he will control all this gold." Hence, any prince or state should seriously consider their forces, ensuring that their native militia consists of strong and courageous soldiers. And those princes with subjects inclined to war should recognize their own power, unless they are undermining themselves in other ways. As for mercenary forces (which might seem like a solution), history shows that any ruler or state relying on them may have a temporary advantage, but they will soon find themselves on the losing end.
The blessing of Judah and Issachar331 will never 185meet; that the same people, or nation, should be both the lion’s whelp and the ass between burdens; neither will it be, that a people overlaid with taxes should ever become valiant and martial. It is true that taxes, levied by consent of the estate, do abate men’s courage less; as it hath been seen notably in the excises of the Low Countries, and, in some degree, in the subsidies332 of England; for, you must note, that we speak now of the heart, and not of the purse; so that, although the same tribute and tax, laid by consent or by imposing, be all one to the purse, yet it works diversely upon the courage. So that you may conclude, that no people overcharged with tribute is fit for empire.
The blessing of Judah and Issachar331 will never 185come together; it’s impossible for the same group or nation to be both the lion's cub and the donkey carrying heavy loads. A population burdened with taxes will never be brave and ready for battle. It's true that taxes imposed with the consent of the people do diminish men's courage less; as we’ve seen notably in the taxes in the Low Countries, and to some extent, in the subsidies332 of England. You must understand that we are currently discussing the spirit, not the wallet; so, even though the same tribute and tax, whether agreed upon or imposed, feels the same financially, it affects courage differently. Therefore, you can conclude that no people overwhelmed by taxes is suitable for leadership.
Let states that aim at greatness take heed how their nobility and gentlemen do multiply too fast; for that maketh the common subject grow to be a peasant and base swain, driven out of heart, and, in effect, but the gentleman’s laborer. Even as you may see in coppice woods; if you leave your staddles333 too thick, you shall never have clean underwood, but shrubs and bushes. So in countries, if the gentlemen be too many, the commons will be base; and you will bring it to that, that not the 186hundred poll will be fit for a helmet, especially as to the infantry, which is the nerve of an army; and so there will be great population and little strength. This which I speak of, hath been nowhere better seen than by comparing of England and France; whereof England, though far less in territory and population, hath been, nevertheless, an overmatch; in regard, the middle people of England make good soldiers, which the peasants of France do not. And herein the device of King Henry the Seventh (whereof I have spoken largely in the history of his life) was profound and admirable; in making farms and houses of husbandry of a standard, that is, maintained with such a proportion of land unto them as may breed a subject to live in convenient plenty, and no servile condition, and to keep the plough in the hands of the owners, and not mere hirelings; and thus, indeed, you shall attain to Virgil’s character, which he gives to ancient Italy:—
Let states that aspire to greatness pay attention to how their nobility and gentlemen are increasing too quickly; because that turns the average person into a peasant, disheartened, and effectively just the gentleman’s laborer. It's like coppice woods; if you let your staddles333 grow too thick, you’ll never get clean undergrowth, just shrubs and bushes. Similarly, in countries where there are too many gentlemen, the common people will be lowly, and it will come to a point where not even a hundred of them will be fit to wear a helmet, especially in terms of infantry, which is the backbone of an army; thus, there will be a large population but little strength. This point has been illustrated well by comparing England and France; even though England is far smaller in land and population, it has still proven to be superior because the middle-class people of England make good soldiers, while the peasants in France do not. King Henry the Seventh’s approach (which I have discussed extensively in his life history) was insightful and commendable; he established farms and agricultural houses with a standard, meaning they were supported by a proportionate amount of land that allowed subjects to live in decent comfort without being in servitude, ensuring that the plow stayed in the hands of the owners and not mere hired workers; and thus, you will indeed reach the ideal described by Virgil regarding ancient Italy:—
Neither is that state (which, for anything I know, is almost peculiar to England, and hardly to be found anywhere else, except it be, perhaps, in Poland), to be passed over; I mean the state of free servants and attendants upon noblemen and gentlemen, which are noways inferior unto the yeomanry 187for arms; and, therefore, out of all question, the splendor and magnificence, and great retinues, and hospitality of noblemen and gentlemen received into custom, do much conduce unto martial greatness; whereas, contrariwise, the close and reserved living of noblemen and gentlemen causeth a penury of military forces.
Neither is that situation (which, as far as I know, is almost unique to England and hardly found anywhere else, except maybe in Poland) to be overlooked; I'm talking about the situation of free servants and attendants of noblemen and gentlemen, who are in no way inferior to the yeomanry 187 in terms of arms. Therefore, it's clear that the splendor, grandeur, large entourages, and hospitality of noblemen and gentlemen that have become customary significantly contribute to military strength; while, on the other hand, the closed-off and reserved lifestyles of noblemen and gentlemen lead to a lack of military forces.
By all means, it is to be procured that the trunk of Nebuchadnezzar’s tree of monarchy335 be great enough to bear the branches and the boughs; that is, that the natural subjects of the crown, or state, bear a sufficient proportion to the stranger subjects that they govern. Therefore, all states that are liberal of naturalization towards strangers are fit for empire; for to think that a handful of people can, with the greatest courage and policy in the world, embrace too large extent of dominion, it may hold for a time, but it will fail suddenly. The Spartans were a nice people in point of naturalization; whereby, while they kept their compass, they stood firm; but when they did spread, and their boughs were becoming too great for their stem, they became a windfall upon the sudden. Never any state was, 188in this point, so open to receive strangers into their body as were the Romans; therefore, it sorted with them accordingly, for they grew to the greatest monarchy. Their manner was to grant naturalization (which they called “jus civitatis”),336 and to grant it in the highest degree, that is, not only “jus commercii,”337 “jus connubii,”338 “jus hæreditatis;”339 but, also, “jus suffragii,”340 and “jus honorum;”341 and this not to singular persons alone, but likewise to whole families; yea, to cities and sometimes to nations. Add to this their custom of plantation of colonies, whereby the Roman plant was removed into the soil of other nations, and, putting both constitutions together, you will say, that it was not the Romans that spread upon the world, but it was the world that spread upon the Romans; and that was the sure way of greatness. I have marvelled sometimes at Spain, how they clasp and contain so large dominions with so few natural Spaniards;342 but sure the whole compass of Spain is a very great body of a tree, far above Rome and Sparta at the first; and, besides, though they have not had that usage to naturalize liberally, yet they have that which is next to it; that is, to employ, almost 189indifferently, all nations in their militia of ordinary soldiers; yea, and sometimes in their highest commands; nay, it seemeth at this instant they are sensible of this want of natives, as by the pragmatical sanction,343 now published, appeareth.
By all means, it's important to ensure that the trunk of Nebuchadnezzar’s tree of monarchy335 is large enough to support the branches and boughs; that is, that the native subjects of the crown, or state, are sufficiently numerous in relation to the foreign subjects they govern. Therefore, all states that are generous with naturalization towards foreigners are suited for empire; because to believe that a small group of people can, with the greatest bravery and strategy in the world, manage a vast area of control might work for a time, but it will ultimately fail quickly. The Spartans had a selective approach to naturalization; while they kept their limits, they remained strong; but once they expanded and their branches grew too large for their trunk, they met a sudden downfall. Never has there been a state as open to accepting foreigners as the Romans; hence, it worked out well for them, as they grew into the greatest empire. Their approach was to grant naturalization (which they called “jus civitatis”),336 and to grant it to the fullest extent, meaning not just “jus commercii,”337 “jus connubii,”338 “jus hæreditatis;”339 but also “jus suffragii,”340 and “jus honorum;”341 and this was granted not just to individuals, but also to entire families; indeed, to cities and sometimes nations. Additionally, their practice of establishing colonies meant that the Roman influence spread into the lands of other nations, and combining both methods, one could argue it wasn’t the Romans who spread out into the world, but rather the world that expanded onto the Romans; and that was the sure path to greatness. I have sometimes wondered about Spain and how they manage to hold such vast territories with so few native Spaniards;342 but certainly the entire area of Spain is a significantly larger body than what Rome and Sparta had at their peak; and, even though they have not traditionally been very liberal with naturalization, they do have a similar approach; that is, to employ almost all nations in their regular army; yes, even sometimes in their highest positions; it seems that right now they are aware of this lack of natives, as indicated by the recently published pragmatic sanction,343 now published.
It is certain that sedentary and within-door arts, and delicate manufactures (that require rather the finger than the arm), have in their nature a contrariety to a military disposition; and, generally, all warlike people are a little idle, and love danger better than travail; neither must they be too much broken of it, if they shall be preserved in vigor. Therefore, it was great advantage in the ancient states of Sparta, Athens, Rome, and others, that they had the use of slaves, which commonly did rid those manufactures; but that is abolished, in greatest part, by the Christian law. That which cometh nearest to it is, to leave those arts chiefly to strangers (which, for that purpose, are the more easily to be received), and to contain the principal bulk of the vulgar natives within those three kinds, tillers of the ground, free servants, and handicraftsmen of strong and manly arts; as smiths, masons, carpenters, &c., not reckoning professed soldiers.
It’s clear that sedentary and indoor activities, along with delicate crafts that rely more on fingers than strength, naturally clash with a military mindset. Generally, warlike people tend to be somewhat idle and prefer danger over hard work; they shouldn’t be too far removed from this mentality if they want to stay vigorous. Hence, it was a significant advantage in the ancient states of Sparta, Athens, Rome, and others to have slaves who typically handled these crafts. However, that practice has largely been abolished by Christian law. What comes closest to this now is leaving those crafts mainly to outsiders (who are more easily accepted for this purpose) and keeping the majority of local people engaged in three main roles: farmers, free laborers, and skilled laborers practicing strong and robust trades—like blacksmiths, masons, carpenters, etc.—not counting professional soldiers.
But, above all, for empire and greatness, it importeth most, that a nation do profess arms as their principal honor, study, and occupation; for the 190things which we formerly have spoken of are but habilitations344 towards arms; and what is habilitation without intention and act? Romulus, after his death (as they report or feign), sent a present to the Romans, that, above all, they should intend345 arms, and then they should prove the greatest empire of the world. The fabric of the state of Sparta was wholly (though not wisely) framed and composed to that scope and end; the Persians and Macedonians had it for a flash;346 the Gauls, Germans, Goths, Saxons, Normans, and others, had it for a time; the Turks have it at this day, though in great declination. Of Christian Europe, they that have it are in effect only the Spaniards; but it is so plain, that every man profiteth in that he most intendeth, that it needeth not to be stood upon. It is enough to point at it, that no nation which doth not directly profess arms, may look to have greatness fall into their mouths; and, on the other side, it is a most certain oracle of time, that those states that continue long in that profession (as the Romans and Turks principally have done), do wonders; and those that have professed arms but for an age have, notwithstanding, commonly attained that greatness in that age which maintained them long after, when their profession and exercise of arms had grown to decay.
But most importantly, for empire and greatness, it matters most that a nation considers arms as their main honor, study, and occupation; because the things we've discussed before are merely preparations for arms; and what is preparation without intention and action? Romulus, after his death (as the story goes), sent a message to the Romans, urging them to focus on arms, and then they would become the greatest empire in the world. The structure of the Spartan state was entirely (although not wisely) built for that purpose; the Persians and Macedonians held it for a brief time; the Gauls, Germans, Goths, Saxons, Normans, and others had it for a while; the Turks still have it today, although it’s greatly declining. In Christian Europe, the only ones who truly possess it are essentially the Spaniards; but it's so obvious that everyone benefits from what they focus on the most, that it doesn’t need further emphasis. It’s enough to note that no nation that doesn’t openly embrace arms can expect greatness to come to them; and conversely, it’s a well-known truth over time, that states which remain committed to that profession (like the Romans and Turks have mostly done) achieve remarkable things; and those that have only embraced arms for a short time have still often reached a level of greatness during that time that sustained them long after, even when their commitment and practice of arms had started to decline.
Incident to this point is, for a state to have those 191laws or customs which may reach forth unto them just occasions (as may be pretended) of war; for there is that justice imprinted in the nature of men, that they enter not upon wars (whereof so many calamities do ensue), but upon some, at the least specious grounds and quarrels. The Turk hath at hand, for cause of war, the propagation of his law or sect, a quarrel that he may always command. The Romans, though they esteemed the extending the limits of their empire to be great honor to their generals when it was done, yet they never rested upon that alone to begin a war. First, therefore, let nations that pretend to greatness have this, that they be sensible of wrongs, either upon borderers, merchants, or politic ministers; and that they sit not too long upon a provocation: secondly, let them be pressed,347 and ready to give aids and succors to their confederates, as it ever was with the Romans; insomuch, as if the confederate had leagues defensive with divers other states, and, upon invasion offered, did implore their aids severally, yet the Romans would ever be the foremost, and leave it to none other to have the honor. As for the wars, which were anciently made on the behalf of a kind of party, or tacit conformity of estate, I do not see how they may be well justified: as when the Romans made a war for the liberty of Græcia; or, when the Lacedæmonians and Athenians made wars to set up or pull down democracies and oligar192chies; or when wars were made by foreigners, under the pretence of justice or protection, to deliver the subjects of others from tyranny and oppression, and the like. Let it suffice, that no estate expect to be great, that is not awake upon any just occasion of arming.
Related to this point is that for a state to have laws or customs that might justify going to war, there is a sense of justice ingrained in human nature, leading them not to engage in wars (which bring many calamities) without at least some plausible reasons. The Turk uses the spread of his law or sect as a reason for war, a cause he can always invoke. The Romans, while they valued expanding their empire as a great honor for their generals, never relied solely on that to start a war. Therefore, first, nations that claim greatness should be aware of injustices, whether against their borders, merchants, or political representatives, and not dwell too long on a provocation. Secondly, they should be compelled and prepared to provide aid and support to their allies, as the Romans always did; so much so that if an ally had defensive treaties with various other states and called for their help due to an invasion, the Romans would always be the first to respond and would not leave the honor to anyone else. As for wars fought in the past for a particular faction or implicit agreement among states, I don't see how they can be justified well; like when the Romans waged war for the freedom of Greece, or when the Spartans and Athenians made wars to establish or tear down democracies and oligarchies, or when foreign powers waged wars under the pretense of justice or protection to free others' subjects from tyranny and oppression. Let it be clear that no state can expect to be great if it does not remain vigilant for any just reason to arm itself.
Nobody can be healthful without exercise, neither natural body nor politic; and, certainly, to a kingdom, or estate, a just and honorable war is the true exercise. A civil war, indeed, is like the heat of a fever; but a foreign war is like the heat of exercise, and serveth to keep the body in health; for, in a slothful peace, both courages will effeminate and manners corrupt. But, howsoever it be for happiness, without all question for greatness, it maketh to be still, for the most part, in arms; and the strength of a veteran army (though it be a chargeable business) always on foot, is that which commonly giveth the law, or, at least, the reputation amongst all neighbor states, as may well be seen in Spain,348 which hath had, in one part or other, a veteran army, almost continually, now by the space of sixscore years.
Nobody can be healthy without exercise, whether it's an individual's body or a nation's; and for a kingdom or state, a just and honorable war is the real exercise. A civil war, indeed, is like having a fever; but a foreign war is like the warmth of exercise and helps keep the body healthy; because in a lazy peace, both bravery will weaken and morals will decline. But, regardless of the impact on happiness, without a doubt for greatness, it benefits to mostly be armed; and the strength of a seasoned army (even though it's costly) constantly ready is what usually sets the standard, or at least the reputation, among neighboring states, as can be clearly seen in Spain,348 which has maintained a veteran army almost continuously for the last sixty years.
To be master of the sea is an abridgment of a monarchy. Cicero, writing to Atticus, of Pompey’s preparation against Cæsar, saith, “Consilium Pompeii plane Themistocleum est; putat enim, qui mari 193potitur, eum rerum potiri;349 and, without doubt, Pompey had tired out Cæsar, if upon vain confidence he had not left that way. We see the great effects of battles by sea. The battle of Actium decided the empire of the world: the battle of Lepanto arrested the greatness of the Turk. There be many examples where sea-fights have been final to the war; but this is when princes, or states, have set up their rest upon the battles. But thus much is certain, that he that commands the sea is at great liberty, and may take as much and as little of the war as he will; whereas, those that be strongest by land are many times, nevertheless, in great straits. Surely, at this day, with us of Europe, the vantage of strength at sea (which is one of the principal dowries of this kingdom of Great Britain) is great; both because most of the kingdoms of Europe are not merely inland, but girt with the sea most part of their compass; and because the wealth of both Indies seems, in great part, but an accessary to the command of the seas.
To control the sea is a simplified form of monarchy. Cicero, writing to Atticus about Pompey’s preparations against Caesar, says, “Pompey’s strategy is very much like Themistocles; he believes that whoever controls the sea controls everything.” Without a doubt, Pompey could have worn Caesar down if he hadn’t foolishly abandoned that path. We see the significant outcomes of naval battles. The battle of Actium determined the fate of the world’s empire; the battle of Lepanto halted the Turkish expansion. There are many examples where naval battles have been decisive in a war, especially when leaders or nations stake their future on these battles. But one thing is clear: whoever controls the sea has great freedom and can engage in the war as much or as little as they want, while those who are strongest on land often find themselves in difficult situations. Indeed, today in Europe, having strength at sea (which is one of the key advantages of Great Britain) is significant; mainly because most European kingdoms are not just landlocked but bordered by the sea for most of their area, and because the wealth of both India regions seems mainly to hinge on controlling the seas.
The wars of latter ages seem to be made in the dark, in respect of the glory and honor which reflected upon men from the wars in ancient time. There be now, for martial encouragement, some degrees and orders of chivalry, which, nevertheless, are conferred promiscuously upon soldiers and no 194soldiers; and some remembrance, perhaps, upon the escutcheon, and some hospitals for maimed soldiers, and such like things; but in ancient times, the trophies erected upon the place of the victory; the funeral laudatives,350 and monuments for those that died in the wars; the crowns and garlands personal; the style of emperor which the great kings of the world after borrowed; the triumphs of the generals upon their return; the great donatives and largesses upon the disbanding of the armies; were things able to inflame all men’s courages. But, above all, that of the triumph amongst the Romans was not pageants or gaudery, but one of the wisest and noblest institutions that ever was; for it contained three things: honor to the general, riches to the treasury out of the spoils, and donatives to the army. But that honor, perhaps, were not fit for monarchies, except it be in the person of the monarch himself, or his sons; as it came to pass in the times of the Roman emperors, who did impropriate the actual triumphs to themselves and their sons, for such wars as they did achieve in person, and left only for wars achieved by subjects, some triumphal garments and ensigns to the general.
The wars in recent times seem to lack the glory and honor that ancient wars brought to men. There are some awards and orders of chivalry meant to motivate soldiers, but these are often given indiscriminately to both soldiers and non-soldiers. There might be some recognition, like symbols on shields and hospitals for injured soldiers, but in ancient times, there were real trophies set up at the victory sites, eulogies for those who died in battle, personal crowns and garlands, the title of emperor that great kings later adopted, the triumphant returns of generals, and generous gifts given when armies were disbanded—all of these inspired courage in people. But above all, the Roman triumph was not just a show; it was one of the smartest and most noble institutions ever created. It included three key elements: honor for the general, revenue for the treasury from the spoils, and gifts to the army. However, such honor might not be suitable for monarchies unless given to the monarch or his heirs, as happened during the Roman emperors' times, who reserved the actual triumphs for themselves and their sons for the wars they fought personally, leaving only some garments and insignia for generals who led the wars fought by others.
To conclude. No man can by care-taking (as the Scripture saith) “add a cubit to his stature,”351 in this little model of a man’s body; but in the great frame of kingdoms and commonwealths, it is 195in the power of princes, or estates, to add amplitude and greatness to their kingdom; for, by introducing such ordinances, constitutions, and customs, as we have now touched, they may sow greatness to their posterity and succession: but these things are commonly not observed, but left to take their chance.
To conclude, no one can, through worry (as the Scripture says), “add a cubit to his stature,”351 in this small representation of a man's body; however, in the larger context of kingdoms and nations, it is within the power of rulers or governments to enhance and expand their realm. By implementing the types of laws, regulations, and traditions we've just discussed, they can create greatness for their descendants and successors. Unfortunately, these opportunities are often overlooked and left to chance.
XXX.—OF REGIMEN OF HEALTH.
There is a wisdom in this beyond the rules of physic. A man’s own observation, what he finds good of, and what he finds hurt of, is the best physic to preserve health; but it is a safer conclusion to say, “This agreeth not well with me, therefore I will not continue it;” than this, “I find no offence of this, therefore I may use it;” for strength of nature in youth passeth over many excesses which are owing352 a man till his age. Discern of the coming on of years, and think not to do the same things still; for age will not be defied. Beware of sudden change in any great point of diet, and, if necessity enforce it, fit the rest to it; for it is a secret both in nature and state, that it is safer to change many things than one. Examine thy customs of diet, sleep, exercise, apparel, and the like; and try, in any thing thou shalt judge hurtful, to discontinue it by little and little; but so, as if thou dost find any 196inconvenience by the change, thou come back to it again; for it is hard to distinguish that which is generally held good and wholesome, from that which is good particularly,353 and fit for thine own body. To be free-minded and cheerfully disposed at hours of meat, and of sleep, and of exercise, is one of the best precepts of long lasting. As for the passions and studies of the mind, avoid envy, anxious fears, anger fretting inwards, subtle and knotty inquisitions, joys, and exhilarations in excess, sadness not communicated. Entertain hopes, mirth rather than joy, variety of delights, rather than surfeit of them; wonder and admiration, and therefore novelties; studies that fill the mind with splendid and illustrious objects, as histories, fables, and contemplations of nature. If you fly physic in health altogether, it will be too strange for your body when you shall need it; if you make it too familiar, it will work no extraordinary effect when sickness cometh. I commend rather some diet, for certain seasons, than frequent use of physic, except it be grown into a custom; for those diets alter the body more, and trouble it less. Despise no new accident354 in your body, but ask opinion355 of it. In sickness, respect health principally; and in health, action; for those that put their bodies to endure in health, may, in most sicknesses which are not very sharp, be cured 197only with diet and tendering. Celsus could never have spoken it as a physician, had he not been a wise man withal, when he giveth it for one of the great precepts of health and lasting, that a man do vary and interchange contraries, but with an inclination to the more benign extreme. Use fasting and full eating, but rather full eating;356 watching and sleep, but rather sleep; sitting and exercise, but rather exercise, and the like; so shall nature be cherished, and yet taught masteries.357 Physicians are some of them so pleasing and conformable to the humor of the patient, as they press not the true cure of the disease; and some other are so regular in proceeding according to art for the disease, as they respect not sufficiently the condition of the patient. Take one of a middle temper; or, if it may not be found in one man, combine two of either sort; and forget not to call as well the best acquainted with your body, as the best reputed of for his faculty.
There is a wisdom in this that goes beyond medical rules. A person’s own observations—what they find beneficial and what they find harmful—are the best way to maintain health; but it’s safer to conclude, "This doesn't agree with me, so I won't continue it," rather than, "I don’t feel any negative effects from this, so I can keep using it." The strength of youth allows a person to endure many excesses that affect them later in life. Recognize the onset of age and don’t think you can keep doing the same things, because age won’t be ignored. Be cautious of sudden dietary changes; if necessary, adapt the rest of your habits accordingly, as it’s generally safer to change several things at once rather than just one. Review your habits regarding diet, sleep, exercise, clothing, and so on; try to gradually eliminate anything you think is harmful, but if you experience negative effects from changing, go back to how you were before, because it’s tough to tell what’s generally considered good and healthy from what’s specifically good for you. Being open-minded and in a good mood during meal times, sleep, and exercise is one of the best guidelines for longevity. As for your thoughts and emotional states, steer clear of envy, anxious worries, inward anger, complicated questioning, excessive joy and excitement, and unshared sadness. Nurture hope, prefer cheerfulness over joy, seek various pleasures rather than overindulgence; embrace wonder and admiration, and hence new experiences; pursue studies that enrich the mind with impressive and enlightening topics, like histories, fables, and explorations of nature. If you completely avoid medicine when healthy, it will feel too foreign to your body when you need it; if you become too familiar with it, it will have no special effect when illness strikes. I recommend following a specific diet for certain periods rather than frequently depending on medicine unless it’s become a habit; these diets will change the body more and disturb it less. Don’t dismiss any new issues that arise in your body; seek advice about them. In sickness, prioritize health; and in health, keep active; because those who push their bodies during good health can, in most cases of mild illness, be restored through diet and care. Celsus wouldn’t have stated this as a physician if he weren’t also a wise man when he said one of the key principles of health is to vary and alternate opposites but lean towards the more favorable end of the spectrum. Practice fasting and eating fully, but favor eating fully; balance being awake and sleeping, but lean more towards sleep; mix sitting and exercising, but prefer exercise, and treat similar cases the same way; this way, you’ll care for your nature while also teaching it discipline. Some physicians are so agreeable and accommodating to the patient’s mood that they neglect the true treatment for the illness; others are too strict in following medical principles that they don’t sufficiently consider the patient’s condition. Seek a physician with a balanced temperament; or, if you can’t find that in one person, combine two who fit either description; and don’t forget to consult someone who is familiar with your body, as well as someone who is respected for their expertise.
XXXI.—OF SUSPICION.
Suspicions amongst thoughts are like bats amongst birds, they ever fly by twilight. Certainly they are to be repressed, or at the least well guarded; for they cloud the mind, they lose friends, and they 198check with business, whereby business cannot go on currently and constantly. They dispose kings to tyranny, husbands to jealousy, wise men to irresolution and melancholy. They are defects, not in the heart but in the brain; for they take place in the stoutest natures, as in the example of Henry the Seventh of England. There was not a more suspicious man, nor a more stout, and in such a composition they do small hurt; for commonly they are not admitted, but with examination, whether they be likely or no; but in fearful natures they gain ground too fast. There is nothing makes a man suspect much, more than to know little; and, therefore, men should remedy suspicion by procuring to know more, and not to keep their suspicions in smother. What would men have? Do they think those they employ and deal with are saints? Do they not think they will have their own ends, and be truer to themselves than to them? Therefore, there is no better way to moderate suspicions, than to account upon such suspicions as true, and yet to bridle them as false:358 for so far a man ought to make use of suspicions as to provide, as if that should be true that he suspects, yet it may do him no hurt. Suspicions that the mind of itself gathers are but buzzes; but suspicions that are artificially nourished, and put into men’s heads by the tales and whisperings of others, have stings. Certainly, the best mean, to clear the way in this same wood of suspicions, is frankly to communicate 199them with the party that he suspects: for thereby he shall be sure to know more of the truth of them than he did before; and, withal, shall make that party more circumspect, not to give further cause of suspicion. But this would not be done to men of base natures; for they, if they find themselves once suspected, will never be true. The Italian says, “Sospetto licentia fede;”359 as if suspicion did give a passport to faith; but it ought rather to kindle it to discharge itself.
Suspicion in our thoughts are like bats among birds, always flitting about at twilight. They definitely need to be kept in check, or at least carefully managed; because they cloud our thinking, ruin friendships, and disrupt our work, making it hard to function consistently. They lead kings to tyranny, husbands to jealousy, and even wise people to doubt and sadness. These are flaws not of the heart but of the mind; they can affect even the strongest personalities, as seen in the case of Henry the Seventh of England. He was both a very suspicious man and a strong one, and in such a combination, they do little harm; since typically, these suspicions aren’t accepted without scrutiny, whether they seem plausible or not; but in fearful people, they take root too quickly. Nothing makes a person more suspicious than a lack of knowledge; therefore, people should address their suspicions by seeking more information, rather than burying their doubts. What do people expect? Do they think that those they work with and rely on are perfect? Don’t they realize that others will pursue their own interests and be more loyal to themselves than to them? Hence, the best way to manage suspicions is to acknowledge them as if they are true, while also controlling them as if they are false: 358 because a person should use suspicions to prepare as if what they suspect is real, yet it may not harm them. Suspicions that arise naturally are just whispers; but suspicions that are deliberately fueled by gossip and rumors have real consequences. The most effective way to navigate this tangled forest of suspicions is to openly discuss them with the person in question: this way, they’ll learn more about the truth than they knew before, and it will also make that person more careful, reducing further reasons for suspicion. But this shouldn’t be done with untrustworthy individuals; because if they sense that they are being doubted, they will never be truthful. The Italian saying goes, “Sospetto licentia fede;” 359 suggesting that suspicion grants permission to doubt; but it should instead ignite the need to clarify and resolve doubt.
XXXII.—OF DISCOURSE.
Some in their discourse desire rather commendation of wit, in being able to hold all arguments,360 than of judgment, in discerning what is true; as if it were a praise to know what might be said and not what should be thought. Some have certain commonplaces and themes, wherein they are good, and want variety; which kind of poverty is for the most part tedious, and, when it is once perceived, ridiculous. The honorablest part of talk is to give the occasion,361 and again to moderate and pass to somewhat else; for then a man leads the dance. It is good in discourse, and speech of conversation, to vary and 200intermingle speech of the present occasion with arguments, tales with reasons, asking of questions with telling of opinions, and jest with earnest; for it is a dull thing to tire, and, as we say now, to jade any thing too far. As for jest, there be certain things which ought to be privileged from it; namely, religion, matters of state, great persons, any man’s present business of importance, and any case that deserveth pity; yet there be some that think their wits have been asleep, except they dart out somewhat that is piquant, and to the quick; that is a vein which would be bridled:362—
Some people in conversations prefer to be praised for their cleverness, showing they can argue any point, 360 rather than for their judgment in recognizing what is true; as if it’s commendable to know what can be argued instead of what should be considered. Some have certain clichés and topics they’re good at, but they lack variety; this kind of limitation is usually boring, and once it becomes obvious, it’s laughable. The most honorable part of conversation is to set the stage, 361 and to smoothly transition to something else; because then a person is truly in control. It’s beneficial in discussions to mix up comments on the current topic with arguments, stories with reasons, questions with opinions, and jokes with seriousness; because it’s tedious to overdo anything, and as we say today, to wear something out. Regarding humor, there are certain subjects that should be off-limits; specifically, religion, political matters, prominent individuals, anyone’s important personal issues, and any situation that deserves compassion. Still, there are those who believe they haven’t been clever unless they deliver something sharp and to the point; that’s a tendency that should be restrained: 362—
And, generally, men ought to find the difference between saltness and bitterness. Certainly, he that hath a satirical vein, as he maketh others afraid of his wit, so he had need be afraid of others’ memory. He that questioneth much, shall learn much, and content much, but especially if he apply his questions to the skill of the persons whom he asketh: for he shall give them occasion to please themselves in speaking, and himself shall continually gather knowledge; but let his questions not be troublesome, for that is fit for a poser.364 And let him be sure to leave other men their turns to speak; nay, if there be any that would reign and take up all the time, 201let him find means to take them off, and to bring others on, as musicians used to do with those that dance too long galliards.365 If you dissemble sometimes your knowledge of that you are thought to know, you shall be thought, another time, to know that you know not. Speech of a man’s self ought to be seldom, and well chosen. I knew one was wont to say in scorn, “He must needs be a wise man, he speaks so much of himself;” and there is but one case wherein a man may commend himself with good grace, and that is in commending virtue in another, especially if it be such a virtue whereunto himself pretendeth. Speech of touch366 towards others should be sparingly used; for discourse ought to be as a field, without coming home to any man. I knew two noblemen, of the west part of England, whereof the one was given to scoff, but kept ever royal cheer in his house; the other would ask of those that had been at the other’s table, “Tell truly, was there never a flout367 or dry blow368 given?” To which the guest would answer, “Such and such a thing passed.” The lord would say, “I thought he would mar a good dinner.” Discretion of speech is more than eloquence; and to speak agreeably to him with whom we deal, is more than to speak in 202good words, or in good order. A good continued speech, without a good speech of interlocution, shows slowness; and a good reply, or second speech, without a good settled speech, showeth shallowness and weakness. As we see in beasts, that those that are weakest in the course, are yet nimblest in the turn; as it is betwixt the greyhound and the hare. To use too many circumstances, ere one come to the matter, is wearisome; to use none at all, is blunt.
And generally, men should be able to tell the difference between saltiness and bitterness. Definitely, someone with a sarcastic sense of humor, while making others wary of his wit, should also be cautious of how others remember him. The person who asks a lot of questions will learn a lot and keep others interested, especially if he directs his questions toward the expertise of the people he's asking: this gives them a chance to enjoy talking and helps him gather knowledge continuously. However, his questions shouldn't be annoying, as that fits a person who only wants to pester.364 He should also remember to let others have their chance to speak; if anyone tries to dominate the conversation and take up all the time, 201he should find a way to redirect them and bring others into the discussion, like musicians do with dancers who stay on the floor too long.365 If you sometimes pretend not to know something you’re expected to know, then you’ll be seen as knowing something you really don’t know later on. A person’s self-talk should be infrequent and carefully chosen. I once knew someone who would mockingly say, “He must be really wise, he talks so much about himself;” and there’s only one situation where a person can praise himself gracefully, which is when he’s praising the virtue of someone else, especially if it’s a virtue he aspires to. Speaking in a pointed way about others should be used sparingly; conversation should be like an open field, without coming too close to any one person. There were two noblemen from the western part of England; one was known for his mockery, yet always kept a grand feast at his table; the other would ask those who had eaten at the first’s table, “Honestly, was there ever a joke367 or snide comment368 made?” The guest would respond, “Such and such happened.” The lord would say, “I thought he would ruin a good dinner.” The discretion in speech is more valuable than eloquence, and speaking appropriately to the person you’re engaging with is more important than speaking in fancy words or perfect order. A good continuous discourse, without interactive dialogue, can seem slow; and a good response or follow-up, without a solid main point, comes off as shallow and weak. As seen in animals, those that struggle the most at the race are often the quickest at the turns, like the greyhound and the hare. Using too many details before getting to the point can be tiring; using none at all is too blunt.
XXXIII.—OF PLANTATIONS.369
Plantations are amongst ancient, primitive, and heroical works. When the world was young, it begat more children; but now it is old, it begets fewer; for I may justly account new plantations to be the children of former kingdoms. I like a plantation in a pure soil; that is, where people are not displanted,370 to the end to plant in others; for else it is rather an extirpation than a plantation. Planting of countries is like planting of woods; for you must make account to lose almost twenty years’ profit, and expect your recompense in the end; for the principal thing that hath been the destruction 203of most plantations, hath been the base and hasty drawing of profit in the first years. It is true, speedy profit is not to be neglected, as far as may stand with the good of the plantation, but no further. It is a shameful and unblessed thing371 to take the scum of people and wicked condemned men, to be the people with whom you plant; and not only so, but it spoileth the plantation; for they will ever live like rogues, and not fall to work; but be lazy, and do mischief, and spend victuals, and be quickly weary, and then certify over to their country to the discredit of the plantation. The people wherewith you plant ought to be gardeners, ploughmen, laborers, smiths, carpenters, joiners, fishermen, fowlers, with some few apothecaries, surgeons, cooks, and bakers. In a country of plantations, first look about what kind of victual the country yields of itself to hand; as chestnuts, walnuts, pine-apples, olives, dates, plums, cherries, wild honey, and the like, and make use of them. Then consider what victual, or esculent things there are, which grow speedily, and within the year; as parsnips, carrots, turnips, onions, radish, artichokes of Jerusalem, maize, and the like. For wheat, barley, and oats, they ask too much labor; but with pease and beans you may begin, both because they ask less labor, and because they serve for meat as well as for bread; and of 204rice, likewise, cometh a great increase, and it is a kind of meat. Above all, there ought to be brought store of biscuit, oatmeal, flour, meal, and the like, in the beginning, till bread may be had. For beasts, or birds, take chiefly such as are least subject to diseases, and multiply fastest; as swine, goats, cocks, hens, turkeys, geese, house-doves, and the like. The victual in plantations ought to be expended almost as in a besieged town, that is, with certain allowance; and let the main part of the ground employed to gardens or corn, be to a common stock; and to be laid in, and stored up, and then delivered out in proportion; besides some spots of ground that any particular person will manure for his own private use. Consider, likewise, what commodities the soil where the plantation is doth naturally yield, that they may some way help to defray the charge of the plantation; so it be not, as was said, to the untimely prejudice of the main business, as it hath fared with tobacco in Virginia.372 Wood commonly aboundeth but too much; and therefore timber is fit to be one. If there be iron ore, and streams whereupon to set the mills, iron is a brave commodity where wood aboundeth. Making of bay-salt, if the climate be proper for it, would be put in experience; growing silk, likewise, if any be, is a likely commodity; pitch and tar, where store of firs and pines are, will 205not fail; so drugs and sweet woods, where they are, cannot but yield great profit; soap-ashes, likewise, and other things that may be thought of; but moil373 not too much under ground, for the hope of mines is very uncertain, and useth to make the planters lazy in other things. For government, let it be in the hands of one, assisted with some counsel; and let them have commission to exercise martial laws, with some limitation; and, above all, let men make that profit of being in the wilderness, as they have God always, and his service, before their eyes. Let not the government of the plantation depend upon too many counsellors and undertakers in the country that planteth, but upon a temperate number; and let those be rather noblemen and gentlemen, than merchants, for they look ever to the present gain. Let there be freedoms from custom, till the plantation be of strength; and not only freedom from custom, but freedom to carry their commodities where they may make their best of them, except there be some special cause of caution. Cram not in people, by sending too fast company after company; but rather hearken how they waste, and send supplies proportionably; but so as the number may live well in the plantation, and not by surcharge be in penury. It hath been a great endangering to the health of some plantations, that they have built along the sea and rivers, in marish374 206and unwholesome grounds; therefore, though you begin there, to avoid carriage and other like discommodities, yet build still rather upwards from the streams than along. It concerneth, likewise, the health of the plantation, that they have good store of salt with them, that they may use it in their victuals when it shall be necessary. If you plant where savages are, do not only entertain them with trifles and gingles,375 but use them justly and graciously, with sufficient guard, nevertheless; and do not win their favor by helping them to invade their enemies, but for their defence it is not amiss; and send oft of them over to the country that plants, that they may see a better condition than their own, and commend it when they return. When the plantation grows to strength, then it is time to plant with women as well as with men; that the plantation may spread into generations, and not be ever pieced from without. It is the sinfullest thing in the world, to forsake or destitute a plantation once in forwardness; for, besides the dishonor, it is the guiltiness of blood of many commiserable persons.
Farms are among the oldest, most basic, and remarkable achievements. When the world was younger, it produced more inhabitants; now that it's older, it produces fewer. I can rightly consider new plantations as the offspring of former kingdoms. I prefer a plantation in a clean area, meaning where people are not displaced370 to plant in someone else's land; otherwise, it's more like uprooting than planting. Establishing countries is like planting forests; you should expect to lose almost twenty years’ worth of profits and anticipate your rewards at the end. The main factor that has destroyed many plantations is the greedy and rushed pursuit of profits in the early years. It's true that quick profit shouldn't be overlooked, as long as it aligns with the well-being of the plantation, but not beyond that. It’s both disgraceful and unfortunate371 to take the worst people and condemned criminals to be the workforce for your plantation; not only does this ruin the plantation, but they will also behave like outlaws, being lazy, causing trouble, wasting food, tiring quickly, and then reporting back to their home country, harming the plantation’s reputation. The people you plant should be gardeners, farmers, laborers, blacksmiths, carpenters, joiners, fishermen, fowlers, along with a few apothecaries, surgeons, cooks, and bakers. In a plantation-focused region, first assess what food the land naturally provides, like chestnuts, walnuts, pineapples, olives, dates, plums, cherries, wild honey, and similar items, and utilize them. Next, think about what foods or edible items grow quickly within a year, such as parsnips, carrots, turnips, onions, radishes, Jerusalem artichokes, maize, and so on. Wheat, barley, and oats require too much labor, but peas and beans can be planted, as they demand less work and can be consumed as both food and bread; likewise, rice yields a substantial harvest and is also a food source. Most importantly, there should be a good supply of biscuits, oatmeal, flour, and similar staples at the start until bread can be produced. For livestock or poultry, choose those least prone to illness and that reproduce quickly, such as pigs, goats, roosters, hens, turkeys, geese, and pigeons. The food in plantations should be consumed almost like in a besieged town, meaning with a fixed allowance; let the major area for gardens or crops be communal, stored up, and distributed in proportion, aside from any small plots that individuals can cultivate for personal use. Also consider what resources the soil naturally yields that could help offset the plantation’s costs, provided it doesn’t interfere with the main goal, as happened with tobacco in Virginia.372 Timber is usually abundant; hence, using it is practical. If there’s iron ore and streams for mills, iron becomes a valuable resource where wood is plentiful. Experimenting with making bay salt, if the climate allows, could be beneficial; cultivating silk can also be a promising endeavor. Producing pitch and tar, especially where there are many firs and pines, should prove fruitful; likewise, leveraging local herbs and fragrant woods can be very profitable; considering making soap ashes and other potential products is also worthwhile, yet don't rely too much on mining underground since that can be uncertain and makes planters lazy in other tasks. For governance, it should be managed by one person, with some advisors; they should be empowered to enforce martial laws within certain limits and, above all, those involved should always keep God and His service in mind. The governance of the plantation shouldn’t depend on too many advisors from the planting country but rather on a reasonable number; these should preferably be noblemen and gentlemen, rather than merchants, as the latter tend to focus only on immediate profit. Grant exemptions from tariffs until the plantation is strong, and allow them to sell their goods wherever they can get the best deal unless there’s a specific reason to restrict them. Don’t overload the area by sending too many people too quickly; instead, monitor how they are managing and send reinforcements proportionately, ensuring that the population can thrive without being overwhelmed and experiencing scarcity. It has been detrimental to the health of some plantations that they built close to the sea and rivers, in swampy374 and unhealthy areas; thus, although starting there might reduce transport challenges and similar inconveniences, it’s better to build further from the streams. It's also essential for the plantation's health to have a good supply of salt to use when necessary. If you establish a plantation near Indigenous people, don’t just entertain them with trivial gifts and distractions375; treat them fairly and respectfully while still maintaining adequate protection; don’t win their favor by assisting them in attacking their enemies, but supporting their defense is acceptable. Regularly send some of them to visit the home country of the planters so they can see better living conditions than their own and speak favorably about it upon their return. Once the plantation grows strong, it's the right time to bring in women alongside men, so the plantation can develop its own generations instead of always relying on outside recruitment. It’s a grievous error to abandon an already developing plantation; besides the dishonor, it also carries the guilt for the suffering of many unfortunate individuals.
XXXIV.—OF RICHES.
I cannot call riches better than the baggage of virtue; the Roman word is better, “impedimenta;” for as the baggage is to an army, so is riches to virtue; it cannot be spared nor left behind, but it hindereth the march; yea, and the care of it sometimes loseth or disturbeth the victory. Of great riches there is no real use, except it be in the distribution; the rest is but conceit. So saith Solomon: “Where much is, there are many to consume it; and what hath the owner, but the sight of it with his eyes?”376 The personal fruition in any man cannot reach to feel great riches: there is a custody of them, or a power of dole and donative of them, or a fame of them, but no solid use to the owner. Do you not see what feigned prices are set upon little stones and rarities? and what works of ostentation are undertaken, because there might seem to be some use of great riches? But then you will say, they may be of use to buy men out of dangers or troubles; as Solomon saith: “Riches are as a strong-hold in the imagination of the rich man;”377 but this is excellently ex208pressed, that it is in imagination, and not always in fact; for, certainly, great riches have sold more men than they have bought out. Seek not proud riches, but such as thou mayest get justly, use soberly, distribute cheerfully, and leave contentedly; yet have no abstract nor friarly contempt of them, but distinguish, as Cicero saith well of Rabirius Posthumus: “In studio rei amplificandæ apparebat, non avaritiæ prædam, sed instrumentum bonitati quæri.”378 Hearken also to Solomon, and beware of hasty gathering of riches: “Qui festinat ad divitias, non erit insons.”379 The poets feign, that when Plutus (which is riches) is sent from Jupiter, he limps, and goes slowly; but when he is sent from Pluto, he runs, and is swift of foot; meaning, that riches gotten by good means and just labor pace slowly; but when they come by the death of others380 (as by the course of inheritance, testaments, and the like), they come tumbling upon a man. But it might be applied likewise to Pluto, taking him for the devil; for when riches come from the devil (as by fraud and oppression, and unjust means), they come upon speed. The ways to enrich are many, and most of 209them foul: parsimony is one of the best, and yet is not innocent; for it withholdeth men from works of liberality and charity. The improvement of the ground is the most natural obtaining of riches; for it is our great mother’s blessing, the earth’s, but it is slow; and yet, where men of great wealth do stoop to husbandry, it multiplieth riches exceedingly. I knew a nobleman, in England, that had the greatest audits381 of any man in my time, a great grazier, a great sheep-master, a great timber-man, a great collier, a great corn-master, a great lead-man, and so of iron, and a number of the like points of husbandry; so as the earth seemed a sea to him in respect of the perpetual importation. It was truly observed by one, “That himself came very hardly to a little riches, and very easily to great riches;” for when a man’s stock is come to that, that he can expect the prime of markets,382 and overcome those bargains, which for their greatness are few men’s money, and be partner in the industries of younger men, he cannot but increase mainly. The gains of ordinary trades and vocations are honest, and furthered by two things, chiefly: by diligence, and by a good name for good and fair dealing; but the gains of bargains are of a more doubtful nature, when men shall wait upon others’ necessity: broke by servants and instruments to draw them on; put off others cunningly that would 210be better chapmen; and the like practices, which are crafty and naught. As for the chopping of bargains, when a man buys not to hold, but to sell over again, that commonly grindeth double, both upon the seller and upon the buyer. Sharings do greatly enrich, if the hands be well chosen that are trusted. Usury is the certainest means of gain, though one of the worst; as that whereby a man doth eat his bread, “in sudore vultûs alieni;”383 and, besides, doth plough upon Sundays; but yet certain though it be, it hath flaws, for that the scriveners and brokers do value unsound men to serve their own turn. The fortune, in being the first in an invention, or in a privilege, doth cause sometimes a wonderful overgrowth in riches, as it was with the first sugar-man384 in the Canaries; therefore, if a man can play the true logician, to have as well judgment as invention, he may do great matters, especially if the times be fit. He that resteth upon gains certain, shall hardly grow to great riches; and he that puts all upon adventures, doth oftentimes break and come to poverty; it is good, therefore, to guard adventures with certainties that may uphold losses. Monopolies, and coemption of wares for resale, where they are not restrained, are great means to enrich; especially if the party have intelligence what things are like to come into request, 211and so store himself beforehand. Riches gotten by service, though it be of the best rise, yet when they are gotten by flattery, feeding humors, and other servile conditions, they may be placed amongst the worst. As for fishing for testaments and executorships (as Tacitus saith of Seneca, “Testamenta et orbos tanquam indagine capi”),385 it is yet worse, by how much men submit themselves to meaner persons than in service. Believe not much them that seem to despise riches, for they despise them that despair of them; and none worse when they come to them. Be not penny-wise; riches have wings, and sometimes they fly away of themselves, sometimes they must be set flying to bring in more. Men leave their riches either to their kindred, or to the public; and moderate portions prosper best in both. A great state left to an heir, is as a lure to all the birds of prey round about to seize on him, if he be not the better stablished in years and judgment; likewise, glorious gifts and foundations are like sacrifices without salt, and but the painted sepulchres of alms, which soon will putrefy and corrupt inwardly. Therefore, measure not thine advancements by quantity, but frame them by measure, and defer not charities till death; for, certainly, if a man weigh it rightly, he that doth so is rather liberal of another man’s than of his own.
I can't call wealth better than the burden of virtue; the Roman word is stronger, “impedimenta;” for just as baggage is to an army, so wealth is to virtue; it cannot be discarded or left behind, but it slows down the progress; indeed, worrying about it can sometimes lead to losing or disturbing the victory. Great wealth has no real use, except when it's shared; the rest is just vanity. As Solomon says: “Where there’s much, there are many to consume it; and what does the owner have, but only the sight of it?”376 The personal enjoyment of any individual cannot truly grasp great wealth: there is a custody of it, a power to distribute it, or fame from having it, but no real benefit to the owner. Don’t you see how inflated the prices are for little stones and rarities? And what ostentatious displays people undertake, thinking there’s some use to great wealth? But then you might argue that it can be helpful in buying people out of dangers or troubles; as Solomon says: “Wealth is like a stronghold in the imagination of the rich man;”377 but this is cleverly expressed as being in imagination, not always in fact; certainly, great wealth has enslaved more people than it has saved. Don’t seek prideful wealth, but aim for what you can earn fairly, use wisely, share joyfully, and leave behind contentedly; yet do not hold an abstract or self-righteous contempt for it, but differentiate, as Cicero wisely noted about Rabirius Posthumus: “In the pursuit of wealth, he appeared to seek not the prey of greed, but a tool for goodness.”378 Listen also to Solomon, and be cautious about hastily accumulating wealth: “He who hastens to riches will not go unpunished.”379 The poets portray that when Plutus (wealth) is sent from Jupiter, he limps and moves slowly; but when sent from Pluto, he rushes forward, meaning that wealth acquired through good means and hard work arrives slowly; but when it comes through the misfortunes of others380 (like inheritance, wills, and such), it comes tumbling down on a person. But this could also refer to Pluto representing the devil; for when wealth comes from the devil (through fraud, oppression, and unjust means), it comes quickly. There are many ways to gain wealth, and most of them are unsavory: frugality is one of the better options, yet it is not innocent; for it keeps people from acts of generosity and charity. Cultivating the land is the most natural way to obtain wealth; for it is the blessing of our great mother, the earth, but it is slow; and yet, where wealthy people engage in farming, it greatly multiplies riches. I knew a nobleman in England who had the highest income381 of anyone in my time—he was a great grazier, sheep farmer, timber merchant, coalman, grain trader, lead miner, and similar farming ventures; making the earth seem like a sea to him due to the constant importation. It was truly noted by someone, “That he found it very difficult to achieve a little wealth, and very easy to acquire great wealth;” for when a person’s capital reaches a level where they can dictate market conditions,382 and win those large deals that are beyond most people's financial reach, and take part in enterprises with younger individuals, they can’t help but see enormous growth. The earnings from ordinary trades and professions are honest and supported by primarily two things: diligence and a good reputation for fair dealing; but the profits from deals can be more questionable, when people exploit others’ needs: being undercut by workers and tools to entice them; pushing out others cunningly who would be better buyers; and similar crafty and unscrupulous practices. With regard to striking deals, when a person buys not to keep but to resell, it often ends up exploiting both the seller and the buyer. Collaborations can greatly increase wealth if the trusted partners are well-chosen. Usury is the most reliable way to gain, though it's certainly one of the worst; as it makes a person eat their bread “by the sweat of another’s brow;”383 and besides, it means working on Sundays; but while it is reliable, it has its flaws, as scriveners and brokers often exploit unscrupulous individuals for their own benefit. Being first to invent something or hold a privilege can sometimes lead to remarkable wealth accumulation, just as it happened with the first sugar producer384 in the Canaries; therefore, if someone can be a true logician, possessing both judgment and creativity, they can achieve great things, especially when the timing is right. Someone who relies solely on certain gains will hardly grow rich; while someone who puts everything at risk often breaks and falls into poverty; it’s wise, therefore, to balance risks with certainties that can counteract losses. Monopolies and the purchasing of goods for resale, when uncontrolled, greatly contribute to wealth accumulation; especially if the individual knows ahead of time which items will be in demand,211 and stocks up in advance. Wealth obtained through service, while the best source, can be found amongst the worst if gained through flattery, pandering, or subservience in other ways. Fishing for wills and executorships (as Tacitus says of Seneca, “Wills and orphans should be caught as if in a net”),385 is even worse, as it entails submitting oneself to lesser individuals than in service. Don’t put too much stock in those who seem to look down on wealth, for they scorn those who are desperate for it; and none more than those who suddenly come into it. Don’t be overly concerned with trivial amounts; wealth has wings, and sometimes it flies away on its own, and sometimes it must be pushed to bring in more. People usually leave their wealth either to their relatives or to the community; and reasonable amounts prosper best in both scenarios. A large estate left to an heir acts like bait to all the predators nearby, ready to seize them unless they are well-established in experience and judgment; likewise, lavish gifts and foundations, without substance, are merely empty sacrifices that quickly rot and corrupt from within. Therefore, do not measure your gains by quantity, but shape them by quality, and don’t postpone acts of charity until death; for if a person considers it rightly, one who does so is more generous with someone else's wealth than with their own.
XXXV.—OF PROPHECIES.
I mean not to speak of divine prophecies, nor of heathen oracles, nor of natural predictions; but only of prophecies that have been of certain memory, and from hidden causes. Saith the Pythonissa386 to Saul, “To-morrow thou and thy sons shall be with me.” Virgil hath these verses from Homer:—
I mean not to talk about divine prophecies, heathen oracles, or natural predictions; but only about prophecies that are well-known and have unseen reasons behind them. The Pythoness386 tells Saul, “Tomorrow you and your sons will be with me.” Virgil has these lines from Homer:—
A prophecy, as it seems, of the Roman empire. Seneca the tragedian hath these verses:—
A prophecy, it seems, of the Roman Empire. Seneca the dramatist has these lines:—
A prophecy of the discovery of America. The 213daughter of Polycrates389 dreamed that Jupiter bathed her father, and Apollo anointed him; and it came to pass that he was crucified in an open place, where the sun made his body run with sweat, and the rain washed it. Philip of Macedon dreamed he sealed up his wife’s belly, whereby he did expound it, that his wife should be barren; but Aristander the soothsayer told him his wife was with child, because men do not use to seal vessels that are empty.390 A phantasm that appeared to M. Brutus in his tent, said to him, “Philippis iterum me videbis.”391 Tiberius said to Galba, “Tu quoque, Galba, degustabis imperium.”392 In Vespasian’s time, there went a prophecy in the East, that those that should come forth of Judea, should reign over the world; which, though it may be was meant of our Saviour, yet Tacitus expounds it of Vespasian.393 Domitian dreamed, the night before he was slain, that a golden head was growing out of the nape of his neck;394 and, indeed, the succession that followed him, for many years, made golden times. Henry the Sixth of Eng214land said of Henry the Seventh, when he was a lad, and gave him water, “This is the lad that shall enjoy the crown for which we strive.” When I was in France, I heard from one Dr. Pena, that the queen mother,395 who was given to curious arts, caused the king her husband’s nativity to be calculated under a false name; and the astrologer gave a judgment, that he should be killed in a duel; at which the queen laughed, thinking her husband to be above challenges and duels; but he was slain upon a course at tilt, the splinters of the staff of Montgomery going in at his beaver. The trivial prophecy which I heard when I was a child, and Queen Elizabeth was in the flower of her years, was,
A prophecy about the discovery of America. The 213daughter of Polycrates389 dreamed that Jupiter bathed her father, and Apollo anointed him; then he was crucified in a public place, where the sun made his body sweat, and the rain washed it away. Philip of Macedon dreamed he sealed up his wife's belly, interpreting it to mean she would be barren; but the soothsayer Aristander told him his wife was actually pregnant because people don’t seal empty vessels.390 A ghostly vision appeared to M. Brutus in his tent and said to him, “Philippis iterum me videbis.”391 Tiberius told Galba, “You too, Galba, will taste power.”392 In Vespasian’s time, a prophecy circulated in the East that those from Judea would rule the world; while it might have referred to our Savior, Tacitus interpreted it to mean Vespasian.393 Domitian dreamed, the night before his assassination, that a golden head was growing out of the back of his neck;394 and, in fact, the succession after him brought many golden years. Henry the Sixth of England said of Henry the Seventh when he was a boy and gave him water, “This is the lad who will wear the crown we fight for.” When I was in France, I heard from a Dr. Pena that the queen mother,395 who was into strange practices, had her husband’s birth chart calculated under a false name; and the astrologer predicted he would be killed in a duel, which made the queen laugh, believing her husband was above challenges and duels; but he was slain during a tournament, the splinters from Montgomery’s lance piercing his helmet. The common prophecy I heard as a child, when Queen Elizabeth was at the height of her youth, was,
whereby it was generally conceived, that after the princes had reigned which had the principal letters of that word hempe (which were Henry, Edward, Mary, Philip, and Elizabeth), England should come to utter confusion; which, thanks be to God, is verified only in the change of the name; for that the king’s style is now no more of England, but of Britain.396 There was also another prophecy before the year of eighty-eight, which I do not well understand.
where it was commonly believed that after the princes who had the main letters of that word hempe (Henry, Edward, Mary, Philip, and Elizabeth) ruled, England would fall into total chaos; which, thank God, only turned out to be true in the change of the name; now the king's title is no longer of England, but of Britain.396 There was also another prophecy before the year eighty-eight that I don’t fully understand.
It was generally conceived to be meant of the Spanish fleet that came in eighty-eight; for that the king of Spain’s surname, as they say, is Norway. The prediction of Regiomontanus,
It was generally believed to refer to the Spanish fleet that arrived in eighty-eight; because, as they say, the surname of the king of Spain is Norway. The prediction of Regiomontanus,
was thought likewise accomplished in the sending of that great fleet, being the greatest in strength, though not in number, of all that ever swam upon the sea. As for Cleon’s dream,398 I think it was a jest; it was, that he was devoured of a long dragon; and it was expounded of a maker of sausages, that troubled him exceedingly. There are numbers of 216the like kind, especially if you include dreams, and predictions of astrology; but I have set down these few only of certain credit, for example. My judgment is, that they ought all to be despised, and ought to serve but for winter talk by the fireside; though, when I say despised, I mean it as for belief; for otherwise, the spreading or publishing of them is in no sort to be despised, for they have done much mischief; and I see many severe laws made to suppress them. That that hath given them grace, and some credit, consisteth in three things. First, that men mark when they hit, and never mark when they miss;399 as they do, generally, also of dreams. The second is, that probable conjectures, or obscure traditions, many times turn themselves into prophecies; while the nature of man, which coveteth divination, thinks it no peril to foretell that which indeed they do but collect, as that of Seneca’s verse; for so much was then subject to demonstration, that the globe of the earth had great parts beyond the Atlantic, which might be probably conceived not to be all sea; and adding thereto the tradition in Plato’s Timæus, and his Atlanticus,400 it 217might encourage one to turn it to a prediction. The third and last (which is the great one), is, that almost all of them, being infinite in number, have been impostures, and, by idle and crafty brains, merely contrived and feigned, after the event past.
was also believed to be skilled in sending that massive fleet, which was the strongest ever to sail the seas, even if not the largest in number. As for Cleon's dream,398 I think it was just a joke; it depicted him being eaten by a long dragon, and it was explained by a sausage maker, which really disturbed him. There are many similar tales, especially when you include dreams and astrological predictions; however, I've noted only these few credible examples. In my opinion, they should all be disregarded and only serve as conversation topics by the fire in winter; though, when I say "disregarded," I mean in terms of belief; ultimately, the sharing or circulation of them should not be dismissed, as they have caused significant harm, and I see many stringent laws created to curb them. What gives them credibility and some acceptance boils down to three things. First, people tend to remember when they’re right and forget when they’re wrong;399 which is also how they generally treat dreams. The second is that plausible guesses, or vague traditions, often end up being recast as prophecies; and human nature, which craves foresight, doesn’t think it’s risky to predict things that they’ve merely inferred, like in Seneca’s verse; because it was so evident that large areas of land beyond the Atlantic likely weren’t all ocean, combined with the tradition found in Plato’s Timæus and his Atlanticus,400 it could inspire someone to reframe it as a prophecy. The third and most significant point is that nearly all of them, existing in countless numbers, have been falsehoods, crafted and invented by idle and cunning minds after the events occurred.
XXXVI.—OF AMBITION.
Ambition is like choler, which is a humor that maketh men active, earnest, full of alacrity, and stirring, if it be not stopped; but if it be stopped, and cannot have its way, it becometh adust,401 and thereby malign and venomous. So ambitious men, if they find the way open for their rising, and still get forward, they are rather busy than dangerous; but if they be checked in their desires, they become secretly discontent, and look upon men and matters with an evil eye, and are best pleased when things go backward; which is the worst property in a servant of a prince or state. Therefore, it is good for princes, if they use ambitious men, to handle it so, as they be still progressive, and not retrograde; which, because it cannot be without inconvenience, it is good not to use such natures 218at all; for if they rise not with their service, they will take order to make their service fall with them. But since we have said, it were good not to use men of ambitious natures, except it be upon necessity, it is fit we speak in what cases they are of necessity. Good commanders in the wars must be taken, be they never so ambitious; for the use of their service dispenseth with the rest; and to take a soldier without ambition, is to pull off his spurs. There is also great use of ambitious men in being screens to princes in matters of danger and envy; for no man will take that part, except he be like a seeled402 dove, that mounts and mounts, because he cannot see about him. There is use, also, of ambitious men, in pulling down the greatness of any subject that overtops; as Tiberius used Macro403 in the pulling down of Sejanus. Since, therefore, they must be used in such cases, there resteth to speak how they are to be bridled, that they may be less dangerous. There is less danger of them if they be of mean birth, than if they be noble; and if they be rather harsh of nature, than gracious and popular; and if they be rather new raised, than grown cunning and fortified in their greatness. It is counted by some a weakness in princes to have favorites; but it is, of all others, the best remedy 219against ambitious great ones; for when the way of pleasuring and displeasuring lieth by the favorite, it is impossible any other should be over-great. Another means to curb them, is, to balance them by others as proud as they; but then there must be some middle counsellors, to keep things steady, for without that ballast, the ship will roll too much. At the least, a prince may animate and inure some meaner persons to be, as it were, scourges to ambitious men. As for the having of them obnoxious to404 ruin, if they be of fearful natures, it may do well; but if they be stout and daring, it may precipitate their designs, and prove dangerous. As for the pulling of them down, if the affairs require it, and that it may not be done with safety suddenly, the only way is, the interchange continually of favors and disgraces, whereby they may not know what to expect, and be, as it were, in a wood. Of ambitions, it is less harmful the ambition to prevail in great things, than that other to appear in every thing; for that breeds confusion, and mars business; but yet, it is less danger to have an ambitious man stirring in business, than great in dependencies. He that seeketh to be eminent amongst able men, hath a great task, but that is ever good for the public; but he that plots to be the only figure amongst ciphers, is the decay of a whole age. Honor hath three things in it: the vantage-ground to do good; the approach to kings and principal 220persons; and the raising of a man’s own fortunes. He that hath the best of these intentions, when he aspireth, is an honest man; and that prince that can discern of these intentions in another that aspireth, is a wise prince. Generally, let princes and states choose such ministers as are more sensible of duty than of rising, and such as love business rather upon conscience than upon bravery; and let them discern a busy nature from a willing mind.
Goals is like anger; it's a driving force that makes people active, eager, and full of energy when it’s not held back. But when it is blocked and can’t fulfill its desires, it turns into bitterness,401 becoming spiteful and poisonous. Ambitious people, if they find an open path to success and continue moving forward, are more engaged than dangerous; but if their ambitions are stifled, they become secretly dissatisfied, viewing others and situations negatively, and feel satisfied when things go wrong, which is the worst trait for a servant of a ruler or state. Thus, it’s wise for rulers who work with ambitious individuals to ensure they remain progressive, not regressive; and since this is often problematic, it’s best not to engage such personalities at all; for if their ambitions don’t advance with their service, they will find ways to drag their service down with them. However, since we’ve mentioned that it’s better to avoid ambitious individuals unless absolutely necessary, it’s important to discuss when their involvement becomes necessary. Good military leaders must be selected, no matter how ambitious they are; utilizing their talents outweighs other concerns, and to recruit a soldier without ambition is like taking away his drive. Ambitious individuals also play a key role in protecting rulers from danger and jealousy; as no one is likely to defend that position unless they are, like a blinded402 dove, simply rising without awareness of their surroundings. Additionally, ambitious people can help diminish the power of any subject that overshadows; just as Tiberius used Macro403 to bring down Sejanus. Therefore, since they must be utilized in such instances, we need to discuss how to control them to mitigate risk. They pose less threat if they come from humble backgrounds than if they are noble; if they are more tough than charming and popular; and if they have only recently risen rather than being entrenched in their power. Some consider it a weakness for rulers to have favorites, but it’s one of the best ways to protect against ambitious powerful individuals; when the ability to please or displease rests with the favorite, it’s unlikely anyone else will gain excessive power. Another strategy to keep them in check is to balance them with others who are equally ambitious; however, there must be some neutral advisors to keep stability, as without that balance, things can easily tip. At the very least, a ruler can encourage some less powerful individuals to act as checks on the ambitious ones. As for making them vulnerable to404 downfall, if they are timid, that could be effective; but if they are bold and audacious, it may backfire and lead to danger. Regarding their removal, if the situation requires it and cannot be safely executed immediately, the best approach is to alternate between granting favors and imposing penalties, leaving them uncertain about what to expect. Among ambitions, it’s less harmful to aim for greatness in significant matters than to seek attention in everything, as the latter creates chaos and disrupts productivity; yet, it’s still less dangerous to have an ambitious person involved in matters than to have them hold significant power. Someone who seeks to stand out among capable individuals has a big challenge, but that’s beneficial for everyone; while someone who schemes to be the only important figure among unremarkable individuals brings about the decline of an entire era. Honor consists of three elements: the opportunity to do good; access to kings and important figures; and the enhancement of one’s personal fortunes. The person with the best intentions while aspiring for these is honorable; and a ruler who can recognize these intentions in someone else who aspires is wise. Generally, rulers and states should choose ministers who feel a greater sense of duty than desire for advancement, and who value work out of a sense of responsibility rather than for glory; and they should be able to distinguish between someone being busy and someone genuinely willing to help.
XXXVII.—OF MASQUES AND TRIUMPHS.
These things are but toys to come amongst such serious observations; but yet, since princes will have such things, it is better they should be graced with elegancy, than daubed with cost. Dancing to song is a thing of great state and pleasure. I understand it that the song be in choir, placed aloft, and accompanied with some broken music, and the ditty fitted to the device. Acting in song, especially in dialogues, hath an extreme good grace; I say acting, not dancing (for that is a mean and vulgar thing); and the voices of the dialogue would be strong and manly (a base and a tenor, no treble), and the ditty high and tragical, not nice or dainty. Several choirs, placed one over against another, and taking the voices by catches anthem-wise, give great pleasure. Turning dances into figure is a childish221 curiosity; and, generally, let it be noted, that those things which I here set down are such as do naturally take the sense, and not respect petty wonderments. It is true, the alterations of scenes, so it be quietly and without noise, are things of great beauty and pleasure: for they feed and relieve the eye before it be full of the same object. Let the scenes abound with light, specially colored and varied; and let the masquers, or any other that are to come down from the scene, have some motions upon the scene itself before their coming down; for it draws the eye strangely, and makes it with great pleasure to desire to see that it cannot perfectly discern. Let the songs be loud and cheerful, and not chirpings or pulings;405 let the music, likewise, be sharp and loud, and well placed. The colors that show best by candlelight, are white, carnation, and a kind of sea-water green; and ouches,406 or spangs,407 as they are of no great cost, so they are of most glory. As for rich embroidery, it is lost and not discerned. Let the suits of the masquers be graceful, and such as become the person when the vizors are off; not after examples of known attires, Turks, soldiers, mariners, and the like. Let anti-masques408 not be 222long; they have been commonly of fools, satyrs, baboons, wild men, antics, beasts, sprites, witches, Ethiopes, pigmies, turquets,409 nymphs, rustics, Cupids, statues moving, and the like. As for angels, it is not comical enough to put them in anti-masques; and any thing that is hideous, as devils, giants, is, on the other side, as unfit; but, chiefly, let the music of them be recreative, and with some strange changes. Some sweet odors suddenly coming forth, without any drops falling, are, in such a company as there is steam and heat, things of great pleasure and refreshment. Double masques, one of men, another of ladies, addeth state and variety; but all is nothing, except the room be kept clear and neat.
These things are just distractions amidst such serious observations; however, since royalty enjoys these entertainments, it's better they be presented with elegance rather than extravagance. Dancing to song is a significant source of enjoyment and style. I envision the song performed by a choir situated above, accompanied by some subtle music, and the lyrics fitting the theme. Performing in song, especially in dialogues, has a commendable grace; I refer to acting, not dancing (as that is trivial and common); the voices in the dialogue should be strong and masculine (a bass and a tenor, no treble), and the lyrics should be lofty and tragic, not sweet or delicate. Multiple choirs, arranged opposite each other and harmonizing in rounds, provide great pleasure. Turning dances into shapes is a childish curiosity; generally, it's worth noting that the things I mention here naturally appeal to the senses rather than petty wonders. It's true that changing scenes quietly and without fuss is a beautiful and pleasurable element: it entertains and refreshes the eye before it grows weary of the same sight. The scenes should be filled with light, especially in varied colors; and let the performers, or anyone else about to come down from the scene, have some action on stage before descending; this draws the eye intriguingly and creates a strong desire to see what cannot be clearly perceived. The songs should be loud and cheerful, not faint or mournful; likewise, the music should be sharp and loud, and well-placed. The colors that look best in candlelight are white, pink, and a kind of sea-green; and ornaments, while inexpensive, create the most visual impact. Rich embroidery can often go unnoticed. The outfits of the performers should be stylish and suitable for their appearances when the masks are off; avoid designs based on well-known clothing like those of Turks, soldiers, sailors, and the like. Anti-masques should not be lengthy; they generally feature fools, satyrs, baboons, wild men, clowns, animals, spirits, witches, Ethiopians, pygmies, turncoats, nymphs, peasants, Cupids, moving statues, and similar characters. Angels aren't funny enough for anti-masques, and anything ugly, like devils or giants, is also inappropriate; primarily, let their music be entertaining, with some unusual variations. Pleasant scents appearing suddenly, without any droplets falling, are delightful and refreshing in an environment filled with warmth and steam. Double masques, one of men and another of women, add grandeur and variety; but none of it matters if the room isn't kept clean and tidy.
For justs, and tourneys, and barriers, the glories of them are chiefly in the chariots, wherein the challengers make their entry; especially if they be drawn with strange beasts, as lions, bears, camels, and the like; or in the devices of their entrance, or in the bravery of their liveries, or in the goodly furniture of their horses and armor. But enough of these toys.
For jousts, tournaments, and contests, the real excitement comes from the chariots where the challengers make their entrance; particularly if they're pulled by exotic animals like lions, bears, camels, and so on; or in the way they arrive, or in the elegance of their uniforms, or in the impressive gear of their horses and armor. But that's enough about these distractions.
XXXVIII.—OF NATURE IN MEN.
Nature is often hidden, sometimes overcome, seldom extinguished. Force maketh nature more violent in the return; doctrine and discourse maketh nature less importune, but custom only doth alter and subdue nature. He that seeketh victory over his nature, let him not set himself too great nor too small tasks; for the first will make him dejected by often failings, and the second will make him a small proceeder, though by often prevailings. And at the first, let him practise with helps, as swimmers do with bladders, or rushes; but, after a time, let him practise with disadvantages, as dancers do with thick shoes; for it breeds great perfection, if the practice be harder than the use. Where nature is mighty, and therefore the victory hard, the degrees had need be, first, to stay and arrest nature in time; like to him that would say over the four and twenty letters when he was angry; then to go less in quantity: as if one should, in forbearing wine, come from drinking healths to a draught at a meal; and, lastly, to discontinue altogether; but if a man have the fortitude and resolution to enfranchise himself at once, that is the best:—
Nature is often hidden, sometimes overcome, but rarely completely eliminated. Force makes nature more aggressive in its response; teaching and discussion make nature less demanding, but only habit can change and control nature. If someone wants to conquer their nature, they shouldn’t set themselves tasks that are too big or too small; the first will lead to disappointment due to frequent failures, and the latter will result in minimal progress, even if they succeed often. At first, they should practice with support, like swimmers do with floaties or reeds; but over time, they should practice under greater challenges, like dancers do in heavy shoes, because it leads to greater skill if the practice is tougher than the actual performance. Where nature is strong, and therefore victory is difficult, the steps should be: first, to pause and control nature when needed; like someone trying to recite the alphabet when they’re angry; then to decrease the amount: as if someone, in giving up wine, should shift from toasting to just having a drink during a meal; and finally, to stop completely; but if a person has the courage and determination to free themselves all at once, that is the best approach:—
Neither is the ancient rule amiss, to bend nature as a wand to a contrary extreme, whereby to set it right; understanding it where the contrary extreme is no vice. Let not a man force a habit upon himself with a perpetual continuance, but with some intermission, for both the pause reinforceth the new onset; and if a man that is not perfect be ever in practice, he shall as well practise his errors as his abilities, and induce one habit of both; and there is no means to help this but by seasonable intermissions. But let not a man trust his victory over his nature too far; for nature will lie buried a great time, and yet revive upon the occasion or temptation; like as it was with Æsop’s damsel, turned from a cat to a woman, who sat very demurely at the board’s end till a mouse ran before her. Therefore, let a man either avoid the occasion altogether, or put himself often to it, that he may be little moved with it. A man’s nature is best perceived in privateness, for there is no affectation; in passion, for that putteth a man out of his precepts; and in a new case or experiment, for there custom leaveth him. They are happy men whose natures sort with their vocations; otherwise they may say, “Multum incola fuit anima mea,”411 when they converse in those things they do not affect. In studies, whatsoever a man commandeth upon himself, let him set hours for it: but whatsoever is agreeable to his nature, let him take no care for any set times; for his thoughts will 225fly to it of themselves, so as the spaces of other business or studies will suffice. A man’s nature runs either to herbs or weeds; therefore, let him seasonably water the one, and destroy the other.
Neither is the old rule outdated, which says to bend nature like a wand in the opposite direction to correct it; understanding that the opposite extreme isn't a flaw. A person shouldn't force a habit on themselves constantly; rather, they should take breaks, as those pauses strengthen the new effort. If someone who isn't perfect practices constantly, they will reinforce both their mistakes and their skills, creating one habit that combines both; the only way to fix this is through timely breaks. But don’t let someone trust their victory over their nature too much; because nature can stay hidden for a long time but will come back when there's a chance or temptation; just like in Æsop's story about the girl who turned from a cat into a woman, who sat quietly at the table until a mouse ran in front of her. So, a person should either completely avoid the temptation or expose themselves to it often, so they aren’t too affected by it. A person's true nature is best seen in private, where there’s no pretense; in moments of passion, because that takes them out of their usual behavior; and in new situations or experiments, where they are free from habit. Those are fortunate whose natures align with their occupations; otherwise, they may feel “Multum incola fuit anima mea,”411 when they engage in things they don’t enjoy. In learning, whatever a person decides to pursue, they should set specific times for it; but whatever aligns with their nature, they should not worry about a schedule, as their thoughts will naturally gravitate towards it whenever there’s time between other tasks or studies. A person’s nature tends to lean towards either good or bad habits; therefore, they should nurture the good ones and eliminate the bad.
XXXIX.—OF CUSTOM AND EDUCATION.
Men’s thoughts are much according to their inclination;412 their discourse and speeches according to their learning and infused opinions; but their deeds are, after, as they have been accustomed; and, therefore, as Machiavel well noteth (though in an evil-favored instance), there is no trusting to the force of nature, nor to the bravery of words, except it be corroborate by custom.413 His instance is, that, for the achieving of a desperate conspiracy, a man should not rest upon the fierceness of any man’s nature, or his resolute undertakings, but take such a one as hath had his hands formerly in blood; but Machiavel knew not of a Friar Clement,414 nor a Ravaillac,415 nor a 226Jaureguy,416 nor a Baltazar Gerard;417 yet his rule holdeth still, that nature, nor the engagement of words, are not so forcible as custom. Only superstition is now so well advanced, that men of the first blood are as firm as butchers by occupation; and votary418 resolution is made equipollent to custom, even in matter of blood. In other things, the predominancy of custom is everywhere visible, insomuch as a man would wonder to hear men profess, protest, engage, give great words, and then do just as they have done before, as if they were dead images and engines, moved only by the wheels of custom. We see, also, the reign or tyranny of custom, what it is.
Men's thoughts often reflect their inclinations; their conversations and speeches are shaped by their knowledge and personal beliefs. However, their actions are typically a result of what they’ve been accustomed to. As Machiavelli pointed out (though with a grim example), we can’t rely on natural instincts or the strength of words unless they are supported by established habits. He suggests that for a risky conspiracy, one shouldn’t depend solely on someone’s fierce nature or determined efforts, but rather choose someone who has a history of violence. But Machiavelli didn’t consider figures like Friar Clement, Ravaillac, Jaureguy, or Baltazar Gerard; yet his principle remains true that neither nature nor the power of words is as compelling as custom. Nowadays, superstition has progressed to the point where even noblemen can be as resolute as butchers in their profession, and commitment driven by devotion is regarded as equal to tradition, even in matters of violence. In other respects, the dominance of custom is evident everywhere, to the point that one might be astonished to hear people make grand promises and declarations, yet act just as they always have, as if they were lifeless figures driven only by the mechanisms of routine. We also witness the control or oppression of custom, and what that entails.
The Indians419 (I mean the sect of their wise men) lay themselves quietly upon a stack of wood, and so sacrifice themselves by fire; nay, the wives strive to be burned with the corpses of their husbands. The lads of Sparta, of ancient time, were wont to be scourged upon the altar of Diana, without so much as quecking.420 I remember, in the beginning of Queen Elizabeth’s time of England, an Irish rebel condemned, put up a petition to the deputy that he 227might be hanged in a withe, and not in a halter, because it had been so used with former rebels. There be monks in Russia for penance, that will sit a whole night in a vessel of water, till they be engaged with hard ice. Many examples may be put of the force of custom, both upon mind and body; therefore, since custom is the principal magistrate of man’s life, let men, by all means, endeavor to obtain good customs. Certainly, custom is most perfect when it beginneth in young years: this we call education, which is, in effect, but an early custom. So we see, in languages, the tongue is more pliant to all expressions and sounds, the joints are more supple to all feats of activity and motions in youth, than afterwards; for it is true, that late learners cannot so well take the ply, except it be in some minds that have not suffered themselves to fix, but have kept themselves open and prepared to receive continual amendment, which is exceeding rare. But if the force of custom, simple and separate, be great, the force of custom, copulate and conjoined and collegiate, is far greater; for there example teacheth, company comforteth, emulation quickeneth, glory raiseth; so as in such places the force of custom is in his exaltation. Certainly, the great multiplication of virtues upon human nature resteth upon societies well ordained and disciplined; for commonwealths and good governments do nourish virtue grown, but do not much mend the seeds; but the misery is, that the most effectual means are now applied to the ends least to be desired.
The Indians419 (I mean the sect of their wise men) lay quietly on a pile of wood and sacrifice themselves by fire; moreover, the wives try to be burned alongside the bodies of their husbands. The young men of Sparta, in ancient times, were known to be whipped at the altar of Diana without flinching.420 I recall that at the beginning of Queen Elizabeth's reign in England, an Irish rebel who was condemned made a request to the deputy that he might be hanged with a rope, rather than a noose, because it was a method used for previous rebels. There are monks in Russia who, as a form of penance, will sit in a container of water all night until they become trapped in hard ice. Many examples show the powerful influence of custom on both mind and body; therefore, since custom is the main governor of human life, people should make every effort to develop good habits. Truly, custom is most influential when it begins in youth: this is what we call education, which is essentially just an early habit. We see that in languages, the tongue is more flexible in expressing all sounds and phrases when young, and the joints are more agile for all kinds of activities and movements in youth than later on; it is indeed true that late learners struggle to adapt, unless they have kept their minds open and ready to receive ongoing improvement, which is extremely rare. But while the influence of individual customs is strong, the combined and social influence of custom is even stronger; for there, example teaches, companionship provides support, competition spurs effort, and glory inspires; in such environments, the power of custom is at its peak. Certainly, the vast increase of virtues in human nature depends on well-structured and disciplined societies; good states and governments nurture developed virtue, but they do not significantly improve the fundamental qualities; unfortunately, the most effective methods are often directed towards the least desirable outcomes.
XL.—OF FORTUNE.
It cannot be denied, but outward accidents conduce much to fortune; favor, opportunity, death of others, occasion fitting virtue; but, chiefly, the mould of a man’s fortune is in his own hands: “Faber quisque fortunæ suæ,”421 saith the poet; and the most frequent of external causes, is that the folly of one man is the fortune of another; for no man prospers so suddenly as by others’ errors. “Serpens nisi serpentem comederit non fit draco.”422 Overt and apparent virtues bring forth praise: but there be secret and hidden virtues that bring forth fortune; certain deliveries of a man’s self, which have no name. The Spanish name, “disemboltura,”423 partly expresseth them, when there be not stonds424 nor restiveness in a man’s nature, but that the wheels 229of his mind keep way with the wheels of his fortune; for so Livy (after he had described Cato Major in these words, “In illo viro, tantum robur corporis et animi fuit, ut quocunque loco natus esset, fortunam sibi facturus videretur,”)425 falleth upon that, that he had “versatile ingenium:”426 therefore, if a man look sharply and attentively, he shall see Fortune; for though she be blind, yet she is not invisible. The way of Fortune is like the milky way in the sky; which is a meeting, or knot, of a number of small stars, not seen asunder, but giving light together; so are there a number of little and scarce discerned virtues, or rather faculties and customs, that make men fortunate. The Italians note some of them, such as a man would little think. When they speak of one that cannot do amiss, they will throw in into his other conditions, that he hath “Poco di matto;”427 and, certainly, there be not two more fortunate properties, than to have a little of the fool, and not too much of the honest; therefore, extreme lovers of their country, or masters, were never fortunate; neither can they be, for when a man placeth his thoughts without himself, he goeth not his own way. A hasty fortune maketh an enterpriser and remover (the French hath it better, “entreprenant,” or “remuant”); but the exercised 230fortune maketh the able man. Fortune is to be honored and respected, and it be but for her daughters, Confidence and Reputation; for those two Felicity breedeth; the first within a man’s self, the latter in others towards him. All wise men, to decline the envy of their own virtues, use to ascribe them to Providence and Fortune; for so they may the better assume them; and, besides, it is greatness in a man to be the care of the higher powers. So Cæsar said to the pilot in the tempest, “Cæsarem portas, et fortunam ejus.”428 So Sylla chose the name of “Felix,”429 and not of “Magnus;”430 and it hath been noted, that those who ascribe openly too much to their own wisdom and policy, end unfortunate. It is written, that Timotheus431 the Athenian, after he had, in the account he gave to the state of his government, often interlaced his speech, “and in this Fortune had no part,” never prospered in any thing he undertook afterwards. Certainly there be, whose fortunes are like Homer’s verses, that have a slide432 and easiness more than the verses of other poets; as Plutarch saith of Timoleon’s fortune in respect of that of Agesilaus or Epaminondas; and that this should be, no doubt it is much in a man’s self.
It can’t be denied that external factors greatly influence fortune: luck, opportunity, the deaths of others, and suitable moments for virtue. However, ultimately, a person’s fortune is in their own hands: “Everyone is the architect of their own fortune,”421 says the poet. Often, the most common external cause is the fact that one person's mistakes can be another's luck; no one succeeds as quickly as through the errors of others. “A serpent won’t become a dragon unless it eats another serpent.”422 Clear and visible virtues earn praise, but there are secret and hidden virtues that create fortune—certain qualities in a person that have no specific name. The Spanish term, “disemboltura,”423 somewhat expresses them, referring to a person who has no hesitance or rigidity in their nature, but whose mind flows smoothly with their fortune. Livy notes this when he describes Cato the Elder in these words: “In that man, there was such strength of body and spirit that wherever he was born, he seemed destined to forge his own fortune.”425 He mentions that he had a “versatile mind.”426 Therefore, if a person looks carefully and attentively, they will see Fortune; even though she is blind, she is not invisible. The pathway of Fortune is like the Milky Way in the sky, a cluster of many small stars that shine together and aren’t perceived separately. Likewise, there are many small, often overlooked qualities—habits and traits—that contribute to a person's success. The Italians recognize some of these qualities in ways that one might not expect. When they talk about someone who can do no wrong, they also might say he has a little “Poco di matto;”427 and indeed, having just a hint of foolishness and not too much honesty can be very fortunate. Therefore, extreme patriots or devoted bosses are rarely fortunate; they can’t be, because when someone focuses their thoughts outside themselves, they aren’t following their own path. A rapid fortune drives a person to act impulsively (the French describe this better with “entreprenant” or “remuant”); however, a well-practiced fortune creates a capable person. Fortune deserves respect, partly because of her daughters, Confidence and Reputation; these two lead to happiness—the first is internal, while the latter is how others perceive him. All wise people, to avoid envy for their own virtues, tend to credit them to Providence and Fortune; this makes it easier for them to acknowledge their strengths, and also, it is noble for a person to be noticed by higher powers. Cæsar told the pilot in a storm, “You carry Cæsar and his fortune.”428 Similarly, Sylla chose the name “Felix,”429 instead of “Magnus;”430 and it has been noted that those who excessively credit their own wisdom and strategy end up unlucky. It is said that Timotheus431 the Athenian, after he repeatedly declared to the state during his report, “And in this, Fortune had no part,” never found success in any endeavor he pursued afterward. Certainly, some fortunes resemble Homer’s verses—flowing and smooth, more so than those of other poets, as Plutarch notes regarding Timoleon’s fortune compared to that of Agesilaus or Epaminondas; and this points to the fact that much relies on a person themselves.
XLI.—OF USURY.433
Many have made witty invectives against usury. They say that it is pity the devil should have God’s part, which is the tithe; that the usurer is the greatest Sabbath-breaker, because his plough goeth every Sunday; that the usurer is the drone that Virgil speaketh of:—
Many have made clever criticisms of usury. They say it's a shame that the devil gets a share that belongs to God, which is the tithe; that the usurer is the biggest Sabbath-breaker, because his plow operates every Sunday; that the usurer is the drone that Virgil refers to:—
that the usurer breaketh the first law that was made for mankind after the fall, which was, “in sudore vultûs tui comedes panem tuum;”435 not, “in sudore vultûs alieni;”436 that usurers should have orange-tawny437 bonnets, because they do Judaize; that it is against nature for money to beget money, and the like. I say this only, that usury is a “concessum propter duritiem cordis;”438 for, since there must be borrowing and lending, and men are so hard of heart as they will not lend freely, usury must be 232permitted. Some others have made suspicious and cunning propositions of banks, discovery of men’s estates, and other inventions; but few have spoken of usury usefully. It is good to set before us the incommodities and commodities of usury, that the good may be either weighed out, or culled out; and warily to provide, that, while we make forth to that which is better, we meet not with that which is worse.
that the usurer breaks the first law that was made for mankind after the fall, which was, “by the sweat of your brow you will eat your bread;”435 not, “by the sweat of someone else's brow;”436 that usurers should wear orange-tawny437 bonnets because they follow the practices of the Jews; that it is against nature for money to generate more money, and so on. I say this only to point out that usury is a “ concession due to the hardness of hearts;”438 since there must be borrowing and lending, and people are so hard-hearted that they refuse to lend freely, usury must be permitted. Some others have proposed dubious and crafty ideas about banks, revealing people's finances, and other schemes; but few have discussed usury in a helpful way. It is important to consider both the drawbacks and benefits of usury so that the good can be assessed and prioritized, and to carefully ensure that while we aim for something better, we do not encounter something worse.
The discommodities of usury are, first, that it makes fewer merchants; for were it not for this lazy trade of usury, money would not lie still, but would, in great part, be employed upon merchandising, which is the “vena porta”439 of wealth in a state. The second, that it makes poor merchants; for as a farmer cannot husband his ground so well if he sit at a great rent, so the merchant cannot drive his trade so well if he sit440 at great usury. The third is incident to the other two; and that is, the decay of customs of kings, or states, which ebb or flow with merchandising. The fourth, that it bringeth the treasure of a realm or state into a few hands; for the usurer being at certainties, and others at uncertainties, at the end of the game most of the money will be in the box; and ever a state flourisheth when wealth is more equally spread. The fifth, that it beats down the price of land; for the employment of money is chiefly either merchandising or purchasing, and usury waylays both. The sixth, 233that it doth dull and damp all industries, improvements, and new inventions, wherein money would be stirring, if it were not for this slug. The last, that it is the canker and ruin of many men’s estates, which, in process of time, breeds a public poverty.
The problems with usury are, first, that it creates fewer merchants; if it weren't for this lazy practice of usury, money wouldn't sit idle but would mostly be used for trade, which is the "lifeblood" of wealth in a country. Second, it creates poor merchants; just as a farmer can't manage his land well if he's paying high rent, a merchant can't run his business effectively if he's dealing with high usury. The third issue arises from the first two: the decline of taxes collected by kings or states, which rise or fall with trade. Fourth, it concentrates the wealth of a nation into a few hands; since the usurer is guaranteed a return while others deal with uncertainty, by the end of the day, most of the money will be with the usurer, and a nation thrives when wealth is spread more evenly. Fifth, it lowers the price of land; because money is mostly either traded or invested in property, usury disrupts both. Sixth, it stifles and dampens all kinds of industries, improvements, and new inventions that require active investment, which would thrive without this sluggish practice. Finally, it's the bane and downfall of many people's fortunes, leading to widespread poverty over time.
On the other side, the commodities of usury are, first, that, howsoever usury in some respect hindereth merchandising, yet in some other it advanceth it; for it is certain that the greatest part of trade is driven by young merchants upon borrowing at interest; so as if the usurer either call in, or keep back his money, there will ensue presently a great stand of trade. The second is, that, were it not for this easy borrowing upon interest, men’s necessities would draw upon them a most sudden undoing, in that they would be forced to sell their means (be it lands or goods), far under foot; and so, whereas usury doth but gnaw upon them, bad markets would swallow them quite up. As for mortgaging or pawning, it will little mend the matter; for either men will not take pawns without use, or, if they do, they will look precisely for the forfeiture. I remember a cruel moneyed man in the country, that would say, “The devil take this usury, it keeps us from forfeitures of mortgages and bonds.” The third and last is, that it is a vanity to conceive that there would be ordinary borrowing without profit; and it is impossible to conceive the number of inconveniences that will ensue, if borrowing be cramped. Therefore, to speak of the abolishing of234 usury is idle; all states have ever had it in one kind or rate, or other; so as that opinion must be sent to Utopia.441
On the flip side, the aspects of usury are, first, that while usury may hinder trade in some ways, it also promotes it in others; because it’s clear that most trade is carried out by young merchants borrowing at interest. So, if the moneylender either demands repayment or hoards his money, it would immediately cause a significant halt in trade. The second point is, if it weren't for this easy borrowing at interest, people’s needs would lead to a rapid downfall, forcing them to sell their assets (whether land or goods) at a fraction of their worth. While usury may gnaw at them, poor market conditions would completely consume them. As for mortgages or pawned items, that doesn't really improve the situation; either people won’t accept pawns without interest, or if they do, they will strictly expect forfeit. I recall a ruthless moneylender in the countryside who would say, “Darn this usury, it prevents us from losing out on mortgages and bonds.” The third and final point is that it’s foolish to think there would be typical borrowing without profit; and it’s impossible to fully grasp all the problems that would arise if borrowing were restricted. Therefore, discussing the elimination of usury is pointless; all societies have always had it in one form or another; so that idea must be sent to Utopia.234441
To speak now of the reformation and reglement442 of usury, how the discommodities of it may be best avoided, and the commodities retained. It appears, by the balance of commodities and discommodities of usury, two things are to be reconciled; the one, that the tooth of usury be grinded, that it bite not too much; the other, that there be left open a means to invite moneyed men to lend to the merchants, for the continuing and quickening of trade. This cannot be done, except you introduce two several sorts of usury, a less and a greater; for if you reduce usury to one low rate, it will ease the common borrower, but the merchant will be to seek for money; and it is to be noted that the trade of merchandise being the most lucrative, may bear usury at a good rate; other contracts not so.
To talk about the reform and regulation of usury, and how to best avoid its downsides while keeping its benefits, we need to balance the pros and cons of usury. There are two things we need to reconcile: first, we need to lessen the impact of usury so it doesn't take too much; second, we need to ensure there are still opportunities for wealthy individuals to lend to merchants to support and stimulate trade. This can't happen unless we create two different kinds of usury, one at a lower rate and one at a higher rate. If we set usury to just one low rate, it will help common borrowers but leave merchants struggling to find funds. It's important to note that the trade of goods is the most profitable and can handle usury at a higher rate; other types of contracts are not in the same position.
To serve both intentions, the way would be briefly thus: that there be two rates of usury; the one free and general for all; the other under license only to certain persons, and in certain places of merchandising. First, therefore, let usury in general be reduced to five in the hundred, and let that rate be proclaimed to be free and current; and let the state shut itself out to take any penalty for the 235same. This will preserve borrowing from any general stop or dryness; this will ease infinite borrowers in the country; this will, in good part, raise the price of land, because land purchased at sixteen years’ purchase will yield six in the hundred, and somewhat more, whereas this rate of interest yields but five. This, by like reason, will encourage and edge industrious and profitable improvements, because many will rather venture in that kind, than take five in the hundred, especially having been used to greater profit. Secondly, let there be certain persons licensed to lend to known merchants upon usury, at a higher rate, and let it be with the cautions following: Let the rate be, even with the merchant himself, somewhat more easy than that he used formerly to pay; for, by that means, all borrowers shall have some ease by this reformation, be he merchant, or whosoever; let it be no bank or common stock, but every man be master of his own money; not that I altogether mislike banks, but they will hardly be brooked, in regard of certain suspicions. Let the state be answered443 some small matter for the license, and the rest left to the lender; for if the abatement be but small, it will no whit discourage the lender; for he, for example, that took before ten or nine in the hundred, will sooner descend to eight in the hundred, than give over his trade of usury, and go from certain gains to gains of hazard. Let these licensed lenders be in number indefinite, 236but restrained to certain principal cities and towns of merchandising; for then they will be hardly able to color other men’s moneys in the country, so as the license of nine will not suck away the current rate of five; for no man will send his moneys far off, nor put them into unknown hands.
To meet both needs, here’s a brief outline: let's establish two rates of interest; one that is free and available to everyone, and another that requires a license and is only for certain individuals and specific trading locations. First, the general interest rate should be set at five percent, and this rate should be made public and accepted everywhere; the government should not impose any penalties for it. This will prevent a broad halt in borrowing or a lack of funds; it will help countless borrowers in the country; and it will largely increase land prices, since land bought at sixteen times its annual income will yield six percent or more, while this interest rate only yields five. For similar reasons, this will promote industrious and profitable investments, as many will prefer to invest rather than settle for five percent, especially after having become accustomed to higher returns. Secondly, let’s allow certain licensed individuals to lend to recognized merchants at a higher rate, following these guidelines: the new rate should be a bit lower than what the merchant previously paid, so that all borrowers, merchants or otherwise, benefit from this change. It shouldn’t be a bank or shared fund, but each person should control their own money; I don’t oppose banks entirely, but they might not be well-received due to certain distrust. The government can receive a small fee for the license, leaving the rest for the lender; if the fee is minor, it won’t deter the lender. For example, someone who used to charge ten or nine percent will be more likely to drop to eight percent than abandon their lending business for uncertain profits. There should be an indefinite number of licensed lenders, but restricted to main cities and trading towns; this way, it will be difficult for lenders to use other people's funds in the countryside, ensuring that the nine percent rate doesn’t overshadow the established five percent rate, as no one will risk sending their money far away or into unknown hands.
If it be objected, that this doth in a sort authorize usury, which before was in some places but permissive; the answer is, that it is better to mitigate usury by declaration, than to suffer it to rage by connivance.444
If someone argues that this kind of allows usury, which used to be accepted in some places, the response is that it's better to address usury openly than to let it go unchecked. 444
XLII.—OF YOUTH AND AGE.
A man that is young in years may be old in hours, if he have lost no time; but that happeneth rarely. Generally, youth is like the first cogitations, not so wise as the second; for there is a youth in thoughts as well as in ages; and yet the invention of young men is more lively than that of old, and imaginations stream into their minds better, and, as it were, more divinely. Natures that have much heat, and great and violent desires and perturbations, are not ripe for action till they have passed the meridian of their years: as it was with Julius Cæsar and Septimius Severus; of the latter of whom it is said, “Juventutem egit erroribus, imo furoribus plenam;”445 and yet he was the ablest emperor, almost, of all the list; but reposed natures may do well in youth, as it is seen in Augustus Cæsar, Cosmus Duke of Florence, Gaston de Foix,446 and others. On the other side, heat and vivacity in age is an excellent composition for business. Young men are fitter to invent than to judge, fitter for execution than for counsel, and fitter for new pro238jects than for settled business; for the experience of age, in things that fall within the compass of it, directeth them; but in new things abuseth them. The errors of young men are the ruin of business; but the errors of aged men amount but to this, that more might have been done, or sooner.
A young guy may have a lot of experience even at a young age if he hasn’t wasted any time; but that’s pretty rare. Generally, youth is like the first thoughts—less wise than the second round of thinking; because there’s a youthfulness in thoughts as well as in age. Yet, young men tend to be more creative, with ideas flowing into their minds much more easily, almost like it’s a divine gift. People with strong passions and intense emotions aren’t ready for action until they’ve gone past their prime, as seen with Julius Cæsar and Septimius Severus; of the latter, it’s said, “He spent his youth full of mistakes, indeed, full of madness;” 445 and still he was one of the most capable emperors of all time. Conversely, more composed natures can succeed in their youth, as shown in Augustus Cæsar, Cosmus Duke of Florence, Gaston de Foix, 446 and others. On the flip side, having passion and energy in older age makes for great effectiveness in business. Young people are better at creating than evaluating, more suited for execution than advice, and more capable of taking on new projects than handling established responsibilities; because age brings experience in familiar matters which guides them, but in new situations, it can mislead them. The mistakes of young people can destroy projects; meanwhile, the mistakes of older individuals only lead to the thought that more could have been accomplished, or sooner.
Young men, in the conduct and manage of actions, embrace more than they can hold, stir more than they can quiet; fly to the end, without consideration of the means and degrees; pursue some few principles which they have chanced upon absurdly; care not to innovate, which draws unknown inconveniences; use extreme remedies at first; and that, which doubleth all errors, will not acknowledge or retract them, like an unready horse, that will neither stop nor turn. Men of age object too much, consult too long, adventure too little, repent too soon, and seldom drive business home to the full period, but content themselves with a mediocrity of success. Certainly, it is good to compound employments of both; for that will be good for the present, because the virtues of either age may correct the defects of both; and good for succession, that young men may be learners, while men in age are actors; and, lastly, good for externe accidents, because authority followeth old men, and favor and popularity youth; but, for the moral part, perhaps, youth will have the preëminence, as age hath for the politic. A certain rabbin, upon the text, “Your young men shall see visions, and your old men shall239 dream dreams,”447 inferreth that young men are admitted nearer to God than old, because vision is a clearer revelation than a dream; and, certainly, the more a man drinketh of the world, the more it intoxicateth; and age doth profit rather in the powers of understanding, than in the virtues of the will and affections. There be some have an over-early ripeness in their years, which fadeth betimes; these are, first, such as have brittle wits, the edge whereof is soon turned; such as was Hermogenes448 the rhetorician, whose books are exceedingly subtle; who afterwards waxed stupid. A second sort is of those that have some natural dispositions, which have better grace in youth than in age; such as is a fluent and luxuriant speech, which becomes youth well, but not age; so Tully saith of Hortensius: “Idem manebat, neque idem decebat.”449 The third is of such as take too high a strain at the first, and are magnanimous more than tract of years can uphold; as was Scipio Africanus, of whom Livy saith, in effect, “Ultima primis cedebant.”450
Young men, in how they act and manage situations, take on more than they can handle, create more chaos than they can calm; rush to the end without considering the means or the steps involved; follow a few principles they’ve stumbled upon foolishly; avoid making changes, which can lead to unexpected problems; resort to drastic measures too quickly; and, to make matters worse, refuse to acknowledge or correct their mistakes, like a restless horse that won’t stop or turn. Older men, on the other hand, tend to be overly cautious, deliberate for too long, take too few risks, regret their decisions too quickly, and rarely see a task through to completion, but are satisfied with mediocre results. It’s definitely beneficial to combine the strengths of both groups; this is good for the present, as the virtues of each age can balance out the flaws of the other; it’s also beneficial for the future, so young people can learn while older individuals take action; and finally, it’s good for external circumstances since older men are respected and younger men attract popularity and support. However, in terms of morality, youth may have the advantage, while age has the edge in politics. A certain rabbi, citing the text, “Your young men shall see visions, and your old men shall dream dreams,” infers that young people are closer to God than older individuals because vision is a clearer revelation than a dream; indeed, the more a person experiences the world, the more it intoxicates the mind; and old age tends to enhance understanding rather than the will and emotions. Some people ripen too quickly in their youth, which fades away early; these include those with fragile intellects whose sharpness dulls quickly, like Hermogenes the rhetorician, whose writings are remarkably clever, but later became dull-witted. Another group consists of those with natural abilities that shine in youth but not in old age, like a fluent and lavish speaking style, which suits the young well but not the old; Cicero remarked about Hortensius: “He remained the same, yet he was not suited for the same.” The third group consists of those who aim too high from the start and possess a greatness that their years cannot sustain, like Scipio Africanus, of whom Livy noted, “The last yielded to the first.”
XLIII.—OF BEAUTY.
Virtue is like a rich stone, best plain set; and surely virtue is best in a body that is comely, though not of delicate features, and that hath rather dignity of presence than beauty of aspect; neither is it always most seen, that very beautiful persons are otherwise of great virtue; as if nature were rather busy not to err, than in labor to produce excellency; and therefore they prove accomplished, but not of great spirit, and study rather behavior than virtue. But this holds not always; for Augustus Cæsar, Titus Vespasianus, Philip le Bel of France, Edward the Fourth of England,451 Alcibiades of Athens, Ismael the Sophy of Persia, were all high and great spirits, and yet the most beautiful men of their times. In beauty, that of favor is more than that of color; and that of decent and gracious motion, more than that of favor.452 That is the best part of beauty, which a picture cannot express; no, nor the first sight of the life. There is no excellent beauty that hath not some strangeness in the proportion. A man cannot tell whether Apelles, or Albert Durer, were the more trifler; whereof the one would make a personage by 241geometrical proportions; the other, by taking the best parts out of divers faces to make one excellent. Such personages, I think, would please nobody but the painter that made them: not but I think a painter may make a better face than ever was; but he must do it by a kind of felicity (as a musician that maketh an excellent air in music), and not by rule. A man shall see faces, that, if you examine them part by part, you shall find never a good, and yet altogether do well. If it be true that the principal part of beauty is in decent motion, certainly it is no marvel, though persons in years seem many times more amiable; “Pulchrorum autumnus pulcher;”453 for no youth can be comely but by pardon,454 and considering the youth as to make up the comeliness. Beauty is as summer fruits, which are easy to corrupt, and cannot last; and, for the most part, it makes a dissolute youth, and an age a little out of countenance; but yet certainly again, if it light well, it maketh virtues shine, and vices blush.
Virtue is like a precious stone, best displayed without a lot of embellishment; and indeed, virtue shines best in a person who is attractive, though not necessarily refined, and who embodies presence more than mere beauty; it’s not always the case that very beautiful people are also exceptionally virtuous; it’s as if nature is more focused on avoiding mistakes than on creating perfection; consequently, they may seem accomplished but lack depth, studying behavior rather than true virtue. However, this isn't the case all the time; figures like Augustus Caesar, Titus Vespasian, Philip the Fair of France, Edward IV of England,451 Alcibiades of Athens, and Ismael the Sophy of Persia were all remarkable individuals and also some of the most handsome men of their eras. In terms of beauty, attractiveness is more about expression than mere color, and graceful movement is valued more than facial features.452 The best aspect of beauty cannot be captured in a painting, nor even in the first impression of a living person. There’s no true beauty without a hint of uniqueness in the proportions. It’s hard to determine whether Apelles or Albert Durer was the greater artist; one created figures based on geometric proportions, while the other combined the best features of different faces to create one outstanding likeness. Such creations would likely please only the artist who made them: it's not that a painter can’t create a more beautiful face than ever existed; rather, he must do so through a certain intuition (like a musician crafting a beautiful melody), not through strict rules. One can come across faces that seem imperfect when scrutinized bit by bit but look good overall. If it’s true that the essence of beauty resides in graceful movement, it’s no wonder that older individuals often appear more attractive; “The autumn of the beautiful is beautiful;”453 because no young person can truly be charming without a little forgiveness,454 as youth must often contribute to overall appeal. Beauty is like summer fruits, which are prone to decay and don’t last; often, it leads to a reckless youth and an aging person who feels out of place; yet, if it’s well-directed, it can bring out virtues and make vices uncomfortable.
XLIV.—OF DEFORMITY.
Deformed persons are commonly even with nature; for, as nature hath done ill by them, so do they by nature, being for the most part (as the Scripture 242saith) “void of natural affection;”455 and so they have their revenge of nature. Certainly, there is a consent between the body and the mind, and where nature erreth in the one, she ventureth in the other: “Ubi peccat in uno, periclitatur in altero.”456 But because there is in man an election, touching the frame of his mind, and a necessity in the frame of his body, the stars of natural inclination are sometimes obscured by the sun of discipline and virtue; therefore, it is good to consider of deformity, not as a sign which is more deceivable, but as a cause which seldom faileth of the effect. Whosoever hath any thing fixed in his person that doth induce contempt, hath also a perpetual spur in himself to rescue and deliver himself from scorn; therefore, all deformed persons are extreme bold; first, as in their own defence, as being exposed to scorn, but, in process of time, by a general habit. Also, it stirreth in them industry, and especially of this kind, to watch and observe the weakness of others, that they may have somewhat to repay. Again, in their superiors, it quencheth jealousy towards them, as persons that they think they may at pleasure despise; and it layeth their competitors and emulators asleep, as never believing they should be in possibility of advancement till they see them in possession; so that upon the matter, in a great wit, deformity is an advantage to rising. Kings in ancient times (and at this present in some coun243tries) were wont to put great trust in eunuchs, because they that are envious towards all are more obnoxious and officious towards one; but yet their trust towards them hath rather been as to good spials,457 and good whisperers, than good magistrates and officers; and much like is the reason of deformed persons. Still the ground is, they will, if they be of spirit, seek to free themselves from scorn, which must be either by virtue or malice; and, therefore, let it not be marvelled, if sometimes they prove excellent persons; as was Agesilaüs, Zanger, the son of Solyman,458 Æsop, Gasca president of Peru; and Socrates may go likewise amongst them, with others.
Misshapen individuals are often in tune with nature; just as nature has dealt unfairly with them, they reciprocate by being at odds with nature, often being (as the Scriptures say) “lacking natural affection;”455 and in doing so, they take their revenge on nature. Clearly, there’s a connection between the body and the mind, and when nature falters in one, it fails in the other: “Ubi peccat in uno, periclitatur in altero.”456 However, since humans have the ability to choose regarding their mindset and a necessity concerning their physical form, the natural tendencies can sometimes be overshadowed by the brightness of discipline and virtue. Thus, it's important to view deformity not as a misleading sign but rather as a cause that rarely fails to produce an effect. Anyone who has something about them that invites contempt also has a constant motivation to protect and elevate themselves against ridicule; this makes all deformed individuals quite bold—initially, as a defense mechanism against mockery, but over time, it becomes a general habit. Furthermore, it drives them to be industrious, particularly in noticing the weaknesses of others to have something to retaliate with. Moreover, among their superiors, it diminishes jealousy, since these individuals think they can easily dismiss them; and it puts their rivals and competitors at ease, as they often don’t believe they can achieve success until they observe them already in power. So, in sharp minds, deformity can actually be an advantage for advancement. In ancient times, and even today in some areas, kings often placed a lot of trust in eunuchs; it’s because those who are envious of everyone else are more eager to serve one. However, their trust has tended to be more like that of good spies,457 and good informants, rather than effective rulers and officials; and the same reasoning applies to deformed individuals. Ultimately, they will, if they have spirit, strive to rid themselves of scorn, whether through virtue or malice; therefore, it should not be surprising if they sometimes turn out to be exceptional individuals, like Agesilaüs, Zanger, the son of Solyman,458 Æsop, Gasca, president of Peru; and Socrates also belongs among them, along with others.
XLV.—OF BUILDING.
Houses are built to live in, and not to look on, therefore, let use be preferred before uniformity, except where both may be had. Leave the goodly fabrics of houses, for beauty only, to the enchanted palaces of the poets, who build them with small cost. He that builds a fair house upon an ill seat,459 committeth himself to prison; neither do I reckon it an ill seat only where the air is unwholesome, but likewise where the air is unequal. As you shall see many fine seats set upon a knap460 of ground 244environed with higher hills round about it, whereby the heat of the sun is pent in, and the wind gathereth as in troughs; so as you shall have, and that suddenly, as great diversity of heat and cold as if you dwelt in several places. Neither is it ill air only that maketh an ill seat; but ill ways, ill markets, and, if you will consult with Momus,461 ill neighbors. I speak not of many more: want of water, want of wood, shade, and shelter, want of fruitfulness, and mixture of grounds of several natures; want of prospect, want of level grounds, want of places at some near distance for sports of hunting, hawking, and races; too near the sea, too remote; having the commodity of navigable rivers, or the discommodity of their overflowing; too far off from great cities, which may hinder business; or too near them, which lurcheth462 all provisions, and maketh every thing dear; where a man hath a great living laid together, and where he is scanted; all which, as it is impossible perhaps to find together, so it is good to know them, and think of them, that a man may take as many as he can; and if he have several dwellings, that he sort them so, that what he wanteth in the one he may find in the other. Lucullus answered Pompey well, who, when he saw his stately galleries and rooms so large and lightsome, in one of his houses, said, “Surely, an excellent place 245for summer, but how do you do in winter?” Lucullus answered, “Why, do you not think me as wise as some fowls are, that ever change their abode towards the winter?”463
Homes are meant to be lived in, not just looked at, so practicality should be prioritized over uniformity, unless both can be achieved. Leave the beautiful designs of houses for the enchanting palaces of poets, who create them at little cost. Whoever builds a lovely house in a bad location,459 is essentially locking themselves in a prison; I consider a location unfavorable not only if the air is unhealthy but also if the air is inconsistent. You can find many impressive sites situated on a hill460 surrounded by higher hills, which trap the sun's heat and create wind tunnels, resulting in sudden and extreme shifts between hot and cold, as if you lived in different places. But it’s not just bad air that makes a bad location; poor roads, inadequate markets, and, if you consult Momus,461 troublesome neighbors also contribute. I'm not even touching on many other factors: lack of water, lack of wood, absence of shade or shelter, lack of fertility, and a mix of uneven terrains; poor views, uneven grounds, lack of nearby spaces for hunting, falconry, and races; being too close to the sea or too far away; having the benefit of navigable rivers or the headache of them flooding; being too distant from large cities that can hamper business, or too close to them, which drives up costs and makes everything expensive; where someone has a substantial amount of land but feels restricted; all of which, while it might be impossible to find everything in one place, it's good to be aware of them so one can take advantage of as many as possible. If someone has multiple homes, they should arrange them so that what is lacking in one can be found in another. Lucullus had a clever response for Pompey, who, upon seeing the grand galleries and spacious, bright rooms in one of his homes, remarked, “Surely, an excellent place for summer, but how do you manage in winter?” Lucullus replied, “Well, don’t you think I’m clever enough to move like some birds do when winter comes?”463
To pass from the seat to the house itself, we will do as Cicero doth in the orator’s art, who writes books De Oratore, and a book he entitles Orator; whereof the former delivers the precepts of the art, and the latter the perfection. We will therefore describe a princely palace, making a brief model thereof; for it is strange to see, now in Europe, such huge buildings as the Vatican and Escurial,464 and some others be, and yet scarce a very fair room in them.
To go from the seat to the house itself, we will follow what Cicero does in the art of speaking, who writes books called De Oratore and one titled Orator; the first provides the principles of the art, and the latter details its mastery. Therefore, we will describe a grand palace, creating a brief model of it; it’s remarkable to see, now in Europe, such massive buildings like the Vatican and Escorial,464 and some others, yet there is hardly a really beautiful room among them.
First, therefore, I say, you cannot have a perfect palace, except you have two several sides; a side for the banquet, as is spoken of in the book of Esther,465 and a side for the household; the one for feasts and triumphs, and the other for dwelling. I understand both these sides to be not only returns, but parts of the front, and to be uniform without, though severally partitioned within; and to be on both sides of a great and stately tower in the midst of the front, that, as it were, joineth them together on either hand. I would have, on the side of the 246banquet in front, one only goodly room above stairs, of some forty foot high; and under it a room for a dressing or preparing place, at times of triumphs. On the other side, which is the household side, I wish it divided at the first into a hall and a chapel, (with a partition between), both of good state and bigness; and those not to go all the length, but to have at the further end a winter and a summer parlor, both fair; and under these rooms a fair and large cellar sunk under ground; and likewise some privy kitchens, with butteries, and pantries, and the like. As for the tower, I would have it two stories, of eighteen foot high apiece above the two wings; and a goodly leads upon the top, railed, with statues interposed; and the same tower to be divided into rooms, as shall be thought fit. The stairs likewise to the upper rooms, let them be upon a fair open newel,466 and finely railed in with images of wood cast into a brass color, and a very fair landing-place at the top. But this to be, if you do not point any of the lower rooms for a dining-place of servants; for, otherwise, you shall have the servants’ dinner after your own; for the steam of it will come up as in a tunnel.467 And so much for the front; only I understand the height of the first stairs to be sixteen foot, which is the height of the lower room.
First, I say, you can't have a perfect palace unless you have two distinct sides: one side for banquets, as mentioned in the book of Esther,465 and the other for the household; the first for feasts and celebrations, and the second for living. I see both sides as not just separate areas but parts of a unified front, looking uniform from the outside but divided within; they should be on either side of a grand and impressive tower in the center, which connects them both. On the banquet side at the front, I would want one nice room upstairs, about forty feet high, and below it, a space for getting ready during celebrations. On the household side, I envision it initially split into a hall and a chapel, with a partition between them, both spacious and impressive; these wouldn't extend all the way, but at the far end, there should be a winter parlor and a summer parlor, both beautifully designed; underneath these rooms, a large cellar sunk underground; and there should also be some private kitchens, with areas for storing butter, food, and similar items. As for the tower, I’d like it to be two stories, each eighteen feet high above the two wings, topped with a nice roof surrounded by railings, adorned with statues at intervals, and the tower should have its rooms divided as appropriate. The stairs to the upper rooms should be on a wide open newel,466 elegantly railed with wooden images in a brass finish, along with a beautiful landing at the top. This is if you don't intend any of the lower rooms to be for the servants' dining area; otherwise, you'll end up sharing the smell of their dinner with yours as it rises like steam in a tunnel.467 And that's all for the front; I want the height of the first set of stairs to be sixteen feet, which is the height of the lower room.
Beyond this front is there to be a fair court, but 247three sides of it of a far lower building than the front; and in all the four corners of that court fair staircases, cast into turrets on the outside, and not within the row of buildings themselves; but those towers are not to be of the height of the front, but rather proportionable to the lower building. Let the court not be paved, for that striketh up a great heat in summer, and much cold in winter; but only some side alleys with a cross, and the quarters to graze, being kept shorn, but not too near shorn. The row of return on the banquet side, let it be all stately galleries; in which galleries let there be three or five fine cupolas in the length of it, placed at equal distance, and fine colored windows of several works; on the household side, chambers of presence and ordinary entertainments, with some bedchambers; and let all three sides be a double house, without thorough lights on the sides, that you may have rooms from the sun, both for forenoon and afternoon. Cast it, also, that you may have rooms both for summer and winter; shady for summer, and warm for winter. You shall have sometimes fair houses so full of glass, that one cannot tell where to become468 to be out of the sun or cold. For imbowed469 windows, I hold them of good use; (in cities, indeed, upright470 do better, in respect of the uniformity towards the street;) for they be pretty retiring places for conference; and, 248besides, they keep both the wind and sun off; for that which would strike almost through the room doth scarce pass the window: but let them be but few, four in the court, on the sides only.
Beyond this front, there should be a spacious courtyard, but three sides of it should have buildings that are much shorter than the front. In each of the four corners of the courtyard, there should be elegant staircases designed as turrets on the outside, not inside the row of buildings. However, these towers shouldn’t be as tall as the front; they should match the height of the shorter buildings. The courtyard shouldn’t be paved, as that tends to get really hot in the summer and cold in the winter; it should just have some side paths crossing through it and areas for grazing, kept neatly trimmed, but not too short. On the banquet side, the row should feature impressive galleries. These galleries should have three or five lovely dome structures spaced evenly along their length, with beautifully colored windows of various designs. On the household side, there should be rooms for guests and regular gatherings, along with some bedrooms. All three sides should have a double structure with no openings on the sides to ensure that there are rooms shaded from the sun in both the morning and afternoon. Design it so there are spaces suitable for both summer and winter; cool in the summer, and warm in the winter. Sometimes, you’ll find houses with so much glass that it’s hard to decide where to go to escape the sun or the cold. I think bay windows are quite useful (though in cities, straight windows work better for their uniformity with the street), as they provide cozy spots for conversations and keep the wind and sun at bay; the light that would otherwise flood the room barely gets through the window. However, there should only be a few of them—four in the courtyard and just on the sides.
Beyond this court, let there be an inward court, of the same square and height, which is to be environed with the garden on all sides; and in the inside, cloistered on all sides upon decent and beautiful arches, as high as the first story; on the under story towards the garden, let it be turned to grotto, or place of shade, or estivation; and only have opening and windows towards the garden, and be level upon the floor, no whit sunk under ground to avoid all dampishness; and let there be a fountain, or some fair work of statues in the midst of this court, and to be paved as the other court was. These buildings to be for privy lodgings on both sides, and the end for privy galleries; whereof you must foresee that one of them be for an infirmary, if the prince or any special person should be sick, with chambers, bedchamber, “anticamera,”471 and “recamera,”472 joining to it; this upon the second story. Upon the ground story, a fair gallery, open, upon pillars; and upon the third story, likewise, an open gallery upon pillars, to take the prospect and freshness of the garden. At both corners of the further side, by way of return, let there be two delicate or rich cabinets, daintily paved, richly hanged, glazed with crystalline glass, and a rich 249cupola in the midst, and all other elegancy that can be thought upon. In the upper gallery, too, I wish that there may be, if the place will yield it, some fountains running in divers places from the wall, with some fine avoidances.473 And thus much for the model of the palace, save that you must have, before you come to the front, three courts: a green court plain, with a wall about it; a second court of the same, but more garnished with little turrets, or rather embellishments, upon the wall; and a third court, to make a square with the front, but not to be built, nor yet inclosed with a naked wall, but inclosed with terraces leaded aloft, and fairly garnished on the three sides, and cloistered on the inside with pillars, and not with arches below. As for offices, let them stand at distance, with some low galleries to pass from them to the palace itself.
Beyond this courtyard, there should be an inner courtyard of the same size and height, surrounded by a garden on all sides. Inside, it should be enclosed by graceful, beautiful arches, as tall as the first floor. The lower level facing the garden should be designed as a grotto, a shaded area, or a retreat; it should only have openings and windows facing the garden and be level with the floor, not sunk underground to prevent dampness. There should be a fountain or a beautiful statue in the center of this courtyard, and it should be paved like the outer courtyard. These buildings will serve as private lodgings on both sides and at the end for private galleries. One of these spaces must be designated as an infirmary for the prince or any special guest who is unwell, including a bedroom, a waiting area, and adjoining rooms, all situated on the second floor. On the ground floor, there should be a nice open gallery supported by pillars, and on the third floor, similarly, an open gallery on pillars to enjoy the view and freshness of the garden. At both corners of the far side, there should be two charming or luxurious rooms, beautifully paved, tastefully hung, fitted with crystal glass, and highlighted by an elegant dome in the center, along with all other refinements imaginable. In the upper gallery, I would like there to be, if the space allows, some fountains that flow from various points along the wall, with fine drainage. And that summarizes the design of the palace, except that you need to have, before arriving at the entrance, three courtyards: a simple green courtyard surrounded by a wall; a second courtyard of the same style but enhanced with small turrets or ornamental details on the wall; and a third courtyard that aligns with the entrance, but should not be built or enclosed with a plain wall, rather, it should be bordered by terraces that rise above and be nicely adorned on three sides, with a cloister inside supported by pillars instead of arches below. As for the service areas, they should be placed at a distance, connected to the palace with some low galleries.
XLVI.—OF GARDENS.
God Almighty first planted a garden; and, indeed, it is the purest of human pleasures; it is the greatest refreshment to the spirits of man; without which buildings and palaces are but gross handyworks; and a man shall ever see, that, when ages grow to civility and elegancy, men come to build stately, sooner than to garden finely; as if garden250ing were the greater perfection. I do hold it, in the royal ordering of gardens, there ought to be gardens for all the months in the year, in which, severally, things of beauty may be then in season. For December, and January, and the latter part of November, you must take such things as are green all winter: holly, ivy, bays, juniper, cypress-trees, yew, pineapple-trees;474 fir-trees, rosemary, lavender; periwinkle, the white, the purple, and the blue; germander, flags, orange-trees, lemon-trees, and myrtles, if they be stoved;475 and sweet marjoram, warm set. There followeth, for the latter part of January and February, the mezereon-tree, which then blossoms; crocus vernus, both the yellow and the gray; primroses, anemones, the early tulip, the hyacinthus orientalis, chamaïris fritellaria. For March, there come violets, especially the single blue, which are the earliest; the yellow daffodil, the daisy, the almond-tree in blossom, the peach-tree in blossom, the cornelian-tree in blossom, sweet-brier. In April, follow the double white violet, the wall-flower, the stock-gillyflower, the cowslip, flower-de-luces, and lilies of all natures; rosemary flowers, the tulip, the double peony, the pale daffodil, the French honeysuckle, the cherry-tree in blossom, the damascene476 and plum-trees in blossom, the white thorn in leaf, the lilac-tree. In May and June come pinks of all sorts, especially the blush-pink; roses of all 251kinds, except the musk, which comes later; honeysuckles, strawberries, bugloss, columbine, the French marigold, flos Africanus, cherry-tree in fruit, ribes,477 figs in fruit, rasps, vine-flowers, lavender in flowers, the sweet satyrian, with the white flower; herba muscaria, lilium convallium, the apple-tree in blossom. In July come gillyflowers of all varieties, musk-roses, the lime-tree in blossom, early pears, and plums in fruit, genitings,478 codlins. In August come plums of all sorts in fruit, pears, apricots, barberries, filberts, musk-melons, monks-hoods, of all colors. In September come grapes, apples, poppies of all colors, peaches, melocotones,479 nectarines, cornelians,480 wardens,481 quinces. In October, and the beginning of November, come services, medlars, bullaces, roses cut or removed to come late, hollyoaks, and such like. These particulars are for the climate of London; but my meaning is perceived, that you may have “ver perpetuum,”482 as the place affords.
God Almighty first created a garden; and truly, it is the purest of human joys; it’s the greatest refreshment for the human spirit; without it, buildings and palaces are just clumsy constructions; and a person will always notice that as societies become more civilized and elegant, people tend to build stately homes before they focus on creating beautiful gardens, as if gardening were the ultimate perfection. I believe that in the royal design of gardens, there should be gardens for every month of the year, where beautiful things can be in season at that time. For December, January, and the latter part of November, you should choose plants that stay green all winter: holly, ivy, bays, juniper, cypress, yew, pineapple trees; 474 fir trees, rosemary, lavender; periwinkle in white, purple, and blue; germander, flags, orange trees, lemon trees, and myrtles, if they can be kept warm; 475 and sweet marjoram. Then, for late January and February, there’s the mezereon tree, which then blooms; crocus vernus, in both yellow and gray; primroses, anemones, the early tulip, hyacinthus orientalis, and chamaïris fritellaria. In March, violets appear, especially the single blue ones, which are the earliest; the yellow daffodil, the daisy, the almond tree in bloom, the peach tree in bloom, the cornelian tree in bloom, and sweet-brier. In April, there are double white violets, wallflowers, stock gillyflowers, cowslips, irises, and lilies of all kinds; rosemary flowers, tulips, double peonies, pale daffodils, French honeysuckle, cherry trees in bloom, damask and plum trees in bloom, white thorn in leaf, and lilac trees. In May and June, you’ll find pinks of various kinds, especially the blush pink; roses of all types, except for musk roses, which bloom later; honeysuckles, strawberries, bugloss, columbine, French marigolds, African flowers, cherry trees with fruit, ribes, 477 figs with fruit, raspberries, vine flowers, lavender in bloom, the sweet satyrian with white flowers; herba muscaria, lilium convallium, and apple trees in bloom. In July, gillyflowers of all varieties appear, musk roses, lime trees in bloom, early pears, and plums with fruit, genitings, 478 codlins. In August, all kinds of plums bear fruit, along with pears, apricots, barberries, filberts, musk melons, and monkshoods in all colors. In September, grapes, apples, poppies in every color, peaches, melocotons, 479 nectarines, cornelians, 480 wardens, 481 and quinces appear. In October and the beginning of November, there are services, medlars, bullaces, roses that have been cut or moved to bloom late, holly oaks, and similar plants. These details are geared towards the climate of London; but I hope you understand my point, that you can have “ver perpetuum,” 482 as the place allows.
And because the breath of flowers is far sweeter in the air (where it comes and goes, like the warbling of music), than in the hand, therefore nothing is more fit for that delight, than to know what be 252the flowers and plants that do best perfume the air. Roses, damask and red, are fast flowers483 of their smell, so that you may walk by a whole row of them, and find nothing of their sweetness; yea, though it be in a morning’s dew. Bays, likewise, yield no smell as they grow, rosemary little, nor sweet marjoram; that which, above all others, yields the sweetest smell in the air, is the violet, especially the white double violet, which comes twice a year, about the middle of April, and about Bartholomew-tide. Next to that is the musk-rose; then the strawberry leaves dying, with a most excellent cordial smell; then the flower of the vines, it is a little dust like the dust of a bent,484 which grows upon the cluster in the first coming forth; then sweet-brier, then wall-flowers, which are very delightful to be set under a parlor or lower chamber window; then pinks and gillyflowers, specially the matted pink and clove gillyflower; then the flowers of the lime-tree; then the honeysuckles, so they be somewhat afar off. Of bean-flowers485 I speak not, because they are field-flowers; but those which perfume the air most delightfully, not passed by as the rest, but being trodden upon and crushed, are three; that is, burnet, wild thyme, and water-mints; therefore you are to set whole alleys of them, to have the pleasure when you walk or tread.
And because the scent of flowers is much sweeter in the air (where it comes and goes, like the sound of music) than in your hand, nothing is better for that pleasure than knowing which flowers and plants best perfume the air. Roses, both damask and red, are quick to lose their smell, so you might walk past an entire row of them and not notice their sweetness, even in the morning dew. Bay leaves give off hardly any scent while growing, rosemary is faint, and sweet marjoram too. The flower that gives off the sweetest smell in the air is the violet, especially the white double violet, which blooms twice a year, around mid-April and again at Bartholomew-tide. Next is the musk-rose, followed by the scent of dying strawberry leaves, which has a lovely, soothing aroma. After that come vine flowers, which look like tiny dust particles similar to the dust from bent grass, appearing on the clusters when they first bloom. Then there's sweet-brier, followed by wallflowers, which are very nice to plant under a living room or lower chamber window; then pinks and gillyflowers, especially the matted pink and clove gillyflower; then the flowers of the lime tree; and finally honeysuckles, as long as they are a bit farther away. I won't mention bean flowers because they are field flowers, but those that most delightfully perfume the air, instead of being overlooked like the others, are three: burnet, wild thyme, and water-mints; so you should plant entire pathways of them to enjoy the scent while you walk or tread.
For gardens (speaking of those which are indeed prince-like, as we have done of buildings), the contents ought not well to be under thirty acres of ground, and to be divided into three parts; a green in the entrance, a heath, or desert, in the going forth, and the main garden in the midst, besides alleys on both sides; and I like well that four acres of ground be assigned to the green, six to the heath, four and four to either side, and twelve to the main garden. The green hath two pleasures: the one, because nothing is more pleasant to the eye than green grass kept finely shorn; the other, because it will give you a fair alley in the midst, by which you may go in front upon a stately hedge, which is to inclose the garden. But because the alley will be long, and in great heat of the year, or day, you ought not to buy the shade in the garden by going in the sun through the green; therefore you are, of either side the green, to plant a covert alley, upon carpenter’s work, about twelve foot in height, by which you may go in shade into the garden. As for the making of knots or figures, with divers colored earths, that they may lie under the windows of the house on that side which the garden stands, they be but toys; you may see as good sights many times in tarts. The garden is best to be square, encompassed on all the four sides with a stately arched hedge: the arches to be upon pillars of carpenter’s work, of some ten foot high, and six foot broad, and the spaces between of the same dimen254sion with the breadth of the arch. Over the arches let there be an entire hedge of some four foot high, framed also upon carpenter’s work; and upon the upper hedge, over every arch a little turret, with a belly enough to receive a cage of birds; and over every space between the arches some other little figure, with broad plates of round colored glass gilt, for the sun to play upon; but this hedge I intend to be raised upon a bank, not steep, but gently slope, of some six foot, set all with flowers. Also, I understand that this square of the garden should not be the whole breadth of the ground, but to leave on either side ground enough for diversity of side alleys, unto which the two covert alleys of the green may deliver you;486 but there must be no alleys with hedges at either end of this great inclosure; not at the hither end, for letting487 your prospect upon this fair hedge from the green; nor at the further end for letting your prospect from the hedge through the arches upon the heath.
For gardens (talking about those that are truly grand, like we’ve discussed with buildings), the space should ideally be no less than thirty acres, divided into three sections: a green area at the entrance, a heath or open area at the exit, and the main garden in the center, with paths on both sides. I recommend allocating four acres for the green, six for the heath, four for each side path, and twelve for the main garden. The green area offers two benefits: first, nothing is more pleasing to the eye than beautifully kept green grass; second, it will create a nice path in the middle that leads to a grand hedge enclosing the garden. However, since the path will be long, and during hot seasons, you shouldn’t have to walk through the sun just to get shade in the garden. So, on either side of the green, you should plant a shaded path, built with carpentry, about twelve feet high, allowing you to enter the garden in the shade. Regarding creating designs or patterns using colored earths under the windows of the house overlooking the garden, those are just trivial things; you can see equally beautiful patterns in pastries. The garden should ideally be square and surrounded on all four sides with a grand arched hedge: the arches supported by pillars made of wood, about ten feet tall and six feet wide, with spaces in between the same dimensions as the width of the arch. Above the arches, there should be a continuous hedge about four feet high, also built on a wooden frame; and on each arch, a small turret that can hold a birdcage, with figures above each space between the arches featuring broad plates of round colored glass to catch the sun. This hedge should be raised on a gentle slope, about six feet high and filled with flowers. Additionally, the square of the garden shouldn't take up the entire width of the land but should leave enough space on either side for various side paths that connect to the two shaded paths from the green. However, no paths with hedges should be at either end of this large enclosure; none at the front so you can enjoy the view of the beautiful hedge from the green, and none at the back, to maintain your view of the hedge through the arches into the heath.
For the ordering of the ground within the great hedge, I leave it to variety of device; advising, nevertheless, that whatsoever form you cast it into first, it be not too bushy, or full of work; wherein I, for my part, do not like images cut out in juniper or other garden stuff; they be for children. Little low hedges, round like welts, with some pretty pyramids, I like well; and in some places fair columns, upon frames of carpenter’s work. I 255would also have the alleys spacious and fair. You may have closer alleys upon the side grounds, but none in the main garden. I wish, also, in the very middle, a fair mount, with three ascents and alleys, enough for four to walk abreast; which I would have to be perfect circles, without any bulwarks or embossments; and the whole mount to be thirty foot high, and some fine banqueting-house, with some chimneys neatly cast, and without too much glass.
For the layout of the area inside the great hedge, I leave it up to your creativity; however, I suggest that whatever shape you start with shouldn't be too overgrown or complicated. Personally, I'm not a fan of images made from juniper or other garden plants; those are more for kids. I like small, rounded hedges, shaped like bumps, along with some nice pyramids; and in certain spots, elegant columns built from woodwork. I would also prefer the walkways to be spacious and nice. You can have narrower paths on the side areas, but none in the main garden. Additionally, I envision a beautiful mound in the center, with three paths up it, wide enough for four people to walk side by side; I want these to be perfect circles, with no barriers or protrusions; the entire mound should be thirty feet high, featuring a lovely banquet house with neatly designed chimneys and not too much glass.
For fountains, they are a great beauty and refreshment; but pools mar all, and make the garden unwholesome, and full of flies and frogs. Fountains I intend to be of two natures; the one that sprinkleth or spouteth water; the other, a fair receipt of water, of some thirty or forty foot square, but without fish, or slime, or mud. For the first, the ornaments of images, gilt or of marble, which are in use, do well; but the main matter is so to convey the water, as it never stay, either in the bowls or in the cistern; that the water be never by rest discolored, green, or red, or the like, or gather any mossiness or putrefaction; besides that, it is to be cleansed every day by the hand; also, some steps up to it, and some fine pavement about it, doth well. As for the other kind of fountain, which we may call a bathing-pool, it may admit much curiosity and beauty, wherewith we will not trouble ourselves: as, that the bottom be finely paved, and with images; the sides likewise; and, withal, embellished with colored glass, and such things of256 lustre; encompassed, also, with fine rails of low statues. But the main point is the same that we mentioned in the former kind of fountain; which is, that the water be in perpetual motion, fed by a water higher than the pool, and delivered into it by fair spouts, and then discharged away under ground, by some equality of bores, that it stay little; and for fine devices, of arching water488 without spilling, and making it rise in several forms (of feathers, drinking-glasses, canopies, and the like), they be pretty things to look on, but nothing to health and sweetness.
For fountains, they add great beauty and refreshment; but pools ruin everything, making the garden unhealthy and swarming with flies and frogs. I envision two types of fountains: one that sprays or spouts water; the other, a beautiful water basin, about thirty or forty feet square, but without fish, slime, or mud. For the first type, having ornaments like statues made of gold or marble works well, but the key is to ensure the water doesn’t stagnate in the bowls or the cistern. The water shouldn’t become discolored, green, or red, nor should it gather moss or decay; it also needs to be cleaned daily. Additionally, some steps leading up to it and nice paving around it are a good idea. As for the second type of fountain, which we can call a bathing pool, it can showcase a lot of creativity and beauty, but we won’t overthink it: the bottom should be well-paved and adorned with statues; the sides should also be decorated and enhanced with colorful glass and other shiny materials. It should also be surrounded by attractive low statues. The main point remains the same as mentioned for the first type of fountain: the water should be in constant motion, sourced from a higher point, and delivered into the pool through elegant spouts, then drained away underground with minimal retention. Creative designs featuring arched water without spilling, and making it rise in various shapes (like feathers, drinking glasses, canopies, and so on) are nice to look at, but they don’t enhance health or cleanliness.
For the heath, which was the third part of our plot, I wish it to be framed as much as may be to a natural wildness. Trees I would have none in it, but some thickets made only of sweet-brier and honeysuckle, and some wild vine amongst; and the ground set with violets, strawberries, and primroses; for these are sweet, and prosper in the shade, and these to be in the heath here and there, not in any order. I like also little heaps, in the nature of molehills (such as are in wild heaths), to be set, some with wild thyme, some with pinks, some with germander, that gives a good flower to the eye; some with periwinkle, some with violets, some with strawberries, some with cowslips, some with daisies, some with red roses, some with lilium convallium,489 257some with sweet-williams red, some with bear’s-foot, and the like low flowers, being withal sweet and sightly; part of which heaps to be with standards of little bushes pricked upon their top, and part without; the standards to be roses, juniper, holly, barberries (but here and there, because of the smell of their blossom), red currants, gooseberries, rosemary, bays, sweetbrier, and such like; but these standards to be kept with cutting, that they grow not out of course.
For the heath, which is the third part of our plot, I want it to be as close to natural wildness as possible. I don't want any trees, but I’d like some thickets made only of sweetbriar and honeysuckle, along with some wild vines. The ground should have violets, strawberries, and primroses because they smell nice and thrive in the shade, and they should be scattered throughout the heath without any specific order. I also like little mounds, similar to molehills (like those found in wild heaths), scattered about, some with wild thyme, some with pinks, some with germander that has pretty flowers, some with periwinkle, some with violets, some with strawberries, some with cowslips, some with daisies, some with red roses, and some with lily of the valley,489 257 some with sweet williams in red, some with bear's foot, and other low flowers that are both pretty and fragrant. Some of these mounds should have small bushes with points at the top, and some without; the bushes should include roses, juniper, holly, barberries (but only here and there due to their fragrant blossoms), red currants, gooseberries, rosemary, bay laurel, sweetbriar, and similar plants; but these bushes should be pruned to keep them from growing out of control.
For the side grounds, you are to fill them with variety of alleys, private, to give a full shade; some of them wheresoever the sun be. You are to frame some of them likewise for shelter, that when the wind blows sharp, you may walk as in a gallery: and those alleys must be likewise hedged at both ends, to keep out the wind; and these closer alleys must be ever finely gravelled, and no grass, because of going wet. In many of these alleys, likewise, you are to set fruit-trees of all sorts, as well upon the walls as in ranges;490 and this should be generally observed, that the borders wherein you plant your fruit-trees be fair, and large, and low, and not steep; and set with fine flowers, but thin and sparingly, lest they deceive491 the trees. At the end of both the side grounds I would have a mount of some pretty height, leaving the wall of the inclosure breast high, to look abroad into the fields.
For the side areas, you should fill them with a variety of private alleys to provide full shade, depending on where the sun is. You should also create some of these alleys for shelter, so that when the wind blows sharply, you can walk through them as if in a gallery. These alleys need to be hedged at both ends to block the wind, and they should be finely gravelled without any grass to prevent them from getting muddy. In many of these alleys, you should plant fruit trees of all kinds, both along the walls and in rows; and it should generally be noted that the borders where you plant your fruit trees should be neat, wide, and low, not steep, and filled with beautiful flowers, but spaced out and minimal, so they don't overshadow the trees. At the end of both side areas, I would like there to be a small hill of some attractive height, leaving the enclosure wall at chest height, so you can look out into the fields.
For the main garden, I do not deny but there 258should be some fair alleys ranged on both sides with fruit-trees, and some pretty tufts of fruit-trees and arbors with seats, set in some decent order; but these to be by no means set too thick, but to leave the main garden so as it be not close, but the air open and free. For as for shade, I would have you rest upon the alleys of the side grounds, there to walk, if you be disposed, in the heat of the year or day; but to make account492 that the main garden is for the more temperate parts of the year, and in the heat of summer for the morning and the evening or overcast days.
For the main garden, I won’t deny that there should be some nice pathways lined on both sides with fruit trees, and some attractive clusters of fruit trees and arbors with seating, arranged in a pleasing way; however, these shouldn’t be too crowded, leaving the main garden spacious so the air feels open and free. As for shade, I’d suggest you enjoy the pathways in the side areas, where you can walk if you want in the heat of the year or day; but keep in mind that the main garden is meant for the cooler parts of the year and during the hot summer for mornings, evenings, or cloudy days.
For aviaries, I like them not, except they be of that largeness as they may be turfed, and have living plants and bushes set in them; that the birds may have more scope and natural nestling, and that no foulness appear in the floor of the aviary. So I have made a platform of a princely garden, partly by precept, partly by drawing; not a model, but some general lines of it; and in this I have spared for no cost. But it is nothing for great princes, that, for the most part, taking advice with workmen, with no less cost set their things together, and sometimes add statues and such things for state and magnificence, but nothing to the true pleasure of a garden.
I’m not a fan of aviaries unless they’re large enough to have grass and live plants and bushes inside. This way, the birds can enjoy more space and natural nesting, and the floor of the aviary stays clean. So, I’ve designed a platform for a grand garden, partly based on advice and partly from sketches; it's not a detailed model, just some general ideas. I didn’t hold back on spending for it. But it’s not the same for wealthy princes, who often consult with workers and spend just as much to put things together, sometimes adding statues and similar decorations for show, yet they don’t really enhance the true enjoyment of a garden.
XLVII.—OF NEGOTIATING.
It is generally better to deal by speech than by letter; and by the mediation of a third, than by a man’s self. Letters are good, when a man would draw an answer by letter back again; or when it may serve for a man’s justification afterwards to produce his own letter, or where it may be danger to be interrupted or heard by pieces. To deal in person is good, when a man’s face breedeth regard, as commonly with inferiors; or in tender cases, where a man’s eye upon the countenance of him with whom he speaketh, may give him a direction how far to go; and, generally, where a man will reserve to himself liberty, either to disavow or to expound. In choice of instruments, it is better to choose men of a plainer sort, that are like to do that that is committed to them, and to report back again faithfully the success, than those that are cunning to contrive out of other men’s business somewhat to grace themselves, and will help the matter in report, for satisfaction sake. Use also such persons as affect493 the business wherein they are employed, for that quickeneth much; and such as are fit for the matter, as bold men for expostulation, fairspoken men for persuasion, crafty men for inquiry and observation, froward and absurd men for business that doth not 260well bear out itself. Use also such as have been lucky and prevailed before in things wherein you have employed them; for that breeds confidence, and they will strive to maintain their prescription. It is better to sound a person with whom one deals afar off, than to fall upon the point at first, except you mean to surprise him by some short question. It is better dealing with men in appetite,494 than with those that are where they would be. If a man deal with another upon conditions, the start of first performance is all; which a man cannot reasonably demand, except either the nature of the thing be such, which must go before; or else a man can persuade the other party, that he shall still need him in some other thing; or else that he be counted the honester man. All practice is to discover, or to work. Men discover themselves in trust, in passion, at unawares; and, of necessity, when they would have somewhat done, and cannot find an apt pretext. If you would work any man, you must either know his nature and fashions, and so lead him; or his ends, and so persuade him; or his weakness and disadvantages, and so awe him; or those that have interest in him, and so govern him. In dealing with cunning persons, we must ever consider their ends, to interpret their speeches; and it is good to say little to them, and that which they least look for. 261 In all negotiations of difficulty, a man may not look to sow and reap at once; but must prepare business, and so ripen it by degrees.
It is usually better to communicate verbally than in writing; and to use a third party as a mediator rather than dealing directly with someone. Written letters are useful when someone wants a written response; or when it might help a person justify themselves later by producing their own letter; or in situations where it could be dangerous to be interrupted or heard in fragments. Meeting in person is effective when a person's presence commands respect, often seen with those in lower positions; or in sensitive situations where observing the other person's facial expressions can guide how far to proceed; and generally, where a person wants to keep the option to deny or clarify. When choosing people to help, it's better to select straightforward individuals who are likely to complete the tasks assigned to them and honestly report back on the outcomes rather than those who manipulate others' affairs to elevate themselves and embellish reports for personal satisfaction. Also, engage individuals who are genuinely interested in the tasks they are given, as that increases motivation; and choose those that are suitable for the task—bold individuals for challenging discussions, persuasive speakers for convincing others, clever people for researching and observing, and difficult or awkward personalities for tasks that might not go smoothly. Also, work with those who have had success in similar endeavors before, as this builds trust, and they'll work hard to maintain their track record. It's better to gauge someone's thoughts or feelings from a distance before getting to the main point, unless you intend to surprise them with a quick question. It's easier to negotiate with people who are eager for something than with those who are already content. If someone is negotiating under certain conditions, the initial action is crucial; which can only be reasonably expected if the nature of the task requires a preliminary step; or if they can convince the other party that they'll still need them for something else; or if the individual is viewed as the more trustworthy person. All dealings aim to discover or influence. People reveal their true selves through trust, emotion, or unexpectedly; and often when they're trying to achieve something but can't find a suitable excuse. If you want to influence someone, you need to understand their personality and behavior, and guide them accordingly; or know their goals and persuade them; or identify their weaknesses and intimidate them; or take into account those who hold influence over them and manage them accordingly. When dealing with cunning individuals, always consider their motives to interpret what they say; it's wise to say little to them and provide the least expected responses. 261 In all complex negotiations, one should not expect to plant and harvest at the same time; instead, they must prepare the groundwork and nurture it gradually.
XLVIII.—OF FOLLOWERS AND FRIENDS.
Costly followers are not to be liked, lest, while a man maketh his train longer, he make his wings shorter. I reckon to be costly, not them alone which charge the purse, but which are wearisome and importune in suits. Ordinary followers ought to challenge no higher conditions than countenance, recommendation, and protection from wrongs. Factious followers are worse to be liked, which follow not upon affection to him with whom they range themselves, but upon discontentment conceived against some other; whereupon commonly ensueth that ill intelligence, that we many times see between great personages. Likewise glorious495 followers, who make themselves as trumpets of the commendations of those they follow, are full of inconvenience, for they taint business through want of secrecy; and they export honor from a man, and make him a return in envy. There is a kind of followers, likewise, which are dangerous, being indeed espials; which inquire the secrets of the house, and 262bear tales of them to others; yet such men, many times, are in great favor, for they are officious, and commonly exchange tales. The following, by certain estates496 of men, answerable to that which a great person himself professeth (as of soldiers to him that hath been employed in the wars, and the like), hath ever been a thing civil and well taken even in monarchies, so it be without too much pomp or popularity. But the most honorable kind of following, is to be followed as one that apprehendeth to advance virtue and desert in all sorts of persons; and yet, where there is no eminent odds in sufficiency, it is better to take with the more passable, than with the more able; and, besides, to speak truth in base times, active men are of more use than virtuous. It is true, that, in government, it is good to use men of one rank equally; for to countenance some extraordinarily, is to make them insolent, and the rest discontent, because they may claim a due: but, contrariwise, in favor, to use men with much difference and election is good: for it maketh the persons preferred more thankful, and the rest more officious, because all is of favor. It is good discretion not to make too much of any man at the first, because one cannot hold out that proportion. To be governed, as we call it, by one, is not safe, for it shows softness,497 and gives a freedom to scandal and disreputation; for those that would not censure, or 263speak ill of a man immediately, will talk more boldly of those that are so great with them, and thereby wound their honor; yet to be distracted with many is worse, for it makes men to be of the last impression, and full of change. To take advice of some few friends is ever honorable; for lookers-on many times see more than gamesters, and the vale best discovereth the hill. There is little friendship in the world, and least of all between equals, which was wont498 to be magnified. That that is, is between superior and inferior,499 whose fortunes may comprehend the one the other.
Costly followers shouldn't be trusted too much, because while someone may try to expand their influence, they might also diminish their own abilities. I think being expensive doesn't just mean those who cost money, but also those who are tiring and bothersome in their demands. Regular followers should only expect basic support, endorsement, and protection from harm. Problematic followers are even worse, following not out of loyalty but out of grievances against someone else; this often leads to the conflicts we commonly see among powerful individuals. Similarly, fame-seeking followers, who act like trumpets announcing the praise of those they follow, can be problematic because they compromise confidentiality and take away honor from a person, replacing it with jealousy. There's also a type of follower who is dangerous, acting as spies, seeking to uncover the secrets within a household, and then gossiping about them; these individuals can often find favor because they are helpful and frequently share information. Following certain individuals, based on their status—like soldiers serving a commander who has been in battle—has always been seen as proper and acceptable, even in monarchies, as long as it’s not too showy or popular. However, the most honorable form of following is to be supported as someone who seeks to promote virtue and merit in all people; yet, when there's no significant difference in capability, it's better to align with the more approachable than the more skilled. Additionally, to speak frankly in difficult times, active individuals tend to be more useful than virtuous ones. It’s true that in governance, treating individuals of the same rank equally is beneficial; elevating some can lead to arrogance and dissatisfaction among others, as they may feel entitled. Conversely, using people with noticeable difference and selectivity in favor can be wise, as it makes those favored more appreciative and the others more eager to assist, recognizing that all support is based on favor. It’s wise discretion not to overly praise anyone at first, as maintaining that level of regard may prove difficult. Being overseen by one individual is unsafe, as it fosters complacency and opens the door to scandal and bad reputation; those who wouldn't criticize or speak ill of someone directly will often talk more freely about those close to them, thereby damaging their honor. Yet, being overwhelmed by too many influences is worse, as it makes people susceptible to changing their opinions and easily swayed. Taking advice from a few trusted friends is always respectable, as those on the sidelines often see more than those actively involved in a situation, much like how the valley reveals the hill. True friendship is rare, especially among equals, which used to be highly valued. What truly exists is the bond between those of higher and lower status, which may allow one to uplift the other.
XLIX.—OF SUITORS.
Many ill matters and projects are undertaken; and private suits do putrefy the public good. Many good matters are undertaken with bad minds; I mean not only corrupt minds, but crafty minds, that intend not performance. Some embrace suits, which never mean to deal effectually in them; but if they see there may be life in the matter, by some other mean they will be content to win a thank, or take a second reward, or, at least, to make use, in the mean time, of the suitor’s hopes. Some take hold of suits only for an occasion to cross some other, or to make an information, whereof they could not otherwise have apt pretext, without care what become of the suit when that turn is served; or, generally, to make other men’s business a kind of entertainment to bring in their own: nay, some undertake suits with a full purpose to let them fall, to the end to gratify the adverse party, or competitor. Surely, there is in some sort a right in every suit; either a right of equity, if it be a suit of controversy, or a right of desert, if it be a suit of petition. If affection lead a man to favor the wrong side in justice, let him rather use his countenance to compound the matter than to carry it. If affection lead a man to favor the less worthy in desert, let him do it without depraving500 or disabling 265the better deserver. In suits which a man doth not well understand, it is good to refer them to some friend of trust and judgment, that may report whether he may deal in them with honor; but let him choose well his referendaries,501 for else he may be led by the nose. Suitors are so distasted502 with delays and abuses, that plain dealing in denying to deal in suits at first, and reporting the success barely,503 and in challenging no more thanks than one hath deserved, is grown not only honorable, but also gracious. In suits of favor, the first coming ought to take little place;504 so far forth505 consideration may be had of his trust, that if intelligence of the matter could not otherwise have been had but by him, advantage be not taken of the note,506 but the party left to his other means, and in some sort recompensed for his discovery. To be ignorant of the value of a suit is simplicity; as well as to be ignorant of the right thereof, is want of conscience. Secrecy in suits is a great mean of obtaining; for voicing them to be in forwardness may discourage some kind of suitors, but doth quicken and awake others. But timing of the suit is the principal; timing, I say, not only in respect of the person that should grant it, but in respect of those which are like to cross it. Let a man, in the 266choice of his mean, rather choose the fittest mean, than the greatest mean; and rather them that deal in certain things, than those that are general. The reparation of a denial is sometimes equal to the first grant, if a man show himself neither dejected nor discontented. “Iniquum petas, ut æquum feras,”507 is a good rule, where a man hath strength of favor; but otherwise a man were better rise in his suit; for he that would have ventured at first to have lost the suitor, will not, in the conclusion, lose both the suitor and his own former favor. Nothing is thought so easy a request to a great person as his letter: and yet if it be not in a good cause, it is so much out of his reputation. There are no worse instruments than these general contrivers of suits; for they are but a kind of poison and infection to public proceedings.
Many unfair matters and projects are taken on; and personal disputes harm the public good. A lot of good initiatives are started with bad intentions; I mean not just corrupt intentions, but cunning ones that don’t intend to follow through. Some take on lawsuits but never really plan to engage with them; if they see there’s potential in the issue, they’ll be okay with just getting a thank you, or a secondary reward, or at least making use of the other person's hopes in the meantime. Some take on lawsuits just to block others or to gather information they wouldn’t have had an excuse to ask for otherwise, without caring what happens to the case after that aim is achieved; or, generally, to turn other people’s business into an opportunity to advance their own. In fact, some take on lawsuits with the full intention of letting them fail, just to please the opposing party or competitor. Surely, there is some kind of right in every case; either a right based on fairness, if it’s a disputed case, or a right earned, if it’s a petition. If someone's feelings lead them to support the less deserving side in justice, they should use their influence to resolve the issue rather than complicate it. If someone’s feelings lead them to favor the less worthy in merit, they should do so without undermining or discrediting the more deserving party. For cases that someone doesn’t fully understand, it’s wise to refer them to a trusted friend with good judgment, who can help determine whether it’s honorable to get involved; but they should choose their advisors carefully, or they might be led astray. Those who are seeking justice are so frustrated by delays and abuses that being straightforward in refusing to engage in lawsuits from the beginning, and reporting outcomes as they are, along with asking for no more gratitude than one deserves, has become not only honorable but also appreciated. In favor-seeking cases, the initial requester should not hold too much weight; consideration should be given to their trust, such that if the information could only have been learned through them, they shouldn't be exploited for that knowledge, but should instead be rewarded in some way for their disclosure. Being unaware of the value of a lawsuit is naive; just as not knowing the rights involved shows a lack of integrity. Keeping lawsuits confidential is a significant strategy for success; announcing them prematurely might discourage some types of petitioners, but it energizes and motivates others. Timing of the lawsuit is crucial; not just in relation to the person who should grant it, but also concerning those who might oppose it. A person should, in choosing their approach, prefer the most suitable method over the most powerful one; and prefer those who specialize in specific matters over those who are generalists. The remedy for a denial can sometimes be just as valuable as an initial approval if one shows they’re neither disheartened nor unhappy. “Ask for the unjust, so you can gain the just,” is a good rule when someone has strong favor; otherwise, it's better to push through with the case, since someone willing to risk losing the petitioner at first won’t ultimately lose both the petitioner and their previous favor. Nothing seems like an easier request from a powerful person than their letter; yet if it’s for a bad cause, it can seriously damage their reputation. There are no worse agents than those general schemers in lawsuits; they are merely a kind of poison and a hindrance to public processes.
L.—OF STUDIES.508
Studies serve for delight, for ornament, and for ability. Their chief use for delight, is in privateness and retiring; for ornament, is in discourse; and for ability, is in the judgment and disposition of business; for expert men can execute, and per267haps judge of particulars one by one; but the general counsels, and the plots and marshalling of affairs, come best from those that are learned. To spend too much time in studies, is sloth; to use them too much for ornament, is affectation; to make judgment wholly by their rules, is the humor of a scholar. They perfect nature, and are perfected by experience; for natural abilities are like natural plants, that need pruning by study; and studies themselves do give forth directions too much at large, except they be bounded in by experience. Crafty men contemn studies, simple men admire them, and wise men use them; for they teach not their own use; but that is a wisdom without them and above them, won by observation. Read not to contradict and confute, nor to believe and take for granted, nor to find talk and discourse, but to weigh and consider. Some books are to be tasted, others to be swallowed, and some few to be chewed and digested; that is, some books are to be read only in parts; others to be read, but not curiously;509 and some few to be read wholly, and with diligence and attention. Some books also may be read by deputy, and extracts made of them by others; but that would be only in the less important arguments and the meaner sort of books; else distilled books are, like common distilled waters, flashy510 things. Reading maketh a full man; conference a ready man; and writing an exact man; and, therefore, if 268a man write little, he had need have a great memory; if he confer little, he had need have a present wit; and if he read little, he had need have much cunning, to seem to know that he doth not. Histories make men wise; poets, witty; the mathematics, subtile; natural philosophy, deep; moral, grave; logic and rhetoric, able to contend: “Abeunt studia in mores;”511 nay, there is no stand or impediment in the wit, but may be wrought out by fit studies. Like as diseases of the body may have appropriate exercises, bowling is good for the stone and reins, shooting for the lungs and breast, gentle walking for the stomach, riding for the head and the like; so, if a man’s wit be wandering, let him study the mathematics; for in demonstrations, if his wit be called away never so little, he must begin again; if his wit be not apt to distinguish or find difference, let him study the schoolmen, for they are “Cymini sectores.”512 If he be not apt to beat over matters, and to call up one thing to prove and illustrate another, let him study the lawyers’ cases; so every defect of the mind may have a special receipt.
Research are meant for enjoyment, decoration, and skill. Their main purpose for enjoyment is in solitude and retreat; for decoration, it’s in conversation; and for skill, it’s in the judgment and management of tasks. Skilled individuals can execute and perhaps judge individual details one by one, but the overall strategies and organization of tasks come best from knowledgeable people. Spending too much time on studies is laziness; using them solely for decoration is pretentiousness; relying entirely on their rules for judgment reflects a scholar's mindset. They enhance nature and are refined by experience, as natural abilities resemble natural plants that require cultivation through study; without experience, studies can be overly broad. Cunning people disregard studies, naïve people admire them, and wise people utilize them because studies do not reveal their own purpose, which is a wisdom achieved through observation. Read not to contradict and refute, nor to accept and assume, nor merely to find material for conversation, but to evaluate and ponder. Some books are meant to be sampled, others to be consumed, and a few to be thoroughly digested; in other words, some books should be read in parts, others to be read casually, and only a select few should be read fully, with care and focus. Some books can also be read through others, with summaries provided by someone else, but this is usually only for less important topics and simpler books; otherwise, condensed books are like plain distilled water, lacking substance. Reading makes a well-rounded person; conversation makes a quick thinker; and writing makes an accurate person. Therefore, if someone writes little, they need a great memory; if they engage in little conversation, they need to be quick-witted; and if they read little, they need to be quite clever to pretend they know more than they do. Histories make people wise; poets, clever; mathematics, subtle; natural philosophy, profound; morals, serious; and logic and rhetoric, capable of debate: “Abeunt studia in mores;”511 indeed, there is no obstacle in the mind that can’t be overcome by appropriate studies. Just as bodily ailments have suitable exercises—bowling is good for kidney and bladder issues, shooting for lung and chest health, gentle walking for digestion, and riding for head-related ailments—if someone's mind is restless, they should study mathematics; for in demonstrations, if their mind drifts at all, they must start over. If their mind struggles to differentiate or recognize distinctions, they should study the scholastics, as they are “Cymini sectores.”512 If they find it difficult to analyze topics and connect ideas to support other ideas, they should study legal cases; thus, every deficiency of the mind can have a specific remedy.
LI.—OF FACTION.
Many have an opinion not wise, that for a prince to govern his estate, or for a great person to govern his proceedings, according to the respect of factions, is a principal part of policy; whereas, contrariwise, the chiefest wisdom is, either in ordering those things which are general, and wherein men of several factions do nevertheless agree, or in dealing with correspondence to particular persons, one by one; but I say not, that the consideration of factions is to be neglected. Mean men in their rising must adhere; but great men, that have strength in themselves, were better to maintain themselves indifferent and neutral; yet, even in beginners, to adhere so moderately, as he be a man of the one faction, which is most passable with the other, commonly giveth best way. The lower and weaker faction is the firmer in conjunction; and it is often seen, that a few that are stiff, do tire out a great number that are more moderate. When one of the factions is extinguished, the remaining subdivideth; as the faction between Lucullus and the rest of the nobles of the senate (which they called “optimates”), held out a while against the faction of Pompey and Cæsar; but when the senate’s authority was pulled down, Cæsar and Pompey soon after brake. The faction or party of Antonius and270 Octavianus Cæsar, against Brutus and Cassius, held out likewise for a time; but when Brutus and Cassius were overthrown, then soon after Antonius and Octavianus brake and subdivided. These examples are of wars, but the same holdeth in private factions; and, therefore, those that are seconds in factions do many times, when the faction subdivideth, prove principals; but many times also they prove ciphers, and cashiered, for many a man’s strength is in opposition; and when that faileth, he groweth out of use. It is commonly seen, that men once placed, take in with the contrary faction to that by which they enter; thinking, belike, that they have the first sure, and now are ready for a new purchase. The traitor in faction lightly goeth away with it; for when matters have stuck long in balancing, the winning of some one man casteth them,513 and he getteth all the thanks. The even carriage between two factions proceedeth not always of moderation, but of a trueness to a man’s self, with end to make use of both. Certainly, in Italy, they hold it a little suspect in popes, when they have often in their mouth, “Padre commune;”514 and take it to be a sign of one that meaneth to refer all to the greatness of his own house. Kings had need beware how they side themselves, and make themselves as of a faction or party; for leagues within the state are ever pernicious to monarchies; for they raise an obligation paramount to obligation of sovereignty, 271and make the king “tanquam unus ex nobis,”515 as was to be seen in the League of France. When factions are carried too high and too violently, it is a sign of weakness in princes, and much to the prejudice both of their authority and business. The motions of factions under kings, ought to be like the motions (as the astronomers speak) of the inferior orbs, which may have their proper motions, but yet still are quietly carried by the higher motion of “primum mobile.”516
Many people have an unwise opinion that for a prince to manage his territory, or for a powerful individual to handle their affairs based on the influence of factions, is a key aspect of governance. In contrast, true wisdom lies in managing things that are universal—areas where people from different factions can agree—or in addressing specific individuals one at a time. However, I’m not saying that the importance of factions should be overlooked. Ordinary people on the rise must align themselves with factions, but powerful individuals, who have strength on their own, are better off remaining neutral and detached. Even for newcomers, it’s wise to align moderately, choosing to support the faction that is most acceptable to the other side, as this often leads to the best outcomes. The weaker faction tends to be more united, and it’s frequently the case that a few stubborn individuals can wear down a larger group of more moderate members. When one faction gets eliminated, the remaining faction tends to split. For example, the faction between Lucullus and the other noble senators (who they referred to as “optimates”) held out for a time against the faction of Pompey and Caesar, but once the authority of the senate collapsed, Caesar and Pompey soon fell out with each other. Similarly, the alliance between Antonius and Octavianus Caesar against Brutus and Cassius lasted for a while, but after Brutus and Cassius were defeated, Antonius and Octavianus quickly divided as well. These instances pertain to wars, but the same principle applies to private factions. Therefore, those who are second in command within factions often find themselves taking on leading roles when the faction splits, but they can also end up being sidelined, as many individuals draw their strength from opposition; when that support fades, they become irrelevant. It’s often observed that once individuals are established, they start aligning with the opposing faction to which they initially opposed, possibly thinking they have secured their position and are ready for new opportunities. In factional disputes, a traitor can get away with quite a lot; because when things have been stalled for too long in indecisiveness, winning over one person can tip the scales, and that individual gains all the credit. Maintaining an equal stance between two factions doesn’t always come from moderation; it can also reflect a true commitment to oneself, with the intent of leveraging both sides. Indeed, in Italy, they find it somewhat suspicious when popes frequently mention “Padre comune;” as it suggests someone looking to promote the greatness of their own family. Kings need to be careful about which factions they align themselves with, as internal alliances within the state tend to be harmful to monarchies; they create obligations that take precedence over the authority of sovereignty, 271making the king “tanquam unus ex nobis,” 515 as observed in the League of France. When factions become too aggressive and excessive, it signals weakness in princes and significantly undermines their authority and operations. The movements of factions under kings should resemble the movements (as astronomers describe) of the lower celestial bodies, which may have their own motions but are ultimately guided by the overarching movement of the “primum mobile.” 516
LII.—OF CEREMONIES AND RESPECTS.
He that is only real, had need have exceeding great parts of virtue; as the stone had need to be rich that is set without foil; but if a man mark it well, it is in praise and commendation of men, as it is in gettings and gains; for the proverb is true, that “Light gains make heavy purses;” for light gains come thick, whereas great come but now and then. So it is true, that small matters win great commendation, because they are continually in use and in note; whereas the occasion of any great virtue cometh but on festivals; therefore it doth 272much add to a man’s reputation, and is (as Queen Isabella517 said) like perpetual letters commendatory, to have good forms. To attain them, it almost sufficeth not to despise them; for so shall a man observe them in others; and let him trust himself with the rest; for if he labor too much to express them, he shall lose their grace, which is to be natural and unaffected. Some men’s behavior is like a verse, wherein every syllable is measured; how can a man comprehend great matters, that breaketh his mind too much to small observations? Not to use ceremonies at all, is to teach others not to use them again, and so diminisheth respect to himself; especially they be not to be omitted to strangers and formal natures; but the dwelling upon them, and exalting them above the moon, is not only tedious, but doth diminish the faith and credit of him that speaks; and, certainly, there is a kind of conveying of effectual and imprinting passages amongst compliments, which is of singular use, if a man can hit upon it. Amongst a man’s peers, a man shall be sure of familiarity, and, therefore, it is good a little to keep state; amongst a man’s inferiors, one shall be sure of reverence, and therefore it is good a little to be familiar. He that is too much in any thing, so that he giveth another occasion of satiety, maketh himself cheap. To apply one’s self to others, is good, so it be with demonstration that a man doth 273it upon regard, and not upon facility. It is a good precept, generally in seconding another, yet to add somewhat of one’s own; as, if you will grant his opinion, let it be with some distinction; if you will follow his motion, let it be with condition; if you allow his counsel, let it be with alleging further reason. Men had need beware how they be too perfect in compliments; for be they never so sufficient otherwise, their enviers will be sure to give them that attribute to the disadvantage of their greater virtues. It is loss, also, in business, to be too full of respects, or to be too curious in observing times and opportunities. Solomon saith, “He that considereth the wind shall not sow, and he that looketh to the clouds shall not reap.”518 A wise man will make more opportunities than he finds. Men’s behavior should be like their apparel, not too strait or point device,519 but free for exercise or motion.
He who is truly genuine needs to have an abundance of virtues, just as a stone looks better when it's set in a rich setting; but if you think about it, it's all about the praise and recognition of people, just like it is with acquiring wealth; the saying holds true that “Small gains lead to big profits,” since small gains come often, while large ones happen only occasionally. Similarly, it's clear that minor achievements receive significant praise because they're always in use and noticed, whereas opportunities for great virtues arise only at special times; therefore, having good manners significantly enhances a person's reputation, and is, as Queen Isabella517 said, like having constant letters of recommendation. To develop them, it’s almost as simple as not ignoring them; by doing so, one will notice them in others, and can trust themselves for the rest; because if one tries too hard to show them off, they lose their charm, which lies in being natural and genuine. Some people's behavior is overly rigid, like a poem where every syllable is carefully measured; how can someone grasp larger issues if they focus excessively on minor details? Completely avoiding formalities teaches others to do the same, reducing their respect for you; especially since formality shouldn't be neglected with strangers and serious individuals; however, dwelling on them excessively is not only tiresome but can also lessen the credibility of the speaker; there’s definitely a kind of impactful exchange that happens in compliments, which can be very effective if mastered. Among friends, one can be casual, so it's wise to maintain a bit of distance; among those who are lower in rank, one should cultivate a sense of respect, hence it's good to be somewhat familiar. Being overly familiar can lead to a sense of monotony for others, making oneself seem less valuable. Engaging with others is beneficial, as long as it's clear that you are doing it intentionally, not just automatically. It's a good rule of thumb to support someone else's view, while still adding a bit of your own; for instance, if you agree with their opinion, do it with some qualification; if you go along with their suggestion, do it with some conditions; if you accept their advice, back it up with further reasoning. People should be cautious about appearing too polished in compliments; because no matter how competent they are in other areas, their critics will use that attribute to undermine their greater strengths. It's also a mistake in business to be overly concerned with formalities or too picky about timing and opportunities. Solomon said, “He who considers the wind won't sow, and he who looks to the clouds won’t reap.”518 A wise person creates more opportunities than they find. People’s conduct should be like their clothing, not too tight or overly precise,519 but relaxed enough for movement and practicality.
LIII.—OF PRAISE.
Praise is the reflection of virtue; but it is glass, or body, which giveth the reflection. If it be from the common people, it is commonly false and naught, 274and rather followeth vain persons than virtuous; for the common people understand not many excellent virtues. The lowest virtues draw praise from them, the middle virtues work in them astonishment or admiration, but of the highest virtues they have no sense or perceiving at all; but shows and “species virtutibus similes,”520 serve best with them. Certainly, fame is like a river, that beareth up things light and swollen, and drowns things weighty and solid; but if persons of quality and judgment concur, then it is (as the Scripture saith), “Nomen bonum instar unguenti fragrantis:”521 it filleth all round about, and will not easily away; for the odors of ointments are more durable than those of flowers. There be so many false points of praise, that a man may justly hold it a suspect. Some praises proceed merely of flattery; and if he be an ordinary flatterer, he will have certain common attributes, which may serve every man; if he be a cunning flatterer, he will follow the arch-flatterer, which is a man’s self, and wherein a man thinketh best of himself, therein the flatterer will uphold him most. But if he be an impudent flatterer, look wherein a man is conscious to himself that he is most defective, and is most out of countenance in himself, that will the flatterer entitle him to, perforce, “spretâ conscientiâ.”522 Some praises 275come of good wishes and respects, which is a form due in civility to kings and great persons, “laudando præcipere;”523 when, by telling men what they are, they represent to them what they should be; some men are praised maliciously to their hurt, thereby to stir envy and jealousy towards them: “Pessimum genus inimicorum laudantium;”524 insomuch as it was a proverb amongst the Grecians, that “he that was praised to his hurt, should have a push525 rise upon his nose;” as we say that a blister will rise upon one’s tongue that tells a lie; certainly, moderate praise, used with opportunity, and not vulgar, is that which doth the good. Solomon saith: “He that praiseth his friend aloud, rising early, it shall be to him no better than a curse.”526 Too much magnifying of man or matter doth irritate contradiction, and procure envy and scorn. To praise a man’s self cannot be decent, except it be in rare cases; but to praise a man’s office527 or profession, he may do it with good grace, and with a kind of magnanimity. The cardinals of Rome, which are theologues,528 and friars, and schoolmen, 276have a phrase of notable contempt and scorn towards civil business; for they call all temporal business of wars, embassages, judicature, and other employments, sbirrerie, which is under-sheriffries, as if they were but matters for under-sheriffs and catchpoles; though many times those under-sheriffries do more good than their high speculations. St. Paul, when he boasts of himself, he doth oft interlace, “I speak like a fool:”529 but speaking of his calling, he saith, “Magnificabo apostolatum meum.”530
Kudos reflects virtue, but it needs a medium, like glass or a body, to provide that reflection. When it comes from the common people, it’s often false and unreliable, leaning more towards vain individuals than genuinely virtuous ones; this is because the common people don't fully grasp many great virtues. They only recognize the simplest virtues, feel astonished or admire the middle virtues, but completely lack awareness or understanding of the highest virtues; instead, they are attracted to appearances and things that seem virtuous. Indeed, fame behaves like a river, buoying up lightweight and inflated things while sinking heavy and solid matters. However, when capable and discerning individuals agree, then it’s true, as Scripture says, “Nomen bonum instar unguenti fragrantis:” it fills the air around and is hard to dispel; the scents of ointments last longer than floral fragrances. There are so many insincere praises that one might justly be wary of them. Some praises are purely flattering; if someone is an average flatterer, they rely on generic compliments that can apply to anyone. If they are a clever flatterer, they’ll mimic the ultimate flatterer, which is a person boasting about themselves, amplifying positive traits individuals hold dear. But if the flatterer is bold, they'll point out where people feel least confident, highlighting their flaws without concern for their conscience. Some praises come from genuine goodwill and respect due to courtesy towards kings and important figures, “laudando præcipere;” where, by recognizing people as they are, they encourage them to strive for what they should be. Other praises can be maliciously intended, aiming to instigate envy and jealousy: “Pessimum genus inimicorum laudantium;” which reflects a saying among the Greeks, that “when praised to their detriment, a man should expect a bump to appear on his nose,” similar to how a lie might result in a blister on the tongue. Certainly, moderate praise, offered at the right time and not overly common, is beneficial. Solomon says: “He that praises his friend out loud early in the morning, it will be no better than a curse.” Too much exaggeration of a person or thing causes backlash and breeds resentment and ridicule. Self-promotion is rarely appropriate, except in exceptional cases; however, praising one’s role or profession can be done graciously and with a sort of nobility. The cardinals of Rome, who are theologians, friars, and scholars, often display notable disdain towards civil affairs; they dismiss all earthly matters, such as wars, diplomatic missions, courts, and other responsibilities, as sbirrerie, which translates to under-sheriff duties, implying these roles are suited only for minor officials and enforcers, despite the fact that such roles often do more good than their lofty theories. When St. Paul boasts about himself, he often adds, “I speak like a fool;” yet when discussing his calling, he states, “Magnificabo apostolatum meum.”
LIV.—OF VAINGLORY.
It was prettily devised of Æsop, the fly sat upon the axle-tree of the chariot-wheel, and said, “What a dust do I raise!” So are there some vain persons, that, whatsoever goeth alone, or moveth upon greater means, if they have never so little hand in it, they think it is they that carry it. They that are glorious, must needs be factious; for all bravery531 stands upon comparisons. They must needs be violent, to make good their own vaunts; neither can they be secret, and therefore not effectual; but, according to the 277French proverb, “Beaucoup de bruit, peu de fruit;”—“much bruit,532 little fruit.” Yet, certainly, there is use of this quality in civil affairs: where there is an opinion533 and fame to be created, either of virtue or greatness, these men are good trumpeters. Again, as Titus Livius noteth, in the case of Antiochus and the Ætolians,534 there are sometimes great effects of cross lies; as if a man that negotiates between two princes, to draw them to join in a war against the third, doth extol the forces of either of them above measure, the one to the other; and sometimes he that deals between man and man, raiseth his own credit with both, by pretending greater interest than he hath in either; and in these, and the like kinds, it often falls out, that somewhat is produced of nothing; for lies are sufficient to breed opinion, and opinion brings on substance. In military commanders and soldiers, vainglory is an essential point; for as iron sharpens iron, so by glory one courage sharpeneth another. In cases of great enterprise upon charge535 and adventure, a composition of glorious natures doth put life into business; and those that are of solid and sober natures, have more of the ballast than of the sail. In fame of learning, the flight will be slow without some feathers of ostentation: “Qui de contemnendâ gloriâ libros scribunt, 278nomen suum inscribunt.”536 Socrates, Aristotle, Galen, were men full of ostentation: certainly, vainglory helpeth to perpetuate a man’s memory; and virtue was never so beholden to human nature, as it received its due at the second hand. Neither had the fame of Cicero, Seneca, Plinius Secundus,537 borne her age so well if it had not been joined with some vanity in themselves; like unto varnish, that makes ceilings not only shine, but last. But all this while, when I speak of vainglory, I mean not of that property that Tacitus doth attribute to Mucianus, “Omnium, quæ dixerat feceratque, arte quâdam ostentator;”538 for that539 proceeds not of vanity, but of natural magnanimity and discretion; and, in some persons, is not only comely, but gracious; for excusations,540 cessions,541 modesty itself, well governed, are but arts of ostentation; and amongst those arts there is none better than that which Plinius Secundus speaketh 279of, which is to be liberal of praise and commendation to others, in that wherein a man’s self hath any perfection. For, saith Pliny, very wittily, “In commending another, you do yourself right;542 for he that you commend is either superior to you in that you commend, or inferior: if he be inferior, if he be to be commended, you much more; if he be superior, if he be not to be commended, you much less.” Glorious543 men are the scorn of wise men, the admiration of fools, the idols of parasites, and the slaves of their own vaunts.
It was cleverly illustrated by Aesop when the fly sat on the axle of the chariot wheel and said, “Look at the dust I’m stirring up!” Some vain people think that whenever something happens or moves with greater resources, even if they have only a tiny part in it, they believe it’s them making it happen. Those who are celebrated must necessarily be contentious; all bravado531 depends on comparisons. They have to be forceful to justify their own claims; they can’t be discreet, and therefore are not effective; but, as the French proverb says, “Beaucoup de bruit, peu de fruit;”—“a lot of noise, little fruit.” Yet, this quality does have its use in public matters: where an opinion533 and reputation need to be created, whether of virtue or greatness, these people are good at making noise. Again, as Titus Livius notes in the case of Antiochus and the Aetolians,534 sometimes, great outcomes arise from falsehoods; like when someone negotiating between two princes intentionally exaggerates the strengths of each to the other. And sometimes, someone dealing between individuals increases their own reputation with both by claiming a greater stake than they have in either. In situations like these, it often happens that something is produced from nothing; because lies can create opinion, and opinion can lead to reality. In military leaders and soldiers, vainglory is essential; just as iron sharpens iron, one’s glory can sharpen another’s courage. In significant endeavors that involve risk535, a mix of glorious characters energizes the effort; while those who are serious and steady tend to provide more stability than enthusiasm. In the realm of learning, progress takes time without some elements of showiness: “Qui de contemnendâ gloriâ libros scribunt, nomen suum inscribunt.”536 Socrates, Aristotle, and Galen were all people full of showiness: indeed, vainglory helps keep a person’s memory alive; and virtue has never owed humans more than when it has been acknowledged by others. The reputation of Cicero, Seneca, and Pliny the Younger537 wouldn’t have endured so well in their times if it weren’t for a bit of vanity within themselves, much like varnish that makes surfaces not only shine but endure. However, when I mention vainglory, I’m not referring to the quality that Tacitus attributes to Mucianus, “Omnium, quæ dixerat feceratque, arte quâdam ostentator;”538 because that539 does not stem from vanity but from natural nobility and wisdom; and in some individuals, it can be not just fitting but charming; because justifications,540 concessions,541 and modesty, when well managed, are merely forms of showiness; and among those forms, there’s none better than what Pliny the Younger mentions279542—to generously praise and commend others in areas where one has any skill. For, as Pliny cleverly states, “In commending another, you do yourself justice;543 because the person you commend is either better than you in what you commend, or worse: if they are worse, if they deserve praise, you deserve it so much more; if they are better, if they don’t deserve praise, you deserve it much less.” Glorious__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_13__ people are the ridicule of the wise, the admiration of fools, the idols of flatterers, and the captives of their own boasts.
LV.—OF HONOR AND REPUTATION.
The winning of honor is but the revealing of a man’s virtue and worth without disadvantage; for some in their actions do woo and affect honor and reputation; which sort of men are commonly much talked of, but inwardly little admired; and some, contrariwise, darken their virtue in the show of it, so as they be undervalued in opinion. If a man perform that which hath not been attempted before, or attempted and given over, or hath been achieved, but not with so good circumstance, he shall purchase more honor than by affecting a matter of greater difficulty or virtue, wherein he is but a follower. If a man so temper his actions, as in some one of 280them he doth content every faction or combination of people, the music will be the fuller. A man is an ill husband of his honor that entereth into any action, the failing wherein may disgrace him more than the carrying of it through can honor him. Honor that is gained and broken upon another hath the quickest reflection, like diamonds cut with facets; and therefore let a man contend to excel any competitors of his in honor, in outshooting them, if he can, in their own bow. Discreet followers and servants help much to reputation: “Omnis fama a domesticis emanat.”544 Envy, which is the canker of honor, is best extinguished by declaring a man’s self in his ends, rather to seek merit than fame; and by attributing a man’s successes rather to Divine providence and felicity, than to his own virtue or policy. The true marshalling of the degrees of sovereign honor are these. In the first place are “conditores imperiorum,”545 founders of states and commonwealths; such as were Romulus, Cyrus, Cæsar, Ottoman,546 Ismael: in the second place are “legislatores,” lawgivers, which are also called second founders, or “perpetui principes,”547 because they govern by their 281ordinances after they are gone; such were Lycurgus, Solon, Justinian, Edgar,548 Alphonsus of Castile, the Wise, that made the “Siete Partidas:”549 in the third place are “liberatores,” or “salvatores,”550 such as compound the long miseries of civil wars, or deliver their countries from servitude of strangers or tyrants, as Augustus Cæsar, Vespasianus, Aurelianus, Theodoricus, King Henry the Seventh of England, King Henry the Fourth of France: in the fourth place are “propagatores,” or “propugnatores imperii,”551 such as in honorable wars enlarge their territories, or make noble defence against invaders: and, in the last place are “patres patriæ,”552 which reign justly, and make the times good wherein they live; both which last kinds need no examples, they are in such number. Degrees of honor in subjects are, first, “participes curarum,”553 those upon whom 282princes do discharge the greatest weight of their affairs, their right hands, as we call them; the next are “duces belli,”554 great leaders, such as are princes’ lieutenants, and do them notable services in the wars; the third are “gratiosi,” favorites, such as exceed not this scantling,555 to be solace to the sovereign, and harmless to the people; and the fourth, “negotiis pares,”556 such as have great places under princes, and execute their places with sufficiency. There is an honor, likewise, which may be ranked amongst the greatest, which happeneth rarely; that is, of such as sacrifice themselves to death or danger for the good of their country; as was M. Regulus, and the two Decii.
The pursuit of honor is simply about showcasing a person’s qualities and value without any downside; some people strive for honor and reputation through their actions, but these individuals are often talked about more than they are truly respected. Conversely, some people hide their worth by downplaying it, leading to them being undervalued. If someone accomplishes something that hasn’t been done before, or was attempted and abandoned, or has been done but not as well, they will gain more honor than if they tackle something more difficult or virtuous where they just follow in others' footsteps. If a person manages their actions in a way that satisfies every group or faction, the outcome will be much better. A person treats their honor poorly if they engage in any action where failing could bring them more disgrace than succeeding would bring honor. Honor that is gained and then lost due to someone else's actions reflects quickly, like diamonds with multiple facets; therefore, one should strive to outshine their competitors in honor by surpassing them in their own strengths. Discreet followers and servants greatly contribute to reputation: “Omnis fama a domesticis emanat.”544 Envy, which can damage honor, is best mitigated by being clear about one’s intentions, aiming for merit rather than fame, and attributing one’s successes more to Divine providence and luck than to personal virtue or strategy. The true hierarchy of supreme honor is as follows: First are the "conditores imperiorum,"545 the founders of states and nations, like Romulus, Cyrus, Caesar, Ottoman,546 and Ismael; second are the "legislatores," lawgivers, also known as second founders or "perpetui principes,"547 because they govern through their laws even after they are gone, such as Lycurgus, Solon, Justinian, Edgar,548 and Alphonsus of Castile, the Wise, who created the "Siete Partidas:"549 third are the "liberatores" or "salvatores,"550 who end long civil wars or free their countries from foreign or tyrannical rule, like Augustus Caesar, Vespasianus, Aurelianus, Theodoricus, King Henry the Seventh of England, and King Henry the Fourth of France; fourth are the "propagatores" or "propugnatores imperii,"551 who expand their territories in honorable wars or make a noble defense against invaders; lastly, the "patres patriæ,"552 who govern justly and improve the times in which they live need no examples as they are numerous. The levels of honor among subjects are, first, "participes curarum,"553 those on whom princes place the greatest burden of their duties, their right hands; next are "duces belli,"554 great leaders, such as the princes' lieutenants, who render notable military service; third are "gratiosi," favorites, who are not beyond being comforting to the ruler and harmless to the people; and fourth, "negotiis pares,"556 those who hold significant positions under princes and perform their roles competently. There is also a rare kind of honor that can be ranked among the highest, which comes from those who sacrifice themselves to danger or death for the good of their country, like M. Regulus and the two Decii.
LVI.—OF JUDICATURE.
Judges ought to remember that their office is “jus dicere,”557 and not “jus dare;”558 to interpret law, and not to make law, or give law; else will it be like the authority claimed by the Church of Rome, which, under pretext of exposition of Scripture, doth not stick to add and alter, and to pronounce that which they do not find, and, by show of antiquity, to introduce novelty. Judges ought to 283be more learned than witty, more reverend than plausible, and more advised than confident. Above all things, integrity is their portion and proper virtue. “Cursed (saith the law)559 is he that removeth the landmark.” The mislayer of a mere stone is to blame; but it is the unjust judge that is the capital remover of landmarks, when he defineth amiss of lands and property. One foul sentence doth more hurt than many foul examples; for these do but corrupt the stream, the other corrupteth the fountain: so saith Solomon, “Fons turbatus et vena corrupta est justus cadens in causâ suâ coram adversario.”560 The office of judges may have reference unto the parties that sue, unto the advocates that plead, unto the clerks and ministers of justice underneath them, and to the sovereign or state above them.
Judges should remember that their role is “jus dicere,”557 and not “jus dare;”558 to interpret the law and not to create or impose it; otherwise, it will resemble the authority claimed by the Church of Rome, which, under the guise of interpreting Scripture, does not hesitate to add and alter, declaring things that aren’t found, and introducing new ideas under the pretense of tradition. Judges should be more knowledgeable than clever, more respected than appealing, and more thoughtful than overconfident. Above all, integrity should be their main virtue. “Cursed (says the law)559 is anyone who moves the boundary marker.” The person who misplaces a simple stone is at fault, but it is the unjust judge who is the true violator, when he misjudges land and property. One wrongful verdict causes more harm than many bad examples; the latter only corrupts the stream, while the former corrupts the source: as Solomon says, “A troubled fountain and a corrupted spring is a just man falling in his cause before his opponent.”560 The role of judges involves the parties who bring cases, the lawyers who argue them, the clerks and justice officials beneath them, and the sovereign or state above them.
First, for the causes or parties that sue. “There be (saith the Scripture) that turn judgment into wormwood;”561 and surely there be, also, that turn it into vinegar; for injustice maketh it bitter, and delays make it sour. The principal duty of a judge is to suppress force and fraud; whereof force is the more pernicious when it is open, and fraud when it 284is close and disguised. Add thereto contentious suits, which ought to be spewed out, as the surfeit of courts. A judge ought to prepare his way to a just sentence, as God useth to prepare his way, by raising valleys and taking down hills; so when there appeareth on either side a high hand, violent prosecution, cunning advantages taken, combination, power, great counsel, then is the virtue of a judge seen to make inequality equal, that he may plant his judgment as upon an even ground. “Qui fortiter emungit, elicit sanguinem;”562 and where the wine-press is hard wrought, it yields a harsh wine, that tastes of the grape-stone. Judges must beware of hard constructions and strained inferences; for there is no worse torture than the torture of laws. Especially in case of laws penal, they ought to have care that that which was meant for terror be not turned into rigor; and that they bring not upon the people that shower whereof the Scripture speaketh, “Pluet super eos laqueos;”563 for penal laws pressed,564 are a shower of snares upon the people. Therefore let penal laws, if they have been sleepers of long, or if they be grown unfit for the present time, be by 285wise judges confined in the execution: “Judicis officium est, ut res, ita tempora rerum,” &c.565 In causes of life and death, judges ought (as far as the law permitteth) in justice to remember mercy, and to cast a severe eye upon the example, but a merciful eye upon the person.
First, let’s talk about the parties that bring lawsuits. “There are (as the Scripture says) those who turn judgment into bitterness;” and certainly, there are also those who turn it into something sour; because injustice makes it bitter, and delays make it worse. The main job of a judge is to stop force and fraud; with force being more harmful when it's overt, and fraud when it's hidden and sneaky. Add to that contentious lawsuits, which should be rejected like excess baggage in the courts. A judge should prepare for a fair ruling just as God prepares His way, by lowering mountains and raising valleys; so when there’s a display of power, aggressive tactics, clever tricks, alliances, or strong influence from advisors, then the judge's integrity is shown in making inequality balanced, so he can ground his judgment fairly. “He who squeezes too hard will draw blood;” and the harsher the wine press, the worse the wine, tasting of the grape seeds. Judges need to be wary of harsh interpretations and strained meanings; there’s no worse pain than legal torture. Especially with criminal laws, they should ensure that what was meant to deter does not become too severe; and that they don’t rain down on the people the “snares” the Scripture talks about, “He will rain snares upon them;” for strict enforcement of penal laws creates a downpour of traps for the people. Therefore, let those penal laws, if they've been inactive for a long time or have become outdated, be limited in their enforcement by wise judges: “It is the judge's duty to consider not just the issues, but the times we live in.” In life-and-death cases, judges should (as far as the law allows) keep mercy in mind while applying justice, looking harshly at the example set but compassionately at the individual involved.
Secondly, for the advocates and counsel that plead. Patience566 and gravity of hearing is an essential part of justice, and an overspeaking judge is no well-tuned cymbal. It is no grace to a judge first to find that which he might have heard in due time from the bar; or to show quickness of conceit in cutting off evidence or counsel too short, or to prevent information by questions, though pertinent. The parts of a judge in hearing are four: to direct the evidence; to moderate length, repetition, of impertinency of speech; to recapitulate, select, and collate the material points of that which hath been said; and to give the rule or sentence. Whatsoever is above these is too much, and proceedeth either of glory, and willingness to speak, or of impatience to hear, or of shortness of memory, or of want of a staid and equal attention. It is a strange thing to see that the boldness of advocates should prevail with judges; whereas, they should imitate God in whose seat they sit, who represseth the presump286tuous, and giveth grace to the modest; but it is more strange, that judges should have noted favorites, which cannot but cause multiplication of fees, and suspicion of by-ways. There is due from the judge to the advocate some commendation and gracing, where causes are well handled and fair pleaded, especially towards the side which obtaineth not;567 for that upholds in the client the reputation of his counsel, and beats down in him the conceit568 of his cause. There is likewise due to the public a civil reprehension of advocates, where there appeareth cunning counsel, gross neglect, slight information, indiscreet pressing, or an over-bold defence; and let not the counsel at the bar chop569 with the judge, nor wind himself into the handling of the cause anew after the judge hath declared his sentence; but, on the other side, let not the judge meet the cause half-way, nor give occasion to the party to say, his counsel or proofs were not heard.
Secondly, for the advocates and attorneys that represent their cases. Patience and seriousness during hearings are essential parts of justice, and a judge who talks too much is like a poorly tuned cymbal. It’s not dignified for a judge to find out what he could have heard in due time from the advocates, or to show off by cutting off evidence or arguments too quickly, or to block information with questions, even if they are relevant. The judge has four main roles during a hearing: to guide the evidence; to manage the length, repetition, and irrelevance of speeches; to summarize, select, and organize the key points that have been made; and to deliver a ruling or sentence. Anything beyond this is excessive and stems from a need for glory, eagerness to speak, impatience to hear, a short memory, or a lack of calm and balanced attention. It’s odd to see how the confidence of advocates can sway judges, whereas they should emulate God, whose seat they occupy, who discourages the presumptuous and favors the humble; but it’s even stranger that judges have favored individuals, leading to increased fees and suspicions of under-the-table dealings. Judges owe some recognition and praise to advocates when cases are handled well and presented fairly, especially towards the side that doesn’t win, as this helps maintain the advocate's reputation in the eyes of their client and diminishes the client's overconfidence in their case. The public also deserves a formal reprimand of advocates when there is evidence of clever manipulation, gross negligence, insufficient information, inappropriate pressure, or an overly aggressive defense; and advocates at the bar should not argue with the judge, nor should they try to reopen the case after the judge has delivered a sentence; conversely, judges should not meet the arguments halfway or give the parties a reason to claim their counsel or evidence were not properly considered.
Thirdly, for that that concerns clerks and ministers. The place of justice is a hallowed place; and, therefore, not only the bench, but the foot-pace and precincts, and purprise thereof, ought to be preserved without scandal and corruption; for, certainly, “Grapes (as the Scripture saith) will not be gathered of thorns or thistles;”570 neither can justice 287yield her fruit with sweetness amongst the briers and brambles of catching and polling571 clerks and ministers. The attendance of courts is subject to four bad instruments: first, certain persons that are sowers of suits, which make the court swell, and the country pine: the second sort is of those that engage courts in quarrels of jurisdiction, and are not truly “amici curiæ,”572 but “parasiti curiæ,”573 in puffing a court up beyond her bounds for their own scraps and advantage: the third sort is of those that may be accounted the left hands of courts; persons that are full of nimble and sinister tricks and shifts, whereby they pervert the plain and direct courses of courts, and bring justice into oblique lines and labyrinths: and the fourth is the poller and exacter of fees; which justifies the common resemblance of the courts of justice to the bush, whereunto while the sheep flies for defence in weather, he is sure to lose part of his fleece. On the other side, an ancient clerk, skilful in precedents, wary in proceeding, and understanding in the business of the court, is an excellent finger of a court, and doth many times point the way to the judge himself.
Thirdly, regarding clerks and ministers. The courtroom is a sacred space, and therefore, not only the judge’s seat but also the area around it should be kept free from scandal and corruption. After all, “Grapes (as the Scripture says) won’t be gathered from thorns or thistles;” neither can justice produce its sweet fruits amidst the thorns and briars of shady and corrupt clerks and ministers. The functioning of courts is influenced by four negative factors: first, certain individuals who sow disputes, causing the court to be overcrowded while the community suffers; the second group consists of those who entangle courts in jurisdictional arguments and are not true “friends of the court,” but “court parasites,” inflating a court’s status for their own gain; the third group includes those who can be seen as the court’s left hand—people full of sneaky tricks and schemes that distort straightforward judicial processes and lead justice into confusing paths; and the fourth is the fee collector, which supports the common comparison of courts to a bush, where while a sheep seeks shelter from the storm, it inevitably loses part of its fleece. On the other hand, a seasoned clerk, knowledgeable in precedents, careful in actions, and well-versed in court matters, is an invaluable asset to the court and often directs the judge on the right path.
Fourthly, for that which may concern the sovereign and estate. Judges ought, above all, to remember the conclusion of the Roman Twelve Tables,574 “Salus populi suprema lex;”575 and to know 288that laws, except they be in order to that end, are but things captious, and oracles not well inspired; therefore it is a happy thing in a state, when kings and states do often consult with judges; and again, when judges do often consult with the king and state: the one, when there is matter of law intervenient in business of state; the other, when there is some consideration of state intervenient in matter of law; for many times the things deduced to judgment may be “meum”576 and “tuum,”577 when the reason and consequence thereof may trench to point of estate. I call matter of estate, not only the parts of sovereignty, but whatsoever introduceth any great alteration, or dangerous precedent, or concerneth manifestly any great portion of people; and let no man weakly conceive, that just laws and true policy have any antipathy, for they are like the spirits and sinews, that one moves with the other. Let judges also remember, that Solomon’s throne was supported by lions578 on both sides; let them be lions, but yet lions under the throne, being circumspect that they do not check or oppose any points of sovereignty. Let not judges also be so ignorant of their own right, as to think there is not left to them, as a principal 289part of their office, a wise use and application of laws; for they may remember what the apostle saith of a greater law than theirs: “Nos scimus quia lex bona est, modo quis eâ utatur legitime.”579
Fourth, regarding what may concern the sovereign and the state, judges should always keep in mind the principle from the Roman Twelve Tables, “The good of the people is the highest law.” They need to understand that laws, unless aimed at that purpose, are just tricky and poorly inspired ideas. Therefore, it’s a good thing in a state when kings and governing bodies frequently consult with judges, and likewise, when judges often consult with the king and governing bodies: the former when legal matters intersect with state issues, and the latter when state considerations affect legal matters. Many times, the issues brought to judgment may be about “mine” and “yours,” but the reasoning and its consequences can impact the state. By "state matters," I mean not only aspects of sovereignty but anything that brings about significant change, dangerous precedents, or clearly affects a large group of people. Let no one mistakenly believe that just laws and true governance are in conflict, as they are like the spirits and sinews that move together. Judges should also remember that Solomon’s throne was supported by lions on both sides; let them be like lions, but lions under the throne, careful not to challenge or oppose any aspects of sovereignty. Judges should not be so unaware of their own rights as to think they lack the essential part of their role, which is to use and apply the laws wisely; for they can recall what the apostle says about a greater law than theirs: “We know that the law is good, provided it is used properly.”
LVII.—OF ANGER.
To seek to extinguish anger utterly is but a bravery580 of the Stoics. We have better oracles: “Be angry, but sin not; let not the sun go down upon your anger.”581 Anger must be limited and confined, both in race and in time. We will first speak how the natural inclination and habit, “to be angry,” may be attempered and calmed; secondly, how the particular motions of anger may be repressed, or, at least, refrained from doing mischief; thirdly, how to raise anger, or appease anger in another.
To try to completely eliminate anger is just a boldness580 of the Stoics. We have better guidance: “Be angry, but do not sin; don’t let the sun go down on your anger.”581 Anger should be managed and controlled, both in expression and duration. We will first discuss how the natural tendency and habit of “being angry” can be tempered and calmed; secondly, how to suppress the specific impulses of anger, or at least refrain from causing harm; and thirdly, how to provoke anger or calm it in someone else.
For the first, there is no other way but to meditate and ruminate well upon the effects of anger, how it troubles man’s life; and the best time to do this is, to look back upon anger when the fit is thoroughly over. Seneca saith well, “that anger is like ruin, which breaks itself upon that it falls.”582 290 The Scripture exhorteth us “to possess our souls in patience;”583 whosoever is out of patience, is out of possession of his soul. Men must not turn bees:—
For the first point, the only way is to deeply consider and reflect on the effects of anger, how it disrupts a person's life; and the best time to do this is after the anger has completely passed. Seneca wisely said, “anger is like ruin, which breaks upon what it falls.”582 290 The Scripture encourages us “to keep our souls in patience;”583 anyone who lacks patience has lost control over their soul. People should not act like bees:—
Anger is certainly a kind of baseness; as it appears well in the weakness of those subjects in whom it reigns, children, women, old folks, sick folks. Only men must beware that they carry their anger rather with scorn than with fear; so that they may seem rather to be above the injury than below it; which is a thing easily done, if a man will give law to himself in it.
Anger is definitely a sign of weakness; it shows clearly in those who are controlled by it, like children, women, the elderly, and the sick. Men should make sure they respond to their anger with disdain instead of fear, so they appear to rise above the insult rather than sink below it; this is something that can be easily achieved if a person takes control of themselves in this regard.
For the second point, the causes and motives of anger are chiefly three. First, to be too sensible of hurt, for no man is angry that feels not himself hurt; and therefore tender and delicate persons must needs be oft angry, they have so many things to trouble them, which more robust natures have little sense of: the next is, the apprehension and construction of the injury offered, to be, in the circumstances thereof, full of contempt; for contempt is that which putteth an edge upon anger, as much, or more, than the hurt itself; and therefore, when men are ingenious in picking out circumstances of contempt, they do kindle their anger much: lastly, opinion of the touch585 of a man’s reputation doth multiply and 291sharpen anger; wherein the remedy is, that a man should have, as Gonsalvo was wont to say, “Telam honoris crassiorem.”586 But in all refrainings of anger, it is the best remedy to win time, and to make a man’s self believe that the opportunity of his revenge is not yet come; but that he foresees a time for it, and so to still himself in the mean time, and reserve it.
For the second point, there are three main causes and motives for anger. First, being too sensitive to being hurt, because no one gets angry unless they feel they’ve been wronged. Tender and delicate people are often angry because they have so many things bothering them that tougher individuals hardly notice. The next reason is how we perceive and interpret the injury, especially if it seems contemptuous; contempt sharpens anger just as much, if not more, than the hurt itself. So when people are skilled at pointing out contemptuous details, they ignite their anger even more. Lastly, the thought of how an injury affects a person’s reputation intensifies anger. The remedy to this is, as Gonsalvo used to say, “A coarser web of honor.” But the best way to manage anger is to give yourself time and convince yourself that the moment for revenge hasn’t come yet; rather, you foresee a time for it, allowing yourself to calm down in the meantime and hold back.
To contain anger from mischief, though it take hold of a man, there be two things whereof you must have special caution: the one, of extreme bitterness of words, especially if they be aculeate and proper,587 for “communia maledicta”588 are nothing so much; and, again, that in anger a man reveal no secrets, for that makes him not fit for society: the other, that you do not peremptorily break off in any business in a fit of anger; but, howsoever you show bitterness, do not act any thing that is not revocable.
To manage anger from troublemaking, even if it grabs hold of you, there are two things you should be especially careful about: first, avoid using extremely harsh words, particularly if they are sharp and specific, because “common insults” aren't that impactful; and second, don't let your anger lead you to reveal any secrets, as that makes you unfit for society. Also, don’t abruptly end any business while angry; even if you show bitterness, don't do anything that can't be undone.
For raising and appeasing anger in another, it is done chiefly by choosing of times when men are frowardest and worst disposed to incense them; again, by gathering (as was touched before) all that you can find out to aggravate the contempt: and the two remedies are by the contraries; the former to take good times, when first to relate to a man an angry business, for the first impression is much; 292and the other is, to sever, as much as may be, the construction of the injury from the point of contempt; imputing it to misunderstanding, fear, passion, or what you will.
To raise and calm someone's anger, it mainly involves choosing the right moments when people are most irritable and likely to be provoked; and also by gathering everything you can find to highlight the disrespect. The two approaches are opposites: the first is to pick good moments to bring up a sensitive topic because the initial impression matters a lot; 292 and the second is to separate the nature of the injury from the feeling of disrespect as much as possible, attributing it to misunderstanding, fear, passion, or whatever else you might think applies.
LVIII.—OF VICISSITUDE OF THINGS.
Solomon saith, “There is no new thing upon the earth;”589 so that as Plato590 had an imagination that all knowledge was but remembrance, so Solomon giveth his sentence, “That all novelty is but oblivion;”591 whereby you may see, that the river of Lethe runneth as well above ground as below. There is an abstruse astrologer that saith, if it were not for two things that are constant (the one is, that the fixed stars ever stand at like distance one from another, and never come nearer together, nor go further asunder; the other, that the diurnal motion perpetually keepeth time), no individual would last one moment; certain it is, that the matter is in a perpetual flux, and never at a stay. The 293great winding-sheets that bury all things in oblivion, are two,—deluges and earthquakes. As for conflagrations and great droughts, they do not merely dispeople, but destroy. Phaeton’s car went but a day; and the three years’ drought in the time of Elias,592 was but particular,593 and left people alive. As for the great burnings by lightnings, which are often in the West Indies,594 they are but narrow;595 but in the other two destructions, by deluge and earthquake, it is further to be noted, that the remnant of people which happen to be reserved, are commonly ignorant and mountainous people, that can give no account of the time past; so that the oblivion is all one, as if none had been left. If you consider well of the people of the West Indies, it is very probable that they are a newer, or a younger people than the people of the old world; and it is much more likely that the destruction that hath heretofore been there, was not by earthquakes, (as the Egyptian priest told Solon, concerning the 294Island of Atlantis,596 that it was swallowed by an earthquake), but rather that it was desolated by a particular deluge, for earthquakes are seldom in those parts; but, on the other side, they have such pouring rivers, as the rivers of Asia, and Africa, and Europe, are but brooks to them. Their Andes, likewise, or mountains, are far higher than those with us; whereby it seems, that the remnants of generations of men were in such a particular deluge saved. As for the observation that Machiavel hath, that the jealousy of sects doth much extinguish the memory of things,597 traducing Gregory the Great, that he did what in him lay to extinguish all heathen antiquities, I do not find that those zeals do any great effects, nor last long; as it appeared in the succession of Sabinian,598 who did revive the former antiquities.
Solomon says, “There is nothing new under the sun;”589 just as Plato590 believed that all knowledge is just remembering, Solomon concludes that “all novelty is just forgotten;”591 which shows that the river of Lethe flows both above ground and below. There is a complex astrologer who claims that if it weren’t for two constants (one being that the fixed stars remain equidistant from each other, neither moving closer nor further apart, and the other being that the daily motion keeps consistent time), no individual would last even a moment; it’s certain that matter is always in flux and never still. The293great shrouds that cover everything in oblivion are two things—floods and earthquakes. As for fires and severe droughts, they don’t just displace people, but annihilate them. Phaeton’s chariot lasted only a day; and the three-year drought during the time of Elias,592 was just a specific event,593 and left survivors. Regarding the devastating fires caused by lightning, which frequently occur in the West Indies,594 they are limited in extent;595 but in the other two types of destruction, by flood and earthquake, it should be noted that the remaining survivors are often ignorant and isolated people, who cannot recount the past; thus, the oblivion is essentially the same as if no one had survived. If you think about the people of the West Indies, it’s quite likely that they are a newer, or younger, population than those of the old world; and it’s much more probable that their past destruction was not caused by earthquakes, (as the Egyptian priest told Solon regarding the294Island of Atlantis,596 that it was swallowed by an earthquake), but rather that it was devastated by a specific flood, since earthquakes are rare in that region; however, they do have such massive rivers that the rivers of Asia, Africa, and Europe seem like streams by comparison. Their Andes, or mountains, are also far taller than ours; thus, it appears that the remnants of past generations were saved during such a particular flood. Regarding Machiavelli’s observation that the jealousy of sects greatly diminishes the memory of things,597 criticizing Gregory the Great for doing what he could to erase all pagan artifacts, I find that these zealots don’t have lasting or significant effects, as seen in the succession of Sabinian,598 who revived the former artifacts.
The vicissitude, or mutations, in the superior globe, are no fit matter for this present argument. It may be, Plato’s great year,599 if the world should last so long, would have some effect, not in renew295ing the state of like individuals (for that is the fume600 of those that conceive the celestial bodies have more accurate influences upon these things below, than indeed they have), but in gross. Comets, out of question, have likewise power and effect over the gross and mass of things; but they are rather gazed, and waited upon601 in their journey, than wisely observed in their effects, especially in their respective effects; that is, what kind of comet for magnitude, color, version of the beams, placing in the region of heaven, or lasting, produceth what kind of effects.
The changes, or variations, in the higher realm aren’t really relevant to this current discussion. Perhaps, if the world were to exist long enough, Plato’s great year,599 might have some impact, not in renewing the state of similar individuals (since that’s the misconception600 of those who believe the celestial bodies have more precise influences on earthly matters than they actually do), but broadly speaking. Comets, without a doubt, also have power and impact on the overall mass of things; however, they are more often stared at and awaited601 during their passage, rather than carefully studied for their effects, especially their specific effects; that is, what type of comet—based on its size, color, angle of light, position in the sky, or duration—produces what kind of effects.
There is a toy,602 which I have heard, and I would not have it given over, but waited upon a little. They say it is observed in the Low Countries (I know not in what part), that every five and thirty years the same kind and suit of years and weather comes about again; as great frosts, great wet, great droughts, warm winters, summers with little heat, and the like; and they call it the prime. It is a thing I do the rather mention, because, computing backwards, I have found some concurrence.
There’s a toy,602 that I've heard about, and I wouldn't want to pass it up without thinking it over a bit. They say that in the Low Countries (I'm not sure where exactly), every thirty-five years, the same types of years and weather patterns repeat; like severe frosts, heavy rain, droughts, mild winters, and summers with less heat, and they call it the prime. I mention this because, when I look back, I’ve noticed some similarities.
But to leave these points of nature, and to come to men. The greatest vicissitude of things amongst men, is the vicissitude of sects and religions; for those orbs rule in men’s minds most. The true religion is built upon the rock; the rest are tossed upon the waves of time. To speak, therefore, of 296the causes of new sects, and to give some counsel concerning them, as far as the weakness of human judgment can give stay to so great revolutions.
But to leave these natural points and move on to people. The biggest change among people is the change in beliefs and religions, because those ideas dominate people’s thoughts the most. True religion is built on a solid foundation; the others are carried away by the tides of time. Therefore, I will discuss the causes of new sects and offer some advice about them, as much as human judgment can provide guidance for such significant changes.
When the religion formerly received is rent by discords, and when the holiness of the professors of religion is decayed and full of scandal, and, withal, the times be stupid, ignorant, and barbarous, you may doubt the springing up of a new sect; if then, also, there should arise any extravagant and strange spirit to make himself author thereof; all which points held when Mahomet published his law. If a new sect have not two properties, fear it not, for it will not spread. The one is the supplanting or the opposing of authority established, for nothing is more popular than that; the other is, the giving license to pleasures and a voluptuous life; for as for speculative heresies (such as were in ancient times the Arians, and now the Arminians),603 though they work mightily upon men’s wits, yet they do not produce any great alterations in states, except it be by the help of civil occasions. There be three manner of plantations of new sects: by the power of signs and miracles; by the eloquence and wisdom of speech and persuasion; and by the sword. For martyrdoms, I reckon them amongst miracles, because they seem to exceed the strength of human 297nature; and I may do the like of superlative and admirable holiness of life. Surely, there is no better way to stop the rising of new sects and schisms, than to reform abuses; to compound the smaller differences; to proceed mildly, and not with sanguinary persecutions; and rather to take off the principal authors, by winning and advancing them, than to enrage them by violence and bitterness.
When an established religion is torn apart by disagreements, and when the integrity of its followers has declined and is mired in scandal, while society itself is ignorant and barbaric, you might question the emergence of a new sect. If, at the same time, a charismatic and unusual figure rises to take charge of it, all these conditions were present when Mohammed introduced his doctrine. If a new sect lacks two key characteristics, you don't need to worry about it spreading. The first is challenging or replacing existing authority, which is always appealing; the second is allowing indulgence in pleasure and a luxurious lifestyle. Speculative heresies (like the ancient Arians or today's Arminians)603 may engage people's minds powerfully, but they generally don't lead to significant changes in society unless supported by specific civil conditions. There are three ways new sects can arise: through signs and miracles; through persuasive speech and wisdom; and through force. I include martyrdom among miracles, as it seems to transcend human strength, and the same goes for exceptional and admirable holiness of life. Certainly, the best way to prevent the rise of new sects and divisions is by reforming abuses, reconciling minor differences, approaching issues gently rather than with violent persecution, and aiming to win over key figures through support rather than provoking them with aggression and bitterness.
The changes and vicissitude in wars are many, but chiefly in three things: in the seats or stages of the war, in the weapons, and in the manner of the conduct. Wars, in ancient time, seemed more to move from east to west; for the Persians, Assyrians, Arabians, Tartars (which were the invaders), were all eastern people. It is true the Gauls were western; but we read but of two incursions of theirs, the one to Gallo-Græcia, the other to Rome: but east and west have no certain points of heaven; and no more have the wars, either from the east or west, any certainty of observation; but north and south are fixed; and it hath seldom or never been seen that the far southern people have invaded the northern, but contrariwise: whereby it is manifest that the northern tract of the world is in nature the more martial region, be it in respect of the stars of that hemisphere,604 or of the great continents that are upon the north; whereas, the south part, for aught that is known, is almost all sea; or (which 298is most apparent) of the cold of the northern parts, which is that which, without aid of discipline, doth make the bodies hardest, and the courage warmest.
The changes and ups and downs in wars are many, but mainly in three areas: the locations or stages of the war, the weapons, and the way it's conducted. In ancient times, wars seemed to mostly move from east to west; the Persians, Assyrians, Arabians, and Tartars (who were the invaders) were all eastern people. It's true the Gauls were from the west, but we only read about two of their invasions: one to Gallo-Greece and the other to Rome. However, east and west don't have fixed points in the sky, so wars from either direction also lack certainty in their observations; north and south, on the other hand, are fixed. It's rarely, if ever, seen that people from the far south invade the north; it's usually the other way around. This shows that the northern part of the world is more martial by nature, whether it’s due to the stars in that hemisphere, or the large landmasses found in the north, while the southern part is mostly sea, or (which is more obvious) the cold of the northern regions makes bodies tougher and courage stronger without the need for training.
Upon the breaking and shivering of a great state and empire, you may be sure to have wars; for great empires, while they stand, do enervate and destroy the forces of the natives which they have subdued, resting upon their own protecting forces; and then, when they fail also, all goes to ruin, and they become a prey. So was it in the decay of the Roman empire, and likewise in the empire of Almaigne,605 after Charles the Great,606 every bird taking a feather, and were not unlike to befall to Spain, if it should break. The great accessions and unions of kingdoms do likewise stir up wars; for when a state grows to an over-power, it is like a great flood, that will be sure to overflow, as it hath been seen in the states of Rome, Turkey, Spain, and others. Look when the world hath fewest barbarous people, but such as commonly will not marry or generate, except they know means to live (as it is almost everywhere at this day, except Tartary), there is no danger of inundations of people; but when there be great shoals of people, which go on to populate, without foreseeing means of life and sustenation, it is of necessity that once in an age or two they discharge a portion of their people upon other nations, which the ancient northern people were wont to do by lot; casting lots what part should stay at 299home, and what should seek their fortunes. When a warlike state grows soft and effeminate, they may be sure of a war, for commonly such states are grown rich in the time of their degenerating; and so the prey inviteth, and their decay in valor encourageth a war.
When a powerful state or empire is starting to crumble, you can definitely expect wars to follow. These large empires, while they are thriving, weaken and exhaust the strength of the native populations they have dominated, relying on their own military forces for protection. But once those forces start to fail, everything falls apart, and they become vulnerable to attack. This was true during the decline of the Roman Empire and the empire of Germany after Charlemagne, where every nation took advantage of the situation. The same could happen to Spain if it were to collapse. The merging and expansion of kingdoms also lead to wars because when a state becomes too powerful, it’s like a massive flood that is bound to overflow, as seen in Rome, Turkey, Spain, and others. When there are fewer barbaric tribes, whose members typically don’t marry or have children unless they can support them (which is pretty much the case everywhere today, except in Tartary), there’s little risk of population overflow. However, when there are large masses of people reproducing without having enough resources to support themselves, it’s inevitable that, every couple of generations, they will send some of their population out to other nations. This was how the ancient northern tribes used to decide who would stay home and who would venture out, often by drawing lots. When a militaristic state becomes soft and indulgent, war is likely on the horizon, as such states often accumulate wealth during their decline; this wealth attracts enemies, and their loss of strength invites conflict.
As for the weapons, it hardly falleth under rule and observation, yet we see even they have returns and vicissitudes; for certain it is that ordnance was known in the city of the Oxidraces, in India, and was that which the Macedonians607 called thunder and lightning, and magic; and it is well known that the use of ordnance hath been in China above two thousand years. The conditions of weapons, and their improvements are, first, the fetching608 afar off, for that outruns the danger, as it is seen in ordnance and muskets; secondly, the strength of the percussion, wherein, likewise, ordnance do exceed all arietations,609 and ancient inventions; the third is, the commodious use of them, as that they may serve in all weathers, that the carriage may be light and manageable, and the like.
Regarding weapons, they hardly fall under strict rules and oversight, yet we observe that they too have their ups and downs; for sure, it is known that artillery existed in the city of the Oxidraces in India, and the Macedonians called it thunder and lightning, and magic; and it is well established that artillery has been used in China for over two thousand years. The characteristics and advancements of weapons are, first, the ability to strike from a distance, as that avoids danger, seen in artillery and guns; second, the power of the impact, in which artillery surpasses all ancient devices; the third is their convenient use, ensuring they can function in all weather conditions, that they are lightweight and easy to handle, and so on.
For the conduct of the war: at the first, men rested extremely upon number; they did put the wars likewise upon main force and valor, pointing days for pitched fields, and so trying it out upon an even match; and they were more ignorant in 300ranging and arraying their battles. After they grew to rest upon number, rather competent than vast, they grew to advantages of place, cunning diversions, and the like, and they grew more skilful in the ordering of their battles.
For conducting the war: at first, people relied heavily on numbers; they also placed importance on brute force and bravery, setting specific days for battles and testing their strength in even matches. They were less knowledgeable about the organization and arrangement of their forces. As they began to rely more on a competent number rather than a huge one, they started to take advantage of terrain, clever tactics, and similar strategies, becoming more skilled in the arrangement of their battles.
In the youth of a state, arms do flourish; in the middle age of a state, learning; and then both of them together for a time; in the declining age of a state, mechanical arts and merchandise. Learning hath its infancy when it is but beginning, and almost childish; then its youth, when it is luxuriant and juvenile; then its strength of years, when it is solid and reduced; and, lastly, its old age, when it waxeth dry and exhaust. But it is not good to look too long upon these turning wheels of vicissitude, lest we become giddy; as for the philology of them, that is but a circle of tales, and therefore not fit for this writing.
In the early years of a state, weapons are prominent; in its middle years, education takes the lead; then both can coexist for a while; in the later years of a state, it focuses on crafts and trade. Education has its beginnings when it's just starting out, almost naive; then it enters its youth, where it's vibrant and lively; it reaches maturity when it's solid and refined; and finally, it enters old age, when it becomes dry and worn out. But it's not wise to stare too long at these cycles of change, or we might get dizzy; as for their deeper meanings, that's just a cycle of stories, which isn’t suitable for this writing.
APPENDIX TO ESSAYS.
I.—A FRAGMENT OF AN ESSAY OF FAME.610
The poets make fame a monster; they describe her in part finely and elegantly, and in part gravely and sententiously; they say, Look, how many feathers she hath, so many eyes she hath underneath, so many tongues, so many voices, she pricks up so many ears!
The poets portray fame as a monster; they depict her beautifully and elegantly at times, and seriously and weightily at others; they say, Look, how many feathers she has, that many eyes she has underneath, that many tongues, that many voices, she perks up that many ears!
This is a flourish: there follow excellent parables; as that she gathereth strength in going; that she goeth upon the ground, and yet hideth her head in the clouds; that in the daytime she sitteth in a watch-tower, and flieth most by night; that she mingleth things done with things not done; and that she is a terror to great cities; but that which passeth all the rest is, they do recount that the Earth, mother of the giants that made war against Jupiter, and were by him destroyed, thereupon in anger brought forth Fame; for certain it is, that rebels, figured by the giants, and seditious fames and libels, 302are but brothers and sisters, masculine and feminine. But now, if a man can tame this monster, and bring her to feed at the hand and govern her, and with her fly other ravening fowl, and kill them, it is somewhat worth; but we are infected with the style of the poets. To speak now in a sad and serious manner, there is not in all the politics a place less handled, and more worthy to be handled, than this of fame. We will, therefore, speak of these points. What are false fames, and what are true fames, and how they may be best discerned; how fames may be sown and raised; how they may be spread and multiplied; and how they may be checked and lay dead; and other things concerning the nature of fame. Fame is of that force, as there is scarcely any great action wherein it hath not a great part, especially in the war. Mucianus undid Vitellius by a fame that he scattered, that Vitellius had in purpose to remove the legions of Syria into Germany, and the legions of Germany into Syria; whereupon the legions of Syria were infinitely inflamed.611 Julius Cæsar took Pompey unprovided, and laid asleep his industry and preparations by a fame that he cunningly gave out, how Cæsar’s own soldiers loved him not; and being wearied with the wars, and laden with the spoils of Gaul, would forsake him as soon as he came into Italy.612 Livia settled all things for the succession of her son Tiberius, by continually giving out that her husband Augustus was upon 303recovery and amendment;613 and it is a usual thing with the bashaws to conceal the death of the Grand Turk from the janizaries and men of war, to save the sacking of Constantinople, and other towns, as their manner is. Themistocles made Xerxes, king of Persia, post apace out of Græcia, by giving out that the Grecians had a purpose to break his bridge of ships which he had made athwart Hellespont.614 There be a thousand such like examples, and the more they are, the less they need to be repeated, because a man meeteth with them everywhere; therefore, let all wise governors have as great a watch and care over fames, as they have of the actions and designs themselves.
This is a flourish: here come some great stories; like how she gains strength as she goes; how she walks on the ground but hides her head in the clouds; how during the day she sits in a watchtower but flies mostly at night; how she mixes what’s done with what’s not done; and how she is a threat to great cities. But what stands out the most is that it’s said the Earth, mother of the giants who fought against Jupiter and were destroyed by him, in her anger gave birth to Fame. It’s certain that rebels, represented by the giants, and the restless rumors and slanders, are just brothers and sisters, masculine and feminine. But now, if a man can tame this monster and manage her, feeding her by hand, and with her, fly other predatory birds and take them down, it means something. However, we’ve been infected by the style of poets. Speaking now in a serious and somber way, there isn’t a topic in politics that is less addressed and more deserving of attention than this one about fame. Therefore, we will talk about these points: What are false and true fames, and how can they be best recognized; how can fames be planted and grown; how can they be spread and multiplied; how can they be stopped and laid to rest; and other matters concerning the nature of fame. Fame is so powerful that there's hardly any major event where it doesn’t play a large role, especially in war. Mucianus defeated Vitellius through a rumor he spread that Vitellius planned to move the legions from Syria to Germany and the legions from Germany to Syria, which caused the Syrian legions to become extremely agitated. Julius Caesar caught Pompey off guard and made his efforts and preparations seem useless by spreading a rumor that Caesar's own soldiers didn’t support him and, worn out from the wars and burdened with the spoils of Gaul, would abandon him as soon as he arrived in Italy. Livia arranged everything for her son Tiberius's succession by continually claiming that her husband Augustus was recovering and getting better; and it’s common for the leaders to hide the Grand Turk's death from the janissaries and soldiers to prevent the looting of Constantinople and other towns, as is their custom. Themistocles forced Xerxes, the king of Persia, to retreat from Greece quickly by claiming that the Greeks intended to destroy the bridge of ships he had built across the Hellespont. There are thousands of such examples, and the more there are, the less I need to repeat them, because you encounter them everywhere. Therefore, let all wise leaders keep as close a watch and concern over fames as they do over actions and plans themselves.
II.—OF A KING.
1. A king is a mortal God on earth, unto whom the living God hath lent his own name as a great honor; but withal told him, he should die like a man, lest he should be proud and flatter himself, that God hath, with his name, imparted unto him his nature also.
1. A monarch is a mortal God on earth, to whom the living God has granted his own name as a great honor; but at the same time warned him that he would die like a man, so he wouldn’t become prideful and deceive himself into thinking that God, by giving him his name, also gave him his nature.
2. Of all kind of men, God is the least beholden unto them; for he doth most for them, and they do, ordinarily, least for him.
2. Of all types of people, God owes them the least, because He does the most for them, while they usually do the least for Him.
3. A king that would not feel his crown too heavy for him, must wear it every day; but if he think it too light, he knoweth not of what metal it is made.
3. A king who doesn't want to feel his crown is too heavy for him must wear it every day; but if he thinks it's too light, he doesn't know what it's made of.
4. He must make religion the rule of government, and not to balance the scale; for he that casteth in religion only to make the scales even, his own weight is contained in those characters: “Mene, mene, tekel, upharsin: He is found too light, his kingdom shall be taken from him.”
4. He should make religion the guiding principle of government, not just try to balance things out; because if someone only uses religion to tip the scales evenly, their own worth is revealed in the words: “Mene, mene, tekel, upharsin: He is found wanting, and his kingdom will be taken from him.”
5. And that king that holds not religion the best reason of state, is void of all piety and justice, the supporters of a king.
5. A king who doesn't value religion as the best reason for governance lacks all sense of piety and justice, which are the foundations of a king's power.
6. He must be able to give counsel himself, but not rely thereupon; for though happy events justify their counsels, yet it is better that the evil event of good advice be rather imputed to a subject than a sovereign.
6. He should be capable of giving advice himself, but not depend on it; since while good outcomes validate their advice, it's preferable that the negative result of good advice be attributed to a subject rather than a ruler.
7. He is a fountain of honor, which should not run with a waste-pipe, lest the courtiers sell the water, and then, as Papists say of their holy wells, it loses the virtue.
7. He is a source of honor, which shouldn't be connected to a waste-pipe, or else the courtiers will sell the water, and then, as Catholics say about their holy wells, it loses its value.
8. He is the life of the law, not only as he is Lex loquens himself, but because he animateth the dead letter, making it active towards all his subjects præmio et pœna.
8. He is the essence of the law, not just because he is Lex loquens himself, but because he brings the written word to life, making it apply actively to all his subjects præmio et pœna.
9. A wise king must do less in altering his laws than he may; for new government is ever dangerous. It being true in the body politic, as in the corporal, that omnis subita immutatio est periculosa; and though it be for the better, yet it is not without305 a fearful apprehension; for he that changeth the fundamental laws of a kingdom, thinketh there is no good title to a crown, but by conquest.
9. A wise king should change his laws less than he can because new governance is always risky. Just like in the physical body, in the political body, omnis subita immutatio est periculosa; and even if the changes are for the better, they still come with305 a sense of fear. For anyone who alters the fundamental laws of a kingdom believes that there’s no legitimate claim to a crown except through conquest.
10. A king that setteth to sale seats of justice, oppresseth the people; for he teacheth his judges to sell justice; and pretio parata pretio venditur justitia.
10. A king who sells seats of justice oppresses the people; he teaches his judges to sell justice; and justice prepared for a price is sold for a price.
11. Bounty and magnificence are virtues very regal, but a prodigal king is nearer a tyrant than a parsimonious; for store at home draweth not his contemplations abroad, but want supplieth itself of what is next, and many times the next way. A king therein must be wise, and know what he may justly do.
11. Generosity and grandeur are noble traits, but a wasteful king is closer to being a tyrant than a stingy one; because abundance at home doesn't drive his thoughts outward, but scarcity looks for what’s nearby, often in the quickest way. A king in this regard must be wise and understand what he can justly do.
12. That king which is not feared, is not loved; and he that is well seen in his craft, must as well study to be feared as loved; yet not loved for fear, but feared for love.
12. A king who isn't feared isn't loved; and someone who is good at their job must work on being both feared and loved; however, it's important to be feared for the right reasons rather than being loved out of fear.
13. Therefore, as he must always resemble Him whose great name he beareth, and that as in manifesting the sweet influence of his mercy on the severe stroke of his justice sometimes, so in this not to suffer a man of death to live; for, besides that the land doth mourn, the restraint of justice towards sin doth more retard the affection of love, than the extent of mercy doth inflame it; and sure, where love is [ill] bestowed, fear is quite lost.
13. Therefore, he must always reflect the one whose great name he carries, both by showing the gentle touch of his mercy in the face of harsh justice, and by not allowing a man deserving of death to live. Because, besides the fact that the land mourns, the limitation of justice towards sin holds back the feeling of love more than the reach of mercy ignites it; and it's clear that where love is misdirected, fear completely disappears.
14. His greatest enemies are his flatterers; for though they ever speak on his side, yet their words still make against him.
14. His biggest enemies are his flatterers; even though they always speak in his favor, their words still work against him.
15. The love which a king oweth to a weal public should not be overstrained to any one particular; yet that his more especial favor do reflect upon some worthy ones, is somewhat necessary, because there are few of that capacity.
15. The love that a king owes to the public good shouldn't be directed too much towards any one person; however, it's somewhat necessary for him to show special favor to a few deserving individuals, as there are only a handful of people with that capability.
16. He must have a special care of five things, if he would not have his crown to be but to him infelix felicitas.
16. He needs to take special care of five things if he doesn’t want his crown to be nothing more than infelix felicitas.
First, that simulata sanctitas be not in the church; for that is duplex iniquitas.
First, that simulata sanctitas is not in the church; for that is duplex iniquitas.
Secondly, that inutilis æquitas sit not in the chancery; for that is inepta misericordia.
Secondly, that useless equity is not present in the chancery; for that is foolish mercy.
Thirdly, that utilis iniquitas keep not the exchequer; for that is crudele latrocinium.
Thirdly, let that utilis iniquitas not maintain the treasury; because that is crudele latrocinium.
Fourthly, that fidelis temeritas be not his general; for that will bring but seram pœnitentiam.
Fourthly, that fidelis temeritas should not be his guide; because that will only lead to seram pœnitentiam.
Fifthly, that infidelis prudentia be not his secretary; for that is anguis sub viridi herbâ.
Fifthly, that infidelis prudentia should not be his secretary; because that is anguis sub viridi herbâ.
To conclude: as he is of the greatest power, so he is subject to the greatest cares, made the servant of his people, or else he were without a calling at all.
To sum up: the more power he has, the greater his worries become; he is made to serve his people, or else he has no purpose at all.
He, then, that honoreth him not is next an atheist, wanting the fear of God in his heart.
He who does not honor him is, in a way, an atheist, lacking the fear of God in his heart.
III.—ON DEATH.
1. I have often thought upon death, and I find it the least of all evils. All that which is past is as a dream; and he that hopes or depends upon time coming, dreams waking. So much of our life as we have discovered is already dead; and all those hours which we share, even from the breasts of our mothers, until we return to our grandmother the earth, are part of our dying days, whereof even this is one, and those that succeed are of the same nature, for we die daily; and, as others have given place to us, so we must, in the end, give way to others.
1. I’ve got often thought about death, and I see it as the smallest of all evils. Everything that has happened is like a dream; and anyone who hopes or relies on the future is just dreaming while awake. So much of our life that we’ve experienced is already dead; and every hour we share, from the moment we were born until we return to our grandmother, the earth, is part of our dying days, and this moment is one of them, and the moments that follow are the same, because we die every day; and just as others have made way for us, we too must, in the end, step aside for others.
2. Physicians, in the name of death, include all sorrow, anguish, disease, calamity, or whatsoever can fall in the life of man, either grievous or unwelcome. But these things are familiar unto us, and we suffer them every hour; therefore we die daily, and I am older since I affirmed it.
2. Doctors, in terms of death, encompass all pain, distress, illness, misfortune, or anything else that can happen in a person’s life, whether it’s severe or unwanted. But these things are part of our lives, and we endure them every moment; so we die a little every day, and I feel older since I admitted it.
3. I know many wise men that fear to die, for the change is bitter, and flesh would refuse to prove it; besides, the expectation brings terror, and that exceeds the evil. But I do not believe that any man fears to be dead, but only the stroke of death; and such are my hopes, that if Heaven be pleased, and nature renew but my lease for twenty-one years more without asking longer days, I shall be strong308 enough to acknowledge without mourning, that I was begotten mortal. Virtue walks not in the highway, though she go per alta; this is strength and the blood to virtue, to contemn things that be desired, and to neglect that which is feared.
3. I know many smart people who are afraid of dying because the change is harsh, and our bodies would rather not face it; also, the anticipation brings fear, which is worse than the actual problem. But I don’t think anyone really fears being dead, just the process of dying; and I’m hopeful that if Heaven is kind, and nature extends my time for another twenty-one years without asking for more, I’ll be strong enough to accept my mortality without grief. Virtue doesn’t travel the easy path, even if she soars high; having strength is the core of virtue, to look down on what we desire and to disregard what we fear.308
4. Why should man be in love with his fetters, though of gold? Art thou drowned in security? Then I say thou art perfectly dead. For though thou movest, yet thy soul is buried within thee, and thy good angel either forsakes his guard, or sleeps. There is nothing under heaven, saving a true friend (who cannot be counted within the number of movables), unto which my heart doth lean. And this dear freedom hath begotten me this peace, that I mourn not for that end which must be, nor spend one wish to have one minute added, to the uncertain date of my years. It was no mean apprehension of Lucian, who says of Menippus, that in his travels through hell, he knew not the kings of the earth from other men but only by their louder cryings and tears, which were fostered in them through the remorseful memory of the good days they had seen, and the fruitful havings which they so unwillingly left behind them. He that was well seated, looked back at his portion, and was loath to forsake his farm; and others, either minding marriages, pleasures, profit, or preferment, desired to be excused from death’s banquet. They had made an appointment with earth, looking at the blessings, not the hand that enlarged them, forgetting how unclothedly they309 came hither, or with what naked ornaments they were arrayed.
4. Why should a person be in love with their chains, even if they’re made of gold? Are you lost in comfort? Then I say you are truly dead. For even though you move, your soul is buried within you, and your good angel either abandons its watch or falls asleep. There is nothing under heaven, except for a true friend (who can't be counted among possessions), to which my heart leans. And this dear freedom has given me this peace, that I do not mourn for the end that must come, nor do I wish for even a minute more to be added to the uncertain years of my life. It was no trivial insight by Lucian, who says of Menippus, that during his journey through hell, he couldn’t tell the kings of the earth from other men except by their louder cries and tears, which were nurtured in them by the painful memory of the good days they had experienced and the blessings they were so unwilling to leave behind. Those who were well off looked back at their fortunes and were reluctant to leave their land; others, focused on marriages, pleasures, profit, or promotion, wished to be excused from death’s feast. They had made a pact with the earth, looking at the blessings, not the hand that provided them, forgetting how nakedly they came here, or with what meager gifts they were clothed.
5. But were we servants of the precept given, and observers of the heathens’ rule, Memento mori, and not become benighted with this seeming felicity, we should enjoy it as men prepared to lose, and not wind up our thoughts upon so perishing a fortune. He that is not slackly strong (as the servants of pleasure), how can he be found unready to quit the vail and false visage of his perfection? The soul having shaken off her flesh, doth then set up for herself, and contemning things that are under, shows what finger hath enforced her; for the souls of idiots are of the same piece with those of statesmen, but now and then nature is at a fault, and this good guest of ours takes soil in an imperfect body, and so is slackened from showing her wonders, like an excellent musician, which cannot utter himself upon a defective instrument.
5. But if we were true followers of the principle given, and respected the heathens’ rule, Memento mori, and didn’t become blinded by this apparent happiness, we would enjoy it like people ready to lose it, and not let our thoughts get wrapped up in such a fleeting fortune. How can someone who isn't carelessly indulgent (like those who chase pleasure) be found unprepared to let go of the veil and false appearance of their perfection? Once the soul sheds its physical form, it sets out on its own, and by disregarding what lies below, reveals what has driven it; because the souls of simpletons are made of the same stuff as those of politicians, but sometimes nature makes mistakes, and this good guest of ours finds itself trapped in an imperfect body, preventing it from displaying its wonders, like a great musician who can’t express himself on a broken instrument.
6. But see how I am swerved, and lose my course, touching at the soul that doth least hold action with death, who hath the surest property in this frail act; his style is the end of all flesh, and the beginning of incorruption.
6. But look how I've been swayed and lost my path, reaching out to the soul that is least connected to death, which has the strongest claim in this fragile act; his style is the end of all flesh and the start of immortality.
This ruler of monuments leads men, for the most part, out of this world with their heels forward, in token that he is contrary to life, which being obtained, sends men headlong into this wretched theatre, where, being arrived, their first language is that of mourning. Nor, in my own thoughts, can I com310pare men more fitly to any thing than to the Indian fig-tree, which, being ripened to his full height, is said to decline his branches down to the earth, whereof she conceives again, and they become roots in their own stock.
This ruler of monuments mostly leads people out of this world with their heels first, showing that he is opposed to life. Once this is achieved, it sends people crashing into this miserable stage, where, once they arrive, their first language is one of mourning. In my own thoughts, I can't think of a better comparison for people than the Indian fig tree, which, when it has reached its full height, is said to bend its branches down to the ground, where it produces new growth, and they turn into roots in their own trunk.
So man, having derived his being from the earth, first lives the life of a tree, drawing his nourishment as a plant, and made ripe for death, he tends downwards, and is sown again in his mother the earth, where he perisheth not, but expects a quickening.
So, man, who comes from the earth, first lives like a tree, getting his nourishment like a plant, and as he gets ready for death, he grows downward and is planted again in his mother the earth, where he doesn’t perish but awaits renewal.
7. So we see death exempts not a man from being, but only presents an alteration; yet there are some men (I think) that stand otherwise persuaded. Death finds not a worse friend than an alderman, to whose door I never knew him welcome; but he is an importunate guest, and will not be said nay.
7. So we see that death doesn’t really remove a person from existence; it just brings about a change. Still, there are some people (I think) who believe differently. Death has no worse friend than an alderman, who I’ve never seen welcome him at his door; yet he is a persistent visitor and will not take no for an answer.
And though they themselves shall affirm that they are not within, yet the answer will not be taken; and that which heightens their fear is, that they know they are in danger to forfeit their flesh, but are not wise of the payment-day, which sickly uncertainty is the occasion that (for the most part) they step out of this world unfurnished for their general account, and, being all unprovided, desire yet to hold their gravity, preparing their souls to answer in scarlet.
And even though they claim they're not involved, their denial won’t be accepted; what makes them even more afraid is that they know they risk losing their lives, but they’re clueless about when they’ll have to pay the price. This uncertainty often leads them to leave this world unprepared for their final reckoning, and despite being unready, they still try to maintain their composure, gearing up to face consequences in shame.
Thus I gather, that death is unagreeable to most citizens, because they commonly die intestate; this being a rule, that when their will is made, they311 think themselves nearer a grave than before. Now they, out of the wisdom of thousands, think to scare destiny, from which there is no appeal, by not making a will, or to live longer by protestation of their unwillingness to die. They are, for the most part, well made in this world (accounting their treasure by legions, as men do devils). Their fortune looks towards them, and they are willing to anchor at it, and desire (if it be possible) to put the evil day far off from them, and to adjourn their ungrateful and killing period.
So, I've come to understand that most people are not okay with death because they usually die without a will. The common belief is that when they actually make a will, they feel closer to dying than before. They think, with the wisdom of many, that they can outsmart fate—something they can’t escape—by avoiding making a will, or by somehow extending their lives through their refusal to accept death. Generally, they're in a good place in life (counting their wealth in plenty, like people count demons). Their fortunes seem to favor them, and they want to hold onto that, wishing, if possible, to push away the inevitable and delay their unfortunate and deadly end.
No, these are not the men which have bespoken death, or whose looks are assured to entertain a thought of him.
No, these are not the men who have called for death, or whose expressions are likely to invite thoughts of him.
8. Death arrives gracious only to such as sit in darkness, or lie heavy burdened with grief and irons; to the poor Christian, that sits bound in the galley; to despairful widows, pensive prisoners, and deposed kings; to them whose fortune runs back, and whose spirits mutiny: unto such, death is a redeemer, and the grave a place for retiredness and rest.
8. Death comes gently only to those who sit in darkness or are weighed down by grief and chains; to the poor Christian who is chained in the galley; to hopeless widows, thoughtful prisoners, and deposed kings; to those whose luck has turned against them and whose spirits are in revolt: for them, death is a savior, and the grave a place for retreat and rest.
These wait upon the shore of death, and waft unto him to draw near, wishing above all others to see his star, that they might be led to his place; wooing the remorseless sisters to wind down the watch of their life, and to break them off before the hour.
These gather by the edge of death, beckoning him to come closer, longing more than anything to see his star, so they can be guided to his location; trying to persuade the unforgiving sisters to shorten the duration of their lives and end it before their time.
9. But death is a doleful messenger to a usurer, and fate untimely cuts their thread; for it is never mentioned by him, but when rumors of war and civil tumults put him in mind thereof.
9. But death is a sad messenger to a loan shark, and fate unexpectedly cuts their thread; for he only thinks about it when news of war and civil unrest remind him of it.
And when many hands are armed, and the peace of a city in disorder, and the foot of the common soldiers sounds an alarm on his stairs, then perhaps such a one (broken in thoughts of his moneys abroad, and cursing the monuments of coin which are in his house) can be content to think of death, and (being hasty of perdition) will perhaps hang himself, lest his throat should be cut; provided that he may do it in his study, surrounded with wealth, to which his eye sends a faint and languishing salute, even upon the turning off; remembering always, that he have time and liberty, by writing, to depute himself as his own heir.
And when numerous people are armed, the peace of a city is in chaos, and the common soldiers’ footsteps echo loudly on the stairs, then maybe someone like that (lost in thoughts about his money overseas and cursing the riches he has at home) might be willing to consider death and, anxious about his downfall, may even decide to hang himself to avoid having his throat cut; provided that he can do it in his study, surrounded by his wealth, to which he offers a weak and fading salute, even in his final moments; always remembering that he has the time and freedom, through writing, to make himself his own heir.
For that is a great peace to his end, and reconciles him wonderfully upon the point.
For that brings him a lot of peace in the end and helps him come to terms with it wonderfully.
10. Herein we all dally with ourselves, and are without proof of necessity. I am not of those, that dare promise to pine away myself in vainglory, and I hold such to be but feat boldness, and them that dare commit it, to be vain. Yet, for my part, I think nature should do me great wrong, if I should be so long in dying, as I was in being born.
10. Here, we all mess around with ourselves, lacking any real need. I'm not one of those who dares to waste away in vanity, and I consider that to be sheer boldness, while those who do it are just being foolish. Still, I believe it would be a great injustice if nature took as long to let me die as it did to bring me into the world.
To speak truth, no man knows the lists of his own patience, nor can divine how able he shall be in his sufferings, till the storm come (the perfectest virtue being tried in action); but I would (out of a care to do the best business well) ever keep a guard, and stand upon keeping faith and a good conscience.
To be honest, no one really knows the limits of their own patience or can predict how well they’ll handle suffering until a challenge arises (the greatest virtue is tested in action); but I would always be mindful, making sure to uphold my integrity and maintain a clear conscience.
11. And if wishes might find place, I would die together, and not my mind often, and my body once;313 that is, I would prepare for the messengers of death, sickness, and affliction, and not wait long, or be attempted by the violence of pain.
11. And if wishes could come true, I would die together, not just my mind often, and my body once; 313 that is, I would get ready for the messengers of death, sickness, and suffering, and not wait too long or be overwhelmed by the intensity of pain.
Herein I do not profess myself a Stoic, to hold grief no evil, but opinion, and a thing indifferent.
Here, I don’t claim to be a Stoic, but I believe that grief is not an evil; it's just an opinion and something neutral.
But I consent with Cæsar, that the suddenest passage is easiest, and there is nothing more awakens our resolve and readiness to die than the quieted conscience, strengthened with opinion that we shall be well spoken of upon earth by those that are just, and of the family of virtue; the opposite whereof is a fury to man, and makes even life unsweet.
But I agree with Caesar that the quickest way is often the easiest, and nothing motivates our determination to face death more than a clear conscience, reinforced by the belief that we will be honored on earth by those who are just and virtuous; the opposite of that brings fury to a person and makes even life feel bitter.
Therefore, what is more heavy than evil fame deserved? Or, likewise, who can see worse days, than he that, yet living, doth follow at the funerals of his own reputation?
Therefore, what could be worse than a bad reputation that you deserve? Or, who can experience darker times than someone who, while still alive, has to attend the funerals of their own reputation?
I have laid up many hopes, that I am privileged from that kind of mourning, and could wish the like peace to all those with whom I wage love.
I have built up many hopes, believing that I am spared from that kind of sadness, and I wish the same peace for everyone I love.
12. I might say much of the commodities that death can sell a man; but, briefly, death is a friend of ours, and he that is not ready to entertain him, is not at home. Whilst I am, my ambition is not to foreflow the tide; I have but so to make my interest of it as I may account for it; I would wish nothing but what might better my days, nor desire any greater place than the front of good opinion. I make not love to the continuance of days, but to the goodness of them; nor wish to die, but refer314 myself to my hour, which the great Dispenser of all things hath appointed me; yet, as I am frail, and suffered for the first fault, were it given me to choose, I should not be earnest to see the evening of my age; that extremity, of itself, being a disease, and a mere return into infancy; so that, if perpetuity of life might be given me, I should think what the Greek poet said; “Such an age is a mortal evil.” And since I must needs be dead, I require it may not be done before mine enemies, that I be not stript before I be cold; but before my friends. The night is even now: but that name is lost; it is not now late, but early. Mine eyes begin to discharge their watch, and compound with this fleshly weakness for a time of perpetual rest; and I shall presently be as happy for a few hours, as I had died the first hour I was born.
12. I could talk a lot about the things that death takes from a person; but, in short, death is a friend of ours, and if someone isn’t prepared to welcome him, they aren’t really home. While I'm here, my goal isn't to fight against time; I just want to make the most of my time and be able to account for it. I wish for nothing that wouldn’t improve my life and I don’t desire any higher status than being held in good regard. I don’t cling to the idea of living longer, but rather to the quality of my days; I don't want to die, but I accept that my time will come, as determined by the great giver of all things. Yet, knowing my frailty and the consequences of the first mistake, if given the choice, I wouldn't be eager to see my old age approach; that end, in itself, feels like a sickness, a return to childhood. So, if I could choose to live forever, I’d agree with the Greek poet who said, “Such an age is a mortal evil.” And since I must die, I hope it happens not in front of my enemies, so I’m not stripped of my dignity before I'm even cold; I would rather it be in front of my friends. The night is coming now: but that term feels old; it’s not late anymore, it’s early. My eyes are starting to let go of their watch and make peace with this physical weakness for a time of everlasting rest; and soon, I will be as happy for a few hours as if I had died the moment I was born.
THE WISDOM OF THE ANCIENTS.
PREFACE.
The earliest antiquity lies buried in silence and oblivion, excepting the remains we have of it in sacred writ. This silence was succeeded by poetical fables, and these, at length, by the writings we now enjoy; so that the concealed and secret learning of the ancients seems separated from the history and knowledge of the following ages by a veil, or partition-wall of fables, interposing between the things that are lost and those that remain.615
The earliest history is buried in silence and forgetfulness, except for the bits we have in sacred texts. This silence was followed by poetic myths, and eventually by the writings we cherish today; so the hidden and secret knowledge of the ancients appears to be separated from the history and understanding of later ages by a veil, or wall of fables, standing between what is lost and what still exists.615
Many may imagine that I am here entering upon a work of fancy, or amusement, and design to use a poetical liberty, in explaining poetical fables. It is true, fables, in general, are composed of ductile matter, that may be drawn into great variety by a witty talent or an inventive genius, and be delivered of plausible meanings 318which they never contained. But this procedure has already been carried to excess; and great numbers, to procure the sanction of antiquity to their own notions and inventions, have miserably wrested and abused the fables of the ancients.
Many might think I'm here starting a project of imagination or entertainment, looking to take poetic license in explaining poetic fables. It's true that fables, in general, are made of flexible material that can be shaped into a wide range of meanings through cleverness or creative talent, often conveying plausible interpretations that they never originally had. However, this practice has already gone too far; many have twisted and misused the fables of the ancients in order to gain the approval of tradition for their own ideas and creations. 318
Nor is this only a late or unfrequent practice, but of ancient date and common even to this day. Thus Chrysippus, like an interpreter of dreams, attributed the opinions of the Stoics to the poets of old; and the chemists, at present, more childishly apply the poetical transformations to their experiments of the furnace. And though I have well weighed and considered all this, and thoroughly seen into the levity which the mind indulges for allegories and allusions, yet I cannot but retain a high value for the ancient mythology. And, certainly, it were very injudicious to suffer the fondness and licentiousness of a few to detract from the honor of all ego and parable in general. This would be rash, and almost profane; for, since religion delights in such shadows and disguises, to abolish them were, in a manner, to prohibit all intercourse betwixt things divine and human.
This isn’t just a recent or rare practice; it’s actually ancient and pretty common even today. For example, Chrysippus, like a dream interpreter, linked the Stoic beliefs to ancient poets, and nowadays, chemists somewhat naively use poetic transformations in their furnace experiments. Although I’ve thought this through and recognized the superficiality that the mind enjoys with allegories and allusions, I still hold a deep appreciation for ancient mythology. It would be quite foolish to let the whims and excesses of a few undermine the value of all ego and parables in general. That would be reckless and nearly disrespectful; since religion thrives on such symbols and disguises, abolishing them would, in a way, prohibit any connection between the divine and the human.
Upon deliberate consideration, my judgment is, that a concealed instruction and allegory was originally intended in many of the ancient fables. This opinion may, in some respect, be owing to the veneration I have for antiquity, but more to observing that some fables discover a great and evident similitude, relation, and connection with the thing they signify, as well in the structure of the fable as in the propriety of the names whereby the persons or actors are characterized; insomuch, that no one could positively deny a sense319 and meaning to be from the first intended, and purposely shadowed out in them. For who can hear that Fame, after the giants were destroyed, sprung up as their posthumous sister, and not apply it to the clamor of parties and the seditious rumors which commonly fly about for a time upon the quelling of insurrections? Or who can read how the giant Typhon cut out and carried away Jupiter’s sinews—which Mercury afterwards stole, and again restored to Jupiter—and not presently observe that this allegory denotes strong and powerful rebellions, which cut away from kings their sinews, both of money and authority; and that the way to have them restored is by lenity, affability, and prudent edicts, which soon reconcile, and, as it were, steal upon the affections of the subject? Or who, upon hearing that memorable expedition of the gods against the giants, when the braying of Silenus’s ass greatly contributed in putting the giants to flight, does not clearly conceive that this directly points at the monstrous enterprises of rebellious subjects, which are frequently frustrated and disappointed by vain fears and empty rumors?
After careful thought, I believe that many of the ancient fables were originally meant to convey hidden instructions and deeper meanings. This view might be partly due to my respect for ancient texts, but mainly because I notice that some fables show a clear and evident similarity, relationship, and connection to what they represent, both in the structure of the fable and in the appropriateness of the names given to the characters. So much so that no one could truly deny that there was original intent and meaning behind them. For instance, who can hear that Fame, after the giants were defeated, emerged as their sister and not see a connection to the noise of factions and the rebellious rumors that often circulate after uprisings are quelled? Or who can read about how the giant Typhon cut out and took Jupiter’s sinews—only for Mercury to steal them back and return them to Jupiter—and not realize that this allegory represents strong and powerful rebellions that strip away a king's resources and authority? The way to restore that power is through kindness, friendliness, and wise decrees, which can quickly mend relations and win the loyalty of the people. Or who, upon hearing about that famous battle of the gods against the giants, where the braying of Silenus's donkey played a major role in scaring the giants away, does not clearly understand that this directly references the outrageous efforts of rebellious subjects, which are often thwarted by foolish fears and baseless rumors?
Again, the conformity and purport of the names is frequently manifest and self-evident. Thus Metis, the wife of Jupiter, plainly signifies counsel; Typhon, swelling; Pan, universality; Nemesis, revenge, &c. Nor is it a wonder, if sometimes a piece of history or other things are introduced, by way of ornament; or, if the times of the action are confounded; or, if part of one fable be tacked to another; or, if the allegory be new turned; for all this must necessarily happen, as the fables were the inventions of men who lived in different320 ages, and had different views; some of them being ancient, others more modern; some having an eye to natural philosophy, and others to morality or civil policy.
Again, the conformity and meaning of the names is often clear and obvious. For example, Metis, the wife of Jupiter, clearly represents counsel; Typhon, swelling; Pan, universality; and Nemesis, revenge, etc. It's not surprising if at times a historical event or other elements are included for embellishment; or if the timing of the actions gets mixed up; or if one tale is added to another; or if the allegory is reinterpreted; as all of this is bound to happen since the fables were created by people who lived in different 320 eras, each with their own perspectives—some ancient, others more contemporary; some focused on natural philosophy, and others on morality or civil policy.
It may pass for a further indication of a concealed and secret meaning, that some of these fables are so absurd and idle in their narration, as to show and proclaim an allegory, even afar off. A fable that carries probability with it may be supposed invented for pleasure, or in imitation of history; but those that could never be conceived or related in this way must surely have a different use. For example, what a monstrous fiction is this, that Jupiter should take Metis to wife, and as soon as he found her pregnant eat her up, whereby he also conceived, and out of his head brought forth Pallas armed. Certainly no mortal could, but for the sake of the moral it couches, invent such an absurd dream as this, so much out of the road of thought!
It might suggest a hidden and secret meaning that some of these fables are so ridiculous and pointless in their storytelling that they clearly convey an allegory, even from a distance. A fable that seems plausible might be created for enjoyment or to imitate history; however, those that could never be imagined or told in that way must have a different purpose. For example, what a crazy story it is that Jupiter would marry Metis, and as soon as he discovered she was pregnant, he swallowed her, which then led him to conceive and give birth to Pallas fully armed from his head. No human could come up with such a bizarre dream unless it was to illustrate a moral, so far outside the realm of ordinary thought!
But the argument of most weight with me is this, that many of these fables by no means appear to have been invented by the persons who relate and divulge them, whether Homer, Hesiod, or others; for if I were assured they first flowed from those later times and authors that transmit them to us, I should never expect any thing singularly great or noble from such an origin. But whoever attentively considers the thing, will find that these fables are delivered down and related by those writers, not as matters then first invented and proposed, but as things received and embraced in earlier ages. Besides, as they are differently related by writers nearly of the same ages, it is easily321 perceived that the relators drew from the common stock of ancient tradition, and varied but in point of embellishment, which is their own. And this principally raises my esteem of these fables, which I receive, not as the product of the age, or invention of the poets, but as sacred relics, gentle whispers, and the breath of better times, that from the traditions of more ancient nations came, at length, into the flutes and trumpets of the Greeks. But if any one shall, notwithstanding this, contend that allegories are always adventitious, or imposed upon the ancient fables, and no way native or genuinely contained in them, we might here leave him undisturbed in that gravity of judgment he affects (though we cannot help accounting it somewhat dull and phlegmatic), and, if it were worth the trouble, proceed to another kind of argument.
But to me, the most compelling point is that many of these fables clearly don't seem to have been created by the people who tell and share them, whether that’s Homer, Hesiod, or others. If I were sure that they originated from later times and authors who pass them on to us, I wouldn’t expect anything particularly great or noble to come from that background. However, anyone who carefully considers this will realize that these fables are not shared by those writers as new inventions or proposals, but rather as ideas that were accepted and embraced in earlier times. Additionally, since they are told differently by writers from nearly the same era, it’s clear that the storytellers drew from the common pool of ancient tradition and simply added their own embellishments. This is what primarily increases my appreciation for these fables; I view them not as products of their time or the inventions of poets, but as sacred relics, gentle whispers, and the essence of better times, that eventually made their way into the flutes and trumpets of the Greeks from the traditions of older nations. However, if anyone insists that allegories are always external additions to ancient fables, rather than being inherently present in them, we could let them retain that serious judgment they seem to prefer (even if I find it a bit dull and lifeless), and if it were worthwhile, we might move on to a different argument.
Men have proposed to answer two different and contrary ends by the use of parable; for parables serve as well to instruct or illustrate as to wrap up and envelop; so that though, for the present, we drop the concealed use, and suppose the ancient fables to be vague, undeterminate things, formed for amusement, still, the other use must remain, and can never be given up. And every man, of any learning, must readily allow that this method of instructing is grave, sober, or exceedingly useful, and sometimes necessary in the sciences, as it opens an easy and familiar passage to the human understanding, in all new discoveries that are abstruse and out of the road of vulgar opinions. Hence, in the first ages, when such inventions and conclusions of the human reason as are now trite and common were new and little known, all things abounded with fables, para322bles, similes, comparisons, and allusions, which were not intended to conceal, but to inform and teach, whilst the minds of men continued rude and unpractised in matters of subtilty and speculation, or even impatient, and in a manner incapable of receiving such things as did not fall directly under and strike the senses. For as hieroglyphics were in use before writing, so were parables in use before arguments. And even to this day, if any man would let new light in upon the human understanding, and conquer prejudice, without raising contests, animosities, opposition, or disturbance, he must still go in the same path, and have recourse to the like method of allegory, metaphor, and allusion.
People have tried to achieve two different and opposing goals using parables; because parables can both teach or illustrate as well as conceal and wrap up information. So, even if we set aside the hidden purpose for now and think of the ancient fables as vague and uncertain things made for entertainment, the other purpose must remain and can never be abandoned. Anyone with any education would quickly agree that this way of teaching is serious, thoughtful, or extremely useful, and sometimes necessary in the sciences, as it provides an easy and familiar path to understanding for humans in all new discoveries that are complex and far from common beliefs. In the early ages, when ideas and conclusions from human reasoning that are now familiar and commonplace were new and little known, everything was filled with fables, parables, similes, comparisons, and allusions, which were meant to inform and teach, not to conceal, while people’s minds were still rough and inexperienced in subtlety and speculation, or even impatient, and somewhat incapable of grasping things that did not directly engage the senses. Just as hieroglyphics were used before writing, parables were used before logical arguments. And even today, if anyone wants to shed new light on human understanding and overcome bias without stirring up disputes, anger, opposition, or chaos, they still need to follow the same approach and rely on allegory, metaphor, and allusion.
To conclude, the knowledge of the early ages was either great or happy; great, if they by design made this use of trope and figure; happy, if, whilst they had other views, they afforded matter and occasion to such noble contemplations. Let either be the case, our pains, perhaps, will not be misemployed, whether we illustrate antiquity or things themselves.
To summarize, the knowledge from ancient times was either impressive or fortunate; impressive if they intentionally used metaphor and symbolism; fortunate if, despite having different intentions, they still provided inspiration for such noble thoughts. Regardless, our efforts may not be wasted, whether we shed light on the past or on the subjects themselves.
The like, indeed, has been attempted by others; but, to speak ingenuously, their great and voluminous labors have almost destroyed the energy, the efficacy, and grace of the thing; whilst, being unskilled in nature, and their learning no more than that of commonplace, they have applied the sense of the parables to certain general and vulgar matters, without reaching to their real purport, genuine interpretation, and full depth. For myself, therefore, I expect to appear new in these common things, because, leaving untouched such as are sufficiently plain and open, I shall drive only at those that are either deep or rich.
Others have indeed tried this; however, to be honest, their extensive efforts have almost drained the energy, effectiveness, and elegance of the subject. Lacking true understanding of nature and possessing only a basic level of knowledge, they've applied the meanings of the parables to certain general and simplistic matters, missing their true intent, genuine interpretation, and full depth. So, for my part, I expect to present something fresh in these familiar topics because, while I’ll leave the simple and obvious ones alone, I will focus only on those that are either profound or substantial.
THE WISDOM OF THE ANCIENTS.
A SERIES OF MYTHOLOGICAL FABLES.616
I.—CASSANDRA, OR DIVINATION.
EXPLAINED OF TOO FREE AND UNSEASONABLE ADVICE.
EXPLAINED AS OVERLY FREE AND INAPPROPRIATE ADVICE.
The poets relate, that Apollo, falling in love with Cassandra, was still deluded and put off by her, yet fed with hopes, till she had got from him the gift of prophesy; and, having now obtained her end, she flatly rejected his suit. Apollo, unable to recall his rash gift, yet enraged to be outwitted by a girl, annexed this penalty to it, that though she should always prophesy true, she should never be believed; whence her divinations were always slighted, even when she again and again predicted the ruin of her country.
The poets say that Apollo fell in love with Cassandra, but she wasn't interested and kept him at bay. He held on to hope until she managed to get him to give her the gift of prophecy. Once she had what she wanted, she outright rejected his advances. Apollo, unable to take back his impulsive gift and furious about being outsmarted by a girl, added a cruel twist: even though she would always speak the truth, no one would believe her. As a result, her predictions were always ignored, even when she repeatedly warned of her country's downfall.
Explanation.—This fable seems invented to express the insignificance of unseasonable advice. For they who are conceited, stubborn, or intractable, and listen not to the instructions of Apollo, the god of harmony, so as to learn and observe the 324modulations and measures of affairs, the sharps and flats of discourse, the difference between judicious and vulgar ears, and the proper times of speech and silence, let them be ever so intelligent, and ever so frank of their advice, or their counsels ever so good and just, yet all their endeavors, either of persuasion or force, are of little significance, and rather hasten the ruin of those they advise. But, at last, when the calamitous event has made the sufferers feel the effect of their neglect, they too late reverence their advisers, as deep, foreseeing, and faithful prophets.
Explanation.—This fable seems created to show how pointless it is to give advice at the wrong time. Those who are arrogant, stubborn, or difficult, who ignore the teachings of Apollo, the god of harmony, and fail to learn and follow the shifts and rhythms of situations, the ups and downs of conversation, the distinction between wise and naive listeners, and the right moments for speaking or staying silent—no matter how bright they are, how straightforward their advice is, or how good and fair their counsel may be—will find that all their efforts, whether to persuade or to force, hold little weight and often lead to the downfall of those they try to advise. However, when a disastrous outcome finally makes the unfortunate realize the consequences of their neglect, they will belatedly regard their advisors as profound, insightful, and trustworthy prophets.
Of this, we have a remarkable instance in Cato of Utica, who discovered afar off, and long foretold, the approaching ruin of his country, both in the first conspiracy, and as it was prosecuted in the civil war between Cæsar and Pompey, yet did no good the while, but rather hurt the commonwealth, and hurried on its destruction, which Cicero wisely observed in these words: “Cato, indeed, judges excellently, but prejudices the state; for he speaks as in the commonwealth of Plato, and not as in the dregs of Romulus.”
Of this, we have a notable example in Cato of Utica, who saw from a distance and long predicted the impending downfall of his country, both during the first conspiracy and throughout the civil war between Caesar and Pompey. However, he did no good in the process; in fact, he harmed the republic and pushed it closer to destruction. Cicero wisely remarked on this with these words: “Cato, indeed, judges excellently, but prejudices the state; for he speaks as if in Plato's ideal republic, and not in the reality of Romulus's legacy.”
II.—TYPHON, OR A REBEL.
EXPLAINED OF REBELLION.
The fable runs, that Juno, enraged at Jupiter’s bringing forth Pallas without her assistance, incessantly solicited all the gods and goddesses, that she325 might produce without Jupiter; and having by violence and importunity obtained the grant, she struck the earth, and thence immediately sprung up Typhon, a huge and dreadful monster, whom she committed to the nursing of a serpent. As soon as he was grown up, this monster waged war on Jupiter, and taking him prisoner in the battle, carried him away on his shoulders, into a remote and obscure quarter; and there, cutting out the sinews of his hands and feet, he bore them off, leaving Jupiter behind miserably maimed and mangled.
The fable goes that Juno, furious with Jupiter for bringing forth Pallas without her help, kept asking all the gods and goddesses that she325 could create without Jupiter. After much persistence and effort, she got permission and struck the earth, where Typhon, a massive and terrifying monster, immediately sprang up. She entrusted him to the care of a serpent. Once Typhon grew up, he waged war against Jupiter, and in battle, he captured him and carried him away on his shoulders to a distant, hidden place. There, he cut the sinews of Jupiter's hands and feet, leaving him behind in a wretched, crippled state.
But Mercury afterwards stole these sinews from Typhon, and restored them to Jupiter. Hence, recovering his strength, Jupiter again pursues the monster; first wounds him with a stroke of his thunder, when serpents arose from the blood of the wound; and now the monster being dismayed, and taking to flight, Jupiter next darted Mount Ætna upon him, and crushed him with the weight.
But Mercury later took these sinews from Typhon and returned them to Jupiter. As a result, Jupiter regained his strength and went after the monster again; he first wounded him with a blast of his thunder, causing serpents to emerge from the blood of the wound. Now the monster, terrified and fleeing, was then struck by Mount Ætna that Jupiter hurled at him, crushing him with its weight.
Explanation.—This fable seems designed to express the various fates of kings, and the turns that rebellions sometimes take, in kingdoms. For princes may be justly esteemed married to their states, as Jupiter to Juno; but it sometimes happens, that, being depraved by long wielding of the sceptre, and growing tyrannical, they would engross all to themselves, and, slighting the counsel of their senators and nobles, conceive by themselves; that is, govern according to their own arbitrary will and326 pleasure. This inflames the people, and makes them endeavor to create and set up some head of their own. Such designs are generally set on foot by the secret motion and instigation of the peers and nobles, under whose connivance the common sort are prepared for rising; whence proceeds a swell in the state, which is appositely denoted by the nursing of Typhon. This growing posture of affairs is fed by the natural depravity and malignant dispositions of the vulgar, which to kings is an envenomed serpent. And now the disaffected, uniting their force, at length break out into open rebellion, which, producing infinite mischiefs, both to prince and people, is represented by the horrid and multiplied deformity of Typhon, with his hundred heads, denoting the divided powers; his flaming mouths, denoting fire and devastation; his girdles of snakes, denoting sieges and destruction; his iron hands, slaughter and cruelty; his eagle’s talons, rapine and plunder; his plumed body, perpetual rumors, contradictory accounts, &c. And sometimes these rebellions grow so high, that kings are obliged, as if carried on the backs of the rebels, to quit the throne, and retire to some remote and obscure part of their dominions, with the loss of their sinews, both of money and majesty.
Explanation.—This fable appears to highlight the different outcomes for kings and the shifts that rebellions can often take within kingdoms. Princes can be rightly viewed as being married to their states, much like Jupiter to Juno; however, it sometimes occurs that, after ruling for a long time and becoming tyrannical, they want to monopolize everything for themselves, disregarding the advice of their senators and nobles, and choosing to govern solely based on their own arbitrary desires and326 preferences. This provokes the people, driving them to seek out a leader of their own. Such initiatives are usually sparked by the hidden influence and urgings of the peers and nobles, under whose support the common people are readied for uprising; hence, a surge in the state occurs, aptly symbolized by the nurturing of Typhon. This growing situation is fueled by the inherent corruption and harmful tendencies of the masses, which acts as a venomous serpent to kings. Eventually, the discontented band together, erupting into open rebellion, which results in countless disasters for both the ruler and the people, represented by the horrific and varied monstrosity of Typhon, with his hundred heads symbolizing divided powers; his blazing mouths signifying fire and destruction; his snake-like girdles representing sieges and ruin; his iron hands symbolizing slaughter and brutality; his eagle’s talons indicating rape and looting; and his feathered body reflecting constant rumors, conflicting stories, etc. At times, these rebellions escalate so drastically that kings are forced, as if carried on the backs of the rebels, to abandon the throne and retreat to some distant and hidden part of their realm, suffering a loss of both resources and royal stature.
But if now they prudently bear this reverse of fortune, they may, in a short time, by the assistance of Mercury, recover their sinews again; that is, by becoming moderate and affable; reconciling the327 minds and affections of the people to them, by gracious speeches and prudent proclamations, which will win over the subject cheerfully to afford new aids and supplies, and add fresh vigor to authority. But prudent and wary princes here seldom incline to try fortune by a war, yet do their utmost, by some grand exploit, to crush the reputation of the rebels; and if the attempt succeeds, the rebels, conscious of the wound received, and distrustful of their cause, first betake themselves to broken and empty threats, like the hissings of serpents; and next, when matters are grown desperate, to flight. And now, when they thus begin to shrink, it is safe and seasonable for kings to pursue them with their forces, and the whole strength of the kingdom; thus effectually quashing and suppressing them, as it were by the weight of a mountain.
But if they wisely handle this setback now, they might soon regain their strength with the help of Mercury; that is, by being moderate and friendly, winning back the minds and hearts of the people with kind words and careful announcements. This will encourage the subjects to willingly provide new support and resources, adding energy to their authority. However, cautious and careful rulers rarely choose to risk war; instead, they do their best through some major action to undermine the rebels' reputation. If successful, the rebels, aware of their defeat and doubting their own cause, will first resort to empty threats, like the hissing of snakes, and then, when things get dire, to fleeing. At this point, when they start to retreat, it is wise and timely for kings to pursue them with their forces and the full strength of the kingdom, effectively crushing and suppressing them as if by the weight of a mountain.
III.—THE CYCLOPS, OR THE MINISTERS
OF TERROR.
EXPLAINED OF BASE COURT OFFICERS.
It is related that the Cyclops, for their savageness and cruelty, were by Jupiter first thrown into Tartarus, and there condemned to perpetual imprisonment; but that afterwards Tellus persuaded Jupiter it would be for his service to release them, and employ them in forging thunderbolts. This328 he accordingly did; and they, with unwearied pains and diligence, hammered out his bolts, and other instruments of terror, with a frightful and continual din of the anvil.
It is said that the Cyclops, due to their brutality and cruelty, were initially banished to Tartarus by Jupiter, where they were sentenced to endless imprisonment. However, later on, Tellus convinced Jupiter that it would be beneficial for him to free them and put them to work making thunderbolts. So he did just that; they tirelessly and diligently hammered out his bolts and other terrifying tools, creating a loud and constant noise from the anvil.
It happened, long after, that Jupiter was displeased with Æsculapius, the son of Apollo, for having, by the art of medicine, restored a dead man to life; but concealing his indignation, because the action in itself was pious and illustrious, he secretly incensed the Cyclops against him, who, without remorse, presently slew him with their thunderbolts: in revenge whereof, Apollo, with Jupiter’s connivance, shot them all dead with his arrows.
It happened later that Jupiter was unhappy with Æsculapius, the son of Apollo, for bringing a dead man back to life through medicine. However, trying to hide his anger since the act was noble and admirable, he secretly stirred up the Cyclops against him, who ruthlessly killed him with their thunderbolts. In retaliation, Apollo, with Jupiter's approval, killed them all with his arrows.
Explanation.—This fable seems to point at the behavior of princes, who, having cruel, bloody, and oppressive ministers, first punish and displace them; but afterwards, by the advice of Tellus, that is, some earthly-minded and ignoble person, employ them again, to serve a turn, when there is occasion for cruelty in execution, or severity in exaction; but these ministers being base in their nature, whet by their former disgrace, and well aware of what is expected from them, use double diligence in their office; till, proceeding unwarily, and over-eager to gain favor, they sometimes, from the private nods, and ambiguous orders of their prince, perform some odious or execrable action: when princes, to decline the envy themselves, and knowing they shall never want such tools at their back, drop them, and give329 them up to the friends and followers of the injured person; thus exposing them, as sacrifices to revenge and popular odium: whence, with great applause, acclamations, and good wishes to the prince, these miscreants at last meet with their desert.
Explanation.—This fable seems to illustrate the behavior of rulers who, after having cruel, violent, and oppressive advisers, initially punish and remove them. However, later, based on the advice of someone like Tellus—meaning a person who is earthly and unworthy—they bring them back when they need someone to carry out harsh orders or enforce strict rules. These advisers, feeling degraded from their previous downfall and fully aware of their expected role, work even harder at their jobs. But as they become overly eager to please, they sometimes carry out horrible actions based on subtle hints or vague commands from their ruler. When this happens, rulers, wanting to avoid blame and knowing they can always find such tools to do their dirty work, abandon them. They then turn these advisers over to the friends and supporters of the person wronged, essentially exposing them as sacrifices to revenge and public anger. As a result, with much praise, applause, and well-wishes for the ruler, these wrongdoers ultimately get what they deserve.
IV.—NARCISSUS, OR SELF-LOVE.
Narcissus is said to have been extremely beautiful and comely, but intolerably proud and disdainful; so that, pleased with himself, and scorning the world, he led a solitary life in the woods; hunting only with a few followers, who were his professed admirers, amongst whom the nymph Echo was his constant attendant. In this method of life, it was once his fate to approach a clear fountain, where he laid himself down to rest, in the noonday heat; when, beholding his image in the water, he fell into such a rapture and admiration of himself, that he could by no means be got away, but remained continually fixed and gazing, till at length he was turned into a flower, of his own name, which appears early in the spring, and is consecrated to the infernal deities, Pluto, Proserpine, and the Furies.
Narcissus was known for his incredible beauty and charm but was also intolerably proud and disdainful. So, pleased with himself and looking down on the world, he lived a solitary life in the woods, hunting only with a few followers who were his devoted admirers, among whom the nymph Echo was always by his side. In this lifestyle, he once found himself at a clear fountain, where he lay down to rest in the midday heat. When he saw his reflection in the water, he became so captivated and enamored with himself that he couldn't pull himself away. He remained there, fixed in his gaze, until he eventually turned into a flower that bears his name, which blooms early in the spring and is dedicated to the underworld deities, Pluto, Proserpine, and the Furies.
Explanation.—This fable seems to paint the behavior and fortune of those, who, for their beauty, or other endowments, wherewith nature (without any330 industry of their own) has graced and adorned them, are extravagantly fond of themselves: for men of such a disposition generally affect retirement, and absence from public affairs; as a life of business must necessarily subject them to many neglects and contempts, which might disturb and ruffle their minds: whence such persons commonly lead a solitary, private, and shadowy life: see little company, and those only such as highly admire and reverence them; or, like an echo, assent to all they say.
Explanation.—This fable seems to illustrate the behavior and fate of those who, due to their beauty or other gifts that nature has given them without any effort on their part, are overly enamored with themselves. People with this attitude often prefer solitude and staying away from public life, as a busy life would expose them to many dismissals and disrespect, which could upset them. Therefore, these individuals typically lead a solitary, private, and low-key life; they see very few people, and only those who admire and respect them highly or simply agree with everything they say.
And they who are depraved, and rendered still fonder of themselves by this custom, grow strangely indolent, inactive, and perfectly stupid. The Narcissus, a spring flower, is an elegant emblem of this temper, which at first flourishes, and is talked of, but, when ripe, frustrates the expectation conceived of it.
And those who are corrupted, and made even more self-absorbed by this habit, become oddly lazy, unproductive, and completely dull. The Narcissus, a spring flower, is a fitting symbol of this attitude, which initially thrives and gets praised, but, when mature, disappoints the expectations set for it.
And that this flower should be sacred to the infernal powers, carries out the allusion still further; because men of this humor are perfectly useless in all respects: for whatever yields no fruit, but passes, and is no more, like the way of a ship in the sea, was by the ancients consecrated to the infernal shades and powers.
And the fact that this flower is considered sacred to the underworld makes the reference even stronger; because people with this mindset are completely useless in every way: anything that produces no results, but just fades away and is gone, like a ship’s path in the sea, was dedicated by the ancients to the spirits and powers of the underworld.
V.—THE RIVER STYX, OR LEAGUES.
EXPLAINED OF NECESSITY, IN THE OATHS OR SOLEMN
LEAGUES OF PRINCES.
The only solemn oath, by which the gods irrevocably obliged themselves, is a well known thing, and makes a part of many ancient fables. To this oath they did not invoke any celestial divinity, or divine attribute, but only called to witness the River Styx, which, with many meanders, surrounds the infernal court of Dis. For this form alone, and none but this, was held inviolable and obligatory; and the punishment of falsifying it, was that dreaded one of being excluded, for a certain number of years, the table of the gods.
The only serious oath that the gods made was well known and is part of many ancient stories. They didn’t call on any celestial god or divine quality as a witness; they only called upon the River Styx, which winds around the infernal court of Dis. This specific oath alone was considered sacred and mandatory; if someone broke it, the severe punishment was exclusion from the gods' table for a set number of years.
Explanation.—This fable seems invented to show the nature of the compacts and confederacies of princes; which, though ever so solemnly and religiously sworn to, prove but little the more binding for it: so that oaths, in this case, seem used rather for decorum, reputation, and ceremony, than for fidelity, security, and effectuating. And though these oaths were strengthened with the bonds of affinity, which are the links and ties of nature, and again, by mutual services and good offices, yet we see all this will generally give way to ambition, convenience, and the thirst of power: the rather, because it is easy for princes, under various specious pretences, to defend,332 disguise, and conceal their ambitious desires and insincerity, having no judge to call them to account. There is, however, one true and proper confirmation of their faith, though no celestial divinity, but that great divinity of princes, Necessity; or, the danger of the state; and the securing of advantage.
Explanation.—This fable seems created to illustrate the nature of the agreements and alliances among rulers; which, no matter how solemnly and devoutly they are promised, don’t seem to be more binding because of it: so that oaths, in this case, appear to be used more for show, reputation, and ceremony than for loyalty, security, and effectiveness. And even though these oaths were reinforced by bonds of kinship, which are the natural connections and ties, and also by mutual assistance and goodwill, we see that all this usually gives way to ambition, convenience, and the desire for power: especially because it is easy for rulers, under various plausible excuses, to justify, disguise, and hide their ambitious goals and dishonesty, since there is no one to hold them accountable. However, there is one true and proper validation of their loyalty, not from any divine being, but from the great god of rulers, Necessity; or, the danger to the state; and the securing of benefit.
This necessity is elegantly represented by Styx, the fatal river that can never be crossed back. And this deity it was, which Iphicrates the Athenian invoked in making a league; and because he roundly and openly avows what most others studiously conceal, it may be proper to give his own words. Observing that the Lacedæmonians were inventing and proposing a variety of securities, sanctions, and bonds of alliance, he interrupted them thus: “There may, indeed, my friends, be one bond and means of security between us; and that is, for you to demonstrate you have delivered into our hands, such things as that, if you had the greatest desire to hurt us, you could not be able.” Therefore, if the power of offending be taken away, or if, by a breach of compact, there be danger of destruction or diminution to the state or tribute, then it is that covenants will be ratified, and confirmed, as it were by the Stygian oath, whilst there remains an impending danger of being prohibited and excluded the banquet of the gods; by which expression the ancients denoted the rights and prerogatives, the affluence and the felicities, of empire and dominion.
This necessity is clearly shown by Styx, the deadly river that can never be crossed back. This is the deity that Iphicrates the Athenian called upon when forming a league; and since he openly admits what most others carefully hide, it’s fitting to share his exact words. Noticing that the Lacedæmonians were coming up with various securities, rules, and agreements, he interrupted them, saying: “There may indeed be one way for us to be secure with each other; and that is for you to prove that you have given us things so that, even if you wanted to harm us, you couldn’t.” So, if the ability to cause harm is removed, or if breaking the agreement risks destruction or loss to the state or tribute, then covenants will be accepted and confirmed, as if by the Stygian oath, while there’s still a looming threat of being banned from the feast of the gods; by which the ancients referred to the rights and privileges, the wealth and happiness, of power and control.
VI.—PAN, OR NATURE.617
EXPLAINED OF NATURAL PHILOSOPHY.
The ancients have, with great exactness, delineated universal nature under the person of Pan. They leave his origin doubtful; some asserting him the son of Mercury, and others the common offspring of all Penelope’s suitors. The latter supposition doubtless occasioned some later rivals to entitle this ancient fable Penelope; a thing frequently practised when the earlier relations are applied to more modern characters and persons, though sometimes with great absurdity and ignorance, as in the present case; for Pan was one of the ancientest gods, and long before the time of Ulysses; besides, Penelope was venerated by antiquity for her matronal chastity. A third sort will have him the issue of Jupiter and Hybris, that is, Reproach. But whatever his origin was, the Destinies are allowed his sisters.
The ancients have accurately described universal nature as the character Pan. They leave his origin unclear; some say he's the son of Mercury, while others claim he’s the common offspring of all of Penelope’s suitors. This latter idea likely led some later competitors to name this ancient tale after Penelope; a practice often seen when earlier stories are connected to more modern figures, though sometimes in ridiculous and ignorant ways, as in this case. Pan was one of the oldest gods, long before Ulysses’ time; moreover, Penelope was revered by history for her marital fidelity. A third view suggests he is the child of Jupiter and Hybris, which means Reproach. But whatever his origins may be, the Fates are recognized as his sisters.
He is described by antiquity, with pyramidal horns reaching up to heaven, a rough and shaggy body, a very long beard, of a biform figure, human above, half brute below, ending in goat’s feet. His arms, or ensigns of power, are, a pipe in his left hand, composed of seven reeds; in his right a crook; and he wore for his mantle a leopard’s skin.
He is depicted from ancient times, with pyramid-shaped horns reaching up to the sky, a rough and shaggy body, a very long beard, and a dual figure—human above and half animal below, ending in goat's feet. His arms, or symbols of power, are a pipe made of seven reeds in his left hand and a crook in his right; he wore a leopard's skin as his mantle.
His attributes and titles were the god of hunters, 334shepherds, and all the rural inhabitants; president of the mountains; and, after Mercury, the next messenger of the gods. He was also held the leader and ruler of the Nymphs, who continually danced and frisked about him, attended with the Satyrs and their elders, the Sileni. He had also the power of striking terrors, especially such as were vain and superstitious; whence they came to be called panic terrors.618
His attributes and titles included the god of hunters, shepherds, and all rural people; the president of the mountains; and, after Mercury, the next messenger of the gods. He was also considered the leader and ruler of the Nymphs, who constantly danced and played around him, accompanied by the Satyrs and their elders, the Sileni. He also had the power to instill fear, particularly in those who were vain and superstitious; that's where the term "panic" fear comes from.618
Few actions are recorded of him; only a principal one is, that he challenged Cupid at wrestling, and was worsted. He also catched the giant Typhon in a net, and held him fast. They relate further of him, that when Ceres, growing disconsolate for the rape of Proserpine, hid herself, and all the gods took the utmost pains to find her, by going out different ways for that purpose, Pan only had the good fortune to meet her, as he was hunting, and discovered her to the rest. He likewise had the assurance to rival Apollo in music, and in the judgment of Midas was preferred; but the judge had, though with great privacy and secrecy, a pair of ass’s ears fastened on him for his sentence.619
Few things are recorded about him; the main one is that he challenged Cupid to a wrestling match and lost. He also caught the giant Typhon in a net and held him securely. It’s said that when Ceres, feeling heartbroken over the abduction of Proserpine, hid herself, all the gods tried their hardest to find her by going different ways, but only Pan was lucky enough to encounter her while he was out hunting and revealed her to the others. He also had the audacity to compete with Apollo in music and was favored in the judgment of Midas, but the judge secretly ended up with a pair of donkey ears attached to him for his verdict.619
There is very little said of his amours; which may seem strange among such a multitude of gods, so profusely amorous. He is only reported to have been very fond of Echo, who was also esteemed his wife; and one nymph more, called Syrinx, with the love of whom Cupid inflamed him for his insolent challenge; so he is reported once to have 335solicited the moon to accompany him apart into the deep woods.
There's not much mention of his love affairs, which might seem odd given the many gods known for their romantic escapades. It's said he was very fond of Echo, who was also considered his wife, and there was another nymph named Syrinx, whom Cupid made him desire for his disrespectful challenge. It's reported that he once asked the moon to join him alone in the deep woods.
Lastly, Pan had no descendant, which also is a wonder, when the male gods were so extremely prolific; only he was the reputed father of a servant-girl called Iambe, who used to divert strangers with her ridiculous prattling stories.
Lastly, Pan had no offspring, which is surprising since the male gods were so incredibly prolific; he was only known as the supposed father of a servant-girl named Iambe, who entertained strangers with her silly, rambling stories.
This fable is perhaps the noblest of all antiquity, and pregnant with the mysteries and secrets of nature. Pan, as the name imports, represents the universe, about whose origin there are two opinions, viz: that it either sprung from Mercury, that is, the divine word, according to the Scriptures and philosophical divines, or from the confused seeds of things. For they who allow only one beginning of all things, either ascribe it to God, or, if they suppose a material beginning, acknowledge it to be various in its powers; so that the whole dispute comes to these points, viz: either that nature proceeds from Mercury, or from Penelope and all her suitors.620
This fable is probably the greatest of all time, full of the mysteries and secrets of nature. Pan, as his name suggests, represents the universe, about which there are two viewpoints: either it originated from Mercury, meaning the divine word, according to the Scriptures and philosophical theologians, or from the chaotic seeds of things. Those who believe there’s only one source for everything either attribute it to God or, if they think there’s a material origin, recognize it as having various powers; so the whole debate boils down to these points: either nature comes from Mercury or from Penelope and all her suitors.620
The third origin of Pan seems borrowed by the Greeks from the Hebrew mysteries, either by means of the Egyptians, or otherwise; for it relates to the 336state of the world, not in its first creation, but as made subject to death and corruption after the fall; and in this state it was and remains, the offspring of God and Sin, or Jupiter and Reproach. And therefore these three several accounts of Pan’s birth may seem true, if duly distinguished in respect of things and times. For this Pan, or the universal nature of things, which we view and contemplate, had its origin from the divine word and confused matter, first created by God himself, with the subsequent introduction of sin, and, consequently, corruption.
The third origin of Pan appears to have been borrowed by the Greeks from Hebrew mysteries, possibly through the Egyptians or otherwise; it relates to the 336 state of the world, not in its initial creation, but as it became subject to death and decay after the fall. In this state, it is and remains the offspring of God and Sin, or Jupiter and Reproach. Therefore, these three different accounts of Pan’s birth may seem valid when properly distinguished in terms of events and timelines. This Pan, or the universal nature of things that we observe and reflect upon, originated from the divine word and chaotic matter, initially created by God Himself, followed by the introduction of sin, which led to corruption.
The Destinies, or the natures and fates of things, are justly made Pan’s sisters, as the chain of natural causes links together the rise, duration, and corruption; the exaltation, degeneration, and workings; the processes, the effects, and changes, of all that can any way happen to things.
The Destinies, or the natures and fates of things, are rightly considered Pan’s sisters, as the chain of natural causes connects the rise, duration, and decline; the growth, decay, and activities; the processes, effects, and changes of everything that can happen to things.
Horns are given him, broad at the roots, but narrow and sharp at the top, because the nature of all things seems pyramidal; for individuals are infinite, but being collected into a variety of species, they rise up into kinds, and these again ascend, and are contracted into generals, till at length nature may seem collected to a point. And no wonder if Pan’s horns reach to the heavens, since the sublimities of nature, or abstract ideas, reach in a manner to things divine; for there is a short and ready passage from metaphysics to natural theology.
Horns are given to him, wide at the base but narrow and pointed at the top, because the essence of everything seems to be pyramid-shaped; individuals are countless, but when grouped into different species, they rise up into categories, which then elevate further and are condensed into general concepts, until ultimately nature appears to converge to a single point. It’s not surprising that Pan’s horns reach the heavens, as the heights of nature, or abstract ideas, in some way connect to the divine; there's a simple and direct path from metaphysics to natural theology.
Pan’s body, or the body of nature, is, with great337 propriety and elegance, painted shaggy and hairy, as representing the rays of things; for rays are as the hair or fleece of nature, and more or less worn by all bodies. This evidently appears in vision, and in all effects and operations at a distance; for whatever operates thus, may be properly said to emit rays.621 But particularly the beard of Pan is exceeding long, because the rays of the celestial bodies penetrate, and act to a prodigious distance, and have descended into the interior of the earth, so far as to change its surface; and the sun himself, when clouded on its upper part, appears to the eye bearded.
Pan’s body, or the body of nature, is, with great337 grace and style, depicted as shaggy and hairy, symbolizing the rays of things; because rays are like the hair or fleece of nature, and everyone has them to varying degrees. This is clearly visible in sight, and in all effects and actions from a distance; for anything that acts in this way can rightly be called as emitting rays.621 But especially, Pan's beard is very long, because the rays from celestial bodies reach and act over vast distances, and even penetrate deep into the earth, enough to change its surface; and the sun itself, when partially covered by clouds, appears to the eye as if it has a beard.
Again, the body of nature is justly described biform, because of the difference between its superior and inferior parts, as the former, for their beauty, regularity of motion, and influence over the earth, may be properly represented by the human figure, and the latter, because of their disorder, irregularity, and subjection to the celestial bodies, are by the brutal. This biform figure also represents the participation of one species with another; for there appear to be no simple natures, but all participate or consist of two: thus, man has somewhat of the brute, the brute somewhat of the plant, the plant somewhat of the mineral; so that all natural bodies 338have really two faces, or consist of a superior and an inferior species.
Once again, nature's body is rightly described as twofold because of the difference between its upper and lower parts. The upper parts, due to their beauty, regular movement, and influence on the earth, can be accurately represented by the human figure. In contrast, the lower parts, because of their chaos, irregularity, and dependence on celestial bodies, are represented by the animal form. This twofold figure also illustrates the interconnectedness of different species; there don't seem to be any purely simple natures—everything participates in or is made up of two aspects. For instance, humans possess some traits of animals, animals have some characteristics of plants, and plants share some qualities with minerals. Therefore, all natural bodies 338truly have two sides, comprised of a superior and an inferior kind.
There lies a curious allegory in the making of Pan goat-footed, on account of the motion of ascent which the terrestrial bodies have towards the air and heavens; for the goat is a clambering creature, that delights in climbing up rocks and precipices; and in the same manner the matters destined to this lower globe strongly affect to rise upwards, as appears from the clouds and meteors.
There’s an interesting metaphor in the creation of Pan, the goat-footed god, due to the upward movement that earthly bodies have toward the air and the heavens. The goat is an agile creature that loves to climb rocks and steep places; similarly, the elements meant for this world are strongly inclined to rise, as seen in clouds and meteors.
Pan’s arms, or the ensigns he bears in his hands, are of two kinds—the one an emblem of harmony, the other of empire. His pipe, composed of seven reeds, plainly denotes the consent and harmony, or the concords and discords of things, produced by the motion of the seven planets. His crook, also, contains a fine representation of the ways of nature, which are partly straight and partly crooked; thus the staff, having an extraordinary bend towards the top, denotes that the works of Divine Providence are generally brought about by remote means, or in a circuit, as if somewhat else were intended rather than the effect produced, as in the sending of Joseph into Egypt, &c. So likewise in human government, they who sit at the helm, manage and wind the people more successfully by pretext and oblique courses, than they could by such as are direct and straight; so that, in effect, all sceptres are crooked at the top.
Pan’s arms, or the symbols he holds in his hands, come in two types—one representing harmony, the other representing power. His pipe, made of seven reeds, clearly signifies the agreement and harmony, or the concords and discord of things, caused by the movement of the seven planets. His crook also showcases a fine representation of nature’s ways, which are both straight and curved; thus, the staff, having an unusual bend at the top, indicates that the works of Divine Providence are often accomplished through indirect means or in a roundabout way, as if something else were intended instead of the outcome produced, like when Joseph was sent to Egypt, etc. Similarly, in human leadership, those in charge navigate and influence the people more effectively through pretext and indirect methods than they could through straightforward approaches; thus, in reality, all scepters are crooked at the top.
Pan’s mantle, or clothing, is with great ingenuity339 made of a leopard’s skin, because of the spots it has; for in like manner the heavens are sprinkled with stars, the sea with islands, the earth with flowers, and almost each particular thing is variegated, or wears a mottled coat.
Pan’s cloak is cleverly made from a leopard’s skin because of its spots; similarly, the sky is dotted with stars, the sea with islands, the earth with flowers, and almost everything is colorful or has a patchy appearance.
The office of Pan could not be more livelily expressed than by making him the god of hunters; for every natural action, every motion and process, is no other than a chase. Thus arts and sciences hunt out their works, and human schemes and counsels their several ends; and all living creatures either hunt out their aliment, pursue their prey, or seek their pleasures, and this in a skilful and sagacious manner.622 He is also styled the god of the rural inhabitants, because men in this situation live more according to nature than they do in cities and courts, where nature is so corrupted with effeminate arts, that the saying of the poet may be verified:—
The role of Pan is best captured by making him the god of hunters, since every natural action, every motion and process, is essentially a chase. Arts and sciences pursue their creations, and human plans and strategies aim for specific goals; all living beings either search for their food, chase after their prey, or seek their pleasures, doing so in a clever and insightful way.622 He is also referred to as the god of rural dwellers because people in this setting live more in tune with nature than those in cities and courts, where nature is so distorted by refined practices that the poet's saying rings true:—
He is likewise particularly styled President of the Mountains, because in mountains and lofty places the nature of things lies more open and exposed to the eye and the understanding.
He is also specifically called President of the Mountains because the nature of things is more visible and clear in mountains and high places.
In his being called the messenger of the gods, next after Mercury, lies a divine allegory, as next after the Word of God, the image of the world is the herald of 340the Divine power and wisdom, according to the expression of the Psalmist: “The heavens declare the glory of God, and the firmament showeth his handiwork.”624
In being referred to as the messenger of the gods, right after Mercury, there's a divine metaphor. Just like how the image of the world follows the Word of God, it signifies the revelation of divine power and wisdom, as expressed by the Psalmist: “The heavens declare the glory of God, and the firmament shows his handiwork.”624
Pan is delighted with the company of the Nymphs, that is, the souls of all living creatures are the delight of the world; and he is properly called their governor, because each of them follows its own nature, as a leader, and all dance about their own respective rings, with infinite variety and never-ceasing motion. And with these continually join the Satyrs and Sileni, that is, youth and age; for all things have a kind of young, cheerful, and dancing time; and again their time of slowness, tottering, and creeping. And whoever, in a true light, considers the motions and endeavors of both these ages, like another Democritus, will perhaps find them as odd and strange as the gesticulations and antic motions of the Satyrs and Sileni.
Pan enjoys the company of the Nymphs, which represents the spirits of all living beings that bring joy to the world. He’s rightly called their leader because each follows its own instincts, like a guide, and they all dance in their unique circles, with endless variety and continuous movement. Joining them are the Satyrs and Sileni, symbolizing youth and old age; for everything has its moments of youthfulness, joy, and dancing, as well as periods of slowness, wobbling, and crawling. Anyone who looks closely at the actions and efforts of both ages, much like another Democritus, might find them just as peculiar and strange as the antics and movements of the Satyrs and Sileni.
The power he had of striking terrors contains a very sensible doctrine; for nature has implanted fear in all living creatures, as well to keep them from risking their lives, as to guard against injuries and violence; and yet this nature or passion keeps not its bounds, but with just and profitable fears always mixes such as are vain and senseless; so that all things, if we could see their insides, would appear full of panic terrors. Thus mankind, particularly the vulgar, labor under a high degree of superstition, 341which is nothing more than a panic-dread, that principally reigns in unsettled and troublesome times.
The ability to instill fear carries a clear lesson; nature has built fear into all living beings, both to prevent them from endangering their lives and to protect against harm and violence. However, this natural instinct doesn't stay within limits, often mixing justified and useful fears with those that are pointless and irrational. If we could look inside everything, we would find it filled with anxiety and fear. Consequently, humanity, especially the general population, suffers from a great deal of superstition, which is simply a form of irrational fear that especially flourishes during uncertain and difficult times. 341
The presumption of Pan in challenging Cupid to the conflict denotes that matter has an appetite and tendency to a dissolution of the world, and falling back to its first chaos again, unless this depravity and inclination were restrained and subdued by a more powerful concord and agreement of things, properly expressed by Love, or Cupid: it is therefore well for mankind, and the state of all things, that Pan was thrown and conquered in the struggle.
The idea that Pan took on Cupid in a challenge suggests that matter has a desire and propensity to break down the world and return to its original chaos, unless this disorder and inclination are held back and controlled by a stronger harmony and unity, represented by Love, or Cupid. Therefore, it's beneficial for humanity and the conditions of all things that Pan was defeated in the battle.
His catching and detaining Typhon in the net receives a similar explanation; for whatever vast and unusual swells, which the word typhon signifies, may sometimes be raised in nature, as in the sea, the clouds, the earth, or the like, yet nature catches, entangles, and holds all such outrages and insurrections in her inextricable net, wove, as it were, of adamant.
His capturing and holding Typhon in the net has a similar explanation; for whatever immense and unusual forces, which the word Typhon represents, may sometimes arise in nature, whether in the sea, the clouds, the earth, or elsewhere, nature manages to catch, ensnare, and contain all such disturbances and rebellions in her unbreakable net, woven, so to speak, of adamant.
That part of the fable which attributes the discovery of lost Ceres to Pan whilst he was hunting—a happiness denied the other gods, though they diligently and expressly sought her—contains an exceeding just and prudent admonition; viz: that we are not to expect the discovery of things useful in common life, as that of corn, denoted by Ceres, from abstract philosophies, as if these were the gods of the first order,—no, not though we used our utmost endeavors this way,—but only from Pan; that is, a sagacious experience and general knowledge of nature, which is often found, even by accident, to stumble upon such342 discoveries whilst the pursuit was directed another way.
That part of the fable that credits Pan with finding lost Ceres while he was hunting—an achievement not given to the other gods, even though they searched for her hard and specifically—offers a wise and important reminder. It teaches us that we shouldn't expect to discover useful things in everyday life, like corn represented by Ceres, through abstract philosophy as if they were the top-tier gods. No, not even if we put in all our effort that way—only through Pan, which means a keen experience and broad understanding of nature, that often leads to unexpected discoveries while we're actually focused on something else.
The event of his contending with Apollo in music affords us a useful instruction, that may help to humble the human reason and judgment, which is too apt to boast and glory in itself. There seem to be two kinds of harmony,—the one of Divine providence, the other of human reason; but the government of the world, the administration of its affairs, and the more secret Divine judgments, sound harsh and dissonant to human ears or human judgment; and though this ignorance be justly rewarded with asses’ ears, yet they are put on and worn, not openly, but with great secrecy; nor is the deformity of the thing seen or observed by the vulgar.
The story of him competing with Apollo in music teaches us a valuable lesson, reminding us to keep our human reason and judgment in check, as we tend to be overly proud and self-satisfied. There appear to be two types of harmony—one of Divine providence and the other of human logic. However, the way the world is governed, the management of its affairs, and the more hidden Divine judgments can sound harsh and off-key to our ears or judgments. Even though this ignorance is justly met with ridicule, it is experienced not openly, but rather secretly; the ugliness of the situation goes unnoticed by the masses.
We must not find it strange if no amours are related of Pan besides his marriage with Echo; for nature enjoys itself, and in itself all other things. He that loves, desires enjoyment, but in profusion there is no room for desire; and therefore Pan, remaining content with himself, has no passion unless it be for discourse, which is well shadowed out by Echo, or talk, or, when it is more accurate, by Syrinx, or writing.625 But Echo makes a most excellent wife for Pan, as being no other than genuine philosophy, which faithfully repeats his words, or only transcribes exactly as nature dictates; thus representing the true image and reflection of the world without adding a tittle.
We shouldn't be surprised if there aren't any stories about Pan's romances besides his marriage to Echo, because nature enjoys itself and everything in it. Those in love want to experience pleasure, but when there's too much, there's no space for desire. So Pan, being satisfied with himself, has no passion unless it’s for conversation, which is well represented by Echo, or chatter, or more accurately, by Syrinx, or writing.625 But Echo is a perfect wife for Pan, as she embodies genuine philosophy, faithfully repeating his words or transcribing exactly as nature intends; thus reflecting the true image of the world without adding anything extra.
It tends, also, to the support and perfection of Pan, or nature, to be without offspring; for the world generates in its parts, and not in the way of a whole, as wanting a body external to itself wherewith to generate.
It also tends to support and perfect Pan, or nature, to be without offspring; because the world creates in its parts, not as a whole, since it lacks an external body to generate from.
Lastly, for the supposed or spurious prattling daughter of Pan, it is an excellent addition to the fable, and aptly represents the talkative philosophies that have at all times been stirring, and filled the world with idle tales; being ever barren, empty, and servile, though sometimes indeed diverting and entertaining, and sometimes again troublesome and importunate.
Lastly, for the supposed or fake chatty daughter of Pan, it’s a great addition to the fable and accurately represents the talkative philosophies that have always been around, filling the world with pointless stories; they are often unproductive, shallow, and servile, though sometimes indeed amusing and entertaining, and at other times bothersome and demanding.
VII.—PERSEUS,626 OR WAR.
EXPLAINED OF THE PREPARATION AND CONDUCT
NECESSARY TO WAR.
“The fable relates, that Perseus was dispatched from the east, by Pallas, to cut off Medusa’s head, who had committed great ravage upon the people of the west; for this Medusa was so dire a monster, as to turn into stone all those who but looked upon her. She was a Gorgon, and the only mortal one of the three, the other two being invulnerable. Perseus, therefore, preparing himself for this grand enterprise, had presents made him from three of the 344gods: Mercury gave him wings for his heels; Pluto, a helmet; and Pallas, a shield and a mirror. But, though he was now so well equipped, he posted not directly to Medusa, but first turned aside to the Greæ, who were half-sisters to the Gorgons. These Greæ were grayheaded, and like old women, from their birth, having among them all three but one eye, and one tooth, which, as they had occasion to go out, they each wore by turns, and laid them down again upon coming back. This eye and this tooth they lent to Perseus, who now judging himself sufficiently furnished, he, without further stop, flies swiftly away to Medusa, and finds her asleep. But not venturing his eyes, for fear she should wake, he turned his head aside, and viewed her in Pallas’s mirror, and thus directing his stroke, cut off her head; when immediately, from the gushing blood, there darted Pegasus winged. Perseus now inserted Medusa’s head into Pallas’s shield, which thence retained the faculty of astonishing and benumbing all who looked on it.”
The fable tells that Perseus was sent from the east by Pallas to cut off Medusa’s head, who had caused great destruction among the people of the west. Medusa was such a terrifying monster that anyone who looked at her would turn to stone. She was a Gorgon, and the only mortal one of the three; the other two were invulnerable. So, Perseus, getting ready for this big task, received gifts from three of the 344gods: Mercury gave him winged sandals; Pluto provided a helmet; and Pallas gave him a shield and a mirror. But even with all this gear, he didn’t go straight to Medusa. Instead, he first visited the Greæ, who were half-sisters to the Gorgons. These Greæ were gray-haired and looked like old women from birth. They shared one eye and one tooth between them, which they took turns using whenever they went out and put away when they returned. Perseus borrowed this eye and tooth from them, and now feeling ready, he flew quickly to Medusa and found her asleep. Not daring to look directly at her for fear she might wake up, he turned his head aside and looked at her in Pallas’s mirror. This way, he aimed correctly and cut off her head; from the blood that gushed forth, Pegasus, the winged horse, sprang up. Perseus then placed Medusa’s head into Pallas’s shield, which then retained the power to shock and paralyze anyone who looked at it.
This fable seems invented to show the prudent method of choosing, undertaking, and conducting a war; and, accordingly, lays down three useful precepts about it, as if they were the precepts of Pallas.
This fable appears to be created to illustrate the wise way of choosing, starting, and managing a war; and, as a result, it presents three helpful guidelines on the topic, as if they were the principles of Pallas.
The first is, that no prince should be over-solicitous to subdue a neighboring nation; for the method of enlarging an empire is very different from that of increasing an estate. Regard is justly had to contiguity, or adjacency, in private lands and pos345sessions; but in the extending of empire, the occasion, the facility, and advantage of a war, are to be regarded instead of vicinity. It is certain that the Romans, at the time they stretched but little beyond Liguria to the west, had by their arms subdued the provinces as far as Mount Taurus to the east. And thus Perseus readily undertook a very long expedition, even from the east to the extremities of the west.
The first point is that no ruler should be too eager to conquer a neighboring country; the way to expand an empire is very different from the way to grow a personal estate. When it comes to private lands and possessions, proximity is important; however, in terms of empire expansion, factors like opportunity, ease, and the benefits of war should be prioritized over being nearby. It's clear that the Romans, when they barely extended beyond Liguria to the west, had already conquered provinces as far east as Mount Taurus. Similarly, Perseus readily embarked on a long journey from the east to the farthest western lands.
The second precept is, that the cause of the war be just and honorable; for this adds alacrity both to the soldiers, and the people who find the supplies; procures aids, alliances, and numerous other conveniences. Now there is no cause of war more just and laudable than the suppressing of tyranny; by which a people are dispirited, benumbed, or left without life and vigor, as at the sight of Medusa.
The second guideline is that the reason for the war must be just and honorable because this boosts the morale of both the soldiers and the citizens providing supplies. It helps in gaining support, forming alliances, and accessing many other benefits. There is no reason for war more just and commendable than the fight against tyranny, which can leave people demoralized, paralyzed, or completely lifeless, much like the effect of Medusa's gaze.
Lastly, it is prudently added, that, as there were three of the Gorgons, who represent war, Perseus singled her out for this expedition that was mortal; which affords this precept, that such kind of wars should be chose as may be brought to a conclusion without pursuing vast and infinite hopes.
Lastly, it's wisely noted that since there were three Gorgons representing war, Perseus chose one for this deadly mission; this gives us the lesson that we should choose wars that can be resolved without chasing endless and unrealistic hopes.
Again, Perseus’s setting-out is extremely well adapted to his undertaking, and in a manner commands success; he received dispatch from Mercury, secrecy from Pluto, and foresight from Pallas. It also contains an excellent allegory, that the wings given him by Mercury were for his heels, not for his shoulders; because expedition is not so much346 required in the first preparations for war, as in the subsequent matters, that administer to the first; for there is no error more frequent in war, than, after brisk preparations, to halt for subsidiary forces and effective supplies.
Once again, Perseus’s departure is perfectly suited to his mission, ensuring his success. He received speed from Mercury, secrecy from Pluto, and wisdom from Pallas. It also holds a great metaphor: the wings given to him by Mercury were for his heels, not his shoulders. This shows that quickness is needed more in the initial steps of war than in the later aspects that support the beginning. One common mistake in warfare is to get fired up with initial preparations and then pause to wait for additional troops and necessary supplies.
The allegory of Pluto’s helmet, rendering men invisible and secret, is sufficiently evident of itself; but the mystery of the shield and the mirror lies deeper; and denotes, that not only a prudent caution must be had to defend, like the shield, but also such an address and penetration as may discover the strength, the motions, the counsels, and designs of the enemy; like the mirror of Pallas.
The symbolism of Pluto’s helmet, which makes people invisible and secretive, is clear on its own; however, the meaning behind the shield and the mirror goes deeper. It suggests that, like the shield, you need to be careful and protect yourself, but you also need the insight and skill to uncover the strength, movements, plans, and strategies of your opponent, just like Pallas's mirror.
But though Perseus may now seem extremely well prepared, there still remains the most important thing of all; before he enters upon the war, he must of necessity consult the Greæ. These Greæ are treasons; half, but degenerate sisters of the Gorgons; who are representatives of wars; for wars are generous and noble; but treasons base and vile. The Greæ are elegantly described as hoary-headed, and like old women from their birth; on account of the perpetual cares, fears, and trepidations attending traitors. Their force, also, before it breaks out into open revolt, consists either in an eye or a tooth; for all faction, alienated from a state, is both watchful and biting; and this eye and tooth are, as it were, common to all the disaffected; because whatever they learn and know is transmitted from one to another, as by the hands of faction. And for347 the tooth, they all bite with the same: and clamor with one throat; so that each of them singly expresses the multitude.
But even though Perseus seems really well prepared now, there's still one important thing he has to do; before he goes into battle, he has to consult the Greæ. These Greæ are traitors; they are half-sisters, but twisted versions of the Gorgons, and they represent war; because wars are noble and honorable, while traitors are low and despicable. The Greæ are described as having gray hair and looking like old women from the moment they're born, thanks to the constant worries, fears, and anxiety that come with being a traitor. Their power, before it erupts into open rebellion, is represented by either an eye or a tooth; because any faction that has turned against a state is both watchful and biting. This eye and tooth are basically common to all the disaffected because whatever they learn and know gets passed around among them, like through the hands of a faction. And about the tooth, they all attack with the same bite and shout with one voice, so that each one of them represents the whole group.
These Greæ, therefore, must be prevailed upon by Perseus to lend him their eye and their tooth; the eye to give him indications, and make discoveries; the tooth for sowing rumors, raising envy, and stirring up the minds of the people. And when all these things are thus disposed and prepared, then follows the action of the war.
These Gray Ladies, therefore, must be convinced by Perseus to lend him their eye and their tooth; the eye to provide him with guidance and make discoveries; the tooth for spreading rumors, inspiring envy, and stirring up the people's minds. And when all these things are arranged and ready, the action of the war follows.
He finds Medusa asleep; for whoever undertakes a war with prudence, generally falls upon the enemy unprepared, and nearly in a state of security; and here is the occasion for Pallas’s mirror: for it is common enough, before the danger presents itself, to see exactly into the state and posture of the enemy; but the principal use of the glass is, in the very instant of danger, to discover the manner thereof, and prevent consternation; which is the thing intended by Perseus’s turning his head aside, and viewing the enemy in the glass.627
He finds Medusa asleep; because anyone who approaches war wisely usually catches the enemy off guard and almost in a state of safety. This is where Pallas’s mirror comes in: it’s quite common to understand the enemy’s situation before danger arises; however, the main purpose of the mirror is to reveal the nature of the threat at the very moment of danger and to avoid panic. This is what Perseus is doing when he turns his head aside and looks at the enemy in the mirror.627
Two effects here follow the conquest: 1. The darting forth of Pegasus; which evidently denotes fame, that flies abroad, proclaiming the victory far and near. 2. The bearing of Medusa’s head in the shield, which is the greatest possible defence and 348 safeguard; for one grand and memorable enterprise, happily accomplished, bridles all the motions and attempts of the enemy, stupefies disaffection, and quells commotions.
Two effects follow the conquest: 1. The emergence of Pegasus, which clearly represents the fame that spreads everywhere, announcing the victory far and wide. 2. The presence of Medusa’s head on the shield, which serves as the ultimate defense and protection; for one major and noteworthy achievement, successfully completed, restrains all movements and efforts of the enemy, stuns discontent, and puts an end to uprisings.
VIII.—ENDYMION, OR A FAVORITE.
EXPLAINED OF COURT FAVORITES.
The goddess Luna is said to have fallen in love with the shepherd Endymion, and to have carried on her amours with him in a new and singular manner; it being her custom, whilst he lay reposing in his native cave, under Mount Latmus, to descend frequently from her sphere, enjoy his company whilst he slept, and then go up to heaven again. And all this while, Endymion’s fortune was no way prejudiced by his unactive and sleepy life, the goddess causing his flocks to thrive, and grow so exceeding numerous, that none of the other shepherds could compare with him.
The goddess Luna is said to have fallen in love with the shepherd Endymion and to have engaged in her romance with him in a unique and unusual way; she would often come down from her heavenly place while he rested in his cave beneath Mount Latmus, spend time with him while he slept, and then return to the sky. Throughout all this, Endymion's fortune wasn't harmed by his idle and sleepy lifestyle, as the goddess ensured his flocks thrived and grew so abundant that no other shepherds could compete with him.
Explanation.—This fable seems to describe the tempers and dispositions of princes, who, being thoughtful and suspicious, do not easily admit to their privacies such men as are prying, curious, and vigilant, or, as it were, sleepless; but rather such as are of an easy, obliging nature, and indulge them in their pleasures, without seeking anything further;349 but seeming ignorant, insensible, or, as it were, lulled asleep before them.628 Princes usually treat such persons familiarly; and quitting their throne, like Luna, think they may, with safety, unbosom to them. This temper was very remarkable in Tiberius, a prince exceedingly difficult to please, and who had no favorites but those that perfectly understood his way, and, at the same time, obstinately dissembled their knowledge, almost to a degree of stupidity.
Explanation.—This fable seems to describe the moods and behaviors of rulers, who, being thoughtful and cautious, don't easily let into their private lives those who are nosy, curious, and overly watchful, or, in other words, restless; instead, they prefer those who are easygoing, accommodating, and indulge them in their pleasures without wanting anything more; 349 acting as if they are unaware, indifferent, or, you could say, lulled into a sense of ignorance in front of them.628 Rulers typically treat such individuals casually; and stepping down from their throne, like Luna, think they can safely open up to them. This behavior was particularly evident in Tiberius, a ruler who was very hard to please, and who only favored those who completely understood his ways and, at the same time, stubbornly pretended not to, almost to the point of foolishness.
The cave is not improperly mentioned in the fable; it being a common thing for the favorites of a prince to have their pleasant retreats, whither to invite him, by way of relaxation, though without prejudice to their own fortunes; these favorites usually making a good provision for themselves.
The cave is rightly mentioned in the fable; it’s common for a prince’s favorites to have their nice hideaways, where they can invite him for a bit of fun, without risking their own well-being; these favorites typically make sure they are well taken care of.
For though their prince should not, perhaps, promote them to dignities, yet, out of real affection, and not only for convenience, they generally feel the enriching influence of his bounty.
For although their prince might not promote them to positions of honor, they usually feel the enriching impact of his generosity due to genuine affection, rather than just for convenience.
IX.—THE SISTER OF THE GIANTS, OR FAME.
EXPLAINED OF PUBLIC DETRACTION.
The poets relate, that the giants, produced from the earth, made war upon Jupiter, and the other gods, but were repulsed and conquered by thunder; whereat the earth, provoked, brought forth Fame, the youngest sister of the giants, in revenge for the death of her sons.
The poets say that the giants, born from the earth, waged war against Jupiter and the other gods, but were driven back and defeated by thunder; in response, the earth, angry about the loss of her sons, gave birth to Fame, the youngest sister of the giants, as an act of revenge.
Explanation.—The meaning of the fable seems to be this: the earth denotes the nature of the vulgar, who are always swelling, and rising against their rulers, and endeavoring at changes. This disposition, getting a fit opportunity, breeds rebels and traitors, who, with impetuous rage, threaten and contrive the overthrow and destruction of princes.
Explanation.—The meaning of the fable seems to be this: the earth represents the nature of the common people, who are always growing restless and rising up against their leaders, seeking change. This attitude, when given the right opportunity, leads to the emergence of rebels and traitors, who, with fierce anger, plot and threaten to overthrow and destroy those in power.
And when brought under and subdued, the same vile and restless nature of the people, impatient of peace, produces rumors, detractions, slanders, libels, &c., to blacken those in authority; so that rebellious actions and seditious rumors, differ not in origin and stock, but only, as it were, in sex; treasons and rebellions being the brothers, and scandal or detraction the sister.
And when they are controlled and subdued, the same nasty and restless nature of the people, unable to accept peace, creates rumors, insults, slanders, libels, etc., to tarnish the reputation of those in power; so that rebellious actions and seditious rumors are no different in origin and nature, but only, one could say, in form; treason and rebellion being the brothers, and scandal or defamation the sister.
X.—ACTEON AND PENTHEUS, OR A
CURIOUS MAN.
EXPLAINED OF CURIOSITY, OR PRYING INTO THE SECRETS
OF PRINCES AND DIVINE MYSTERIES.
The ancients afford us two examples for suppressing the impertinent curiosity of mankind, in diving into secrets, and imprudently longing and endeavoring to discover them. The one of these is in the person of Acteon, and the other in that of Pentheus. Acteon, undesignedly chancing to see Diana naked, was turned into a stag, and torn to pieces by his own hounds. And Pentheus, desiring to pry into the hidden mysteries of Bacchus’s sacrifice, and climbing a tree for that purpose, was struck with a frenzy. This frenzy of Pentheus caused him to see things double, particularly the sun, and his own city, Thebes, so that running homewards, and immediately espying another Thebes, he runs towards that; and thus continues incessantly, tending first to the one, and then to the other, without coming at either.
The ancients give us two examples of how to curb the annoying curiosity of people who recklessly attempt to uncover secrets. One example is Acteon, and the other is Pentheus. Acteon accidentally catching a glimpse of Diana while she was naked was transformed into a stag and torn apart by his own hunting dogs. Pentheus, wanting to sneak a peek into the hidden rituals of Bacchus’s sacrifice and climbing a tree to do so, was struck with madness. This madness caused Pentheus to see things in a distorted way, especially the sun and his own city, Thebes, so that while rushing home, he spotted another Thebes and ran toward that one; he endlessly switched between the two, never reaching either.
Explanation.—The first of these fables may relate to the secrets of princes, and the second to divine mysteries. For they who are not intimate with a prince, yet, against his will, have a knowledge of his secrets, inevitably incur his displeasure; and therefore, being aware that they are singled out, and all opportunities watched against them, they lead the life of a352 stag, full of fears and suspicions. It likewise frequently happens that their servants and domestics accuse them, and plot their overthrow, in order to procure favor with the prince; for whenever the king manifests his displeasure, the person it falls upon must expect his servants to betray him, and worry him down, as Acteon was worried by his own dogs.
Explanation.—The first of these fables might be about the secrets of powerful people, and the second about divine mysteries. Those who are not close to a powerful person but know their secrets, against their wishes, are sure to face their anger. Being aware that they are being monitored and isolated, they live like a352 stag, full of fear and suspicion. It often happens that their servants and household members accuse them and conspire against them to gain favor with the powerful person; whenever the king shows his anger, the person on the receiving end can expect their servants to betray and wear them down, much like Acteon was tormented by his own dogs.
The punishment of Pentheus is of another kind; for they who, unmindful of their mortal state, rashly aspire to divine mysteries, by climbing the heights of nature and philosophy, here represented by climbing a tree,—their fate is perpetual inconstancy, perplexity, and instability of judgment. For as there is one light of nature, and another light that is divine, they see, as it were, two suns. And as the actions of life, and the determinations of the will, depend upon the understanding, they are distracted as much in opinion as in will; and therefore judge very inconsistently, or contradictorily; and see, as it were, Thebes double; for Thebes being the refuge and habitation of Pentheus, here denotes the ends of actions; whence they know not what course to take, but remaining undetermined and unresolved in their views and designs, they are merely driven about by every sudden gust and impulse of the mind.
The punishment of Pentheus is different; those who, ignoring their humanity, recklessly seek divine truths by elevating themselves through nature and philosophy—symbolized by climbing a tree—face a fate of constant inconsistency, confusion, and unstable judgment. Just as there is one natural light and another divine light, they perceive, in a way, two suns. Since life’s actions and the choices of the will depend on understanding, they are as confused in their opinions as they are in their will, leading them to judge inconsistently or even contradict themselves; they see, in a sense, a double Thebes. Thebes, being Pentheus's refuge and home, represents the outcomes of actions; thus, they don’t know which path to follow. Remaining unsure and indecisive in their thoughts and plans, they are simply tossed around by every sudden whim and urge of the mind.
XI.—ORPHEUS, OR PHILOSOPHY.
EXPLAINED OF NATURAL AND MORAL PHILOSOPHY.
Introduction.—The fable of Orpheus, though trite and common, has never been well interpreted, and seems to hold out a picture of universal philosophy; for to this sense may be easily transferred what is said of his being a wonderful and perfectly divine person, skilled in all kinds of harmony, subduing and drawing all things after him by sweet and gentle methods and modulations. For the labors of Orpheus exceed the labors of Hercules, both in power and dignity, as the works of knowledge exceed the works of strength.
Introduction.—The story of Orpheus, though familiar and often told, has never been truly understood, and seems to offer a glimpse into universal philosophy; for it can easily be related to his portrayal as an extraordinary and almost divine figure, adept in all forms of harmony, captivating and leading everything around him through gentle and soothing methods. The achievements of Orpheus surpass those of Hercules, in both significance and nobility, just as the pursuits of knowledge surpass those of mere physical strength.
Fable.—Orpheus having his beloved wife snatched from him by sudden death, resolved upon descending to the infernal regions, to try if, by the power of his harp, he could reobtain her. And, in effect, he so appeased and soothed the infernal powers by the melody and sweetness of his harp and voice, that they indulged him the liberty of taking her back, on condition that she should follow him behind, and he not turn to look upon her till they came into open day; but he, through the impatience of his care and affection, and thinking himself almost past danger, at length looked behind him, whereby the condition was violated, and she again precipitated to Pluto’s354 regions. From this time Orpheus grew pensive and sad, a hater of the sex, and went into solitude, where, by the same sweetness of his harp and voice, he first drew the wild beasts of all sorts about him; so that, forgetting their natures, they were neither actuated by revenge, cruelty, lust, hunger, or the desire of prey, but stood gazing about him, in a tame and gentle manner, listening attentively to his music. Nay, so great was the power and efficacy of his harmony, that it even caused the trees and stones to remove, and place themselves in a regular manner about him. When he had for a time, and with great admiration, continued to do this, at length the Thracian women, raised by the instigation of Bacchus, first blew a deep and hoarse-sounding horn, in such an outrageous manner, that it quite drowned the music of Orpheus. And thus the power which, as the link of their society, held all things in order, being dissolved, disturbance reigned anew; each creature returned to its own nature, and pursued and preyed upon its fellow, as before. The rocks and woods also started back to their former places; and even Orpheus himself was at last torn to pieces by these female furies, and his limbs scattered all over the desert. But, in sorrow and revenge for his death, the River Helicon, sacred to the Muses, hid its waters under ground, and rose again in other places.
Story.—Orpheus, having lost his beloved wife to sudden death, decided to venture into the underworld to see if he could bring her back with the power of his harp. And indeed, he managed to calm and charm the underworld gods with the beautiful music and sweetness of his voice, earning the chance to take her back on the condition that she would follow him and he wouldn't look back until they reached the light of day. However, overwhelmed by his love and anxiety, and thinking he was almost safe, he turned to look at her, breaking the condition, and she was instantly pulled back to Pluto’s354 realm. From that moment, Orpheus became melancholic and resentful towards women, retreating into solitude where, with the same charm of his harp and voice, he began to attract all kinds of wild animals. They forgot their instincts and were no longer driven by revenge, cruelty, lust, hunger, or the desire to hunt, but instead stood around him calmly, listening to his music. So powerful was his harmony that it even made trees and stones shift and arrange themselves around him. After a while, as he continued to amaze everyone, the Thracian women, stirred up by Bacchus, blew a loud, rough horn that completely drowned out Orpheus’s music. Thus, the order that held everything together was broken, chaos returned; every creature reverted to its nature and began to hunt and attack one another as before. The rocks and forests returned to their original positions, and even Orpheus was ultimately torn apart by these vengeful women, his body parts scattered across the wilderness. In mourning and revenge for his death, the River Helicon, sacred to the Muses, buried its waters underground and resurfaced in different places.
Explanation.—The fable receives this explanation. The music of Orpheus is of two kinds; one355 that appeases the infernal powers, and the other that draws together the wild beasts and trees. The former properly relates to natural, and the latter to moral philosophy, or civil society. The reinstatement and restoration of corruptible things is the noblest work of natural philosophy; and, in a less degree, the preservation of bodies in their own state, or a prevention of their dissolution and corruption. And if this be possible, it can certainly be effected no other way than by proper and exquisite attemperations of nature; as it were by the harmony and fine touching of the harp. But as this is a thing of exceeding great difficulty, the end is seldom obtained; and that, probably, for no reason more than a curious and unseasonable impatience and solicitude.
Explanation.—The fable comes with this explanation. Orpheus's music has two types: one355 that calms the forces of the underworld, and the other that brings together wild animals and trees. The first pertains to natural philosophy, and the latter relates to moral philosophy, or society. The restoration of corruptible things is the highest goal of natural philosophy; and, to a lesser extent, preserving bodies in their original state or preventing their decay and corruption. If this is possible, it can undoubtedly only be achieved through careful and precise adjustments of nature, much like the harmony and delicate tuning of a harp. However, because this task is incredibly challenging, success is rarely achieved, likely due to an overly curious and untimely impatience and worry.
And, therefore, philosophy, being almost unequal to the task, has cause to grow sad, and hence betakes itself to human affairs, insinuating into men’s minds the love of virtue, equity, and peace, by means of eloquence and persuasion; thus forming men into societies; bringing them under laws and regulations; and making them forget their unbridled passions and affections, so long as they hearken to precepts and submit to discipline. And thus they soon after build themselves habitations, form cities, cultivate lands, plant orchards, gardens, &c. So that they may not improperly be said to remove and call the trees and stones together.
And so, philosophy, feeling somewhat inadequate for the task, tends to get sad, and then turns to human affairs, subtly inspiring people with a love for virtue, fairness, and peace, through words and persuasion; this helps to create communities, get people to follow laws and guidelines, and encourages them to control their unchecked desires and emotions, as long as they listen to advice and follow discipline. Soon after, they start to build homes, form cities, farm the land, and plant orchards and gardens, so they can be seen as gathering trees and stones together.
And this regard to civil affairs is justly and regularly placed after diligent trial made for restoring356 the mortal body; the attempt being frustrated in the end—because the unavoidable necessity of death, thus evidently laid before mankind, animates them to seek a kind of eternity by works of perpetuity, character, and fame.
And this focus on civil matters is rightly and consistently prioritized after careful efforts to preserve356 the human body; the attempt ultimately failing—because the undeniable reality of death, clearly presented to humanity, drives them to pursue a form of eternity through lasting achievements, reputation, and legacy.
It is also prudently added, that Orpheus was afterwards averse to women and wedlock, because the indulgence of the married state, and the natural affections which men have for their children, often prevent them from entering upon any grand, noble, or meritorious enterprise for the public good; as thinking it sufficient to obtain immortality by their descendants, without endeavoring at great actions.
It’s also wisely noted that Orpheus later became averse to women and marriage because the comforts of being married and the natural love men have for their children often hold them back from pursuing any grand, noble, or admirable projects for the greater good; believing it’s enough to achieve immortality through their descendants, without striving for great deeds.
And even the works of knowledge, though the most excellent among human things, have their periods; for after kingdoms and commonwealths have flourished for a time, disturbances, seditions, and wars, often arise, in the din whereof, first the laws are silent, and not heard; and then men return to their own depraved natures—whence cultivated lands and cities soon become desolate and waste. And if this disorder continues, learning and philosophy is infallibly torn to pieces; so that only some scattered fragments thereof can afterwards be found up and down, in a few places, like planks after a shipwreck. And barbarous times succeeding, the River Helicon dips under-ground; that is, letters are buried, till things having undergone their due357 course of changes, learning rises again, and shows its head, though seldom in the same place, but in some other nation.629
Even the great works of knowledge, though they are among the finest achievements of humanity, have their own time limits. After kingdoms and societies thrive for a while, conflicts, uprisings, and wars often break out, drowning out the laws, making them unheard. People then revert to their flawed natures—leading to once fertile lands and vibrant cities quickly becoming abandoned and desolate. If this chaos continues, education and philosophy are inevitably destroyed, leaving only scattered remnants behind, like debris after a shipwreck. As barbaric times follow, the River Helicon is buried; in other words, written knowledge is hidden away, until things have gone through their necessary changes. Then, learning rises again and reemerges, though rarely in the same place, but instead in some other nation.357
XII.—CŒLUM, OR BEGINNINGS.
EXPLAINED OF THE CREATION, OR ORIGIN OF ALL THINGS.
The poets relate, that Cœlum was the most ancient of all the gods; that his parts of generation were cut off by his son Saturn; that Saturn had a numerous offspring, but devoured all his sons, as soon as they were born; that Jupiter at length escaped the common fate; and when grown up, drove his father Saturn into Tartarus; usurped the kingdom; cut off his father’s genitals, with the same knife wherewith Saturn had dismembered Cœlum, and throwing them into the sea, thence sprung Venus.
The poets say that Cœlum was the oldest of all the gods; that his genitals were cut off by his son Saturn; that Saturn had many children but swallowed each of them right after they were born; that Jupiter eventually escaped this fate; and when he grew up, he pushed his father Saturn into Tartarus; took over the kingdom; castrated his father with the same knife that Saturn had used to dismember Cœlum, and threw them into the sea, from which Venus was born.
Before Jupiter was well established in his empire, two memorable wars were made upon him; the first by the Titans, in subduing of whom, Sol, the only one of the Titans who favored Jupiter, performed him singular service; the second by the 358giants, who being destroyed and subdued by the thunder and arms of Jupiter, he now reigned secure.
Before Jupiter was firmly established in his empire, he faced two significant wars. The first was waged by the Titans, and during this conflict, Sol, the only Titan who supported Jupiter, provided him with crucial assistance. The second war was against the giants, who were defeated and subdued by Jupiter’s thunder and weapons, allowing him to reign securely.
Explanation.—This fable appears to be an enigmatical account of the origin of all things, not greatly differing from the philosophy afterwards embraced by Democritus, who expressly asserts the eternity of matter, but denies the eternity of the world; thereby approaching to the truth of sacred writ, which makes chaos, or uninformed matter, to exist before the six days’ works.
Explanation.—This fable seems to be a mysterious story about the origin of everything, similar to the philosophy later adopted by Democritus, who clearly states that matter is eternal but denies that the world is eternal; this closely aligns with the truth found in sacred texts, which indicate that chaos, or unformed matter, existed before the creation during the six days.
The meaning of the fable seems to be this: Cœlum denotes the concave space, or vaulted roof that incloses all matter, and Saturn the matter itself, which cuts off all power of generation from his father; as one and the same quantity of matter remains invariable in nature, without addition or diminution. But the agitations and struggling motions of matter, first produced certain imperfect and ill-joined compositions of things, as it were so many first rudiments, or essays of worlds; till, in process of time, there arose a fabric capable of preserving its form and structure. Whence the first age was shadowed out by the reign of Saturn; who, on account of the frequent dissolutions, and short durations of things, was said to devour his children. And the second age was denoted by the reign of Jupiter; who thrust, or drove those frequent and transitory changes into Tartarus—a place expressive of disorder. This place seems to be the middle359 space, between the lower heavens and the internal parts of the earth, wherein disorder, imperfection, mutation, mortality, destruction, and corruption, are principally found.
The meaning of the fable seems to be this: Cœlum represents the curved space or vaulted ceiling that encloses everything, while Saturn symbolizes the matter itself, which blocks all generative power from his father; because a constant amount of matter remains unchanged in nature, without increase or decrease. However, the disturbances and movements of matter initially created certain flawed and poorly formed combinations of things, like early attempts or drafts of worlds; until, over time, a structure capable of maintaining its shape and form emerged. Hence, the first age was represented by the rule of Saturn; who, due to the frequent breakdowns and short lifespans of things, was said to consume his children. The second age was signified by the rule of Jupiter; who cast those frequent and fleeting changes into Tartarus—a place symbolizing chaos. This place seems to be the middle359 space between the lower heavens and the inner parts of the earth, where chaos, imperfection, change, mortality, destruction, and corruption are mainly found.
Venus was not born during the former generation of things, under the reign of Saturn; for whilst discord and jar had the upper hand of concord and uniformity in the matter of the universe, a change of the entire structure was necessary. And in this manner things were generated and destroyed, before Saturn was dismembered. But when this manner of generation ceased, there immediately followed another, brought about by Venus, or a perfect and established harmony of things; whereby changes were wrought in the parts, whilst the universal fabric remained entire and undisturbed. Saturn, however, is said to be thrust out and dethroned, not killed, and become extinct; because, agreeably to the opinion of Democritus, the world might relapse into its old confusion and disorder, which Lucretius hoped would not happen in his time.630
Venus wasn't born during the earlier generation of things, when Saturn was in charge; because while chaos and conflict dominated over harmony and order in the universe, a complete transformation of the structure was necessary. Thus, things were created and destroyed before Saturn was overthrown. But when this way of creation stopped, another one immediately followed, initiated by Venus, bringing about a perfect and established harmony among things; this allowed for changes in the individual parts while the overall structure remained whole and undisturbed. However, it's said that Saturn was overthrown and dethroned, not killed or made extinct; because, according to Democritus, the world could fall back into its previous chaos and disorder, which Lucretius hoped would not occur in his time.630
But now, when the world was compact, and held together by its own bulk and energy, yet there was no rest from the beginning; for first, there followed considerable motions and disturbances in the celestial regions, though so regulated and moderated by the power of the Sun, prevailing over the heavenly bodies, as to continue the world in its state. After360wards there followed the like in the lower parts, by inundations, storms, winds, general earthquakes, &c., which, however, being subdued and kept under, there ensued a more peaceable and lasting harmony, and consent of things.
But now, when the world was compact and held together by its own mass and energy, there was still no rest from the beginning. At first, there were significant movements and disruptions in the celestial regions, though these were regulated and controlled by the power of the Sun, which dominated the heavenly bodies, allowing the world to maintain its state. After360, similar disturbances occurred in the lower parts, including floods, storms, winds, general earthquakes, etc., which, however, were subdued and kept under control, leading to a more peaceful and lasting harmony and agreement among things.
It may be said of this fable, that it includes philosophy; and again, that philosophy includes the fable; for we know, by faith, that all these things are but the oracle of sense, long since ceased and decayed; but the matter and fabric of the world being justly attributed to a creator.
This fable can be said to contain philosophy, and at the same time, philosophy contains the fable. We understand, through faith, that all of this is merely the wisdom of the senses, which has long since faded away. However, the substance and structure of the world are rightly attributed to a creator.
XIII.—PROTEUS, OR MATTER.
EXPLAINED OF MATTER AND ITS CHANGES.
Proteus, according to the poets, was Neptune’s herdsman; an old man, and a most extraordinary prophet, who understood things past and present, as well as future; so that besides the business of divination, he was the revealer and interpreter of all antiquity, and secrets of every kind. He lived in a vast cave, where his custom was to tell over his herd of sea-calves at noon, and then to sleep. Whoever consulted him, had no other way of obtaining an answer, but by binding him with manacles and fetters; when he, endeavoring to free himself, would change into all kinds of shapes and miraculous forms; as of fire, water, wild beasts, &c.; till at length he resumed his own shape again.
Proteus, according to the poets, was Neptune's herdsman; an old man and an incredible prophet who understood the past, present, and future. In addition to his divination skills, he was the one who revealed and interpreted all of antiquity and all kinds of secrets. He lived in a huge cave, where he would count his herd of sea calves at noon and then take a nap. Anyone who sought his counsel could only get answers by binding him with shackles and chains; while trying to free himself, he would transform into all sorts of shapes and amazing forms, like fire, water, wild animals, etc., until he eventually returned to his original shape again.
Explanation.—This fable seems to point at the secrets of nature, and the states of matter. For the person of Proteus denotes matter, the oldest of all things, after God himself;631 that resides, as in a cave, under the vast concavity of the heavens. He is represented as the servant of Neptune, because the various operations and modifications of matter are principally wrought in a fluid state. The herd, or flock of Proteus, seems to be no other than the several kinds of animals, plants, and minerals, in which matter appears to diffuse and spend itself; so that after having formed these several species, and as it were finished its task, it seems to sleep and repose, without otherwise attempting to produce any new ones. And this is the moral of Proteus’s counting his herd, then going to sleep.
Explanation.—This fable seems to uncover the mysteries of nature and the different states of matter. The character of Proteus represents matter, the oldest of all things, second only to God; 631 which resides, like in a cave, beneath the vast expanse of the sky. He is depicted as the servant of Neptune because the various processes and changes of matter primarily occur in a fluid state. The herd or flock of Proteus appears to be nothing more than the different kinds of animals, plants, and minerals, in which matter seems to spread and express itself; so that after creating these various species, and essentially completing its work, it appears to rest and relax, without making any effort to create new ones. And this is the moral behind Proteus counting his herd and then falling asleep.
This is said to be done at noon, not in the morning or evening; by which is meant the time best fitted and disposed for the production of species, from a matter duly prepared, and made ready beforehand, and now lying in a middle state, between its first rudiments and decline; which, we learn from sacred history, was the case at the time of the creation; when, by the efficacy of the divine command, matter directly came together, without any transformation or intermediate changes, which it affects; instantly obeyed the order, and appeared in the form of creatures.
This is said to happen at noon, not in the morning or evening; this refers to the time that is best suited for the generation of species, from a matter that has been properly prepared and set aside beforehand and is now in a middle state, between its initial stages and decline. According to sacred history, this was the case at the time of creation; when, through the power of the divine command, matter came together directly, without any transformation or intermediate changes, instantly obeyed the command, and took the form of living beings.
And thus far the fable reaches of Proteus, and 362his flock, at liberty and unrestrained. For the universe, with the common structures, and fabrics of the creatures, is the face of matter, not under constraint, or as the flock wrought upon and tortured by human means. But if any skilful minister of nature shall apply force to matter, and by design torture and vex it, in order to its annihilation, it, on the contrary, being brought under this necessity, changes and transforms itself into a strange variety of shapes and appearances; for nothing but the power of the Creator can annihilate, or truly destroy it; so that at length, running through the whole circle of transformations, and completing its period, it in some degree restores itself, if the force be continued. And that method of binding, torturing, or detaining, will prove the most effectual and expeditious, which makes use of manacles and fetters; that is, lays hold and works upon matter in the extremest degrees.
And so far, the fable reaches of Proteus, and 362his flock is free and unrestrained. The universe, along with the usual structures and forms of creatures, is like the face of matter, not held back, or like a flock subjected to human suffering. However, if any skilled nature minister applies force to matter, and deliberately tortures and distorts it to annihilate it, then matter, being forced into this state, changes and transforms into a strange variety of shapes and appearances. Only the power of the Creator can truly annihilate or destroy it; thus, eventually, going through the complete cycle of transformations and reaching its end, it somewhat restores itself if the force continues. And the method of binding, torturing, or detaining will be the most effective and efficient, which utilizes manacles and fetters; that is, it acts upon matter in the most extreme ways.
The addition in the fable that makes Proteus a prophet, who had the knowledge of things past, present, and future, excellently agrees with the nature of matter; as he who knows the properties, the changes, and the processes of matter, must, of necessity, understand the effects and sum of what it does, has done, or can do, though his knowledge extends not to all the parts and particulars thereof.
The addition in the fable that makes Proteus a prophet, who had the knowledge of things past, present, and future, fits perfectly with the nature of matter; because someone who understands the properties, changes, and processes of matter must, by necessity, grasp the effects and overall outcomes of what it does, has done, or can do, even if their knowledge doesn’t include every detail and specific part of it.
XIV.—MEMNON, OR A YOUTH TOO
FORWARD.
EXPLAINED OF THE FATAL PRECIPITANCY OF YOUTH.
The poets made Memnon the son of Aurora, and bring him to the Trojan war in beautiful armor, and flushed with popular praise; where, thirsting after further glory, and rashly hurrying on to the greatest enterprises, he engages the bravest warrior of all the Greeks, Achilles, and falls by his hand in single combat. Jupiter, in commiseration of his death, sent birds to grace his funeral, that perpetually chanted certain mournful and bewailing dirges. It is also reported, that the rays of the rising sun, striking his statue, used to give a lamenting sound.
The poets made Memnon the son of Aurora and brought him to the Trojan war in beautiful armor, filled with public admiration. Driven by a desire for more glory and rushing into the greatest challenges, he faced the bravest warrior of all the Greeks, Achilles, and met his end at his hands in a one-on-one fight. Jupiter, moved by his death, sent birds to honor his funeral, which continuously sang mournful and sorrowful songs. It's also said that the rays of the rising sun hitting his statue used to produce a lamenting sound.
Explanation.—This fable regards the unfortunate end of those promising youths, who, like sons of the morning, elate with empty hopes and glittering outsides, attempt things beyond their strength; challenge the bravest heroes; provoke them to the combat; and, proving unequal, die in their high attempts.
Explanation.—This fable is about the unfortunate fate of those promising young people who, like sons of the morning, filled with false hopes and shiny appearances, attempt things that are beyond their abilities; challenge the bravest heroes; provoke them to fight; and, falling short, perish in their lofty efforts.
The death of such youths seldom fails to meet with infinite pity; as no mortal calamity is more moving and afflicting, than to see the flower of virtue cropped before its time. Nay, the prime of life enjoyed to the full, or even to a degree of envy, does not assuage or moderate the grief occasioned by the untimely death364 of such hopeful youths; but lamentations and bewailings fly, like mournful birds, about their tombs, for a long while after; especially upon all fresh occasions, new commotions, and the beginning of great actions, the passionate desire of them is renewed, as by the sun’s morning rays.
The death of such young people always brings endless sorrow; there's no tragedy more heart-wrenching than watching the best of their youth cut short. Even if they lived life to the fullest, or even somewhat enviably, it doesn’t lessen the grief caused by their early death364. Mourning and wailing linger around their graves for a long time afterward, especially during fresh events, new upheavals, and the start of great endeavors, when the longing for them returns, just like the morning sun's rays.
XV.—TYTHONUS, OR SATIETY.
EXPLAINED OF PREDOMINANT PASSIONS.
It is elegantly fabled by Tythonus, that being exceedingly beloved by Aurora, she petitioned Jupiter that he might prove immortal, thereby to secure herself the everlasting enjoyment of his company; but through female inadvertence she forgot to add, that he might never grow old; so that, though he proved immortal, he became miserably worn and consumed with age, insomuch that Jupiter, out of pity, at length transformed him to a grasshopper.
It is elegantly said that Tythonus, being greatly loved by Aurora, requested Jupiter to make him immortal, so she could always enjoy his company. However, by accident, she forgot to mention that he should never grow old. As a result, even though he became immortal, he ended up sadly worn out and aged. Out of pity, Jupiter eventually turned him into a grasshopper.
Explanation.—This fable seems to contain an ingenious description of pleasure; which at first, as it were in the morning of the day, is so welcome, that men pray to have it everlasting, but forget that satiety and weariness of it will, like old age, overtake them, though they think not of it; so that at length, when their appetite for pleasurable actions is gone, their desires and affections often continue; whence365 we commonly find that aged persons delight themselves with the discourse and remembrance of the things agreeable to them in their better days. This is very remarkable in men of a loose, and men of a military life; the former whereof are always talking over their amours, and the latter the exploits of their youth; like grasshoppers, that show their vigor only by their chirping.
Explanation.—This fable seems to provide a clever depiction of pleasure; at first, like the morning of the day, it feels so welcoming that people wish for it to last forever, but they forget that eventually, just like old age, it will bring boredom and fatigue, even if they don't realize it. So, in the end, when their desire for pleasurable activities fades, their longings and emotions often linger; hence365 we often see that older individuals find joy in talking about and remembering the things that pleased them in their younger days. This is particularly noticeable in those who lived indulgent or military lives; the former are always reminiscing about their romances, while the latter recount their youthful adventures, much like grasshoppers that only showcase their vitality through their chirping.
XVI.—JUNO’S SUITOR, OR BASENESS.
EXPLAINED OF SUBMISSION AND ABJECTION.
The poets tell us, that Jupiter, to carry on his love-intrigues, assumed many different shapes; as of a bull, an eagle, a swan, a golden shower, &c.; but when he attempted Juno, he turned himself into the most ignoble and ridiculous creature,—even that of a wretched, wet, weather-beaten, affrighted, trembling and half-starved cuckoo.
The poets say that Jupiter, to pursue his love affairs, took on many different forms, like a bull, an eagle, a swan, a shower of gold, etc.; but when he tried to approach Juno, he transformed into the most contemptible and laughable creature—specifically, a miserable, drenched, weathered, frightened, trembling, and half-starved cuckoo.
Explanation.—This is a wise fable, and drawn from the very entrails of morality. The moral is, that men should not be conceited of themselves, and imagine that a discovery of their excellences will always render them acceptable; for this can only succeed according to the nature and manners of the person they court, or solicit; who, if he be a man not of the same gifts and endowments, but altogether of366 a haughty and contemptuous behavior, here represented by the person of Juno, they must entirely drop the character that carries the least show of worth or gracefulness; if they proceed upon any other footing, it is downright folly; nor is it sufficient to act the deformity of obsequiousness, unless they really change themselves, and become abject and contemptible in their persons.
Explanation.—This is a wise story rooted in deep moral lessons. The takeaway is that people shouldn’t be overly proud of themselves and think that showcasing their strengths will always make them appealing; this only works based on the nature and personality of the person they are trying to impress. If that person, like Juno in this tale, is arrogant and disdainful, they must completely abandon any pretense of worth or charm. If they approach it any other way, it’s just plain foolishness; and it's not enough to simply act submissive unless they truly change and become lowly and contemptible themselves.
XVII.—CUPID, OR AN ATOM.
EXPLAINED OF THE CORPUSCULAR PHILOSOPHY.
The particulars related by the poets of Cupid, or Love, do not properly agree to the same person, yet they differ only so far, that if the confusion of persons be rejected, the correspondence may hold. They say, that Love was the most ancient of all the gods, and existed before every thing else, except Chaos, which is held coeval therewith. But for Chaos, the ancients never paid divine honors, nor gave the title of a god thereto. Love is represented absolutely without progenitor, excepting only that he is said to have proceeded from the egg of Nox; but that himself begot the gods, and all things else, on Chaos. His attributes are four; viz: 1, perpetual infancy; 2, blindness; 3, nakedness; and 4, archery.
The details shared by poets about Cupid, or Love, don't really refer to the same entity, but they differ just enough that if we ignore the mix-up of individuals, the connection still makes sense. They say that Love is the oldest of all the gods and existed before everything else, except for Chaos, which is considered to have existed alongside it. However, the ancients never worshipped Chaos or called it a god. Love is depicted as having no parent, except that it is said to have come from the egg of Night; but it is believed that Love himself created the gods and everything else from Chaos. His attributes are four: 1, eternal youth; 2, blindness; 3, nudity; and 4, archery.
There was also another Cupid, or Love, the youngest son of the gods, born of Venus; and upon367 him the attributes of the elder are transferred, with some degree of correspondence.
There was also another Cupid, or Love, the youngest son of the gods, born of Venus; and upon367 him the attributes of the elder are transferred, with some degree of correspondence.
Explanation.—This fable points at, and enters, the cradle of nature. Love seems to be the appetite, or incentive, of the primitive matter; or, to speak more distinctly, the natural motion, or moving principle, of the original corpuscles, or atoms; this being the most ancient and only power that made and wrought all things out of matter. It is absolutely without parent, that is, without cause; for causes are as parents to effects; but this power or efficacy could have no natural cause; for, excepting God, nothing was before it; and therefore it could have no efficient in nature. And as nothing is more inward with nature, it can neither be a genus nor a form; and therefore, whatever it is, it must be somewhat positive, though inexpressible. And if it were possible to conceive its modus and process, yet it could not be known from its cause, as being, next to God, the cause of causes, and itself without a cause. And, perhaps, we are not to hope that the modus of it should fall, or be comprehended, under human inquiry. Whence it is properly feigned to be the egg of Nox, or laid in the dark.
Explanation.—This fable points to and explores the origins of nature. Love appears to be the driving force or motivation of the basic substance; or, to put it more clearly, the natural motion or fundamental principle of the original particles or atoms. This is the most ancient and only power that created and shaped everything from matter. It is completely without a parent, meaning it has no cause; causes are like parents to effects, but this power or effectiveness could have no natural cause; because, apart from God, nothing existed before it; thus, it could have no natural agent. And since nothing is more inherent to nature, it cannot be classified as a genus or a form; therefore, whatever it is, it must be something positive, though beyond expression. Even if we could understand its nature and process, we still couldn't know it from its cause, as it is, next to God, the ultimate cause of causes and itself without a cause. Perhaps we shouldn't expect the understanding of it to fall within human inquiry. Hence, it is fittingly imagined to be the egg of Nox, or laid in darkness.
The divine philosopher declares, that “God has made every thing beautiful in its season; and has given over the world to our disputes and inquiries; but that man cannot find out the work which God has wrought, from its beginning up to its end.368” Thus the summary or collective law of nature, or the principle of love, impressed by God upon the original particles of all things, so as to make them attack each other and come together, by the repetition and multiplication whereof all the variety in the universe is produced, can scarce possibly find full admittance into the thoughts of men, though some faint notion may be had thereof. The Greek philosophy is subtile, and busied in discovering the material principles of things, but negligent and languid in discovering the principles of motion, in which the energy and efficacy of every operation consists. And here the Greek philosophers seem perfectly blind and childish; for the opinion of the Peripatetics, as to the stimulus of matter, by privation, is little more than words, or rather sound than signification. And they who refer it to God, though they do well therein, yet they do it by a start, and not by proper degrees of assent; for doubtless there is one summary, or capital law, in which nature meets, subordinate to God, viz: the law mentioned in the passage above quoted from Solomon; or the work which God has wrought from its beginning to its end.
The divine philosopher says, “God has made everything beautiful in its time and has handed the world over to our arguments and inquiries; but man cannot understand the work that God has done, from its beginning to its end.368” Therefore, the summary or overall law of nature, or the principle of love, which God impressed on the original particles of all things, causing them to interact and come together, creates all the diversity in the universe through repetition and multiplication. This concept can hardly find full acceptance in human thought, although some faint understanding may exist. Greek philosophy is insightful and focuses on discovering the material principles of things but is careless and slow in uncovering the principles of motion, which are essential to every action's energy and effectiveness. Here, Greek philosophers seem completely oblivious and naive; the Peripatetics' idea about the influence of matter through privation is little more than empty words, or rather sounds without meaning. Those who attribute it to God do well in this respect, but they do so in a hasty manner, rather than through proper reasoning. Indeed, there is one fundamental law where nature aligns, subordinate to God, namely the law referred to in the passage quoted from Solomon, or the work that God has done from its beginning to its end.
Democritus, who further considered this subject, having first supposed an atom, or corpuscle, of some dimension or figure, attributed thereto an appetite, desire, or first motion simply, and another comparatively, imagining that all things properly tended to the centre of the world; those containing more matter falling faster to the centre, and thereby remov369ing, and in the shock driving away, such as held less. But this is a slender conceit, and regards too few particulars; for neither the revolutions of the celestial bodies, nor the contractions and expansions of things, can be reduced to this principle. And for the opinion of Epicurus, as to the declination and fortuitous agitation of atoms, this only brings the matter back again to a trifle, and wraps it up in ignorance and night.
Democritus, who explored this topic further, initially proposed the idea of an atom or small particle with some size or shape. He assigned to it a desire or a basic motion, and another motion in comparison, imagining that everything naturally moved toward the center of the world; those with more matter fell faster to the center, pushing away those with less. But this is a weak idea and considers too few details; as neither the movements of celestial bodies nor the contractions and expansions of things can be simplified to this principle. Also, regarding Epicurus's view on the random movement and decline of atoms, this only reduces the discussion to a trivial matter, cloaked in ignorance and confusion.
Cupid is elegantly drawn a perpetual child; for compounds are larger things, and have their periods of age; but the first seeds or atoms of bodies are small, and remain in a perpetual infant state.
Cupid is gracefully depicted as an eternal child; because complex things are bigger and have their stages of aging; but the initial seeds or atoms of matter are tiny and stay in a constant state of infancy.
He is again justly represented naked; as all compounds may properly be said to be dressed and clothed, or to assume a personage; whence nothing remains truly naked, but the original particles of things.
He is once again accurately shown naked; since all compounds can rightly be described as dressed and clothed, or taking on a form; so nothing is truly naked except for the original particles of things.
The blindness of Cupid contains a deep allegory; for this same Cupid, Love, or appetite of the world, seems to have very little foresight, but directs his steps and motions conformably to what he finds next him, as blind men do when they feel out their way; which renders the divine and overruling Providence and foresight the more surprising; as by a certain steady law, it brings such a beautiful order and regularity of things out of what seems extremely casual, void of design, and, as it were, really blind.
Cupid's blindness carries a profound message; this same Cupid, representing Love or the desires of the world, appears to have little foresight and moves according to what he encounters around him, similar to how blind people navigate their surroundings by touch. This makes the divine and overarching Providence and foresight even more astonishing, as it operates through a consistent law to create a beautiful order and regularity from what seems entirely random, lacking purpose, and genuinely blind.
The last attribute of Cupid is archery, viz: a virtue or power operating at a distance; for every370 thing that operates at a distance may seem, as it were, to dart, or shoot with arrows. And whoever allows of atoms and vacuity, necessarily supposes that the virtue of atoms operates at a distance; for without this operation, no motion could be excited, on account of the vacuum interposing, but all things would remain sluggish and unmoved.
The final quality of Cupid is archery, which refers to a power that works from a distance; because anything that acts from afar can be thought of as shooting arrows. And anyone who accepts the existence of atoms and empty space has to believe that the power of atoms functions from a distance; because without this ability to operate, no movement could happen due to the empty space in between, and everything would stay still and inactive.
As to the other Cupid, he is properly said to be the youngest son of the gods, as his power could not take place before the formation of species, or particular bodies. The description given us of him transfers the allegory to morality, though he still retains some resemblance with the ancient Cupid; for as Venus universally excites the affection of association, and the desire of procreation, her son Cupid applies the affection to individuals; so that the general disposition proceeds from Venus, but the more close sympathy from Cupid. The former depends upon a near approximation of causes, but the latter upon deeper, more necessitating and uncontrollable principles, as if they proceeded from the ancient Cupid, on whom all exquisite sympathies depend.
As for the other Cupid, he is rightly considered the youngest son of the gods, since his power couldn’t exist before species or individual bodies were formed. The way he’s described shifts the allegory to moral lessons, although he still shares some characteristics with the old Cupid. Just as Venus universally stirs up feelings of connection and the desire to reproduce, her son Cupid focuses those feelings on specific individuals. So, the general tendency comes from Venus, while the closer bond comes from Cupid. The former is based on a close connection of causes, but the latter relies on deeper, more powerful, and uncontrollable factors, as if they originate from the ancient Cupid, who is the foundation of all profound connections.
XVIII.—DIOMED, OR ZEAL.
EXPLAINED OF PERSECUTION, OR ZEAL FOR RELIGION.
Diomed acquired great glory and honor at the Trojan war, and was highly favored by Pallas, who encouraged and excited him by no means to spare Venus, if he should casually meet her in fight. He followed the advice with too much eagerness and intrepidity, and accordingly wounded that goddess in her hand. This presumptuous action remained unpunished for a time, and when the war was ended he returned with great glory and renown to his own country, where, finding himself embroiled with domestic affairs, he retired into Italy. Here also at first he was well received and nobly entertained by King Daunus, who, besides other gifts and honors, erected statues for him over all his dominions. But upon the first calamity that afflicted the people after the stranger’s arrival, Daunus immediately reflected that he entertained a devoted person in his palace, an enemy to the gods, and one who had sacrilegiously wounded a goddess with his sword, whom it was impious but to touch. To expiate, therefore, his country’s guilt, he, without regard to the laws of hospitality, which were less regarded by him than the laws of religion, directly slew his guest, and commanded his statues and all his honors to be razed and abolished. Nor was it safe for others to372 commiserate or bewail so cruel a destiny; but even his companions in arms, whilst they lamented the death of their leader, and filled all places with their complaints, were turned into a kind of swans, which are said, at the approach of their own death, to chant sweet melancholy dirges.
Diomed achieved significant glory and honor during the Trojan war and was greatly favored by Pallas, who urged him to show no mercy to Venus if he encountered her in battle. He followed her advice with excessive eagerness and bravery, ultimately wounding the goddess in her hand. This bold act went unpunished for a time, and when the war came to an end, he returned home with great fame and recognition. However, upon dealing with personal matters, he moved to Italy. Initially, he was welcomed and generously treated by King Daunus, who honored him with gifts and erected statues in his name throughout his kingdom. But when misfortune struck the people following the stranger's arrival, Daunus soon realized he had a dangerous guest in his palace: an enemy of the gods who had sacrilegiously wounded a goddess with his sword, someone whose touch was considered impious. To atone for his country’s guilt, he disregarded the laws of hospitality, which meant less to him than the laws of religion, and promptly killed his guest, ordering his statues and all honors to be removed and destroyed. It was also unsafe for others to mourn or lament such a cruel fate; even his fellow warriors, while they grieved for their leader and filled the air with their cries of sorrow, were transformed into swans, which are said to sing sweet, sorrowful songs as they near their own death.
Explanation.—This fable intimates an extraordinary and almost singular thing, for no hero besides Diomed is recorded to have wounded any of the gods. Doubtless we have here described the nature and fate of a man who professedly makes any divine worship or sect of religion, though, in itself vain and light, the only scope of his actions, and resolves to propagate it by fire and sword. For although the bloody dissensions and differences about religion were unknown to the ancients, yet so copious and diffusive was their knowledge, that what they knew not by experience they comprehended in thought and representation. Those, therefore, who endeavor to reform or establish any sect of religion, though vain, corrupt, and infamous (which is here denoted under the person of Venus), not by the force of reason, learning, sanctity of manners, the weight of arguments, and examples, but would spread or extirpate it by persecution, pains, penalties, tortures, fire, and sword, may, perhaps, be instigated hereto by Pallas, that is, by a certain rigid, prudential consideration, and a severity of judgment, by the vigor and efficacy whereof they see thoroughly into373 the fallacies and fictions of the delusions of this kind; and through aversion to depravity and a well-meant zeal, these men usually for a time acquire great fame and glory, and are by the vulgar, to whom no moderate measures can be acceptable, extolled and almost adored, as the only patrons and protectors of truth and religion, men of any other disposition seeming, in comparison with these, to be lukewarm, mean-spirited, and cowardly. This fame and felicity, however, seldom endures to the end; but all violence, unless it escapes the reverses and changes of things by untimely death, is commonly unprosperous in the issue; and if a change of affairs happens, and that sect of religion which was persecuted and oppressed gains strength and rises again, then the zeal and warm endeavors of this sort of men are condemned, their very name becomes odious, and all their honors terminate in disgrace.
Explanation.—This fable hints at something remarkable and almost unique, as no other hero besides Diomed is known to have wounded any of the gods. We are clearly describing the nature and fate of a person who openly makes any divine worship or religious sect, albeit one that is vain and trivial, the sole purpose of their actions, and is determined to spread it through violence and conflict. Although the bloody disputes and differences about religion were foreign to the ancients, they had such extensive knowledge that they understood what they had not experienced through thought and representation. Therefore, those who seek to reform or establish any religious sect, no matter how vain, corrupt, or infamous (represented here by the character of Venus), not through reason, education, moral conduct, solid arguments, or examples, but through persecution, pain, punishment, torture, fire, and violence, may be motivated by Pallas—meaning a certain rigid, wise consideration, and a harsh judgment—by which they see through the deceptions and illusions of such matters. Through their aversion to wrongdoing and a misguided zeal, these individuals often achieve great fame and glory for a time and are praised and nearly worshipped by the masses, who find anything less extreme unacceptable, viewing those with different dispositions as lukewarm, weak, and cowardly. However, this fame and success rarely lasts; all forms of violence, unless they evade the twists and turns of fate by untimely death, generally end unsuccessfully; and if circumstances change, causing the previously oppressed and persecuted religious sect to regain strength, then the zeal and fervor of these individuals are condemned, their very names become detestable, and all their honors turn to disgrace.
As to the point that Diomed should be slain by his hospitable entertainer, this denotes that religious dissensions may cause treachery, bloody animosities, and deceit, even between the nearest friends.
As for the idea that Diomed should be killed by his hospitable host, this suggests that religious conflicts can lead to betrayal, violent enmity, and deceit, even among close friends.
That complaining or bewailing should not, in so enormous a case, be permitted to friends affected by the catastrophe without punishment, includes this prudent admonition, that almost in all kinds of wickedness and depravity men have still room left for commiseration, so that they who hate the crime may yet pity the person and bewail his calamity, from a principle of humanity and good-nature; and374 to forbid the overflowings and intercourses of pity upon such occasions were the extremest of evils; yet in the cause of religion and impiety the very commiserations of men are noted and suspected. On the other hand, the lamentations and complainings of the followers and attendants of Diomed, that is, of men of the same sect or persuasion, are usually very sweet, agreeable, and moving, like the dying notes of swans, or the birds of Diomed. This also is a noble and remarkable part of the allegory, denoting that the last words of those who suffer for the sake of religion strongly affect and sway men’s minds, and leave a lasting impression upon the sense and memory.
Complaining or mourning shouldn't be allowed for friends affected by such a huge tragedy without consequences. This serves as a wise reminder that, in nearly all kinds of wrongdoing and moral failing, there's still room for compassion. People can hate the crime but still feel sorry for the person and lament their misfortune out of basic human decency. To restrict expressions of pity during these times would be the worst of injustices. However, in matters of faith and wrongdoing, people's sympathies can sometimes be questioned. On the flipside, the cries and laments of Diomed's followers—those who share the same beliefs—are usually very touching, pleasant, and heartfelt, much like the dying songs of swans or Diomed’s birds. This is also a significant and striking part of the allegory, signifying that the final words of those who suffer for their faith have a powerful impact on people and create a lasting mark on their hearts and minds.
XIX.—DÆDALUS, OR MECHANICAL SKILL.
EXPLAINED OF ARTS AND ARTISTS IN KINGDOMS AND
STATES.
The ancients have left us a description of mechanical skill, industry, and curious arts converted to ill uses, in the person of Dædalus, a most ingenious but execrable artist. This Dædalus was banished for the murder of his brother artist and rival, yet found a kind reception in his banishment from the kings and states where he came. He raised many incomparable edifices to the honor of the gods, and invented many new contrivances for the beautifying375 and ennobling of cities and public places, but still he was most famous for wicked inventions. Among the rest, by his abominable industry and destructive genius, he assisted in the fatal and infamous production of the monster Minotaur, that devourer of promising youths. And then, to cover one mischief with another, and provide for the security of this monster, he invented and built a labyrinth; a work infamous for its end and design, but admirable and prodigious for art and workmanship. After this, that he might not only be celebrated for wicked inventions, but be sought after, as well for prevention, as for instruments of mischief, he formed that ingenious device of his clue, which led directly through all the windings of the labyrinth. This Dædalus was persecuted by Minos with the utmost severity, diligence, and inquiry; but he always found refuge and means of escaping. Lastly, endeavoring to teach his son Icarus the art of flying, the novice, trusting too much to his wings, fell from his towering flight, and was drowned in the sea.
The ancients have given us a description of mechanical skill, industry, and fascinating arts used for evil, embodied by Dædalus, a remarkably clever but terrible artist. Dædalus was exiled for murdering his fellow artist and rival, yet he was welcomed in the kingdoms and states he visited during his exile. He constructed many extraordinary buildings to honor the gods and invented numerous innovations to beautify375 and elevate cities and public spaces, but he became most known for his wicked inventions. Among other things, through his dreadful work and destructive talent, he helped create the infamous monster Minotaur, who devoured promising young men. To cover up this atrocity and ensure the monster's safety, he designed and built a labyrinth; a creation notorious for its purpose but remarkable for its artistry and craftsmanship. After this, he aimed not only to be known for wicked inventions but to be sought out for protection as well as for tools of destruction, so he devised that clever clue which led directly through all the twists and turns of the labyrinth. Dædalus was relentlessly pursued by Minos with the utmost severity and scrutiny, but he always found a way to escape. In the end, while trying to teach his son Icarus the art of flying, the inexperienced youth, overconfident in his wings, fell from his high flight and drowned in the sea.
Explanation.—The sense of the fable runs thus. It first denotes envy, which is continually upon the watch, and strangely prevails among excellent artificers; for no kind of people are observed to be more implacably and destructively envious to one another than these.
Explanation.—The meaning of the fable is as follows. It highlights envy, which is always present and often dominates among skilled craftsmen; no group is seen to be more viciously and destructively envious of each other than they are.
In the next place, it observes an impolitic and improvident kind of punishment inflicted upon376 Dædalus—that of banishment; for good workmen are gladly received everywhere, so that banishment to an excellent artificer is scarce any punishment at all; whereas other conditions of life cannot easily flourish from home. For the admiration of artists is propagated and increased among foreigners and strangers; it being a principle in the minds of men to slight and despise the mechanical operators of their own nation.
Next, it notes an unwise and reckless type of punishment given to Dædalus—that of banishment; because skilled workers are welcomed everywhere, so banishing a talented craftsman is hardly a punishment at all; while other ways of life struggle to thrive away from home. The admiration for artists grows and spreads among foreigners and outsiders; it’s a common belief that people tend to undervalue and look down on the skilled workers from their own country.
The succeeding part of the fable is plain, concerning the use of mechanic arts, whereto human life stands greatly indebted, as receiving from this treasury numerous particulars for the service of religion, the ornament of civil society, and the whole provision and apparatus of life; but then the same magazine supplies instruments of lust, cruelty, and death. For, not to mention the arts of luxury and debauchery, we plainly see how far the business of exquisite poisons, guns, engines of war, and such kind of destructive inventions, exceeds the cruelty and barbarity of the Minotaur himself.
The next part of the fable is straightforward, focusing on the use of practical skills, which human life heavily relies on, as it provides many resources for religious practice, enhances civil society, and supports all the necessities of life. However, this same source also provides tools for lust, violence, and death. Without even addressing the arts of luxury and excess, we clearly see how much the creation of deadly poisons, guns, war machines, and other destructive inventions surpasses the cruelty and savagery of the Minotaur itself.
The addition of the labyrinth contains a beautiful allegory, representing the nature of mechanic arts in general; for all ingenious and accurate mechanical inventions may be conceived as a labyrinth, which, by reason of their subtilty, intricacy, crossing, and interfering with one another, and the apparent resemblances they have among themselves, scarce any power of the judgment can unravel and distinguish; so that they are only to be understood and traced by the clue of experience.
The addition of the labyrinth includes a beautiful metaphor that represents the nature of mechanical arts in general. All clever and precise mechanical inventions can be seen as a labyrinth, which, due to their subtlety, complexity, intersections, and overlaps, as well as their apparent similarities, make it nearly impossible for judgment to untangle and distinguish them. They can only be understood and navigated through the insight of experience.
It is no less prudently added, that he who invented the windings of the labyrinth, should also show the use and management of the clue; for mechanical arts have an ambiguous or double use, and serve as well to produce as to prevent mischief and destruction; so that their virtue almost destroys or unwinds itself.
It’s also wisely pointed out that the person who created the twists of the maze should also demonstrate how to use and handle the thread; because mechanical skills can have dual purposes and can both create and prevent trouble and destruction, meaning their usefulness can almost undo itself.
Unlawful arts and indeed frequently arts themselves, are persecuted by Minos, that is, by laws, which prohibit and forbid their use among the people; but notwithstanding this, they are hid, concealed, retained, and everywhere find reception and skulking-places; a thing well observed by Tacitus of the astrologers and fortune-tellers of his time. “These,” says he, “are a kind of men that will always be prohibited, and yet will always be retained in our city.”
Unlawful practices, and often the practices themselves, are targeted by Minos, meaning by laws that ban their use among the people. However, despite this, they remain hidden, concealed, kept, and always find acceptance and hiding places. Tacitus pointed out this phenomenon regarding the astrologers and fortune-tellers of his time: "These," he states, "are the kind of people who will always be banned but will always remain in our city."
But lastly, all unlawful and vain arts, of what kind soever, lose their reputation in tract of time; grow contemptible and perish, through their overconfidence, like Icarus; being commonly unable to perform what they boasted. And to say the truth, such arts are better suppressed by their own vain pretensions, than checked or restrained by the bridle of laws.632
But in the end, all illegal and useless practices, no matter their type, lose their reputation over time; they become laughable and fade away due to their arrogance, like Icarus; usually failing to live up to their claims. In reality, these practices are better brought down by their own empty boasts than by being limited or controlled by laws.632
XX.—ERICTHONIUS, OR IMPOSTURE.
EXPLAINED OF THE IMPROPER USE OF FORCE IN NATURAL
PHILOSOPHY.
The poets feign that Vulcan attempted the chastity of Minerva, and impatient of refusal, had recourse to force; the consequence of which was the birth of Ericthonius, whose body from the middle upwards was comely and well-proportioned, but his thighs and legs small, shrunk, and deformed, like an eel. Conscious of this defect, he became the inventor of chariots, so as to show the graceful, but conceal the deformed part of his body.
The poets pretend that Vulcan tried to seduce Minerva, and when she rejected him, he resorted to force. The result of this was the birth of Ericthonius, who was handsome and well-proportioned from the waist up, but had small, shriveled, and deformed thighs and legs, resembling an eel. Aware of this flaw, he invented chariots to showcase his graceful upper body while hiding the deformed part of his body.
Explanation.—This strange fable seems to carry this meaning. Art is here represented under the person of Vulcan, by reason of the various uses it makes of fire; and nature, under the person of Minerva, by reason of the industry employed in her works. Art, therefore, whenever it offers violence to nature, in order to conquer, subdue, and bend her to its purpose, by tortures and force of all kinds, seldom obtains the end proposed; yet upon great struggle and application, there proceed certain imperfect births, or lame abortive works, specious in appearance, but weak and unstable in use; which are, nevertheless, with great pomp and deceitful appearances, triumphantly carried about, and shown by impostors. A procedure very familiar, and re379markable in chemical productions, and new mechanical inventions; especially when the inventors rather hug their errors than improve upon them, and go on struggling with nature, not courting her.
Explanation.—This unusual fable seems to convey this message. Art is represented by Vulcan because of the various ways it utilizes fire, while nature is symbolized by Minerva due to the effort evident in her creations. Therefore, whenever art forces nature to bend to its will through all kinds of struggle and pressure, it rarely achieves its intended goal; however, through significant effort, it may produce certain imperfect outcomes or flawed creations that look good on the surface but are weak and unstable in practice. Despite this, they are often paraded around with great fanfare and deceptive appearances by those who misrepresent them. This is a common and notable occurrence in chemical productions and new mechanical inventions, especially when the creators hold on to their mistakes rather than improving them and continue to battle against nature instead of collaborating with her.
XXI.—DEUCALION, OR RESTITUTION.
EXPLAINED OF A USEFUL HINT IN NATURAL PHILOSOPHY.
The poets tell us, that the inhabitants of the old world being totally destroyed by the universal deluge, excepting Deucalion and Pyrrha, these two, desiring with zealous and fervent devotion to restore mankind, received this oracle for answer, that “they should succeed by throwing their mother’s bones behind them.” This at first cast them into great sorrow and despair, because, as all things were levelled by the deluge, it was in vain to seek their mother’s tomb; but at length they understood the expression of the oracle to signify the stones of the earth, which is esteemed the mother of all things.
The poets tell us that the people of the old world were completely wiped out by the great flood, except for Deucalion and Pyrrha. These two, wanting passionately and sincerely to bring humanity back, received an oracle's message saying, “You will succeed by throwing your mother’s bones behind you.” At first, this filled them with deep sadness and despair because, with everything destroyed by the flood, searching for their mother’s tomb seemed pointless. But eventually, they understood that the oracle's words referred to the stones of the earth, which are seen as the mother of all things.
Explanation.—This fable seems to reveal a secret of nature, and correct an error familiar to the mind; for men’s ignorance leads them to expect the renovation or restoration of things from their corruption and remains, as the phœnix is said to be restored out of its ashes; which is a very improper procedure, because such kind of materials have380 finished their course, and are become absolutely unfit to supply the first rudiments of the same things again; whence, in cases of renovation, recourse should be had to more common principles.
Explanation.—This fable seems to uncover a truth about nature and correct a common misconception; because people's ignorance leads them to expect that things can be renewed or restored from their decay and remnants, like the phoenix is said to rise from its ashes. This is a flawed notion, as such materials have already completed their cycle and are entirely unfit to provide the basic elements needed to recreate those things. Therefore, in cases of restoration, we should turn to more fundamental principles instead.
XXII.—NEMESIS, OR THE VICISSITUDE
OF THINGS.
EXPLAINED OF THE REVERSES OF FORTUNE.
Nemesis is represented as a goddess venerated by all, but feared by the powerful and the fortunate. She is said to be the daughter of Nox and Oceanus.
Nvomiting is portrayed as a goddess worshiped by everyone, but feared by the powerful and the fortunate. She is said to be the daughter of Night and Oceanus.
She is drawn with wings, and a crown; a javelin of ash in her right hand; a glass containing Ethiopians in her left; and riding upon a stag.
She is depicted with wings and a crown, holding a spear made of ash in her right hand, a glass with Ethiopians in her left, and riding on a stag.
Explanation.—The fable receives this explanation. The word Nemesis manifestly signifies revenge, or retribution; for the office of this goddess consisted in interposing, like the Roman tribunes, with an “I forbid it,” in all courses of constant and perpetual felicity, so as not only to chastise haughtiness, but also to repay even innocent and moderate happiness with adversity; as if it were decreed, that none of human race should be admitted to the banquet of the gods, but for sport. And, indeed, to read over that chapter of Pliny wherein he has collected the miseries and misfortunes of Augustus Cæsar, whom, of all mankind, one would judge most fortunate,—as381 he had a certain art of using and enjoying prosperity, with a mind no way tumid, light, effeminate, confused, or melancholic,—one cannot but think this a very great and powerful goddess, who could bring such a victim to her altar.633
Explanation.—This fable has this explanation. The word Nemesis clearly means revenge or punishment; for the role of this goddess was to intervene, like the Roman tribunes, by saying “I forbid it,” in all paths of constant and endless happiness, so as to not only punish arrogance, but also to respond to even innocent and moderate happiness with hardship; as if it were decided that no one among humans should be allowed to partake in the banquet of the gods, except for amusement. And indeed, if you read that chapter of Pliny where he lists the miseries and misfortunes of Augustus Caesar, who of all people seems the most fortunate—since he had a unique ability to use and enjoy prosperity without being proud, superficial, weak, confused, or melancholic—you can’t help but realize that Nemesis is a very great and powerful goddess, capable of leading such a victim to her altar.633
The parents of this goddess were Oceanus and Nox; that is, the fluctuating change of things, and the obscure and secret divine decrees. The changes of things are aptly represented by the Ocean, on account of its perpetual ebbing and flowing; and secret providence is justly expressed by Night. Even the heathens have observed this secret Nemesis of the night, or the difference betwixt divine and human judgment.634
The parents of this goddess were Oceanus and Nox; that is, the constant change of things, and the hidden and mysterious divine will. The fluctuating nature of things is well represented by the Ocean, due to its ongoing ebbing and flowing; and hidden providence is accurately symbolized by Night. Even the pagans recognized this hidden force of the night, or the distinction between divine and human judgment.634
Wings are given to Nemesis, because of the sudden and unforeseen changes of things; for, from the earliest account of time, it has been common for great and prudent men to fall by the dangers they most despised. Thus Cicero, when admonished by Brutus of the infidelity and rancor of Octavius, coolly wrote back: “I cannot, however, but be obliged to you, Brutus, as I ought, for informing me, though of such a trifle.”635
Wings are given to Nemesis because of the sudden and unexpected changes in life; since the dawn of time, it has been common for wise and influential people to fall due to the dangers they most scorned. For instance, Cicero, when warned by Brutus about Octavius's betrayal and hatred, calmly replied: “I have to thank you, Brutus, for letting me know, even if it’s about something so minor.”635
Nemesis also has her crown, by reason of the invidious and malignant nature of the vulgar, who 382generally rejoice, triumph, and crown her, at the fall of the fortunate and the powerful. And for the javelin in her right hand, it has regard to those whom she has actually struck and transfixed. But whoever escapes her stroke, or feels not actual calamity or misfortune, she affrights with a black and dismal sight in her left hand; for doubtless, mortals on the highest pinnacle of felicity have a prospect of death, diseases, calamities, perfidious friends, undermining enemies, reverses of fortune, &c., represented by the Ethiopians in her glass. Thus Virgil, with great elegance, describing the battle of Actium, says of Cleopatra, that “she did not yet perceive the two asps behind her;”636 but soon after, which way soever she turned, she saw whole troops of Ethiopians still before her.
Nemesis also wears her crown because of the envious and harmful nature of ordinary people, who generally celebrate, rejoice, and crown her when the fortunate and powerful fall. The javelin in her right hand symbolizes those she has actually struck and pierced. But for those who avoid her strike or don’t experience real calamity or misfortune, she terrifies with a dark and grim sight in her left hand; after all, mortals at the highest peak of happiness still face the prospect of death, illness, misfortune, deceitful friends, treacherous enemies, and reversals of fortune, all represented by the Ethiopians in her glass. Likewise, Virgil elegantly describes the battle of Actium by saying that Cleopatra “did not yet perceive the two asps behind her;” but soon after, no matter where she turned, she saw whole troops of Ethiopians still in front of her.
Lastly, it is significantly added, that Nemesis rides upon a stag, which is a very long-lived creature; for though perhaps some, by an untimely death in youth, may prevent or escape this goddess, yet they who enjoy a long flow of happiness and power, doubtless become subject to her at length, and are brought to yield.
Lastly, it’s important to note that Nemesis rides on a stag, which is a creature that lives a very long time; because while some might avoid or escape this goddess due to an early death in youth, those who experience a long period of happiness and power will surely become subject to her eventually and will be made to submit.
XXIII.—ACHELOUS, OR BATTLE.
EXPLAINED OF WAR BY INVASION.
The ancients relate, that Hercules and Achelous being rivals in the courtship of Deianira, the matter was contested by single combat; when Achelous having transformed himself, as he had power to do, into various shapes, by way of trial; at length, in the form of a fierce wild bull, prepares himself for the fight; but Hercules still retains his human shape, engages sharply with him, and in the issue broke off one of the bull’s horns; and now Achelous, in great pain and fright, to redeem his horn, presents Hercules with the cornucopia.
The ancients tell that Hercules and Achelous, rivals for Deianira's affection, settled their dispute through single combat. Achelous, using his ability to transform into different shapes, eventually took on the form of a fierce wild bull to prepare for the battle. However, Hercules remained in his human form and fought him fiercely, ultimately breaking off one of the bull's horns. In great pain and fear, Achelous offered Hercules the cornucopia in exchange for his lost horn.
Explanation.—This fable relates to military expeditions and preparations; for the preparation of war on the defensive side, here denoted by Achelous, appears in various shapes, whilst the invading side has but one simple form, consisting either in an army, or perhaps a fleet. But the country that expects the invasion is employed infinite ways, in fortifying towns, blockading passes, rivers, and ports, raising soldiers, disposing garrisons, building and breaking down bridges, procuring aids, securing provisions, arms, ammunition, &c. So that there appears a new face of things every day; and at length, when the country is sufficiently fortified and prepared, it represents to the life the form and threats of a fierce fighting bull.
Explanation.—This fable is about military campaigns and the planning involved. The preparation for defense, represented here by Achelous, takes on many different forms, while the attacking side has just one straightforward approach, whether that’s an army or possibly a navy. The country anticipating invasion is busy in countless ways: strengthening towns, blocking routes, rivers, and ports, raising troops, organizing garrisons, building and tearing down bridges, gathering resources, and ensuring food, weapons, ammunition, etc. Every day presents a new situation, and when the country is finally fortified and ready, it resembles a fierce, threatening bull ready to fight.
On the other side, the invader presses on to the fight, fearing to be distressed in an enemy’s country. And if after the battle he remains master of the field, and has now broke, as it were, the horn of his enemy, the besieged, of course, retire inglorious, affrighted, and dismayed, to their stronghold, there endeavoring to secure themselves, and repair their strength; leaving, at the same time, their country a prey to the conqueror, which is well expressed by the Amalthean horn, or cornucopia.
On the other side, the invader keeps pushing into battle, afraid of being trapped in enemy territory. And if, after the fight, he ends up in control of the battlefield and has effectively broken his enemy's power, the defenders, of course, retreat in shame, scared and shaken, to their stronghold, where they try to protect themselves and regain their strength; meanwhile, they leave their homeland vulnerable to the conqueror, which is aptly symbolized by the Amalthean horn, or cornucopia.
XXIV.—DIONYSUS, OR BACCHUS.637
EXPLAINED OF THE PASSIONS.
The fable runs, that Semele, Jupiter’s mistress, having bound him by an inviolable oath to grant her an unknown request, desired he would embrace her in the same form and manner he used to embrace Juno; and the promise being irrevocable, she was burnt to death with lightning in the performance. The embryo, however, was sewed up, and carried in Jupiter’s thigh till the complete time of its birth; but the burden thus rendering the father lame, and causing him pain, the child was thence called Dionysus. When born, he was committed, for some years, to be nursed by Proserpina; and when grown up, appeared with so effeminate a face, that his sex 385seemed somewhat doubtful. He also died, and was buried for a time, but afterwards revived. When a youth, he first introduced the cultivation and dressing of vines, the method of preparing wine, and taught the use thereof; whence becoming famous, he subdued the world, even to the utmost bounds of the Indies. He rode in a chariot drawn by tigers. There danced about him certain deformed demons called Cobali, &c. The Muses also joined in his train. He married Ariadne, who was deserted by Theseus. The ivy was sacred to him. He was also held the inventor and institutor of religious rites and ceremonies, but such as were wild, frantic, and full of corruption and cruelty. He had also the power of striking men with frenzies. Pentheus and Orpheus were torn to pieces by the frantic women at his orgies; the first for climbing a tree to behold their outrageous ceremonies, and the other for the music of his harp. But the acts of this god are much entangled and confounded with those of Jupiter.
The story goes that Semele, Jupiter’s lover, made him swear an unbreakable oath to grant her an unknown wish. She asked him to embrace her in the same way he hugged Juno. Since the promise was binding, she was killed by lightning during the act. However, the unborn child was stitched into Jupiter’s thigh until the time of its birth. This ordeal left the father wounded and in pain, so the child was named Dionysus. After he was born, he was raised by Proserpina for several years. Once he grew up, he appeared with such a delicate face that his gender seemed uncertain. He also died and was buried for a while, but later came back to life. As a young man, he introduced the farming and preparation of grapes for wine and taught its use; as a result, he became famous and conquered the world, reaching even the farthest parts of the Indies. He rode in a chariot pulled by tigers. Deformed spirits called Cobali danced around him, and the Muses also accompanied him. He married Ariadne, who had been abandoned by Theseus. Ivy was sacred to him. He was also considered the creator and initiator of wild, frenzied, and often brutal religious rites and ceremonies. He had the ability to drive people mad. Pentheus and Orpheus were ripped apart by the frenzied women during his festivals; Pentheus for climbing a tree to watch their wild celebrations, and Orpheus for his music. However, the actions of this god are often mixed up and confused with those of Jupiter.
Explanation.—This fable seems to contain a little system of morality, so that there is scarce any better invention in all ethics. Under the history of Bacchus, is drawn the nature of unlawful desire or affection, and disorder; for the appetite and thirst of apparent good is the mother of all unlawful desire, though ever so destructive, and all unlawful desires are conceived in unlawful wishes or requests, rashly indulged or granted before they are well understood386 or considered, and when the affection begins to grow warm, the mother of it (the nature of good) is destroyed and burnt up by the heat. And whilst an unlawful desire lies in the embryo, or unripened in the mind, which is its father, and here represented by Jupiter, it is cherished and concealed, especially in the inferior part of the mind, corresponding to the thigh of the body, where pain twitches and depresses the mind so far as to render its resolutions and actions imperfect and lame. And even after this child of the mind is confirmed, and gains strength by consent and habit, and comes forth into action, it must still be nursed by Proserpina for a time; that is, it skulks and hides its head in a clandestine manner, as it were under ground, till at length, when the checks of shame and fear are removed, and the requisite boldness acquired, it either assumes the pretext of some virtue, or openly despises infamy. And it is justly observed, that every vehement passion appears of a doubtful sex, as having the strength of a man at first, but at last the impotence of a woman. It is also excellently added, that Bacchus died and rose again; for the affections sometimes seem to die and be no more; but there is no trusting them, even though they were buried, being always apt and ready to rise again whenever the occasion or object offers.
Explanation.—This fable has a bit of a moral system, making it one of the best concepts in ethics. Through the story of Bacchus, it illustrates the nature of forbidden desire or affection, as well as chaos; because the craving for something that appears good is the source of all forbidden desires, no matter how destructive they might be. All forbidden desires begin with unrestrained wishes or requests that are carelessly indulged or granted before they are fully understood386 or thought through. As the desire heats up, its origin (the nature of good) is consumed and destroyed by that heat. While a forbidden desire is still developing, or unformed in the mind, which acts like its father—represented here by Jupiter—it is nurtured and kept hidden, particularly in the lower part of the mind, similar to the thigh in the body, where pain can disturb and weaken the mind, making its decisions and actions imperfect and flawed. Even after this mental desire is fully formed and gains strength due to acceptance and habit, and starts to manifest in actions, it still needs time to be nurtured by Proserpina; meaning it sneaks around and hides away, almost like being underground, until eventually, when the shame and fear are gone, and the necessary boldness is found, it either pretends to be virtuous or openly disregards shame. It's been rightly noted that every intense passion seems to have an ambiguous nature, appearing strong like a man at first but ultimately revealing the weakness of a woman. It's also beautifully stated that Bacchus died and came back to life; because affections can seem to fade away and disappear, but they shouldn't be trusted, even when buried, as they are always ready to spring back to life whenever the chance arises.
That Bacchus should be the inventor of wine, carries a fine allegory with it; for every affection is cunning and subtle in discovering a proper matter to nourish and feed it; and of all things known to387 mortals, wine is the most powerful and effectual for exciting and inflaming passions of all kinds, being, indeed, like a common fuel to all.
That Bacchus is the creator of wine carries a great metaphor with it; because every emotion is clever and nuanced in finding a fitting way to nourish and support it. Among all things known to387humans, wine is the most effective and potent for stirring up and intensifying all kinds of feelings, as it truly acts like a universal fuel for everything.
It is again, with great elegance, observed of Bacchus, that he subdued provinces, and undertook endless expeditions, for the affections never rest satisfied with what they enjoy, but with an endless and insatiable appetite thirst after something further. And tigers are prettily feigned to draw the chariot; for as soon as any affection shall, from going on foot, be advanced to ride, it triumphs over reason, and exerts its cruelty, fierceness, and strength against all that oppose it.
It is once again elegantly noted about Bacchus that he conquered territories and embarked on countless journeys, as desires are never fully satisfied with what they have. Instead, they possess an endless and insatiable craving for more. Tigers are beautifully imagined to pull the chariot; for when any desire, moving from walking, is elevated to riding, it overpowers reason and shows its cruelty, fierceness, and strength against anyone who stands in its way.
It is also humorously imagined, that ridiculous demons dance and frisk about this chariot; for every passion produces indecent, disorderly, interchangeable and deformed motions in the eyes, countenance, and gesture, so that the person under the impulse, whether of anger, insult, love, &c., though to himself he may seem grand, lofty, or obliging, yet in the eyes of others appears mean, contemptible, or ridiculous.
It’s also amusingly pictured that silly demons are dancing and jumping around this chariot; because every emotion leads to inappropriate, chaotic, inconsistent, and distorted movements in the eyes, face, and gestures. So, the person who is feeling a strong emotion—whether anger, insult, love, etc.—might think of themselves as grand, important, or generous, but to others, they seem lowly, laughable, or ridiculous.
The Muses also are found in the train of Bacchus, for there is scarce any passion without its art, science, or doctrine to court and flatter it; but in this respect the indulgence of men of genius has greatly detracted from the majesty of the Muses, who ought to be the leaders and conductors of human life, and not the handmaids of the passions.
The Muses are also associated with Bacchus, as there’s hardly any passion that doesn’t have its own art, science, or teaching to seek and flatter it. However, in this way, the indulgence of creative people has really diminished the greatness of the Muses, who should be the guides and directors of human life, not just the servants of our passions.
The allegory of Bacchus falling in love with a cast mistress, is extremely noble; for it is certain388 that the affections always court and covet what has been rejected upon experience. And all those who by serving and indulging their passions immensely raise the value of enjoyment, should know, that whatever they covet and pursue, whether riches, pleasure, glory, learning, or anything else, they only pursue those things that have been forsaken and cast off with contempt by great numbers in all ages, after possession and experience.
The story of Bacchus falling for a cast-off mistress is quite profound; it's clear388 that feelings often seek and desire what has been turned away after experience. Those who indulge their passions and greatly enhance the value of enjoyment should recognize that whatever they chase—whether it's wealth, pleasure, fame, knowledge, or anything else—they are simply pursuing things that many have discarded and rejected with disdain throughout history, after having experienced them.
Nor is it without a mystery that the ivy was sacred to Bacchus, and this for two reasons: first, because ivy is an evergreen, or flourishes in the winter; and secondly, because it winds and creeps about so many things, as trees, walls, and buildings, and raises itself above them. As to the first, every passion grows fresh, strong, and vigorous by opposition and prohibition, as it were by a kind of contrast or antiperistasis, like the ivy in the winter. And for the second, the predominant passion of the mind throws itself, like the ivy, round all human actions, entwines all our resolutions, and perpetually adheres to, and mixes itself among, or even overtops them.
It’s no coincidence that ivy was sacred to Bacchus for two reasons. First, ivy is an evergreen, thriving even in the winter. Second, it wraps around and climbs many things, like trees, walls, and buildings, and grows above them. Regarding the first point, every passion becomes fresh, strong, and vigorous through opposition and restriction, almost like a contrast or a kind of antiperistasis, similar to the way ivy thrives in the winter. As for the second point, the dominant passion of the mind envelops everything we do, just like ivy, intertwines with all our decisions, and continually sticks to and mingles with, or even surpasses, them.
And no wonder that superstitious rites and ceremonies are attributed to Bacchus, when almost every ungovernable passion grows wanton and luxuriant in corrupt religions; nor again, that fury and frenzy should be sent and dealt out by him, because every passion is a short frenzy, and if it be vehement, lasting, and take deep root, it terminates in mad389ness. And hence the allegory of Pentheus and Orpheus being torn to pieces is evident; for every headstrong passion is extremely bitter, severe, inveterate, and revengeful upon all curious inquiry, wholesome admonition, free counsel, and persuasion.
And it's no surprise that superstitious rituals and ceremonies are connected to Bacchus, since nearly every uncontrollable passion becomes indulgent and excessive in corrupt religions. It's also clear why he is associated with rage and madness; every passion is a brief episode of frenzy, and if it's intense, long-lasting, and deeply rooted, it leads to insanity. This explains the symbolism of Pentheus and Orpheus being ripped apart; every stubborn passion is intensely harsh, severe, entrenched, and vengeful against any probing inquiry, helpful advice, open counsel, and persuasion.
Lastly; the confusion between the persons of Jupiter and Bacchus will justly admit of an allegory, because noble and meritorious actions may sometimes proceed from virtue, sound reason, and magnanimity, and sometimes again from a concealed passion and secret desire of ill, however they may be extolled and praised, insomuch that it is not easy to distinguish betwixt the acts of Bacchus and the acts of Jupiter.
Lastly, the mix-up between the figures of Jupiter and Bacchus can rightly be seen as an allegory because great and admirable actions can sometimes come from virtue, good reasoning, and nobility, and other times from hidden passions and secret desires for wrongdoing, no matter how much they are praised. This makes it difficult to tell the actions of Bacchus apart from those of Jupiter.
XXV.—ATALANTA AND HIPPOMENES,
OR GAIN.
EXPLAINED OF THE CONTEST BETWIXT ART AND NATURE.
Atalanta, who was exceedingly fleet, contended with Hippomenes in the course, on condition that, if Hippomenes won, he should espouse her, or forfeit his life if he lost. The match was very unequal, for Atalanta had conquered numbers, to their destruction. Hippomenes, therefore, had recourse to stratagem. He procured three golden apples, and purposely carried them with him; they started; Atalanta outstripped him soon; then Hippomenes bowled one of his apples before her, across the390 course, in order not only to make her stoop, but to draw her out of the path. She, prompted by female curiosity, and the beauty of the golden fruit, starts from the course to take up the apple. Hippomenes, in the mean time, holds on his way, and steps before her; but she, by her natural swiftness, soon fetches up her lost ground, and leaves him again behind. Hippomenes, however, by rightly timing his second and third throw, at length won the race, not by his swiftness, but his cunning.
Atalanta, incredibly fast, raced against Hippomenes with the condition that if Hippomenes won, he would marry her, but if he lost, he would lose his life. The competition was quite unfair, as Atalanta had defeated many before, leading them to their doom. So, Hippomenes decided to be clever. He got three golden apples and brought them along; once they started, Atalanta quickly pulled ahead. Then, Hippomenes rolled one of his apples in front of her, across the390 track, not only to make her bend down but to lure her off course. Curious and tempted by the beauty of the golden apple, she stepped off the path to pick it up. Meanwhile, Hippomenes kept running ahead, but Atalanta, naturally fast, soon caught up and left him behind again. However, by timing his second and third throws perfectly, Hippomenes ultimately won the race, not through speed, but through his cleverness.
Explanation.—This fable seems to contain a noble allegory of the contest betwixt art and nature. For art, here denoted by Atalanta, is much swifter, or more expeditious in its operations than nature, when all obstacles and impediments are removed, and sooner arrives at its end. This appears almost in every instance. Thus, fruit comes slowly from the kernel, but soon by inoculation or incision; clay, left to itself, is a long time in acquiring a stony hardness, but is presently burnt by fire into brick. So again, in human life, nature is a long while in alleviating and abolishing the remembrance of pain, and assuaging the troubles of the mind; but moral philosophy, which is the art of living, performs it presently. Yet this prerogative and singular efficacy of art is stopped and retarded to the infinite detriment of human life, by certain golden apples; for there is no one science or art that constantly holds on its true and proper course to the end, but391 they are all continually stopping short, forsaking the track, and turning aside to profit and convenience, exactly like Atalanta.638 Whence it is no wonder that art gets not the victory over nature, nor, according to the condition of the contest, brings her under subjection; but, on the contrary, remains subject to her, as a wife to a husband.639
Explanation.—This fable seems to represent a meaningful comparison between art and nature. Here, art is symbolized by Atalanta, who is much faster and more efficient in her actions than nature, especially when there are no obstacles in the way, and reaches her goals quicker. This is evident in many situations. For example, fruit grows slowly from a seed, but it can rapidly be produced through grafting or cutting. Similarly, clay takes a long time to harden naturally, but it can quickly be transformed into brick when fired. In human life, nature takes time to ease and erase the memory of pain and soothe the mind's troubles; however, moral philosophy, which teaches us how to live, accomplishes this quickly. Yet, this unique ability of art is hindered and delayed by certain temptations, represented by golden apples. No art or science consistently follows its true course to the end; instead, they frequently stop, stray off path, and divert toward personal gain, much like Atalanta. Therefore, it’s not surprising that art does not triumph over nature and, according to the rules of their competition, cannot subdue her but, instead, remains subservient to her, just like a wife to her husband.639
XXVI.—PROMETHEUS, OR THE STATE
OF MAN.
EXPLAINED OF AN OVERRULING PROVIDENCE, AND OF
HUMAN NATURE.
The ancients relate that man was the work of Prometheus, and formed of clay; only the artificer mixed in with the mass, particles taken from different animals. And being desirous to improve his workmanship, and endow, as well as create, the human race, he stole up to heaven with a bundle of birch-rods, and kindling them at the chariot of 392the Sun, thence brought down fire to the earth for the service of men.
The ancients tell us that Prometheus created man from clay; he mixed in parts from different animals. Wanting to enhance his creation and provide for the human race, he stealthily ascended to heaven with a bundle of birch rods, ignited them using the chariot of 392 the Sun, and brought fire back to earth to serve humanity.
They add that, for this meritorious act, Prometheus was repayed with ingratitude by mankind, so that, forming a conspiracy, they arraigned both him and his invention before Jupiter. But the matter was otherwise received than they imagined; for the accusation proved extremely grateful to Jupiter and the gods, insomuch that, delighted with the action, they not only indulged mankind the use of fire, but moreover conferred upon them a most acceptable and desirable present, viz: perpetual youth.
They note that, for this noble act, Prometheus was met with ingratitude from humanity, leading them to conspire and put both him and his gift on trial before Jupiter. However, the situation didn't unfold as they expected; the accusation actually pleased Jupiter and the gods so much that, thrilled with the action, they not only allowed humanity to keep using fire, but also granted them a highly coveted gift: eternal youth.
But men, foolishly overjoyed hereat, laid this present of the gods upon an ass, who, in returning back with it, being extremely thirsty, strayed to a fountain. The serpent, who was guardian thereof, would not suffer him to drink, but upon condition of receiving the burden he carried, whatever it should be. The silly ass complied, and thus the perpetual renewal of youth was, for a drop of water, transferred from men to the race of serpents.
But the men, foolishly happy about this, put the gift of the gods on a donkey, who, on his way back and very thirsty, wandered over to a fountain. The snake, who was the guardian of the fountain, wouldn't let him drink unless he handed over whatever he was carrying. The foolish donkey agreed, and so the endless renewal of youth was, for just a drop of water, passed from humans to the serpents.
Prometheus, not desisting from his unwarrantable practices, though now reconciled to mankind, after they were thus tricked of their present, but still continuing inveterate against Jupiter, had the boldness to attempt deceit, even in a sacrifice, and is said to have once offered up two bulls to Jupiter, but so as in the hide of one of them to wrap all the flesh and fat of both, and stuffing out the other hide393 only with the bones; then, in a religious and devout manner, gave Jupiter his choice of the two. Jupiter, detesting this sly fraud and hypocrisy, but having thus an opportunity of punishing the offender, purposely chose the mock bull.
Prometheus, still refusing to give up his questionable actions, even after making peace with humanity, remained relentless in his opposition to Jupiter. He had the audacity to try to pull a fast one, even during a sacrifice. It’s said that he once presented two bulls to Jupiter, but he cleverly wrapped all the meat and fat from both bulls in the hide of one, and stuffed the other hide only with bones. Then, in a respectful manner, he let Jupiter choose between the two. Jupiter, disgusted by this deceitful trickery and hypocrisy, seized the chance to punish Prometheus by purposely selecting the fake bull.
And now giving way to revenge, but finding he could not chastise the insolence of Prometheus without afflicting the human race (in the production whereof Prometheus had strangely and insufferably prided himself), he commanded Vulcan to form a beautiful and graceful woman, to whom every god presented a certain gift, whence she was called Pandora.640 They put into her hands an elegant box, containing all sorts of miseries and misfortunes; but Hope was placed at the bottom of it. With this box she first goes to Prometheus, to try if she could prevail upon him to receive and open it; but he being upon his guard, warily refused the offer. Upon this refusal, she comes to his brother Epimetheus, a man of a very different temper, who rashly and inconsiderately opens the box. When finding all kinds of miseries and misfortunes issued out of it, he grew wise too late, and with great hurry and struggle endeavored to clap the cover on again; but with all his endeavor could scarce keep in Hope, which lay at the bottom.
And now seeking revenge, but realizing he couldn't punish Prometheus's arrogance without hurting humanity (which Prometheus had strangely and unbearably taken pride in creating), he ordered Vulcan to make a beautiful and graceful woman, to whom every god contributed a gift, leading her to be called Pandora.640 They placed an elegant box in her hands, filled with all kinds of misery and misfortune; however, Hope was kept at the bottom. She first approached Prometheus, trying to persuade him to accept and open it, but he, being cautious, wisely declined the offer. Following this refusal, she went to his brother Epimetheus, who had a very different personality and foolishly opened the box. Once he saw all the miseries and misfortunes spilling out, he realized his mistake too late and hastily tried to close it again; yet despite all his efforts, he could barely keep Hope, which was at the bottom, from escaping.
Lastly, Jupiter arraigned Prometheus of many heinous crimes; as that he formerly stole fire from heaven; that he contemptuously and deceitfully 394mocked him by a sacrifice of bones; that he despised his present,641 adding withal a new crime, that he attempted to ravish Pallas; for all which, he was sentenced to be bound in chains, and doomed to perpetual torments. Accordingly, by Jupiter’s command, he was brought to Mount Caucasus, and there fastened to a pillar, so firmly that he could no way stir. A vulture or eagle stood by him, which in the daytime gnawed and consumed his liver; but in the night the wasted parts were supplied again; whence matter for his pain was never wanting.
Lastly, Jupiter charged Prometheus with many serious crimes; that he had previously stolen fire from heaven; that he arrogantly and deceitfully mocked him with a sacrifice of bones; that he disregarded his gift, adding yet another crime, that he tried to assault Pallas; for all these, he was sentenced to be chained up and condemned to eternal torment. Following Jupiter’s orders, he was taken to Mount Caucasus and there secured to a pillar, unable to move at all. A vulture or eagle was at his side, which during the day tore and devoured his liver; but at night, the damaged parts were regenerated, ensuring he always had something to suffer.
They relate, however, that his punishment had an end; for Hercules sailing the ocean, in a cup, or pitcher, presented him by the Sun, came at length to Caucasus, shot the eagle with his arrows, and set Prometheus free. In certain nations, also, there were instituted particular games of the torch, to the honor of Prometheus, in which they who ran for the prize carried lighted torches; and as any one of these torches happened to go out, the bearer withdrew himself, and gave way to the next; and that person was allowed to win the prize, who first brought in his lighted torch to the goal.
They say that his punishment eventually ended; Hercules, sailing the ocean in a cup or pitcher given to him by the Sun, finally reached Caucasus, shot the eagle with his arrows, and freed Prometheus. In some cultures, special torch games were held in Prometheus’s honor, where the participants ran for a prize while carrying lit torches. If anyone's torch went out, they had to step aside for the next contestant, and the winner was the one who first brought their lit torch to the finish line.
Explanation.—This fable contains and enforces many just and serious considerations; some whereof have been long since well observed, but some again remain perfectly untouched. Prometheus clearly and expressly signifies Providence; for of all the things 395in nature, the formation and endowment of man was singled out by the ancients, and esteemed the peculiar work of Providence. The reason hereof seems, 1. That the nature of man includes a mind and understanding, which is the seat of Providence. 2. That it is harsh and incredible to suppose reason and mind should be raised, and drawn out of senseless and irrational principles; whence it becomes almost inevitable, that providence is implanted in the human mind in conformity with, and by the direction and the design of the greater overruling Providence. But, 3. The principal cause is this: that man seems to be the thing in which the whole world centres, with respect to final causes; so that if he were away, all other things would stray and fluctuate, without end or intention, or become perfectly disjointed, and out of frame; for all things are made subservient to man, and he receives use and benefit from them all. Thus the revolutions, places, and periods, of the celestial bodies, serve him for distinguishing times and seasons, and for dividing the world into different regions; the meteors afford him prognostications of the weather; the winds sail our ships, drive our mills, and move our machines; and the vegetables and animals of all kinds either afford us matter for houses and habitations, clothing, food, physic; or tend to ease, or delight, to support, or refresh us so that everything in nature seems not made for itself, but for man.
Explanation.—This fable presents and emphasizes many important and serious thoughts; some of these have been acknowledged for a long time, while others remain completely unexplored. Prometheus clearly represents Providence; among all the things in nature, the creation and endowment of humanity was highlighted by the ancients as a unique act of Providence. The reasons for this seem to be: 1. That human nature includes a mind and understanding, which reflects the essence of Providence. 2. That it is harsh and unbelievable to think that reason and intellect could emerge from mindless and irrational principles; therefore, it’s almost unavoidable that Providence is embedded in the human mind in line with, and under the guidance of, a greater overarching Providence. But, 3. The main reason is this: humanity appears to be the focal point of the entire world in relation to ultimate purposes; if humanity did not exist, everything else would drift aimlessly, without purpose or direction, or would become completely disordered and chaotic; for all things are made to serve humanity, and we gain use and benefit from them all. Thus, the movements, locations, and cycles of celestial bodies help us distinguish time and seasons and divide the world into different regions; meteorological phenomena provide us with weather forecasts; winds propel our ships, power our mills, and operate our machines; and the various plants and animals provide us with materials for shelter, clothing, food, medicine, or contribute to our comfort, joy, support, or rejuvenation, so that everything in nature seems designed not for itself, but for humanity.
And it is not without reason added, that the mass of matter whereof man was formed, should be mixed up with particles taken from different animals, and wrought in with the clay, because it is certain, that of all things in the universe, man is the most compounded and recompounded body; so that the ancients, not improperly, styled him a Microcosm, or little world within himself. For although the chemists have absurdly, and too literally, wrested and perverted the elegance of the term microcosm, whilst they pretend to find all kind of mineral and vegetable matters, or something corresponding to them, in man, yet it remains firm and unshaken, that the human body is, of all substances, the most mixed and organical; whence it has surprising powers and faculties; for the powers of simple bodies are but few, though certain and quick; as being little broken, or weakened, and not counterbalanced by mixture; but excellence and quantity of energy reside in mixture and composition.
And it's not without reason to say that the mass of matter from which humans were created is mixed with particles taken from different animals and blended with clay. This is because, of all things in the universe, humans are the most complex and recombined beings; thus, the ancients aptly referred to us as a Microcosm, or a little world within ourselves. Although chemists have mistakenly and too literally distorted the beauty of the term microcosm, claiming to find all kinds of minerals and plant materials, or something that corresponds to them, within humans, it remains true and unchallenged that the human body is the most mixed and organic of all substances. This leads to astonishing powers and abilities; for the powers of simple substances are few, though certain and quick, as they are less broken down or weakened and not balanced out by mixtures. However, excellence and a greater capacity for energy lie in mixture and composition.
Man, however, in his first origin, seems to be a defenceless, naked creature, slow in assisting himself, and standing in need of numerous things. Prometheus, therefore, hastened to the invention of fire, which supplies and administers to nearly all human uses and necessities, insomuch that, if the soul may be called the form of forms, if the hand may be called the instrument of instruments, fire may, as properly, be called the assistant of assistants, or the helper of helps; for hence proceed numberless opera397tions, hence all the mechanic arts, and hence infinite assistances are afforded to the sciences themselves.
Humans, in their early existence, appear to be defenseless, vulnerable beings, slow to help themselves, and reliant on many things. Prometheus quickly invented fire, which provides for almost all human needs and uses. If we can call the soul the essence of essences, and the hand the tool of tools, then fire can just as rightly be called the helper of helpers, or the assistant of assistants. From it come countless actions, all the mechanical arts, and endless support for the sciences themselves.397
The manner wherein Prometheus stole this fire is properly described from the nature of the thing; he being said to have done it by applying a rod of birch to the chariot of the Sun; for birch is used in striking and beating, which clearly denotes the generation of fire to be from the violent percussions and collisions of bodies; whereby the matters struck are subtilized, rarefied, put into motion, and so prepared to receive the heat of the celestial bodies; whence they, in a clandestine and secret manner, collect and snatch fire, as it were by stealth, from the chariot of the Sun.
The way Prometheus stole fire is clearly explained by the nature of the act; he is said to have done it by using a birch rod on the Sun's chariot. Birch is known for striking and beating, which clearly suggests that fire is generated from the forceful blows and collisions of objects. As a result, the materials struck are refined, thinned out, put into motion, and prepared to absorb the heat from celestial bodies. Thus, they secretly gather and steal fire from the Sun's chariot, almost like a theft.
The next is a remarkable part of the fable, which represents that men, instead of gratitude and thanks, fell into indignation and expostulation, accusing both Prometheus and his fire to Jupiter,—and yet the accusation proved highly pleasing to Jupiter; so that he, for this reason, crowned these benefits of mankind with a new bounty. Here it may seem strange that the sin of ingratitude to a creator and benefactor, a sin so heinous as to include almost all others, should meet with approbation and reward. But the allegory has another view, and denotes, that the accusation and arraignment, both of human nature and human art among mankind, proceeds from a most noble and laudable temper of the mind, and tends to a very good purpose; whereas the contrary temper is odious to the gods, and unbeneficial in itself. For they who398 break into extravagant praises of human nature, and the arts in vogue, and who lay themselves out in admiring the things they already possess, and will needs have the sciences cultivated among them, to be thought absolutely perfect and complete, in the first place, show little regard to the divine nature, whilst they extol their own inventions almost as high as his perfection. In the next place, men of this temper are unserviceable and prejudicial in life, whilst they imagine themselves already got to the top of things, and there rest, without further inquiry. On the contrary, they who arraign and accuse both nature and art, and are always full of complaints against them, not only preserve a more just and modest sense of mind, but are also perpetually stirred up to fresh industry and new discoveries. Is not, then, the ignorance and fatality of mankind to be extremely pitied, whilst they remain slaves to the arrogance of a few of their own fellows, and are dotingly fond of that scrap of Grecian knowledge, the Peripatetic philosophy; and this to such a degree, as not only to think all accusation or arraignment thereof useless, but even hold it suspect and dangerous? Certainly the procedure of Empedocles, though furious—but especially that of Democritus (who with great modesty complained that all things were abstruse; that we know nothing; that truth lies hid in deep pits; that falsehood is strangely joined and twisted along with truth, &c.)—is to be preferred before the confident, assuming, and dogmatical school of Aristotle. Man399kind are, therefore, to be admonished, that the arraignment of nature and of art is pleasing to the gods; and that a sharp and vehement accusation of Prometheus, though a creator, a founder, and a master, obtained new blessings and presents from the divine bounty, and proved more sound and serviceable than a diffusive harangue of praise and gratulation. And let men be assured that the fond opinion that they have already acquired enough, is a principal reason why they have acquired so little.
The next part of the fable is really remarkable, showing how people, instead of being grateful and saying thank you, became angry and protested, blaming both Prometheus and his fire to Jupiter. Yet, this accusation actually pleased Jupiter so much that he rewarded humanity with even more gifts. It might seem strange that the sin of being ungrateful to a creator and benefactor—a sin so serious it encompasses almost all others—would be met with approval and rewards. However, the allegory has a different perspective. It suggests that criticizing both human nature and human skill comes from a noble and commendable mindset, aiming for a good purpose, while the opposite attitude is disliked by the gods and ultimately unhelpful. Those who indulge in excessive praise of human nature and current arts, and who immerse themselves in admiring what they already have, insisting that the sciences they practice are absolutely perfect, show little respect for the divine. They often raise their own creations almost as high as divine perfection. Furthermore, people with this mindset are unproductive and detrimental in life, thinking they’ve already reached the peak and don't seek further understanding. In contrast, those who question and criticize both nature and art—who are constantly full of complaints about them—maintain a more balanced and humble mindset, and are continually driven to new efforts and discoveries. Isn't it truly sad that mankind remains enslaved to the arrogance of a few of their own, passionately clinging to that limited Grecian knowledge, Peripatetic philosophy, to the point of considering any criticism of it pointless, or even suspect and dangerous? Certainly, the actions of Empedocles, though intense, especially those of Democritus (who humbly recognized that everything is obscure, that we know nothing, that truth is buried deep, and that falsehood is intricately mixed with truth) should be preferred over the confident, prescriptive, and dogmatic teachings of Aristotle. Humanity should be reminded that questioning nature and art is pleasing to the gods, and that a sharp and intense criticism of Prometheus—despite him being a creator, founder, and master—gained more blessings and gifts from divine generosity than a lengthy speech of praise and gratitude. People should understand that the misguided belief that they have enough knowledge is a major reason for their lack of advancement.
That the perpetual flower of youth should be the present which mankind received as a reward for their accusation, carries this moral; that the ancients seem not to have despaired of discovering methods, and remedies, for retarding old age, and prolonging the period of human life; but rather reckoned it among those things which, through sloth and want of diligent inquiry, perish and come to nothing, after having been once undertaken, than among such as are absolutely impossible, or placed beyond the reach of the human power. For they signify and intimate from the true use of fire, and the just and strenuous accusation and conviction of the errors of art, that the divine bounty is not wanting to men in such kind of presents, but that men indeed are wanting to themselves, and lay such an inestimable gift upon the back of a slow-paced ass; that is, upon the back of the heavy, dull, lingering thing, experience; from whose sluggish and tortoise-pace proceeds that ancient complaint of the shortness of life, and the slow400 advancement of arts. And certainly it may well seem, that the two faculties of reasoning and experience are not hitherto properly joined and coupled together, but to be still new gifts of the gods, separately laid, the one upon the back of a light bird, or abstract philosophy, and the other upon an ass, or slow-paced practice and trial. And yet good hopes might be conceived of this ass, if it were not for his thirst and the accidents of the way. For we judge, that if any one would constantly proceed, by a certain law and method, in the road of experience, and not by the way thirst after such experiments as make for profit or ostentation, nor exchange his burden, or quit the original design for the sake of these, he might be an useful bearer of a new and accumulated divine bounty to mankind.
That the everlasting flower of youth should be the gift humanity received as a reward for their criticism carries this lesson: the ancients did not seem to have given up on finding ways and solutions to slow down aging and extend human life. Instead, they viewed it as one of those things that, due to laziness and lack of careful exploration, fade away after being initially attempted, rather than something that is completely impossible or beyond human ability. They indicate that through the proper use of fire and the honest and rigorous examination of the mistakes in art, divine generosity is not lacking toward people in these kinds of gifts, but that people are actually lacking in taking advantage of them. They place this invaluable gift on the slow back of an overloaded donkey; that is, upon the burdensome and sluggish entity of experience, from which arises that age-old complaint about the brevity of life and the slow progress of arts. It certainly appears that the two faculties of reasoning and experience have not yet been properly connected, but are still viewed as new gifts from the gods, each placed separately: one on the back of a nimble bird, or abstract philosophy, and the other on a donkey, or slow-paced practice and experimentation. Yet, there is still hope for this donkey, if only it weren't for its thirst and the obstacles along the way. We believe that if someone consistently followed a certain law and method in the journey of experience, and did not seek out experiments aimed solely at profit or showiness, nor abandon the original purpose for these pursuits, they could be a valuable carrier of a new and accumulated divine gift to humanity.
That this gift of perpetual youth should pass from men to serpents, seems added by way of ornament, and illustration to the fable; perhaps intimating, at the same time, the shame it is for men, that they, with their fire, and numerous arts, cannot procure to themselves those things which nature has bestowed upon many other creatures.
That this gift of eternal youth should be given to snakes instead of humans seems like a decorative touch to the story; it might also suggest, at the same time, how shameful it is for humans that, with their technology and various skills, they can't achieve what nature has freely given to many other creatures.
The sudden reconciliation of Prometheus to mankind, after being disappointed of their hopes, contains a prudent and useful admonition. It points out the levity and temerity of men in new experiments, when, not presently succeeding, or answering to expectation, they precipitantly quit their new undertakings, hurry back to their old ones, and grow reconciled thereto.
The sudden reconciliation of Prometheus to humanity, after being let down by their hopes, offers a wise and valuable reminder. It highlights the superficiality and rashness of people in new endeavors when they, not immediately succeeding or meeting expectations, hastily abandon their new pursuits, rush back to their old ones, and become comfortable with them again.
After the fable has described the state of man, with regard to arts and intellectual matters, it passes on to religion; for after the inventing and settling of arts, follows the establishment of divine worship, which hypocrisy presently enters into and corrupts. So that by the two sacrifices we have elegantly painted the person of a man truly religious, and of an hypocrite. One of these sacrifices contained the fat, or the portion of God, used for burning and incensing; thereby denoting affection and zeal, offered up to his glory. It likewise contained the bowels, which are expressive of charity, along with the good and useful flesh. But the other contained nothing more than dry bones, which nevertheless stuffed out the hide, so as to make it resemble a fair, beautiful, and magnificent sacrifice; hereby finely denoting the external and empty rites and barren ceremonies, wherewith men burden and stuff out the divine worship,—things rather intended for show and ostentation than conducing to piety. Nor are mankind simply content with this mock-worship of God, but also impose and further it upon him, as if he had chosen and ordained it. Certainly the prophet, in the person of God, has a fine expostulation, as to this matter of choice: “Is this the fasting which I have chosen, that a man should afflict his soul for a day, and bow down his head like a bulrush?”
After the fable talks about humanity's condition regarding arts and knowledge, it shifts to religion; because once arts are invented and established, so comes the formation of divine worship, which is quickly infiltrated and corrupted by hypocrisy. With these two sacrifices, we skillfully portray the true religious person and the hypocrite. One of these sacrifices included the fat, or the portion for God, meant for burning and incense; this symbolizes affection and zeal offered to his glory. It also contained the entrails, representing charity, along with good and useful meat. But the other contained nothing but dry bones, which merely filled out the skin to make it look like a beautiful and impressive sacrifice; this illustrates the empty and superficial rituals and barren ceremonies that people use to burden and embellish divine worship—things designed more for appearance than for true devotion. Furthermore, humanity is not satisfied with this false worship of God, but also impose and promote it as if He has chosen and mandated it. Indeed, the prophet, speaking as God, has a powerful statement regarding this matter of choice: “Is this the fasting which I have chosen, that a man should afflict his soul for a day, and bow down his head like a bulrush?”
After thus touching the state of religion, the fable next turns to manners, and the conditions of human life. And though it be a very common, yet is it a402 just interpretation, that Pandora denotes the pleasures and licentiousness which the cultivation and luxury of the arts of civil life introduce, as it were, by the instrumental efficacy of fire; whence the works of the voluptuary arts are properly attributed to Vulcan, the God of Fire. And hence infinite miseries and calamities have proceeded to the minds, the bodies, and the fortunes of men, together with a late repentance; and this not in each man’s particular, but also in kingdoms and states; for wars, and tumults, and tyrannies, have all arisen from this same fountain, or box of Pandora.
After discussing the state of religion, the fable shifts to manners and the realities of human life. While it’s a common interpretation, it’s a valid one that Pandora symbolizes the pleasures and excesses that come with the growth and luxury of civilized life, as if through the power of fire. This is why the works of indulgent arts are attributed to Vulcan, the God of Fire. Consequently, countless miseries and disasters have resulted for people’s minds, bodies, and fortunes, often leading to regret. This is not just for individuals, but also for entire nations and states; wars, chaos, and tyranny have all originated from this same source, or Pandora’s box.
It is worth observing, how beautifully and elegantly the fable has drawn two reigning characters in human life, and given two examples, or tablatures of them, under the persons of Prometheus and Epimetheus. The followers of Epimetheus are improvident, see not far before them, and prefer such things as are agreeable for the present; whence they are oppressed with numerous straits, difficulties, and calamities, with which they almost continually struggle; but in the mean time gratify their own temper, and, for want of a better knowledge of things, feed their minds with many vain hopes; and as with so many pleasing dreams, delight themselves, and sweeten the miseries of life.
It's interesting to see how beautifully and elegantly the fable portrays two major figures in human life, represented by Prometheus and Epimetheus. The followers of Epimetheus are shortsighted, focused only on immediate pleasures, which leads them to face many struggles, challenges, and hardships that they constantly deal with. However, they indulge their own whims, and, lacking a better understanding of things, fill their minds with many unrealistic hopes. Like having pleasant dreams, they find joy and comfort in these illusions, softening the harshness of life.
But the followers of Prometheus are the prudent, wary men, that look into futurity, and cautiously guard against, prevent, and undermine many calamities and misfortunes. But this watchful, provident403 temper, is attended with a deprivation of numerous pleasures, and the loss of various delights, whilst such men debar themselves the use even of innocent things, and what is still worse, rack and torture themselves with cares, fears, and disquiets; being bound fast to the pillar of necessity, and tormented with numberless thoughts (which for their swiftness are well compared to an eagle), that continually wound, tear, and gnaw their liver or mind, unless, perhaps, they find some small remission by intervals, or as it were at nights; but then new anxieties, dreads, and fears, soon return again, as it were in the morning. And, therefore, very few men, of either temper, have secured to themselves the advantages of providence, and kept clear of disquiets, troubles, and misfortunes.
But the followers of Prometheus are the careful, cautious people who think about the future and take steps to avoid or lessen many disasters and hardships. However, this vigilant and prudent mindset comes with the cost of missing out on many joys and pleasures, as these individuals deny themselves even harmless things. What's worse, they torment themselves with worries, fears, and anxieties; they are tethered tightly to the demands of necessity and plagued by endless thoughts (which, due to their speed, are aptly compared to an eagle) that continually hurt, distress, and gnaw at their hearts or minds, unless they happen to find brief relief, maybe during the night. But then new worries, fears, and anxieties quickly resurface in the morning. Consequently, very few people, of either temperament, have managed to reap the benefits of careful planning while avoiding distress, troubles, and misfortune.
Nor indeed can any man obtain this end without the assistance of Hercules; that is, of such fortitude and constancy of mind as stands prepared against every event, and remains indifferent to every change; looking forward without being daunted, enjoying the good without disdain, and enduring the bad without impatience. And it must be observed, that even Prometheus had not the power to free himself, but owed his deliverance to another; for no natural inbred force and fortitude could prove equal to such a task. The power of releasing him came from the utmost confines of the ocean, and from the sun; that is, from Apollo, or knowledge; and again, from a due consideration of the uncertainty, instability,404 and fluctuating state of human life, which is aptly represented by sailing the ocean. Accordingly, Virgil has prudently joined these two together, accounting him happy who knows the causes of things, and has conquered all his fears, apprehensions, and superstitions.642
No one can achieve this goal without the help of Hercules; that is, without the strength and steadiness of mind that prepares for any situation and stays calm through changes; looking ahead without being afraid, enjoying the good without scorn, and enduring the bad without impatience. It's important to note that even Prometheus couldn't free himself and relied on someone else for his rescue; no inherent strength could handle such a challenge. His release came from the farthest reaches of the ocean and the sun; that is, from Apollo or knowledge; and also from a clear understanding of the unpredictability, instability, and ever-changing nature of human life, which is well illustrated by sailing the ocean. Therefore, Virgil wisely connects these two ideas, recognizing as fortunate those who understand the reasons behind things and have overcome all their fears, anxieties, and superstitions.404
It is added, with great elegance, for supporting and confirming the human mind, that the great hero who thus delivered him sailed the ocean in a cup, or pitcher, to prevent fear, or complaint; as if, through the narrowness of our nature, or a too great fragility thereof, we were absolutely incapable of that fortitude and constancy to which Seneca finely alludes, when he says: “It is a noble thing, at once to participate in the frailty of man and the security of a god.”
It’s also elegantly pointed out to support and reassure the human mind that the great hero who saved him sailed across the ocean in a cup or pitcher to avoid fear or complaints; as if, due to our limited nature or its fragility, we are completely incapable of the strength and perseverance that Seneca beautifully refers to when he says: “It is a noble thing to share both the weakness of humanity and the strength of a god.”
We have hitherto, that we might not break the connection of things, designedly omitted the last crime of Prometheus—that of attempting the chastity of Minerva—which heinous offence it doubtless was, that caused the punishment of having his liver gnawed by the vulture. The meaning seems to be this,—that when men are puffed up with arts and knowledge, they often try to subdue even the divine wisdom and bring it under the dominion of sense and reason, whence inevitably follows a per405petual and restless rending and tearing of the mind. A sober and humble distinction must, therefore, be made betwixt divine and human things, and betwixt the oracles of sense and faith, unless mankind had rather choose an heretical religion, and a fictitious and romantic philosophy.643
We have so far, to avoid disrupting the connection of things, deliberately left out Prometheus's final crime—his attempt to violate Minerva's chastity—which was undoubtedly a grave offense that led to his punishment of having his liver eaten by a vulture. The implication seems to be that when people become arrogant with their arts and knowledge, they often attempt to overpower even divine wisdom, trying to bring it under the control of their senses and reason. This inevitably results in a continual and restless tearing of the mind. Therefore, a clear and humble distinction must be made between divine and human matters, as well as between the insights of the senses and those of faith, unless humanity prefers a heretical religion and a fabricated, romantic philosophy.643
The last particular in the fable is the Games of the Torch, instituted to Prometheus, which again relates to arts and sciences, as well as the invention of fire, for the commemoration and celebration whereof these games were held. And here we have an extremely prudent admonition, directing us to expect the perfection of the sciences from succession, and not from the swiftness and abilities of any single person; for he who is fleetest and strongest in the course may perhaps be less fit to keep his torch alight, since there is danger of its going out from too rapid as well as from too slow a motion.644 But this kind of contest, with the torch, seems to have been long dropped and neglected; the sciences appearing to have flourished principally in their first authors, as Aristotle, Galen, Euclid, Ptolemy, &c.; whilst 406their successors have done very little, or scarce made any attempts. But it were highly to be wished that these games might be renewed, to the honor of Prometheus, or human nature, and that they might excite contest, emulation, and laudable endeavors, and the design meet with such success as not to hang tottering, tremulous, and hazarded, upon the torch of any single person. Mankind, therefore, should be admonished to rouse themselves, and try and exert their own strength and chance, and not place all their dependence upon a few men, whose abilities and capacities, perhaps, are not greater than their own.
The last detail in the fable is the Torch Games, established in honor of Prometheus, which relates to arts and sciences, as well as the creation of fire, for which these games were held as a way to remember and celebrate. Here we receive a very wise reminder, encouraging us to expect the advancement of knowledge from succession, rather than from the speed and abilities of any one individual; because the one who is fastest and strongest in the race may actually be less capable of keeping their torch lit, as it can go out from both moving too quickly and too slowly. But this type of contest, with the torch, seems to have been long forgotten and neglected; the sciences seem to have thrived mainly through their original authors, like Aristotle, Galen, Euclid, Ptolemy, etc., while their successors have contributed very little or barely made any attempts. It would be greatly desirable for these games to be revived, in honor of Prometheus, or humanity itself, and for them to inspire competition, ambition, and commendable efforts, so that the initiative does not precariously depend on the torch of any one person. Therefore, humanity should be encouraged to awaken and try to harness their own strength and opportunities, rather than relying solely on a few individuals, whose skills and talents are perhaps no greater than their own.
These are the particulars which appear to us shadowed out by this trite and vulgar fable, though without denying that there may be contained in it several intimations that have a surprising correspondence with the Christian mysteries. In particular, the voyage of Hercules, made in a pitcher, to release Prometheus, bears an allusion to the word of God, coming in the frail vessel of the flesh to redeem mankind. But we indulge ourselves no such liberties as these, for fear of using strange fire at the altar of the Lord.
These are the details that we see hinted at in this familiar and common fable, though we don’t deny that it might contain several suggestions that surprisingly relate to Christian mysteries. In particular, Hercules’ journey in a pitcher to rescue Prometheus alludes to the word of God coming in the fragile vessel of the flesh to save humanity. But we don’t take such liberties, fearing that we might use unauthorized fire at the altar of the Lord.
XXVII.—ICARUS AND SCYLLA AND CHARYBDIS,
OR THE MIDDLE WAY.
EXPLAINED OF MEDIOCRITY IN NATURAL AND MORAL
PHILOSOPHY.
Mediocrity, or the holding a middle course, has been highly extolled in morality, but little in matters of science, though no less useful and proper here; whilst in politics it is held suspected, and ought to be employed with judgment. The ancients described mediocrity in manners by the course prescribed to Icarus; and in matters of the understanding by the steering betwixt Scylla and Charybdis, on account of the great difficulty and danger in passing those straits.
Mediocre, or taking a balanced approach, has been praised in moral discussions, but not as much in science, even though it's just as useful and appropriate there; while in politics, it’s often viewed with suspicion and should be used carefully. The ancients explained mediocrity in behavior by referencing the advice given to Icarus, and in terms of understanding by navigating between Scylla and Charybdis, due to the significant difficulty and risk involved in passing through those straits.
Icarus, being to fly across the sea, was ordered by his father neither to soar too high nor fly too low, for, as his wings were fastened together with wax, there was danger of its melting by the sun’s heat in too high a flight, and of its becoming less tenacious by the moisture if he kept too near the vapor of the sea. But he, with a juvenile confidence, soared aloft, and fell down headlong.
Icarus, about to fly across the sea, was instructed by his father not to fly too high or too low. His wings were held together with wax, so if he flew too high, the sun's heat could melt it, and if he flew too close to the sea, the moisture could weaken the wings. However, filled with youthful confidence, he flew up high and then plummeted down.
Explanation.—The fable is vulgar, and easily interpreted; for the path of virtue lies straight between excess on the one side, and defect on the other. And no wonder that excess should prove408 the bane of Icarus, exulting in juvenile strength and vigor; for excess is the natural vice of youth, as defect is that of old age; and if a man must perish by either, Icarus chose the better of the two; for all defects are justly esteemed more depraved than excesses. There is some magnanimity in excess, that, like a bird, claims kindred with the heavens; but defect is a reptile, that basely crawls upon the earth. It was excellently said by Heraclitus: “A dry light makes the best soul;” for if the soul contracts moisture from the earth, it perfectly degenerates and sinks. On the other hand, moderation must be observed, to prevent this fine light from burning, by its too great subtility and dryness. But these observations are common.
Explanation.—The fable is straightforward and easy to understand; the path of virtue is right in between excess on one side and deficiency on the other. It's not surprising that excess led to the downfall of Icarus, who was reveling in youthful strength and energy; after all, excess is a natural flaw of youth, just as deficiency is for old age. If a man must die from one or the other, Icarus chose the better option; all deficiencies are rightly seen as more corrupt than excesses. There's some nobility in excess, which, like a bird, seeks a connection to the skies; but deficiency is like a reptile, lowly crawling on the ground. Heraclitus said it well: “A dry light makes the best soul;” for if the soul draws moisture from the earth, it completely degenerates and sinks. On the other hand, moderation needs to be maintained to prevent this fine light from burning out due to its excessive delicacy and dryness. But these points are pretty well-known.
In matters of the understanding, it requires great skill and a particular felicity to steer clear of Scylla and Charybdis. If the ship strikes upon Scylla, it is dashed in pieces against the rocks; if upon Charybdis, it is swallowed outright. This allegory is pregnant with matter; but we shall only observe the force of it lies here, that a mean be observed in every doctrine and science, and in the rules and axioms thereof, between the rocks of distinctions and the whirlpools of universalities: for these two are the bane and shipwreck of fine geniuses and arts.
In understanding things, it takes great skill and a special touch to avoid the dangers of Scylla and Charybdis. If a ship runs into Scylla, it gets smashed against the rocks; if it hits Charybdis, it's completely swallowed. This allegory is rich with meaning; however, we’ll point out that its main message is that a balance must be maintained in every doctrine and science, and in the rules and principles governing them, between the rigid distinctions and the chaotic generalizations: these two extremes can ruin talented minds and creative endeavors.
XXVIII.—SPHINX, OR SCIENCE.
EXPLAINED OF THE SCIENCES.
They relate that Sphinx was a monster, variously formed, having the face and voice of a virgin, the wings of a bird, and the talons of a griffin. She resided on the top of a mountain, near the city Thebes, and also beset the highways. Her manner was to lie in ambush and seize the travellers, and having them in her power, to propose to them certain dark and perplexed riddles, which it was thought she received from the Muses, and if her wretched captives could not solve and interpret these riddles, she, with great cruelty, fell upon them, in their hesitation and confusion, and tore them to pieces. This plague having reigned a long time, the Thebans at length offered their kingdom to the man who could interpret her riddles, there being no other way to subdue her. Œdipus, a penetrating and prudent man, though lame in his feet, excited by so great a reward, accepted the condition, and with a good assurance of mind, cheerfully presented himself before the monster, who directly asked him: “What creature that was, which, being born four-footed, afterwards became two-footed, then three-footed, and lastly four-footed again?” Œdipus, with presence of mind, replied it was man, who, upon his first birth and infant state, crawled upon all fours in endeavoring to410 walk; but not long after went upright upon his two natural feet; again, in old age walked three-footed, with a stick; and at last, growing decrepit, lay four-footed confined to his bed; and having by this exact solution obtained the victory, he slew the monster, and, laying the carcass upon an ass, led her away in triumph; and upon this he was, according to the agreement, made king of Thebes.
They say that the Sphinx was a monster of various forms, having the face and voice of a virgin, the wings of a bird, and the claws of a griffin. She lived on top of a mountain near the city of Thebes and also prowled the roads. Her tactic was to hide and ambush travelers, and once she captured them, she would present them with certain dark and confusing riddles, which it was believed she got from the Muses. If her unfortunate captives couldn't solve these riddles, she would, in her cruelty, attack them in their hesitation and confusion and tear them apart. This torment continued for a long time, and the Thebans finally offered their kingdom to anyone who could solve her riddles, as that was the only way to defeat her. Œdipus, a sharp and sensible man, though lame in his feet, was motivated by the huge reward and accepted the challenge. Confidently, he approached the monster, who immediately asked him: “What creature is it that, born on four legs, later walks on two legs, then three legs, and finally returns to four legs?” Œdipus, thinking quickly, answered that it was man, who, as a baby, crawls on all fours as he learns to walk; then, not long after, stands upright on his two natural feet; in old age, he walks with the aid of a stick, making it three legs; and finally, when he becomes frail, lies on his four limbs, confined to his bed. With this precise answer, he achieved victory, killed the monster, and triumphantly carried her body away on a donkey. Following this, he was made king of Thebes, as agreed.
Explanation.—This is an elegant, instructive fable, and seems invented to represent science, especially as joined with practice. For science may, without absurdity, be called a monster, being strangely gazed at and admired by the ignorant and unskilful. Her figure and form is various, by reason of the vast variety of subjects that science considers; her voice and countenance are represented female, by reason of her gay appearance and volubility of speech; wings are added, because the sciences and their inventions run and fly about in a moment, for knowledge like light communicated from one torch to another, is presently caught and copiously diffused; sharp and hooked talons are elegantly attributed to her, because the axioms and arguments of science enter the mind, lay hold of it, fix it down, and keep it from moving or slipping away. This the sacred philosopher observed, when he said: “The words of the wise are like goads or nails driven far in.”645 Again, all science seems placed on high, as it were on the tops of mountains that are hard to 411climb; for science is justly imagined a sublime and lofty thing, looking down upon ignorance from an eminence, and at the same time taking an extensive view on all sides, as is usual on the tops of mountains. Science is said to beset the highways, because through all the journey and peregrination of human life there is matter and occasion offered of contemplation.
Explanation.—This is a sophisticated and instructive fable, seemingly created to symbolize science, especially when combined with practice. Science can, without being absurd, be referred to as a monster, as it’s often looked at and admired by those who are ignorant and unskilled. Its shape and form vary due to the vast range of subjects science explores; its voice and appearance are depicted as female due to its lively look and fluent speech. Wings are added because sciences and their inventions can move quickly, akin to knowledge spreading like light from one torch to another, being easily captured and widely shared. Sharp and hooked claws are elegantly attributed to it because the principles and arguments of science penetrate the mind, grip it, and prevent it from straying or slipping away. This is what the sacred philosopher noted when he said: “The words of the wise are like goads or nails driven far in.”645 Moreover, all science seems to be elevated, as if perched atop mountains that are difficult to climb; for science is rightly seen as a grand and lofty pursuit, looking down on ignorance from a height while also surveying all around, much like one does from mountain summits. Science is said to line the highways, because throughout the journey of human life, there are opportunities for contemplation.
Sphinx is said to propose various difficult questions and riddles to men, which she received from the Muses; and these questions, so long as they remain with the Muses, may very well be unaccompanied with severity, for while there is no other end of contemplation and inquiry but that of knowledge alone, the understanding is not oppressed, or driven to straits and difficulties, but expatiates and ranges at large, and even receives a degree of pleasure from doubt and variety; but after the Muses have given over their riddles to Sphinx, that is, to practice, which urges and impels to action, choice, and determination, then it is that they become torturing, severe, and trying, and, unless solved and interpreted, strangely perplex and harass the human mind, rend it every way, and perfectly tear it to pieces. All the riddles of Sphinx, therefore, have two conditions annexed, viz: dilaceration to those who do not solve them, and empire to those that do. For he who understands the thing proposed, obtains his end, and every artificer rules over his work.646
Sphinx is said to present various challenging questions and riddles to people, which she received from the Muses; and these questions, as long as they remain with the Muses, may not be very harsh, because when there’s no purpose to contemplation and inquiry other than knowledge itself, the mind isn’t overwhelmed or put in a tight spot, but can roam freely and even finds some enjoyment in doubt and variety. However, once the Muses hand their riddles over to Sphinx, which represents action, choice, and decision, they become tormenting, severe, and challenging, and if not solved and interpreted, they oddly confuse and trouble the human mind, tearing it apart in every direction. Therefore, all the riddles of Sphinx have two outcomes: pain for those who can't solve them and power for those who can. Because whoever understands the question posed achieves their goal, and every craftsman holds dominion over their work.646
Sphinx has no more than two kinds of riddles, one relating to the nature of things, the other to the nature of man; and correspondent to these, the prizes of the solution are two kinds of empire,—the empire over nature, and the empire over man. For the true and ultimate end of natural philosophy is dominion over natural things, natural bodies, remedies, machines, and numberless other particulars, though the schools, contented with what spontaneously offers, and swollen with their own discourses, neglect, and in a manner despise, both things and works.
Sphinx has only two types of riddles: one about the nature of things and the other about the nature of humanity. Corresponding to these, the rewards for solving them are two types of power—power over nature and power over people. The true and ultimate goal of natural philosophy is to have control over natural things, physical bodies, remedies, machines, and countless other specifics. However, the schools, satisfied with what comes easily and inflated by their own discussions, overlook and somewhat scorn both things and practical work.
But the riddle proposed to Œdipus, the solution whereof acquired him the Theban kingdom, regarded the nature of man; for he who has thoroughly looked into and examined human nature, may in a manner command his own fortune, and seems born to acquire dominion and rule. Accordingly, Virgil properly makes the arts of government to be the arts of the Romans.647 It was, therefore, extremely apposite in Augustus Cæsar to use the image of Sphinx in his signet, whether this happened by accident or by design; for he of all men was deeply versed in politics, and through the course of his life very happily solved abundance of new riddles with regard to the nature of man; and unless he had done this with great dexterity and ready address, he would frequently 413have been involved in imminent danger, if not destruction.
But the riddle that was posed to Oedipus, whose solution earned him the Theban kingdom, was about the nature of humanity. Those who have thoroughly explored and understood human nature can sort of control their own destiny and seem destined to gain power and leadership. That's why Virgil rightly identifies the arts of governance as the arts of the Romans.647 It was, therefore, quite fitting for Augustus Caesar to use the image of the Sphinx in his seal, whether it was by chance or intention; because he, more than anyone else, was well-versed in politics and throughout his life successfully unraveled many new riddles concerning human nature. If he hadn't done this with great skill and quick thinking, he would often have found himself in serious danger, if not facing destruction.
It is with the utmost elegance added in the fable, that when Sphinx was conquered, her carcass was laid upon an ass; for there is nothing so subtile and abstruse, but after being once made plain, intelligible, and common, it may be received by the slowest capacity.
It is with great elegance in the fable that when the Sphinx was defeated, her body was placed on a donkey; for nothing is so complex and obscure that once it is made clear, understandable, and ordinary, it can’t be grasped by even the slowest mind.
We must not omit that Sphinx was conquered by a lame man, and impotent in his feet; for men usually make too much haste to the solution of Sphinx’s riddles; whence it happens, that she prevailing, their minds are rather racked and torn by disputes, than invested with command by works and effects.
We shouldn't forget that the Sphinx was defeated by a man with a disability, who couldn't walk properly; because people often rush to solve the Sphinx’s riddles, it ends up that she wins, leaving them more confused and strained by arguments than empowered by their accomplishments.
XXIX.—PROSERPINE, OR SPIRIT.
EXPLAINED OF THE SPIRIT INCLUDED IN NATURAL BODIES.
They tell us, Pluto having, upon that memorable division of empire among the gods, received the infernal regions for his share, despaired of winning any one of the goddesses in marriage by an obsequious courtship, and therefore through necessity resolved upon a rape. Having watched his opportunity, he suddenly seized upon Proserpine, a most beautiful virgin, the daughter of Ceres, as she was gathering narcissus flowers in the meads of Sicily, and hurrying414 her to his chariot, carried her with him to the subterraneal regions, where she was treated with the highest reverence, and styled the Lady of Dis. But Ceres, missing her only daughter, whom she extremely loved, grew pensive and anxious beyond measure, and taking a lighted torch in her hand, wandered the world over in quest of her daughter,—but all to no purpose, till, suspecting she might be carried to the infernal regions, she, with great lamentation and abundance of tears, importuned Jupiter to restore her; and with much ado prevailed so far as to recover and bring her away, if she had tasted nothing there. This proved a hard condition upon the mother, for Proserpine was found to have eaten three kernels of a pomegranate. Ceres, however, desisted not, but fell to her entreaties and lamentations afresh, insomuch that at last it was indulged her that Proserpine should divide the year betwixt her husband and her mother, and live six months with the one and as many with the other. After this, Theseus and Perithous, with uncommon audacity, attempted to force Proserpine away from Pluto’s bed, but happening to grow tired in their journey, and resting themselves upon a stone in the realms below, they could never rise from it again, but remain sitting there forever. Proserpine, therefore, still continued queen of the lower regions, in honor of whom there was also added this grand privilege, that though it had never been permitted any one to return after having once descended thither, a particular exception was made, that he who brought a415 golden bough as a present to Proserpine, might on that condition descend and return. This was an only bough that grew in a large dark grove, not from a tree of its own, but like the mistletoe from another, and when plucked away a fresh one always shot out in its stead.
They tell us that Pluto, after the memorable division of the empire among the gods, received the underworld as his domain. Desperate to win any of the goddesses in marriage through flattery, he ultimately decided he had to resort to abduction. Seizing his chance, he suddenly grabbed Proserpine, a beautiful virgin and the daughter of Ceres, while she was picking narcissus flowers in the fields of Sicily. Rushing her into his chariot, he took her down to the underworld, where she was treated with the utmost respect and named the Lady of Dis. However, Ceres, realizing her beloved only daughter was missing, became deeply sad and worried. Taking a lit torch, she wandered the world searching for her daughter to no avail until she suspected Proserpine was taken to the underworld. With great sorrow and many tears, she begged Jupiter to bring her back; eventually, she managed to get him to agree—as long as Proserpine hadn't eaten anything there. This turned out to be a tough condition for Ceres, as Proserpine had eaten three pomegranate seeds. Nevertheless, Ceres didn't give up, and she resumed her pleas and cries until it was finally decided that Proserpine would split the year between her husband and her mother, spending six months with one and six months with the other. After this, Theseus and Perithous boldly tried to take Proserpine from Pluto's side, but during their journey, they grew tired and sat down on a stone in the underworld, finding they could never rise again and remained there forever. Therefore, Proserpine continued to reign as queen of the underworld, and in her honor, a special privilege was established: even though no one was allowed to return after descending there, an exception was made for anyone who brought a golden bough as a gift to Proserpine, allowing them to descend and return on that condition. This singular bough grew in a dark grove, not from its own tree but like mistletoe from another tree, and whenever it was picked, a new one would always sprout in its place.
Explanation.—This fable seems to regard natural philosophy, and searches deep into that rich and fruitful virtue and supply in subterraneous bodies, from whence all the things upon the earth’s surface spring, and into which they again relapse and return. By Proserpine, the ancients denoted that ethereal spirit shut up and detained within the earth, here represented by Pluto,—the spirit being separated from the superior globe, according to the expression of the poet.648 This spirit is conceived as ravished, or snatched up by the earth, because it can in no way be detained, when it has time and opportunity to fly off, but is only wrought together and fixed by sudden intermixture and comminution, in the same manner as if one should endeavor to mix air with water, which cannot otherwise be done than by a quick and rapid agitation, that joins them together in froth whilst the air is thus caught up by the water. And it is elegantly added, that Proserpine was ravished whilst she gathered narcissus flowers, which have their name from numbedness or stupefaction; for the spirit we 416speak of is in the fittest disposition to be embraced by terrestrial matter when it begins to coagulate, or grow torpid as it were.
Explanation.—This fable seems to explore natural philosophy and delves into the rich and valuable essence found in underground substances, from which everything on the surface of the earth emerges and to which it eventually returns. By Proserpine, the ancients referred to that ethereal spirit trapped and held within the earth, represented here by Pluto—this spirit is separated from the higher realm, as the poet expresses. 648 This spirit is thought to be seized or pulled away by the earth because it cannot be held back when it has the chance to escape; instead, it is only combined and fixed by sudden mixing and breaking down, similar to trying to mix air with water, which can only happen through quick and energetic agitation that creates froth while the air gets caught up in the water. It is also nicely noted that Proserpine was taken while she was picking narcissus flowers, which are named for their numbness or daze; because the spirit we talk about is most likely to be absorbed by earthly matter when it starts to solidify or become sluggish, so to speak.
It is an honor justly attributed to Proserpine, and not to any other wife of the gods, that of being the lady or mistress of her husband, because this spirit performs all its operations in the subterraneal regions, whilst Pluto, or the earth, remains stupid, or as it were ignorant of them.
It is a well-deserved honor given to Proserpine, and not to any other goddess, to be the lady of her husband, because this spirit carries out all its activities in the underground realms, while Pluto, or the earth, remains oblivious, as if unaware of them.
The ether, or the efficacy of the heavenly bodies, denoted by Ceres, endeavors with infinite diligence to force out this spirit, and restore it to its pristine state. And by the torch in the hand of Ceres, or the ether, is doubtless meant the sun, which disperses light over the whole globe of the earth, and if the thing were possible, must have the greatest share in recovering Proserpine, or reinstating the subterraneal spirit. Yet Proserpine still continues and dwells below, after the manner excellently described in the condition betwixt Jupiter and Ceres. For first, it is certain that there are two ways of detaining the spirit, in solid and terrestrial matter,—the one by condensation or obstruction, which is mere violence and imprisonment; the other by administering a proper aliment, which is spontaneous and free. For after the included spirit begins to feed and nourish itself, it is not in a hurry to fly off, but remains as it were fixed in its own earth. And this is the moral of Proserpine’s tasting the pomegranate; and were it not for this, she must long ago have been carried up by Ceres, who with417 her torch wandered the world over, and so the earth have been left without its spirit. For though the spirit in metals and minerals may perhaps be, after a particular manner, wrought in by the solidity of the mass, yet the spirit of vegetables and animals has open passages to escape at, unless it be willingly detained, in the way of sipping and tasting them.
The ether, or the influence of the heavenly bodies, represented by Ceres, works tirelessly to extract this spirit and return it to its original state. The torch held by Ceres, or the ether, clearly symbolizes the sun, which spreads light across the entire globe. If it were possible, it would play a major role in recovering Proserpine or restoring the underground spirit. Yet Proserpine still resides below, as perfectly described in the relationship between Jupiter and Ceres. First, it's clear that there are two ways to hold the spirit within solid and earthly matter—one through compression or obstruction, which is simply violence and imprisonment; the other by providing suitable nourishment, which is natural and free. Once the spirit inside begins to feed and sustain itself, it doesn't rush to escape but stays rooted in its own earth. This is the lesson within Proserpine's eating the pomegranate; without this, she would have been taken up by Ceres long ago, who, with her torch, searched everywhere, leaving the earth without its spirit. Although the spirit in metals and minerals may be, in a certain sense, integrated by the solidity of the mass, the spirit of plants and animals has open paths for escape, unless it is willingly held back through consumption.
The second article of agreement, that of Proserpine’s remaining six months with her mother and six with her husband, is an elegant description of the division of the year; for the spirit diffused through the earth lives above-ground in the vegetable world during the summer months, but in the winter returns under ground again.
The second article of agreement, saying that Proserpine spends six months with her mother and six with her husband, is a beautiful way to describe the division of the year; the spirit that spreads through the earth thrives above ground in the plant world during the summer months, but returns underground in the winter.
The attempt of Theseus and Perithous to bring Proserpine away, denotes that the more subtile spirits, which descend in many bodies to the earth, may frequently be unable to drink in, unite with themselves, and carry off the subterraneous spirit, but on the contrary be coagulated by it, and rise no more, so as to increase the inhabitants and add to the dominion of Proserpine.649
The effort of Theseus and Perithous to take Proserpine away shows that the more refined spirits that come to earth in various forms may often struggle to absorb, connect with themselves, and escape the spirit of the underworld. Instead, they might be solidified by it and never rise again, which serves to increase the population and expand Proserpine's realm.649
The alchemists will be apt to fall in with our interpretation of the golden bough, whether we will or no, because they promise golden mountains, and 418the restoration of natural bodies from their stone, as from the gates of Pluto; but we are well assured that their theory had no just foundation, and suspect they have no very encouraging or practical proofs of its soundness. Leaving, therefore, their conceits to themselves, we shall freely declare our own sentiments upon this last part of the fable. We are certain, from numerous figures and expressions of the ancients, that they judged the conservation, and in some degree the renovation, of natural bodies to be no desperate or impossible thing, but rather abstruse and out of the common road than wholly impracticable. And this seems to be their opinion in the present case, as they have placed this bough among an infinite number of shrubs, in a spacious and thick wood. They supposed it of gold, because gold is the emblem of duration. They feigned it adventitious, not native, because such an effect is to be expected from art, and not from any medicine or any simple or mere natural way of working.
The alchemists are likely to agree with our take on the golden bough, whether we want them to or not, because they promise great riches and the ability to restore natural substances from their stone, much like coming back from the gates of the underworld. However, we’re confident that their theory isn’t built on solid ground, and we doubt they have very convincing or practical evidence to back it up. So, letting their ideas stay with them, we’ll openly share our thoughts on this last part of the story. We are convinced, based on countless examples and expressions from the ancients, that they believed conserving and somewhat renewing natural substances isn’t an impossible feat, but rather something obscure and not entirely common, rather than completely unachievable. This seems to be their view in this instance since they placed the bough among countless shrubs in a vast and dense forest. They thought it was made of gold because gold symbolizes endurance. They imagined it as something that comes from outside rather than something that grows naturally, as such a result is expected from art and not from any medicine or purely natural method.
XXX.—METIS, OR COUNSEL.
EXPLAINED OF PRINCES AND THEIR COUNCIL.
The ancient poets relate that Jupiter took Metis to wife, whose name plainly denotes counsel, and that he, perceiving she was pregnant by him, would by no means wait the time of her delivery, but directly devoured her; whence himself also became pregnant, and was delivered in a wonderful manner; for he from his head or brain brought forth Pallas armed.
The ancient poets tell us that Jupiter married Metis, whose name clearly means wisdom, and when he realized she was pregnant with his child, he couldn't wait for her to give birth and directly swallowed her. As a result, he also became pregnant and delivered in an extraordinary way; he gave birth to Pallas fully armed from his head.
Explanation.—This fable, which in its literal sense appears monstrously absurd, seems to contain a state secret, and shows with what art kings usually carry themselves towards their council, in order to preserve their own authority and majesty not only inviolate, but so as to have it magnified and heightened among the people. For kings commonly link themselves, as it were, in a nuptial bond to their council, and deliberate and communicate with them after a prudent and laudable custom upon matters of the greatest importance, at the same time justly conceiving this no diminution of their majesty; but when the matter once ripens to a decree or order, which is a kind of birth, the king then suffers the council to go on no further,420 lest the act should seem to depend upon their pleasure. Now, therefore, the king usually assumes to himself whatever was wrought, elaborated, or formed, as it were, in the womb of the council (unless it be a matter of an invidious nature, which he is sure to put from him), so that the decree and the execution shall seem to flow from himself.650 And as this decree or execution proceeds with prudence and power, so as to imply necessity, it is elegantly wrapped up under the figure of Pallas armed.
Explanation.—This fable, which may seem totally ridiculous at first glance, appears to hold a hidden truth and illustrates how kings typically interact with their councils to maintain their power and status, ensuring it remains untouched and even elevated among the people. Kings often bind themselves, in a way, to their councils in a marriage-like partnership, discussing and deciding on important issues together, believing this partnership does not diminish their authority. However, once a decision is made, which is like giving birth to an idea, the king stops the council from continuing, so it doesn't look like the outcome is up to them. Thus, the king usually takes credit for everything developed, crafted, or conceived within the council (except for matters that might look bad, which he quickly distances himself from), making it seem like the decision and action originated solely from him.420 As this decision or action is carried out with wisdom and strength, implying that it’s necessary, it’s skillfully portrayed as the figure of Pallas armed.650
Nor are kings content to have this seem the effect of their own authority, free will, and uncontrollable choice, unless they also take the whole honor to themselves, and make the people imagine that all good and wholesome decrees proceed entirely from their own head, that is, their own sole prudence and judgment.
Nor are kings satisfied to have this appear as the result of their own authority, free will, and uncontrollable choice, unless they also claim all the honor for themselves and lead the people to believe that all good and just decisions come solely from their own minds, meaning their own unique wisdom and judgment.
XXXI.—THE SIRENS, OR PLEASURES.
EXPLAINED OF MEN’S PASSION FOR PLEASURES.
Introduction.—The fable of the Sirens is, in a vulgar sense, justly enough explained of the pernicious incentives to pleasure; but the ancient 421mythology seems to us like a vintage ill-pressed and trod; for though something has been drawn from it, yet all the more excellent parts remain behind in the grapes that are untouched.
Introduction.—The story of the Sirens is, in a simple way, accurately described as a warning against the dangerous allure of pleasure; however, ancient 421mythology feels to us like a wine that hasn't been fully squeezed or explored; for even though some has been taken from it, many of its more valuable elements are still left in the untouched grapes.
Fable.—The Sirens are said to be the daughters of Achelous and Terpsichore, one of the Muses. In their early days they had wings, but lost them upon being conquered by the Muses, with whom they rashly contended; and with the feathers of these wings the Muses made themselves crowns, so that from this time the Muses wore wings on their heads, except only the mother to the Sirens.
Fable.—The Sirens are said to be the daughters of Achelous and Terpsichore, one of the Muses. In their early days, they had wings, but they lost them after being defeated by the Muses, whom they foolishly tried to challenge. The Muses then used the feathers from these wings to create crowns, so from that time on, the Muses wore wings on their heads, except for the mother of the Sirens.
These Sirens resided in certain pleasant islands, and when, from their watch-tower, they saw any ship approaching, they first detained the sailors by their music, then, enticing them to shore, destroyed them.
These Sirens lived on some beautiful islands, and when they spotted a ship coming from their lookout, they first captivated the sailors with their music, then lured them to shore and killed them.
Their singing was not of one and the same kind, but they adapted their tunes exactly to the nature of each person, in order to captivate and secure him. And so destructive had they been, that these islands of the Sirens appeared, to a very great distance, white with the bones of their unburied captives.
Their singing wasn't all the same; instead, they changed their melodies to match each individual's nature, aiming to charm and trap him. They were so deadly that these islands of the Sirens looked, from far away, white with the bones of their unburied victims.
Two different remedies were invented to protect persons against them, the one by Ulysses, the other by Orpheus. Ulysses commanded his associates to stop their ears close with wax; and he, determining to make the trial, and yet avoid the danger, ordered himself to be tied fast to a mast of the ship, giving422 strict charge not to be unbound, even though himself should entreat it; but Orpheus, without any binding at all, escaped the danger, by loudly chanting to his harp the praises of the gods, whereby he drowned the voices of the Sirens.
Two different methods were created to protect people from them: one by Ulysses and the other by Orpheus. Ulysses instructed his crew to plug their ears with wax; and he, wanting to test it out while avoiding the danger, ordered himself to be tied tightly to the ship's mast, giving422 strict instructions not to be untied, even if he begged to be released. On the other hand, Orpheus, without any restraints, avoided the danger by playing his harp and singing loudly about the gods, which drowned out the Sirens' voices.
Explanation.—This fable is of the moral kind, and appears no less elegant than easy to interpret. For pleasures proceed from plenty and affluence, attended with activity or exultation of the mind.651 Anciently their first incentives were quick, and seized upon men as if they had been winged, but learning and philosophy afterwards prevailing, had at least the power to lay the mind under some restraint, and make it consider the issue of things, and thus deprived pleasures of their wings.
Explanation.—This fable teaches a moral lesson and is just as elegant as it is easy to understand. Pleasures come from having plenty and abundance, accompanied by activity or joy of the mind.651 In ancient times, their initial motivations were swift and swooped down on people as if they had wings. However, as learning and philosophy gained influence, they had the ability to restrain the mind a bit, forcing it to think about the consequences of things, which in turn clipped the wings of pleasures.
This conquest redounded greatly to the honor and ornament of the Muses; for after it appeared, by the example of a few, that philosophy could introduce a contempt of pleasures, it immediately seemed to be a sublime thing that could raise and elevate the soul, fixed in a manner down to the earth, and thus render men’s thoughts, which reside in the head, winged as it were, or sublime.
This conquest greatly enhanced the reputation and charm of the Muses; because after it was shown, through the example of a few, that philosophy could foster a disdain for pleasures, it quickly seemed like something sublime that could uplift and elevate the soul, which is often weighed down by the earth, and in this way make people's thoughts, which reside in their minds, soar as if they had wings, or become elevated.
Only the mother of the Sirens was not thus plumed on the head, which doubtless denotes superficial learning, invented and used for delight and levity;
Only the mother of the Sirens didn't have such feathers on her head, which likely signifies shallow knowledge, created and used for entertainment and frivolity;
an eminent example whereof we have in Petronius, who, after receiving sentence of death, still continued his gay frothy humor, and as Tacitus observes, used his learning to solace or divert himself, and instead of such discourses as give firmness and constancy of mind, read nothing but loose poems and verses.652 Such learning as this seems to pluck the crowns again from the Muses’ heads, and restore them to the Sirens.
an outstanding example of this is Petronius, who, even after being sentenced to death, kept up his lighthearted humor. As Tacitus notes, he used his knowledge to entertain himself, and instead of engaging with serious discussions that promote strength and resilience, he read nothing but light poetry and verses.652 This kind of learning seems to take the crowns away from the Muses and hand them back to the Sirens.
The Sirens are said to inhabit certain islands, because pleasures generally seek retirement, and often shun society. And for their songs, with the manifold artifice and destructiveness thereof, this is too obvious and common to need explanation. But that particular of the bones stretching like white cliffs along the shores, and appearing afar off, contains a more subtile allegory, and denotes that the examples of others’ calamity and misfortunes, though ever so manifest and apparent, have yet but little force to deter the corrupt nature of man from pleasures.
The Sirens are said to live on certain islands because pleasures usually avoid the spotlight and often retreat from society. Their songs, with their various tricks and destructive power, are too obvious to need explanation. However, the detail about the bones that stretch like white cliffs along the shores and can be seen from a distance holds a deeper meaning. It suggests that even though the misfortunes and disasters of others are clear and apparent, they have little ability to stop the corrupt nature of humans from chasing after pleasure.
The allegory of the remedies against the Sirens is not difficult, but very wise and noble; it proposes, 424in effect, three remedies, as well against subtile as violent mischiefs, two drawn from philosophy and one from religion.
The allegory of the solutions against the Sirens is not hard to understand, but it is very wise and admirable; it offers, 424in effect, three solutions, both against cunning and forceful dangers, two taken from philosophy and one from religion.
The first means of escaping is to resist the earliest temptation in the beginning, and diligently avoid and cut off all occasions that may solicit or sway the mind; and this is well represented by shutting up the ears, a kind of remedy to be necessarily used with mean and vulgar minds, such as the retinue of Ulysses.
The first way to escape is to resist the initial temptation right from the start and to actively avoid and eliminate any situations that might influence or sway your thoughts. This is similar to the idea of shutting your ears, a strategy often needed by ordinary and unrefined people, like the followers of Ulysses.
But nobler spirits may converse, even in the midst of pleasures, if the mind be well guarded with constancy and resolution. And thus some delight to make a severe trial of their own virtue, and thoroughly acquaint themselves with the folly and madness of pleasures, without complying or being wholly given up to them; which is what Solomon professes of himself when he closes the account of all the numerous pleasures he gave a loose to, with this expression: “But wisdom still continued with me.” Such heroes in virtue may, therefore, remain unmoved by the greatest incentives to pleasure, and stop themselves on the very precipice of danger; if, according to the example of Ulysses, they turn a deaf ear to pernicious counsel, and the flatteries of their friends and companions, which have the greatest power to shake and unsettle the mind.
But nobler souls can still have meaningful conversations, even amidst enjoyment, if the mind is protected by determination and resolve. Some find joy in rigorously testing their own virtue and understanding the folly and madness of pleasures, without succumbing to them or being completely consumed by them; this is what Solomon himself expresses when he concludes his exploration of all the many pleasures he indulged in with the statement: “But wisdom still stayed with me.” Therefore, such virtuous individuals can remain unaffected by even the strongest temptations to pleasure and hold back right on the edge of danger; if, like Ulysses, they ignore harmful advice and the flattery of their friends and companions, which have the most power to disturb and destabilize the mind.
But the most excellent remedy, in every temptation, is that of Orpheus, who, by loudly chanting425 and resounding the praises of the gods, confounded the voices, and kept himself from hearing the music of the Sirens; for divine contemplations exceed the pleasures of sense, not only in power but also in sweetness.
But the best cure for every temptation is that of Orpheus, who, by singing loudly and praising the gods, drowned out the voices and avoided hearing the music of the Sirens; because divine thoughts are more powerful and sweeter than sensory pleasures.
FOOTNOTES:
2 Baconiana, 201.
3 Bacon’s Apophthegms.
4 It is not surprising that ladies then received an education rare in our own times. It should be remembered that in the sixteenth century Latin was the language of courts and schools, of diplomacy, politics, and theology; it was the universal language, and there was then no literature in the modern tongues, except the Italian; indeed all knowledge, ancient and modern, was conveyed to the world in the language of the ancients. The great productions of Athens and Rome were the intellectual all of our ancestors down to the middle of the sixteenth century.
4 It's not surprising that women at the time had an education that's quite rare today. It's important to remember that in the sixteenth century, Latin was the language of courts and schools, diplomacy, politics, and theology; it was the universal language. There wasn't any literature in the modern languages, except for Italian; in fact, all knowledge, both ancient and modern, was shared with the world in the language of the ancients. The great works of Athens and Rome were the intellectual foundation for our ancestors all the way up to the middle of the sixteenth century.
5 Prospetto delle Memorie aneddote dei Lincei da F. Cancellieri. Roma, 1823. This fact is quoted by Monsieur Cousin, in a note to his Fragments de Philosophie Cartésienne.
5 Summary of the Anecdotal Memories of the Lincei by F. Cancellieri. Rome, 1823. This fact is mentioned by Monsieur Cousin in a note to his Fragments of Cartesian Philosophy.
6 Sir Robert Cecil.
8 King’s or Queen’s Counsel are barristers that plead for the government; they receive fees but no salary; the first were appointed in the reign of Charles II. Queen’s Counsel extraordinary was a title peculiar to Bacon, granted, as the patent specially states, honoris causa.
8 King’s or Queen’s Counsel are lawyers who represent the government in court; they earn fees but do not get a salary; the first ones were appointed during the reign of Charles II. The title of Queen’s Counsel extraordinary was unique to Bacon, given, as the patent specifically notes, for the sake of honor.
9 Letter to Lord Burleigh.
10 The Solicitor-General is a law-officer inferior in rank to the Attorney-General, with whom he is associated in the management of the law business of the crown. He pleads also for private individuals, but not against government. He has a small salary, but very considerable fees. The salary in Bacon’s time was but seventy pounds.
10 The Solicitor-General is a legal officer who ranks below the Attorney-General, working alongside them in managing the legal matters of the crown. They also represent private individuals, but not against the government. Their salary is modest, but they earn significant fees. Back in Bacon's time, the salary was only seventy pounds.
11 Bacon was, like other courtiers, in the habit of presenting the Queen with a New Year’s gift. On one occasion, it was a white satin petticoat embroidered with snakes and fruitage, as emblems of wisdom and beauty. The donors varied in rank from the Lord Keeper down to the dust-man.
11 Bacon, like other courtiers, had a tradition of giving the Queen a New Year’s gift. One time, it was a white satin petticoat decorated with snakes and fruit, symbolizing wisdom and beauty. The givers ranged in stature from the Lord Keeper to the trash collector.
12 Essays.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Essays.
13 The Attorney-General is the public prosecutor on behalf of the Crown, where the state is actually and not nominally the prosecutor. He pleads also as a barrister in private causes, provided they are not against the government. As he receives a fee for every case in which the government is concerned, his emoluments are considerable; but he has no salary. His official position secures to him the best practice at the bar. The salary was, in Bacon’s time, but 81l. 6s. 8d. per annum; but the situation yielded him six thousand pounds yearly.
13 The Attorney-General serves as the public prosecutor for the Crown, acting as the actual prosecutor, not just a figurehead. He also represents clients in private cases as long as they aren't against the government. He earns a fee for each government-related case, which adds up to a significant income; however, he doesn't receive a salary. His official role gives him access to the best opportunities at the bar. Back in Bacon's time, the salary was only 81l. 6s. 8d. a year, but the position brought him in six thousand pounds annually.
15 Essay xvi.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Essay 16.
16 Decisions being given against the parties is no proof of uncorruptness; it is always the party who loses his suit that complains; the gainer receives the price of his bribe, and is silent.
16 Just because a decision goes against a party doesn’t prove they’re innocent; it’s usually the party that loses that raises a complaint; the winner just enjoys the benefits of their payoff and stays quiet.
17 The exactions of his servants appear to have been very great; their indulgence in every kind of extravagance, and the lavish profuseness of his own expenses, were the principal causes of his ruin. Mallet relates that one day, during the investigation into his conduct, the Chancellor passed through a room where several of his servants were sitting; as they arose from their seats to greet him, “Sit down, my masters,” exclaimed he, “your rise hath been my fall.”
17 The demands from his servants seem to have been quite high; their indulgence in all kinds of extravagance, along with his own lavish spending, were the main reasons for his downfall. Mallet recounts that one day, while looking into his behavior, the Chancellor walked through a room where several of his servants were seated. As they stood up to greet him, he said, “Sit down, my friends, your rise has been my fall.”
18 Essay xi.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Essay 11.
19 Macaulay’s Essays.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Macaulay's Essays.
20 He was not, as has been erroneously supposed, stripped of his titles of nobility; this was proposed; but it was negatived by the majority formed by means of the bishops.
20 He was not, as has been mistakenly believed, deprived of his noble titles; this was suggested, but it was rejected by the majority supported by the bishops.
21 The Prince of Wales, afterwards Charles the First, was before he ascended the throne the patron of Bacon, who said of him in his will, “my most gracious sovereign, who ever when he was prince was my patron.”
21 The Prince of Wales, later known as Charles the First, was, before he became king, a supporter of Bacon, who mentioned him in his will, “my most gracious sovereign, who always when he was prince was my patron.”
22 The Seasons.
The Seasons.
24 Bracton is one of the earliest writers of English law. He flourished in the thirteenth century. The title of his work is De Legibus et Consuetudinibus Angliæ, first printed in 1569.
24 Bracton is one of the first authors on English law. He was active in the thirteenth century. The title of his work is De Legibus et Consuetudinibus Angliæ, which was first published in 1569.
26 Of the Interpretation of Nature.
Understanding Nature.
27 Ibid.
Ibid.
28 New Atlantis.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ New Atlantis.
29 Advancement of Learning.
Advancement of Learning.
30 Edinburgh Review.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Edinburgh Review.
31 Essays.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Essays.
32 Advancement of Learning.
Advancement of Learning.
34 Tattler, No. 267.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Tattler, No. 267.
36 Montaigne says, in his author’s address to the reader:—
36 Montaigne states in his introduction to the reader:—
“Ie veulx qu’on m’y veoye en ma façon simple, naturelle et ordinaire, sans estude et artifice; car c’est moi que je peinds.” He says again elsewhere: “Ie n’ay pas plus faict mon livre, que mon livre m’a faict; livre consubstantiel à son aucteur, d’une occupation propre, membre de ma vie, non d’une occupation et fin tierce et estrangiere, comme touts aultres livres.” (Livre ii. ch. xviii.)
“I want people to see me in my simple, natural, and ordinary way, without study and artifice; because I’m painting myself.” He says again elsewhere: “I haven’t created my book more than my book has created me; it’s consubstantial with its author, a personal endeavor, a part of my life, not a separate and foreign occupation or purpose like all other books.” (Livre ii. ch. xviii.)
37 Introduction to the Encyclopædia.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Introduction to the Encyclopedia.
40 No. 267.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ No. 267.
41 Essays.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Essays.
42 He refers to the following passage in the Gospel of St. John, xviii. 38: “Pilate saith unto him, What is truth? And when he had said this, he went out again unto the Jews, and saith unto them, I find in him no fault at all.”
42 He mentions this passage from the Gospel of St. John, xviii. 38: “Pilate asks him, What is truth? After saying this, he went back out to the Jews and declared, I find no fault in him at all.”
43 He probably refers to the “New Academy,” a sect of Greek philosophers, one of whose moot questions was, “What is truth?” Upon which they came to the unsatisfactory conclusion, that mankind has no criterion by which to form a judgment.
43 He’s likely talking about the “New Academy,” a group of Greek philosophers who debated the question, “What is truth?” They reached the unsatisfying conclusion that humans have no standard to make a judgment.
45 “The wine of evil spirits.”
“The wine of bad vibes.”
47 At the moment when “The Lord God formed man out of the dust of the ground, and breathed into his nostrils the breath of life; and man became a living soul.”—Genesis ii. 7.
47 At the moment when “The Lord God created man from the dust of the earth and breathed into his nostrils the breath of life; and man became a living being.”—Genesis ii. 7.
49 He refers to the sect which followed the doctrines of Epicurus. The life of Epicurus himself was pure and abstemious in the extreme. One of his leading tenets was, that the aim of all speculation should be to enable men to judge with certainty what course is to be chosen, in order to secure health of body and tranquillity of mind. The adoption, however, of the term “pleasure,” as denoting this object, has at all periods subjected the Epicurean system to great reproach; which, in fact, is due rather to the conduct of many who, for their own purposes, have taken shelter under the system in name only, than to the tenets themselves, which did not inculcate libertinism. Epicurus admitted the existence of the Gods, but he deprived them of the characteristics of Divinity, either as creators or preservers of the world.
49 He refers to the group that followed the beliefs of Epicurus. Epicurus's life was extremely pure and self-disciplined. One of his main beliefs was that the goal of all thought should be to help people confidently decide which path to take to achieve good health and peace of mind. However, the use of the word "pleasure" to describe this goal has always led to major criticism of the Epicurean philosophy, which is more due to the actions of many who have superficially adopted the label for their own reasons than to the actual beliefs that did not promote indulgence. Epicurus acknowledged the existence of gods, but he stripped them of divine qualities, either as creators or maintainers of the universe.
50 Lord Bacon has either translated this passage of Lucretius from memory or has purposely paraphrased it. The following is the literal translation of the original: “’Tis a pleasant thing, from the shore, to behold the dangers of another upon the mighty ocean, when the winds are lashing the main; not because it is a grateful pleasure for any one to be in misery, but because it is a pleasant thing to see those misfortunes from which you yourself are free: ’tis also a pleasant thing to behold the mighty contests of warfare, arrayed upon the plains, without a share in the danger; but nothing is there more delightful than to occupy the elevated temples of the wise, well fortified by tranquil learning, whence you may be able to look down upon others, and see them straying in every direction, and wandering in search of the path of life.”
50 Lord Bacon either translated this passage from Lucretius from memory or intentionally rephrased it. Here’s the literal translation of the original: “It’s a nice thing, from the shore, to watch others face the dangers of the mighty ocean when the winds are raging; not because it gives anyone pleasure to see others suffer, but because it’s enjoyable to see misfortunes from which you’re safe. It’s also nice to watch the great battles unfold on the plains, without being part of the danger; but nothing is more delightful than to sit in the high temples of the wise, fortified by deep knowledge, from where you can look down on others and see them wandering aimlessly, searching for the path of life.”
51 Michael de Montaigne, the celebrated French Essayist. His Essays embrace a variety of topics, which are treated in a sprightly and entertaining manner, and are replete with remarks indicative of strong native good sense. He died in 1592. The following quotation is from the second book of the Essays, c. 18: “Lying is a disgraceful vice, and one that Plutarch, an ancient writer, paints in most disgraceful colors, when he says that it is ‘affording testimony that one first despises God, and then fears men;’ it is not possible more happily to describe its horrible, disgusting, and abandoned nature; for, can we imagine anything more vile than to be cowards with regard to men, and brave with regard to God?”
51 Michael de Montaigne, the renowned French essayist. His Essays cover a wide range of topics in a lively and engaging style, full of comments that show strong common sense. He passed away in 1592. The following quote is from the second book of the Essays, c. 18: “Lying is a shameful vice, one that Plutarch, an ancient writer, describes in very unflattering terms, saying that it is ‘showing that one first disrespects God, and then fears men;’ there’s no better way to capture its terrible, disgusting, and abandoned nature; for can we think of anything more despicable than being cowards towards men and bold when it comes to God?”
55 He probably alludes to the custom of hanging the room in black where the body of the deceased lay, a practice much more usual in Bacon’s time than at the present day.
55 He likely refers to the tradition of draping the room in black where the body of the deceased rested, a practice that was much more common in Bacon's era than it is today.
56 Tacit. Hist. ii. 49.
57 Ad Lucil. 77.
58 “Reflect how often you do the same things; a man may wish to die, not only because either he is brave or wretched, but even because he is surfeited with life.”
58 “Think about how often you do the same things; a person might want to die, not just because they are brave or miserable, but even because they are tired of life.”
61 This was said as a reproof to his flatterers, and in spirit is not unlike the rebuke administered by Canute to his retinue.—Suet. Vespas. Vit. c. 23.
61 This was said as criticism to his sycophants, and in essence, it's not unlike the scolding given by Canute to his followers.—Suet. Vespas. Vit. c. 23.
65 These were the followers of Zeno, a philosopher of Citium, in Cyprus, who founded the Stoic school, or “School of the Portico,” at Athens. The basis of his doctrines was the duty of making virtue the object of all our researches. According to him, the pleasures of the mind were preferable to those of the body, and his disciples were taught to view with indifference health or sickness, riches or poverty, pain or pleasure.
65 These were the followers of Zeno, a philosopher from Citium in Cyprus, who established the Stoic school, or “School of the Portico,” in Athens. The foundation of his teachings was the importance of making virtue the goal of all our pursuits. He believed that mental pleasures were better than physical ones, and his students were encouraged to approach health or illness, wealth or poverty, pain or pleasure with indifference.
66 “Who reckons the close of his life among the boons of nature.” Lord Bacon here quotes from memory; the passage is in the tenth Satire of Juvenal, and runs thus:—
66 “Who counts the end of his life as one of nature's gifts.” Lord Bacon cites this from memory; the quote is from the tenth Satire of Juvenal and goes like this:—
“Pray for strong resolve, void of the fear of death, that reckons the closing period of life among the boons of nature.”
“Pray for strong determination, free from the fear of death, that considers the end of life as one of nature’s gifts.”
67 He alludes to the song of Simeon, to whom the Holy Ghost had revealed, “that he should not see death before he had seen the Lord’s Christ.” When he beheld the infant Jesus in the temple, he took the child in his arms and burst forth into a song of thanksgiving, commencing, “Lord, now lettest thou thy servant depart in peace, according to thy word, for mine eyes have seen thy salvation.”—St. Luke ii. 29.
67 He refers to the song of Simeon, who was told by the Holy Spirit, “that he wouldn't die before he had seen the Lord’s Christ.” When he saw the baby Jesus in the temple, he picked the child up in his arms and began a song of thanks, starting with, “Lord, now you let your servant go in peace, just as you promised, for my eyes have seen your salvation.”—St. Luke ii. 29.
71 He alludes to 1 Corinthians xiv. 23: “If, therefore, the whole church be come together into one place, and all speak with tongues, and there come in those that are unlearned, or unbelievers, will they not say that ye are mad?”
71 He refers to 1 Corinthians 14:23: “So if the whole church comes together in one place and everyone speaks in tongues, and some people who are clueless or nonbelievers walk in, will they not think you are out of your mind?”
72 Psalm i. 1: “Blessed is the man that walketh not in the counsel of the ungodly, nor standeth in the way of sinners, nor sitteth in the seat of the scornful.”
72 Psalm i. 1: “Blessed is the person who doesn't follow the advice of the wicked, stand in the path of sinners, or sit in the company of mockers.”
73 This dance, which was originally called the Morisco dance is supposed to have been derived from the Moors of Spain; the dancers in earlier times blackening their faces to resemble Moors. It was probably a corruption of the ancient Pyrrhic dance, which was performed by men in armor, and which is mentioned as still existing in Greece, in Byron’s “Song of the Greek Captive:”—
73 This dance, originally known as the Morisco dance, is believed to have come from the Moors of Spain; in earlier times, the dancers would blacken their faces to look like Moors. It was likely a variation of the ancient Pyrrhic dance, which was performed by men in armor and is noted as still being practiced in Greece, in Byron’s “Song of the Greek Captive:” —
Attitude and gesture formed one of the characteristics of the dance. It is still practised in some parts of England.—Rabelais, Pantag. ii. 7.
Attitude and gesture were key features of the dance. It's still performed in some areas of England.—Rabelais, Pantag. ii. 7.
74 2 Kings ix. 18.
75 He alludes to the words in Revelation, c. iii. v. 14, 15, 16: “And unto the angel of the church of the Laodiceans write; These things saith the Amen, the faithful and true Witness, the beginning of the creation of God; I know thy works, that thou art neither cold nor hot.—I will spue thee out of my mouth.” Laodicea was a city of Asia Minor. St. Paul established the church there which is here referred to.
75 He refers to the words in Revelation, chapter 3, verses 14, 15, 16: “And to the angel of the church of the Laodiceans write: These things says the Amen, the faithful and true Witness, the beginning of the creation of God; I know your works, that you are neither cold nor hot.—I will spit you out of my mouth.” Laodicea was a city in Asia Minor. St. Paul established the church there that is mentioned here.
76 St. Matthew xii. 30.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Matthew 12:30.
81 “To deeds so dreadful could religion prompt.” The poet refers to the sacrifice by Agamemnon, the Grecian leader, of his daughter Iphigenia, with the view of appeasing the wrath of Diana.—Lucret. i. 95.
81 “Could religion inspire such terrible actions?” The poet is talking about Agamemnon, the Greek leader, sacrificing his daughter Iphigenia to calm the anger of Diana.—Lucret. i. 95.
82 He alludes to the massacre of the Huguenots, or Protestants, in France, which took place on St. Bartholomew’s day, August 24, 1572, by the order of Charles IX. and his mother, Catherine de Medici. On this occasion about 60,000 persons perished, including the Admiral De Coligny, one of the most virtuous men that France possessed, and the main stay of the Protestant cause.
82 He references the massacre of the Huguenots, or Protestants, in France, which occurred on St. Bartholomew’s Day, August 24, 1572, by the command of Charles IX and his mother, Catherine de Medici. During this event, about 60,000 people were killed, including Admiral De Coligny, one of the most honorable men in France and a key supporter of the Protestant cause.
84 Isa. xiv. 14.
90 He alludes to the retribution dealt by Augustus and Anthony to the murderers of Julius Cæsar. It is related by ancient historians, as a singular fact, that not one of them died a natural death.
90 He refers to the punishment handed out by Augustus and Anthony to those who killed Julius Cæsar. Ancient historians note, as a remarkable detail, that not a single one of them died from natural causes.
91 Henry III. of France was assassinated in 1599, by Jacques Clement, a Jacobin monk, in the frenzy of fanaticism. Although Clement justly suffered punishment, the end of this bloodthirsty and bigoted tyrant may be justly deemed a retribution dealt by the hand of an offended Providence; so truly does the Poet say:—
91 Henry III of France was assassinated in 1599 by Jacques Clement, a Jacobin monk, in a fit of fanaticism. Although Clement faced just punishment, the death of this cruel and bigoted tyrant can be seen as a reckoning from an offended Providence; as the Poet truly states:—
92 Sen. Ad Lucil. 66.
93 Ibid. 53.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. 53.
94 Stesichorus, Apollodorus, and others. Lord Bacon makes a similar reference to this myth in his treatise “On the Wisdom of the Ancients.” “It is added with great elegance, to console and strengthen the minds of men, that this mighty hero (Hercules) sailed in a cup or ‘urceus,’ in order that they may not too much fear and allege the narrowness of their nature and its frailty; as if it were not capable of such fortitude and constancy; of which very thing Seneca argued well, when he said, ‘It is a great thing to have at the same time the frailty of a man, and the security of a God.’”
94 Stesichorus, Apollodorus, and others. Lord Bacon refers to this myth in his essay “On the Wisdom of the Ancients.” “It’s elegantly added to comfort and strengthen people’s minds that this great hero (Hercules) sailed in a cup or ‘urceus,’ so they wouldn’t fear too much the limitations of their nature and its weaknesses; as if it couldn’t possess such courage and resilience; about which Seneca made a good point when he said, ‘It’s a remarkable thing to have at the same time the frailty of a man and the security of a God.’”
95 Funereal airs. It must be remembered that many of the Psalms of David were written by him when persecuted by Saul, as also in the tribulation caused by the wicked conduct of his son Absalom. Some of them, too, though called “The Psalms of David,” were really composed by the Jews in their captivity at Babylon; as, for instance, the 137th Psalm, which so beautifully commences, “By the waters of Babylon there we sat down.” One of them is supposed to be the composition of Moses.
95 Mourful tunes. It's important to remember that many of the Psalms attributed to David were written during the time he was being chased by Saul, as well as during the turmoil caused by his son Absalom's wrongdoing. Some of them, although called "The Psalms of David," were actually written by the Jews during their captivity in Babylon; for example, the 137th Psalm, which beautifully begins, "By the waters of Babylon we sat down." One of these Psalms is believed to be written by Moses.
96 This fine passage, beginning at “Prosperity is the blessing,” which was not published till 1625, twenty-eight years after the first Essays, has been quoted by Macaulay, with considerable justice, as a proof that the writer’s fancy did not decay with the advance of old age, and that his style in his later years became richer and softer. The learned critic contrasts this passage with the terse style of the Essay of Studies (Essay 50), which was published in 1597.
96 This remarkable passage, starting with “Prosperity is the blessing,” which wasn’t published until 1625, twenty-eight years after the first Essays, has been cited by Macaulay, accurately, as evidence that the writer’s imagination did not fade with age, and that his writing style in later years became richer and softer. The knowledgeable critic contrasts this passage with the concise style of the Essay of Studies (Essay 50), which was published in 1597.
97 Tac. Ann. v. 1.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Tac. Ann. v. 1.
98 Tac. Hist. ii. 76.
100 A truth.—A. L. II. xxiii. 14.
102 Petted—spoiled.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Pampered—spoiled.
104 Ends in.
Ends in.
105 There is considerable justice in this remark. Children should be taught to do what is right for its own sake, and because it is their duty to do so, and not that they may have the selfish gratification of obtaining the reward which their companions have failed to secure, and of being led to think themselves superior to their companions. When launched upon the world, emulation will be quite sufficiently forced upon them by stern necessity.
105 There’s a lot of truth in this statement. Kids should learn to do what’s right just for the sake of doing what’s right and because it’s their responsibility, not just to get the personal satisfaction of earning a reward that others didn’t achieve, or to feel better than their peers. Once they’re out in the world, the pressure to compete will be plenty driven by the harsh realities of life.
107 His meaning is, that if clergymen have the expenses of a family to support, they will hardly find means for the exercise of benevolence toward their parishioners.
107 What he means is that if clergy have to support a family, they will struggle to find the resources to be generous to their parishioners.
108 “He preferred his aged wife Penelope to immortality.” This was when Ulysses was entreated by the goddess Calypso to give up all thoughts of returning to Ithaca, and to remain with her in the enjoyment of immortality.—Plut. Gryll. 1.
108 “He chose his old wife Penelope over immortality.” This was when Ulysses was urged by the goddess Calypso to abandon all thoughts of going back to Ithaca and to stay with her to enjoy immortality.—Plut. Gryll. 1.
110 Thales, Vide Diog. Laert. i. 26.
111 So prevalent in ancient times was the notion of the injurious effects of the eye of envy, that, in common parlance, the Romans generally used the word “præfiscini,”—“without risk of enchantment,” or “fascination,” when they spoke in high terms of themselves. They supposed that they thereby averted the effects of enchantment produced by the evil eye of any envious person who might at that moment possibly be looking upon them. Lord Bacon probably here alludes to St. Mark vii. 21, 22: “Out of the heart of men proceedeth—deceit, lasciviousness, an evil eye.” Solomon also speaks of the evil eye, Prov. xxiii. 6, and xxviii. 22.
111 In ancient times, the idea of the harmful effects of envy was so widespread that the Romans commonly used the word “præfiscini,” meaning “without risk of enchantment” or “fascination,” when they talked highly of themselves. They believed this would protect them from any negative influence from the evil eye of an envious person who might be looking at them. Lord Bacon likely refers to St. Mark 7:21-22: “For from within, out of the heart of men, come evil thoughts, sexual immorality, theft, murder.” Solomon also mentions the evil eye in Proverbs 23:6 and 28:22.
112 To be even with him.
To be honest with him.
114 Narses superseded Belisarius in the command of the armies of Italy, by the orders of the Emperor Justinian. He defeated Totila, the king of the Goths (who had taken Rome), in a decisive engagement, in which the latter was slain. He governed Italy with consummate ability for thirteen years, when he was ungratefully recalled by Justin the Second, the successor of Justinian.
114 Narses took over from Belisarius as the commander of the armies in Italy, following the orders of Emperor Justinian. He defeated Totila, the king of the Goths (who had captured Rome), in a decisive battle, where Totila was killed. He skillfully governed Italy for thirteen years until he was ungratefully recalled by Justin the Second, who succeeded Justinian.
115 Tamerlane, or Timour, was a native of Samarcand, of which territory he was elected emperor. He overran Persia, Georgia, Hindostan, and captured Bajazet, the valiant Sultan of the Turks, at the battle of Angora, 1402, whom he is said to have inclosed in a cage of iron. His conquests extended from the Irtish and Volga to the Persian Gulf, and from the Ganges to the Grecian Archipelago. While preparing for the invasion of China, he died, in the 70th year of his age, A. D. 1405. He was tall and corpulent in person, but was maimed in one hand, and lame on the right side.
115 Tamerlane, or Timour, was originally from Samarkand, where he was elected as emperor. He invaded Persia, Georgia, Hindostan, and captured Bajazet, the brave Sultan of the Turks, at the battle of Angora in 1402. It's said that he kept Bajazet in an iron cage. His conquests stretched from the Irtish and Volga rivers to the Persian Gulf, and from the Ganges to the Greek Archipelago. While getting ready to invade China, he died at the age of 70 in 1405. He was tall and overweight, but he had a maimed hand and was lame on his right side.
116 Spartian Vit. Adrian, 15.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Spartian Vit. Adrian, 15.
117 Comes under the observation.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Is under observation.
119 “How vast the evils we endure.”
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ “How vast the evils we endure.”
120 He probably alludes to the custom of the Athenians, who frequently ostracized or banished by vote their public men, lest they should become too powerful.
120 He’s likely referring to the practice among the Athenians, who often voted to ostracize or exile their leaders to prevent them from becoming too powerful.
122 “Envy keeps no holidays.”
“Envy takes no breaks.”
123 See St. Matthew xiii. 25.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See Matt 13:25.
124 Beholden.
Beholden.
125 He iniquitously attempted to obtain possession of the person of Virginia, who was killed by her father Virginius, to prevent her from falling a victim to his lust. This circumstance caused the fall of the Decemviri at Rome, who had been employed in framing the code of laws afterwards known as “The Laws of the Twelve Tables.” They narrowly escaped being burned alive by the infuriated populace.
125 He wickedly tried to take Virginia, who was killed by her father Virginius to stop her from becoming a victim of his desire. This situation led to the downfall of the Decemviri in Rome, who were working on the legal code later known as “The Laws of the Twelve Tables.” They barely escaped being burned alive by the furious crowd.
126 “We are a sufficient theme for contemplation, the one for the other.”—Sen. Epist. Mor. 1. 7. (A. L. l. iii. 6.) Pope seems, notwithstanding this censure of Bacon, to have been of the same opinion with Epicurus:—
126 “We provide enough material for thought, one for the other.”—Sen. Epist. Mor. 1. 7. (A. L. l. iii. 6.) Pope appears to share the same view as Epicurus, despite Bacon's criticism:—
Indeed, Lord Bacon seems to have misunderstood the saying of Epicurus, who did not mean to recommend man as the sole object of the bodily vision, but as the proper theme for mental contemplation.
Indeed, Lord Bacon seems to have misunderstood Epicurus' saying, which was not meant to suggest that man should be the only focus of physical sight, but rather the right subject for mental reflection.
133 “As a matter of course.”
“As a routine matter.”
134 Too great easiness of access.
Too much easy access.
135 Predilections that are undeserved.
Unjustified preferences.
136 Proverbs xxviii. 21. The whole passage stands thus in our version: “He that maketh haste to be rich shall not be innocent. To have respect of persons is not good; for, for a piece of bread, that man will transgress.”
136 Proverbs 28:21. The entire passage reads: “Those who rush to get rich will face consequences. Showing favoritism is not right; for a loaf of bread, that person will take advantage.”
139 Plut. vit. Demosth. 17, 18.
140 It is not improbable that this passage suggested Pope’s beautiful lines in the Essay on Man, Ep. i. 125-28.
140 It's likely that this part inspired Pope's beautiful lines in the Essay on Man, Ep. i. 125-28.
141 Auger Gislen Busbec, or Busbequius, a learned traveller, born at Comines, in Flanders, in 1522. He was employed by the Emperor Ferdinand as ambassador to the Sultan Solyman II. He was afterwards ambassador to France, where he died, in 1592. His “Letters” relative to his travels in the East, which are written in Latin, contain much interesting information. They were the pocket companion of Gibbon, and are highly praised by him.
141 Auger Gislen Busbec, or Busbequius, was a well-educated traveler, born in Comines, Flanders, in 1522. He worked for Emperor Ferdinand as an ambassador to Sultan Suleiman II. Later, he served as ambassador to France, where he passed away in 1592. His "Letters" about his travels in the East, written in Latin, contain a lot of fascinating information. They were a favorite of Gibbon and he praised them highly.
142 In this instance the stork or crane was probably protected, not on the abstract grounds mentioned in the text, but for reasons of state policy and gratitude combined. In Eastern climates the cranes and dogs are far more efficacious than human agency in removing filth and offal, and thereby diminishing the chances of pestilence. Superstition, also, may have formed another motive, as we learn from a letter written from Adrianople, by Lady Montagu, in 1718, that storks were “held there in a sort of religious reverence, because they are supposed to make every winter the pilgrimage to Mecca. To say truth, they are the happiest subjects under the Turkish government, and are so sensible of their privileges, that they walk the streets without fear, and generally build their nests in the lower parts of the houses. Happy are those whose houses are so distinguished, as the vulgar Turks are perfectly persuaded that they will not be that year attacked either by fire or pestilence.” Storks are still protected, by municipal law, in Holland, and roam unmolested about the market-places.
142 In this case, the stork or crane was likely protected, not for the abstract reasons mentioned in the text, but due to a combination of state policy and gratitude. In Eastern climates, cranes and dogs are much more effective than humans at cleaning up garbage and waste, which helps reduce the risk of disease. Superstition may have also played a role, as we learn from a letter written from Adrianople by Lady Montagu in 1718, stating that storks were “held in a sort of religious respect because they're believed to make a pilgrimage to Mecca every winter. To be honest, they are the luckiest creatures under Turkish rule, and they are so aware of their privileges that they walk the streets without fear and usually build their nests in the lower parts of houses. Those lucky enough to have their homes graced by them are convinced by the common Turks that they won't be attacked by fire or disease that year.” Storks are still protected by municipal law in Holland and freely wander around the marketplaces.
143 Nicolo Machiavelli, a Florentine statesman. He wrote “Discourses on the first Decade of Livy,” which were conspicuous for their liberality of sentiment, and just and profound reflections. This work was succeeded by his famous treatise, “Il Principe,” “The Prince;” his patron, Cæsar Borgia, being the model of the perfect prince there described by him. The whole scope of this work is directed to one object—the maintenance of power, however acquired. Though its precepts are no doubt based upon the actual practice of the Italian politicians of that day, it has been suggested by some writers that the work was a covert exposure of the deformity of the shocking maxims that it professes to inculcate. The question of his motives has been much discussed, and is still considered open. The word “Machiavellism” has, however, been adopted to denote all that is deformed, insincere, and perfidious in politics. He died in great poverty, in the year 1527.
143 Nicolo Machiavelli, a politician from Florence, wrote “Discourses on the First Decade of Livy,” which are known for their open-mindedness and deep insights. This work was followed by his famous essay, “Il Principe,” or “The Prince,” which used his patron, Cæsar Borgia, as the model for the ideal ruler he describes. The entire purpose of this work is focused on one thing—the preservation of power, regardless of how it is obtained. While the principles are certainly grounded in the actual practices of Italian politicians of his time, some authors suggest that the work was a subtle critique of the disturbing principles it seems to promote. The question of his true intentions has been widely debated and remains unresolved. The term “Machiavellism” has come to signify everything that is corrupt, deceitful, and treacherous in politics. He passed away in extreme poverty in 1527.
144 Vide Disc. Sop. Liv. ii. 2.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See Disc. Sop. Liv. ii. 2.
146 This is a portion of our Saviour’s reply to the rich man who asked him what he should do to inherit eternal life: “Then Jesus beholding him, loved him, and said unto him, One thing thou lackest: go thy way, sell whatsoever thou hast, and give to the poor, and thou shalt have treasure in heaven; and come, take up the cross, and follow me.”—St. Mark x. 21.
146 This is part of our Savior's response to the wealthy man who asked him what he needed to do to gain eternal life: “Jesus looked at him and loved him. He said, 'There is one thing you lack: go, sell everything you have, and give to the poor, and you will have treasure in heaven; then come, take up your cross, and follow me.'”—St. Mark x. 21.
147 See St. Luke xvi. 21.
148 Timon of Athens, as he is generally called (being so styled by Shakspeare in the play which he has founded on his story), was surnamed the “Misanthrope,” from the hatred which he bore to his fellow-men. He was attached to Apemantus, another Athenian of similar character to himself, and he professed to esteem Alcibiades, because he foresaw that he would one day bring ruin on his country. Going to the public assembly on one occasion, he mounted the rostrum, and stated that he had a fig-tree, on which many worthy citizens had ended their days by the halter; that he was going to cut it down for the purpose of building on the spot, and therefore recommended all such as were inclined, to avail themselves of it before it was too late.
148 Timon of Athens, as he’s usually called (named by Shakespeare in the play based on his story), was known as the “Misanthrope” because of his disdain for humanity. He was close to Apemantus, another Athenian with a similar outlook, and he claimed to respect Alcibiades, as he predicted that Alcibiades would eventually bring destruction to his country. During a public assembly one time, he got up on the platform and announced that he had a fig tree where many honorable citizens had met their end by hanging; that he was planning to cut it down to build something in its place, and he urged anyone who was interested to take advantage of it before it was too late.
150 He probably here refers to the myrrh-tree. Incision is the method usually adopted for extracting the resinous juices of trees; as in the India-rubber and gutta-percha trees.
150 He is likely referring to the myrrh tree. The typical method for extracting the resinous juices from trees is through incisions, like those used for the rubber and gutta-percha trees.
151 “A votive,” and, in the present instance, a “vicarious offering.” He alludes to the words of St. Paul in his Second Epistle to Timothy ii. 10: “Therefore I endure all things for the elect’s sake, that they may also obtain the salvation which is in Christ Jesus with eternal glory.”
151 “A votive,” and, in this case, a “substitute offering.” He refers to St. Paul’s words in his Second Letter to Timothy 2:10: “So I endure everything for the sake of the chosen ones, so they can also receive the salvation that is in Christ Jesus, along with eternal glory.”
153 The Low Countries had then recently emancipated themselves from the galling yoke of Spain. They were called the Seven United Provinces of the Netherlands.
153 The Low Countries had recently freed themselves from the oppressive control of Spain. They were known as the Seven United Provinces of the Netherlands.
154 This passage may at first sight appear somewhat contradictory; but he means to say, that those who are first ennobled will commonly be found more conspicuous for the prominence of their qualities, both good and bad.
154 This passage might seem a bit contradictory at first; however, he is trying to convey that those who become noble tend to stand out more because of their traits, whether positive or negative.
156 The periods of the Equinoxes.
The Equinoxes.
158 “Mother Earth, exasperated at the wrath of the Deities, produced her, as they tell, a last birth, a sister to the giants Cœus, and Enceladus.”—Virg. Æn. iv. 179.
158 “Mother Earth, frustrated by the anger of the Gods, gave birth to her, according to legend, as a final child, a sister to the giants Coeus and Enceladus.”—Virg. Æn. iv. 179.
159 “Great public odium once excited, his deeds, whether good or whether bad, cause his downfall.” Bacon has here quoted incorrectly, probably from memory. The words of Tacitus are (Hist. B. i. C. 7): “Inviso semel principe, seu bene, seu male, facta premunt,”—“The ruler once detested, his actions, whether good or whether bad, cause his downfall.”
159 “Once public hatred is stirred up, a person's actions, whether they are good or bad, lead to their downfall.” Bacon misquoted this, likely from memory. The correct words from Tacitus are (Hist. B. i. C. 7): “Inviso semel principe, seu bene, seu male, facta premunt,”—“The ruler once hated, his actions, whether good or bad, lead to his downfall.”
160 “They attended to their duties; but still, as preferring rather to discuss the commands of their rulers, than to obey them.”—Tac. Hist. ii. 39.
160 “They took care of their responsibilities, but still preferred to talk about the orders from their leaders rather than actually follow them.”—Tac. Hist. ii. 39.
161 He alludes to the bad policy of Henry the Third of France, who espoused the part of “The League,” which was formed by the Duke of Guise and other Catholics for the extirpation of the Protestant faith. When too late he discovered his error, and finding his own authority entirely superseded, he caused the Duke of Guise and the Cardinal De Lorraine, his brother, to be assassinated.
161 He refers to the poor decisions of Henry the Third of France, who sided with “The League,” created by the Duke of Guise and other Catholics to eliminate the Protestant faith. When he finally realized his mistake, it was too late, and since his authority had been completely undermined, he had the Duke of Guise and his brother, Cardinal De Lorraine, assassinated.
162 “The primary motive power.” He alludes to an imaginary centre of gravitation, or central body, which was supposed to set all the other heavenly bodies in motion.
162 “The main driving force.” He refers to a hypothetical center of gravity or central object believed to set all the other celestial bodies in motion.
164 “I will unloose the girdles of kings.” He probably alludes here to the first verse of the 45th chapter of Isaiah: “Thus saith the Lord to his anointed, to Cyrus, whose right hand I have holden, to subdue nations before him; and I will loose the loins of kings, to open before him the two-leaved gates.”
164 “I will free the belts of kings.” He is likely referring to the first verse of the 45th chapter of Isaiah: “Thus says the Lord to his anointed, to Cyrus, whose right hand I have taken hold of, to conquer nations before him; and I will loosen the waists of kings, to open before him the double gates.”
165 “Hence devouring usury, and interest accumulating in lapse of time; hence shaken credit, and warfare, profitable to the many.”—Lucan. Phars. i. 181.
165 “So, the greed for money-lending eats away at us, and interest builds up over time; that’s why trust is shattered, and wars break out, benefiting the few.”—Lucan. Phars. i. 181.
168 “Check,” or “daunt.”
“Check” or “daunt.”
170 The state.
The government.
171 Though sumptuary laws are probably just in theory, they have been found impracticable in any other than infant states. Their principle, however, is certainly recognized in such countries as by statutory enactment discountenance gaming. Those who are opposed to such laws upon principle, would do well to look into Bernard Mandeville’s “Fable of the Bees,” or “Private Vices Public Benefits.” The Romans had numerous sumptuary laws, and in the Middle Ages there were many enactments in this country against excess of expenditure upon wearing apparel and the pleasures of the table.
171 While sumptuary laws might seem fair in theory, they've proven impractical in all but the earliest stages of a society. However, their essence is definitely seen in countries that have laws against gambling. Those who oppose such laws on principle should consider Bernard Mandeville’s “Fable of the Bees” or “Private Vices Public Benefits.” The Romans had many sumptuary laws, and during the Middle Ages, there were numerous laws in this country against excessive spending on clothing and dining pleasures.
176 Like manure.
Like fertilizer.
177 Sometimes printed engrossing, great pasturages. By engrossing, is meant the trade of engrossers—men who buy up all that can be got of a particular commodity, then raise the price. By great pasturages is meant turning corn land into pasture. Of this practice great complaints had been made for near a century before Bacon’s time, and a law passed to prevent it.—See Lord Herbert of Cherbury’s History of Henry VIII.
177 Sometimes printed engrossing, great pasturages. By engrossing, it refers to the practice of engrossers—people who buy up as much of a specific commodity as they can and then raise the price. By great pasturages, it means converting arable land into pasture. There had been significant complaints about this practice for nearly a century before Bacon’s time, and a law was enacted to prevent it.—See Lord Herbert of Cherbury’s History of Henry VIII.
178 The myth of Pandora’s box, which is here referred to, is related in the Works and Days of Hesiod. Epimetheus was the personification of “Afterthought,” while his brother Prometheus represented “Forethought,” or prudence. It was not Epimetheus that opened the box, but Pandora—“All-gift,” whom, contrary to the advice of his brother, he had received at the hands of Mercury, and had made his wife. In their house stood a closed jar, which they were forbidden to open. Till her arrival, this had been kept untouched; but her curiosity prompting her to open the lid, all the evils hitherto unknown to man flew out and spread over the earth, and she only shut it down in time to prevent the escape of Hope.
178 The story of Pandora’s box, mentioned here, is found in the Works and Days by Hesiod. Epimetheus was the embodiment of “Afterthought,” while his brother Prometheus symbolized “Forethought,” or wisdom. It wasn't Epimetheus who opened the box, but Pandora—“All-gift,” whom, against his brother's advice, he accepted from Mercury and married. In their home stood a sealed jar they were not allowed to open. Until her arrival, it remained untouched; however, her curiosity led her to lift the lid, releasing all the evils previously unknown to humanity, and she only managed to close it in time to keep Hope from escaping.
179 “Sylla did not know his letters, and so he could not dictate.” This saying is attributed by Suetonius to Julius Cæsar. It is a play on the Latin verb dictare, which means either “to dictate,” or “to act the part of Dictator,” according to the context. As this saying was presumed to be a reflection on Sylla’s ignorance, and to imply that by reason thereof he was unable to maintain his power, it was concluded by the Roman people that Cæsar, who was an elegant scholar, feeling himself subject to no such inability, did not intend speedily to yield the reins of power.—Suet. Vit. C. Jul. Cæs. 77, i. and Cf. A. L. i. vii. 12.
179 “Sylla couldn’t read, so he couldn't dictate.” This saying is credited to Julius Cæsar by Suetonius. It's a wordplay on the Latin verb dictare, which means either “to dictate” or “to act like a Dictator,” depending on the context. Since this saying was thought to highlight Sylla’s ignorance and suggest that because of it he couldn’t hold onto his power, the Roman people concluded that Cæsar, who was a refined scholar and didn’t suffer from such a limitation, had no intention of quickly giving up power.—Suet. Vit. C. Jul. Cæs. 77, i. and Cf. A. L. i. vii. 12.
183 He probably alludes to the legends or miraculous stories of the saints; such as walking with their heads off, preaching to the fishes, sailing over the sea on a cloak, &c. &c.
183 He’s likely referring to the legends or miraculous tales of the saints, like walking around without their heads, preaching to fish, and sailing across the sea on a cloak, etc. etc.
185 This passage not improbably contains the germ of Pope’s famous lines:—
185 This passage likely contains the seed of Pope's famous lines:—
187 He was a disciple of the last-named philosopher, and held the same principles; he also denied the existence of the soul after death. He is considered to have been the parent of experimental philosophy, and was the first to teach, what is now confirmed by science, that the Milky Way is an accumulation of stars.
187 He was a follower of the last-mentioned philosopher and shared the same beliefs; he also rejected the idea of the soul existing after death. He is regarded as the father of experimental philosophy and was the first to teach, now supported by science, that the Milky Way is made up of stars.
188 Spirit.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Spirit.
189 Psalm xiv. 1, and liii. 1.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Psalm 14:1 and Psalm 53:1.
191 “It is not profane to deny the existence of the deities of the vulgar; but, to apply to the divinities the received notions of the vulgar, is profane.”—Diog. Laert. x. 123.
191 “It’s not disrespectful to deny the existence of the gods that the common people believe in; however, using their typical ideas about the deities is disrespectful.”—Diog. Laert. x. 123.
193 He was an Athenian philosopher, who, from the greatest superstition, became an avowed atheist. He was proscribed by the Areiopagus for speaking against the gods with ridicule and contempt, and is supposed to have died at Corinth.
193 He was an Athenian philosopher who turned from deep superstition to openly reject the existence of gods. The Areiopagus exiled him for mocking and disrespecting the deities, and he is believed to have died in Corinth.
194 A Greek philosopher, a disciple of Theodorus the atheist, to whose opinions he adhered. His life was said to have been profligate, and his death superstitious.
194 A Greek philosopher, a student of Theodorus the atheist, whose beliefs he followed. He was said to have lived a reckless life, and his death was considered superstitious.
195 Lucian ridiculed the follies and pretensions of some of the ancient philosophers; but though the freedom of his style was such as to cause him to be censured for impiety, he hardly deserves the stigma of atheism here cast upon him by the learned author.
195 Lucian mocked the foolishness and pretensions of certain ancient philosophers; however, despite the freedom of his style leading to accusations of impiety, he barely deserves the label of atheism that the learned author has assigned to him.
196 “It is not for us now to say, ‘Like priest like people,’ for the people are not even so bad as the priest.” St. Bernard, abbot of Clairvaux, preached the second Crusade against the Saracens, and was unsparing in his censures of the sins then prevalent among the Christian priesthood. His writings are voluminous, and by some he has been considered as the latest of the fathers of the Church.
196 “It’s not our place to say, ‘Like priest, like people,’ because the people aren’t even as bad as the priest.” St. Bernard, abbot of Clairvaux, preached the second Crusade against the Saracens and was relentless in his criticism of the sins common among the Christian priesthood at that time. His writings are extensive, and some have regarded him as the last of the Church Fathers.
197 “A superior nature.”
“A better nature.”
198 “We may admire ourselves, conscript fathers, as much as we please; still, neither by numbers did we vanquish the Spaniards, nor by bodily strength the Gauls, nor by cunning the Carthaginians, nor through the arts the Greeks, nor, in fine, by the inborn and native good sense of this our nation, and this our race and soil, the Italians and Latins themselves; but through our devotion and our religious feeling, and this, the sole true wisdom, the having perceived that all things are regulated and governed by the providence of the immortal Gods, have we subdued all races and nations.”—Cic. de. Harus. Respon. 9.
198 “We can admire ourselves, esteemed leaders, as much as we want; however, we did not defeat the Spaniards through our numbers, nor the Gauls through physical strength, nor the Carthaginians through cleverness, nor the Greeks through art, nor, ultimately, through the natural good sense of our nation, and this land of ours, among the Italians and Latins; rather, it was through our commitment and our sense of spirituality, and this is the only true wisdom: realizing that everything is organized and overseen by the will of the immortal Gods, that we have conquered all peoples and nations.”—Cic. de. Harus. Respon. 9.
199 The justice of this position is, perhaps, somewhat doubtful. The superstitious man must have some scruples, while he who believes not in a God (if there is such a person), needs have none.
199 The fairness of this viewpoint is, maybe, a bit questionable. The superstitious person must have some reservations, while someone who doesn’t believe in a God (if such a person exists) needs to have none.
201 The primary motive power.
The main source of power.
202 This Council commenced in 1545, and lasted eighteen years. It was convened for the purpose of opposing the rising spirit of Protestantism, and of discussing and settling the disputed points of the Catholic faith.
202 This Council started in 1545 and ran for eighteen years. It was called to counter the growing influence of Protestantism and to discuss and resolve the contested issues of the Catholic faith.
203 Irregular or anomalous movements.
Irregular or unusual movements.
205 To account for.
To take into account.
206 Synods, or councils.
Synods or councils.
207 At the present day called attachés.
Now called attachés.
209 Something to create excitement.
Something to spark excitement.
214 After having reigned thirty-five years, he abdicated the thrones of Spain and Germany, and passed the last two years of his life in retirement at St. Just, a convent in Estremadura.
214 After ruling for thirty-five years, he stepped down from the thrones of Spain and Germany, and spent the last two years of his life in seclusion at St. Just, a convent in Estremadura.
218 An eminent historian of Florence. His great work, which is here alluded to, is, “The History of Italy during his own Time,” which is considered one of the most valuable productions of that age.
218 A well-known historian of Florence. His major work, referenced here, is “The History of Italy during His Own Time,” which is regarded as one of the most important works of that era.
220 Solyman the Magnificent was one of the most celebrated of the Ottoman monarchs. He took the Isle of Rhodes from the Knights of St. John. He also subdued Moldavia, Wallachia, and the greatest part of Hungary, and took from the Persians Georgia and Bagdad. He died A. D. 1566. His wife Roxolana (who was originally a slave called Rosa or Hazathya), with the Pasha Rustan, conspired against the life of his son Mustapha, and by their instigation this distinguished prince was strangled in his father’s presence.
220 Suleiman the Magnificent was one of the most famous Ottoman rulers. He captured the Isle of Rhodes from the Knights of St. John. He also conquered Moldavia, Wallachia, and most of Hungary, as well as taking Georgia and Baghdad from the Persians. He died in 1566. His wife Roxolana (who was originally a slave named Rosa or Hazathya) conspired with Pasha Rustan against their son Mustapha, and at their urging, this prominent prince was strangled in his father's presence.
221 The infamous Isabella of Anjou.
The infamous Isabella of Anjou.
222 Adulteresses.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Cheaters.
224 He was falsely accused by his brother Perseus of attempting to dethrone his father, on which he was put to death by the order of Philip, B. C. 180.
224 He was wrongfully accused by his brother Perseus of trying to overthrow their father, which led to his execution by the order of Philip, B.C. 180.
225 Anselm was Archbishop of Canterbury in the time of William Rufus and Henry the First. Though his private life was pious and exemplary, through his rigid assertion of the rights of the clergy he was continually embroiled with his sovereign. Thomas à Becket pursued a similar course, but with still greater violence.
225 Anselm was the Archbishop of Canterbury during the reign of William Rufus and Henry I. While he lived a devout and commendable private life, his strict insistence on the rights of the clergy constantly put him in conflict with the king. Thomas à Becket followed a similar path, but with even more intensity.
228 A subdivision of the shire.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ A section of the county.
229 The Janizaries were the body-guards of the Turkish sultans, and enacted the same disgraceful part in making and unmaking monarchs, as the mercenary Prætorian guards of the Roman Empire.
229 The Janizaries were the bodyguards of the Turkish sultans and played a similarly shameful role in creating and overthrowing monarchs, just like the mercenary Praetorian guards of the Roman Empire.
232 “The representative of God.”
“The representative of God.”
236 Hesiod, Theog. 886.
237 The political world has not been convinced of the truth of this doctrine of Lord Bacon; as cabinet councils are now held probably by every sovereign in Europe.
237 The political landscape hasn’t embraced Lord Bacon's idea, as it seems that cabinet meetings are now likely held by every ruler in Europe.
240 Master of the Rolls and Privy Councillor under Henry VI., to whose cause he faithfully adhered. Edward IV. promoted him to the See of Ely, and made him Lord Chancellor. He was elevated to the See of Canterbury by Henry VII., and in 1493 received the Cardinal’s hat.
240 Master of the Rolls and Privy Councillor under Henry VI, to whose cause he remained loyal. Edward IV appointed him to the See of Ely and made him Lord Chancellor. He was promoted to the See of Canterbury by Henry VII, and in 1493, he was given the title of Cardinal.
241 Privy Councillor and Keeper of the Privy Seal to Henry VII., and, after enjoying several bishoprics in succession, translated to the See of Winchester. He was an able statesman, and highly valued by Henry VII. On the accession of Henry VIII. his political influence was counteracted by Wolsey; on which he retired to his diocese, and devoted the rest of his life to acts of piety and munificence.
241 Privy Councillor and Keeper of the Privy Seal to Henry VII, and after holding several bishoprics in a row, he was transferred to the See of Winchester. He was a skilled politician and held in high regard by Henry VII. When Henry VIII came to power, his political influence was undermined by Wolsey, which led him to withdraw to his diocese, where he dedicated the remainder of his life to piety and generosity.
243 Remedied.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Fixed.
244 “He shall not find faith upon the earth.” Lord Bacon probably alludes to the words of our Saviour, St. Luke xviii. 8: “When the Son of man cometh, shall he find faith upon the earth?”
244 “He will not find faith on the earth.” Lord Bacon probably refers to the words of our Savior, St. Luke xviii. 8: “When the Son of man comes, will he find faith on the earth?”
245 He means to say, that this remark was only applicable to a particular time, namely, the coming of Christ. The period of the destruction of Jerusalem was probably referred to.
245 He means to say that this comment only applies to a specific time, specifically the arrival of Christ. It likely refers to the time of the destruction of Jerusalem.
247 In his disposition, or inclination.
In his nature or tendency.
248 Liable to opposition from.
Facing opposition from.
249 “According to classes,” or, as we vulgarly say, “in the lump.” Lord Bacon means that princes are not, as a matter of course, to take counsellors merely on the presumption of talent, from their rank and station; but that, on the contrary, they are to select such as are tried men, and with regard to whom there can be no mistake.
249 “According to classes,” or, as we commonly say, “across the board.” Lord Bacon means that rulers shouldn’t just choose advisors based on their talent or position; instead, they should aim to select proven individuals, those whose capabilities are beyond doubt.
251 “Are afraid” to open their mouths.
“Are afraid” to speak up.
257 The Sibyl alluded to here is the Cumæan, the most celebrated, who offered the Sibylline Books for sale to Tarquin the Proud.
257 The Sibyl referred to here is the Cumæan, the most famous one, who offered the Sibylline Books for sale to Tarquin the Proud.
“At this time, an unknown woman appeared at court, loaded with nine volumes, which she offered to sell, but at a very considerable price. Tarquin refusing to give it, she withdrew and burnt three of the nine. Some time after she returned to court, and demanded the same price for the remaining six. This made her looked upon as a mad woman, and she was driven away with scorn. Nevertheless, having burnt the half of what were left, she came a third time, and demanded for the remaining three the same price which she had asked for the whole nine. The novelty of such a proceeding, made Tarquin curious to have the books examined. They were put, therefore, into the hands of the augurs, who, finding them to be the oracles of the Sybil of Cumæ, declared them to be an invaluable treasure. Upon this the woman was paid the sum she demanded, and she soon after disappeared, having first exhorted the Romans to preserve her books with care.”—Hooke’s Roman History.
At that time, an unknown woman showed up at court, carrying nine volumes that she tried to sell, but at a very high price. Tarquin refused to pay, so she left and burned three of the nine books. Some time later, she came back to court and asked for the same price for the remaining six. This made everyone see her as crazy, and she was sent away with scorn. However, after burning half of what was left, she returned a third time, demanding the same price for the last three that she had asked for all nine. The unusualness of her actions made Tarquin curious to have the books examined. They were then handed over to the augurs, who discovered they were the oracles of the Sybil of Cumæ and declared them to be extremely valuable. As a result, the woman was paid the amount she requested, and she soon disappeared, after urging the Romans to take good care of her books. —Hooke’s Roman History.
259 Phæd. viii.
260 Hom. Il. v. 845.
261 Packing the cards is an admirable illustration of the author’s meaning. It is a cheating exploit, by which knaves, who, perhaps, are inferior players, insure to themselves the certainty of good hands.
261 Packing the cards is a great example of what the author means. It’s a dishonest trick that allows shady players, who might not be as skilled, to guarantee themselves a winning hand.
263 This word is used here in its primitive sense of “retail dealers.” It is said to have been derived from a custom of the Flemings, who first settled in this country in the fourteenth century, stopping the passengers as they passed their shops, and saying to them, “Haber das, herr?”—“Will you take this, sir?” The word is now generally used as synonymous with linen-draper.
263 This word is used here in its original sense of “retail dealers.” It’s said to have come from a practice of the Flemings, who were the first to settle in this country in the fourteenth century. They would stop passersby as they walked by their shops and ask, “Haber das, herr?”—“Will you take this, sir?” The word is now commonly used to mean linen-draper.
264 To watch.
To watch.
265 State.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ State.
266 Discussing matters.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Talking about things.
267 He refers to the occasion when Nehemiah, on presenting the wine, as cup-bearer to King Artaxerxes, appeared sorrowful, and, on being asked the reason of it, entreated the king to allow Jerusalem to be rebuilt.—Nehemiah ii. 1.
267 He talks about the time when Nehemiah, while serving wine as the cupbearer to King Artaxerxes, looked sad. When the king asked why, Nehemiah requested permission to rebuild Jerusalem.—Nehemiah ii. 1.
268 This can hardly be called a marriage, as, at the time of the intrigue, Messalina was the wife of Claudius; but she forced Caius Silius, of whom she was deeply enamored, to divorce his own wife, that she herself might enjoy his society. The intrigue was disclosed to Claudius by Narcissus, who was his freedman, and the pander to his infamous vices; on which Silius was put to death. Vide Tac. Ann. xi. 29, seq.
268 This can't really be called a marriage, since at the time of the affair, Messalina was married to Claudius. However, she compelled Caius Silius, whom she was infatuated with, to divorce his own wife so that she could be with him. Narcissus, Claudius's freedman and the facilitator of his disgraceful actions, revealed the affair to Claudius, which resulted in Silius being executed. See Tac. Ann. xi. 29, seq.
270 Be questioned upon.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Be asked about.
271 Kept on good terms.
Kept in touch.
272 Desire it.
Want it.
273 “That he did not have various hopes in view, but solely the safety of the emperor.” Tigellinus was the profligate minister of Nero, and Africanus Burrhus was the chief of the Prætorian Guards.—Tac. Ann. xiv. 57.
273 “That he wasn’t thinking about different ambitions, but only the emperor's safety.” Tigellinus was Nero’s corrupt advisor, and Africanus Burrhus was the leader of the Praetorian Guards.—Tac. Ann. xiv. 57.
275 Use indirect stratagems.
Use indirect strategies.
277 Movements, or springs.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__Movements or springs.
278 Chances, or vicissitudes.
Risks, or changes.
279 Enter deeply into.
Dive deep into.
280 Faults, or weak points.
Faults or weaknesses.
281 “The wise man gives heed to his own footsteps; the fool turneth aside to the snare.” No doubt he here alludes to Ecclesiastes xiv. 2, which passage is thus rendered in our version: “The wise man’s eyes are in his head; but the fool walketh in darkness.”
281 “The wise person pays attention to their own path; the fool gets caught in traps.” No doubt he is referring to Ecclesiastes xiv. 2, which is translated in our version as: “The wise person’s eyes are in their head; but the fool walks in darkness.”
282 Mischievous.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Playful.
285 Remedy.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Solution.
286 Adapted to each other.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Adjusted to one another.
287 Injures or impairs.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Injures or damages.
288 A thing suspected.
A suspected thing.
289 He probably alludes to Jeremiah vi. 16: “Thus saith the Lord, Stand ye in the ways, and see, and ask for the old paths, where is the good way, and walk therein, and ye shall find rest for your souls.”
289 He likely references Jeremiah 6:16: "This is what the Lord says: Stand at the crossroads and look; ask for the ancient paths, which is the good way; walk in it, and you will find rest for your souls."
292 Quotations.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Quotes.
293 Apologies.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Sorry.
294 Boasting.
Bragging.
295 Prejudice.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Bias.
296 2 Tim. iii. 5.
297 “Trifles with great effort.”
“Trifles with significant effort.”
300 Plat. Protag. i. 337.
303 He here quotes from a passage in the Politica of Aristotle, book i. “He who is unable to mingle in society, or who requires nothing, by reason of sufficing for himself, is no part of the state, so that he is either a wild beast or a divinity.”
303 He quotes a passage from Aristotle's Politica, book I: “Anyone who can't engage in society or doesn't need anything because they can take care of themselves is not part of the state; they are either a wild animal or a god.”
304 Epimenides, a poet of Crete (of which Candia is the modern name), is said by Pliny to have fallen into a sleep which lasted 57 years. He was also said to have lived 299 years. Numa pretended that he was instructed in the art of legislation by the divine nymph Egeria, who dwelt in the Arician grove. Empedocles, the Sicilian philosopher, declared himself to be immortal, and to be able to cure all evils. He is said by some to have retired from society that his death might not be known, and to have thrown himself into the crater of Mount Ætna. Apollonius of Tyana, the Pythagorean philosopher, pretended to miraculous powers, and after his death a temple was erected to him at that place. His life is recorded by Philostratus; and some persons, among whom are Hierocles, Dr. More, in his Mystery of Godliness, and recently Strauss, have not hesitated to compare his miracles with those of our Saviour.
304 Epimenides, a poet from Crete (now called Candia), is said by Pliny to have fallen into a sleep that lasted 57 years. He was also reported to have lived for 299 years. Numa claimed he received guidance in the art of legislation from the divine nymph Egeria, who lived in the Arician grove. Empedocles, the Sicilian philosopher, proclaimed himself to be immortal and to have the ability to cure all ailments. Some say he withdrew from society so that his death wouldn’t be noticed and threw himself into the crater of Mount Ætna. Apollonius of Tyana, a Pythagorean philosopher, claimed to have miraculous powers, and after his death, a temple was built in his honor at that location. His life is documented by Philostratus, and some, including Hierocles, Dr. More in his Mystery of Godliness, and more recently Strauss, have not hesitated to compare his miracles to those of our Savior.
306 Sarsaparilla.
Sarsaparilla.
308 “Partakers of cares.”
“Sharing the load.”
310 Plut. Vit. J. Cæs. 64.
311 Cic. Philip. xiii. 11.
313 Dio Cass. lxxv.
315 Philip de Comines.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Philip de Comines.
316 Charles the Bold, Duke of Burgundy, the valiant antagonist of Louis XI. of France. De Comines spent his early years at his court, but afterwards passed into the service of Louis XI. This monarch was notorious for his cruelty, treachery, and dissimulation, and had all the bad qualities of his contemporary, Edward IV. of England, without any of his redeeming virtues.
316 Charles the Bold, Duke of Burgundy, the brave opponent of Louis XI of France. De Comines spent his early years at his court but later served Louis XI. This king was infamous for his cruelty, deceit, and dishonesty, possessing all the negative traits of his contemporary, Edward IV of England, without any of his redeeming qualities.
317 Pythagoras went still further than this, as he forbade his disciples to eat flesh of any kind whatever. See the interesting speech which Ovid attributes to him in the fifteenth book of the Metamorphoses. Sir Thomas Browne, in his Pseudoxia (Browne’s Works, Bohn’s Antiq. ed. vol. i. p. 27, et seq.), gives some curious explanations of the doctrines of this philosopher.—Plut. de Educat. Puer. 17.
317 Pythagoras took it even further by prohibiting his followers from eating any kind of meat. Check out the fascinating speech that Ovid attributes to him in the fifteenth book of the Metamorphoses. Sir Thomas Browne, in his Pseudoxia (Browne’s Works, Bohn’s Antiq. ed. vol. i. p. 27, et seq.), provides some intriguing explanations of this philosopher's doctrines.—Plut. de Educat. Puer. 17.
319 Plut. Vit. Themist. 28.
320 Ap. Stob. Serm. v. 120.
321 James i. 23.
322 He alludes to the recommendation which moralists have often given, that a person in anger should go through the alphabet to himself, before he allows himself to speak.
322 He references the advice that moralists often provide, suggesting that when someone is angry, they should mentally go through the alphabet before they speak.
324 From debts and incumbrances.
From debts and liabilities.
325 Plut. Vit. Themist. ad init.
326 “Equal to business.”
“On par with business.”
327 He alludes to the following passage, St. Matthew xiii. 31: “Another parable put he forth unto them, saying, The kingdom of heaven is like to a grain of mustard-seed, which a man took and sowed in his field; which indeed is the least of all seeds; but when it is grown, it is the greatest among herbs, and becometh a tree, so that the birds of the air come and lodge in the branches thereof.”
327 He references the following passage from St. Matthew 13:31: “He told them another parable: The kingdom of heaven is like a mustard seed, which a man took and planted in his field. Though it is the smallest of all seeds, when it grows, it becomes the largest of all garden plants and becomes a tree, so that the birds come and perch in its branches.”
328 Virg. Ecl. vii. 51.
329 Vide. A. L. i. vii. 11.
331 He alludes to the prophetic words of Jacob on his death-bed, Gen. xlix. 9, 14, 15: “Judah is a lion’s whelp; ... he stooped down, he couched as a lion, and as an old lion.... Issachar is a strong ass couching down between two burdens: And he saw that rest was good, and the land that it was pleasant; and bowed his shoulder to bear, and became a servant unto tribute.”
331 He refers to the prophetic words of Jacob on his deathbed, Gen. xlix. 9, 14, 15: “Judah is a young lion; ... he crouched down, he rested like a lion, and like an older lion.... Issachar is a strong donkey lying down between two loads: And he realized that resting was good, and that the land was pleasant; so he accepted the burden and became a servant to tribute.”
333 Young trees.
Young trees.
335 He alludes to the dream of Nebuchadnezzar, which is mentioned Daniel iv. 10; “I saw, and behold a tree in the midst of the earth, and the height thereof was great. The tree grew, and was strong, and the height thereof reached unto heaven, and the sight thereof to the end of all the earth: the leaves thereof were fair, and the fruit thereof much, and in it was meat for all; the beasts of the field had shadow under it, and the fowls of the heaven dwelt in the boughs thereof, and all flesh was fed of it.”
335 He references Nebuchadnezzar's dream, which is found in Daniel 4:10; “I saw a tree right in the middle of the earth, and it was really tall. The tree grew strong, and its height reached up to heaven, and it could be seen from the ends of the earth: its leaves were beautiful, and it had a lot of fruit, and it provided food for everyone; the animals found shade under it, and the birds made their homes in its branches, and all living creatures were fed by it.”
336 “Right of citizenship.”
“Right to citizenship.”
337 “Right of trading.”
“Trading rights.”
338 “Right of intermarriage.”
“Right to marry anyone.”
339 “Right of inheritance.”
“Right to inherit.”
340 “Right of suffrage.”
“Right to vote.”
341 “Right of honors.”
“Right to honors.”
342 Long since the time of Lord Bacon, as soon as these colonies had arrived at a certain state of maturity, they at different periods revolted from the mother country.
342 Long ago, since the time of Lord Bacon, once these colonies reached a certain level of maturity, they revolted from the mother country at different times.
344 Qualifications.
Qualifications.
345 Attend to.
Take care of.
347 Be in a hurry.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Rush.
350 Encomiums.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Praise.
351 St. Matthew vi. 27; St. Luke xii. 25.
353 Of benefit in your individual case.
Helpful in your situation.
355 Take medical advice.
Get medical advice.
357 Celsus de Med. i. 1.
360 A censure of this nature has been applied by some to Dr. Johnson, and possibly with some reason.
360 degrees Some people have criticized Dr. Johnson in this way, and they may have a point.
361 To start the subject.
To begin the topic.
362 Requires to be bridled.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Needs to be controlled.
364 One who tests or examines.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Tester or inspector.
367 A slight or insult.
A slight or insult.
368 A sarcastic remark.
A sarcastic comment.
369 The old term for colonies.
The old term for colonies.
370 He perhaps alludes covertly to the conduct of the Spaniards in extirpating the aboriginal inhabitants of the West India Islands, against which the venerable Las Casas so eloquently but vainly protested.
370 He might be subtly referencing the actions of the Spaniards in wiping out the native people of the West India Islands, which the respected Las Casas passionately but unsuccessfully opposed.
371 Of course, this censure would not apply to what is primarily and essentially a convict colony; the object of which is to drain the mother country of its impure superfluities.
371 Naturally, this criticism wouldn't apply to what is mainly a prison colony; its purpose is to rid the mother country of its undesirable excesses.
373 To labor hard.
Work hard.
375 Gewgaws, or spangles.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Trinkets, or sparkles.
376 He alludes to Ecclesiastes v. 11, the words of which are somewhat varied in our version: “When goods increase, they are increased that eat them; and what good is there to the owners thereof, saving the beholding of them with their eyes?”
376 He refers to Ecclesiastes 5:11, which is a bit different in our version: “When your wealth grows, so do the people who consume it; what benefit do the owners have except to look at it?”
379 “He who hastens to riches will not be without guilt.” In our version the words are: “He that maketh haste to be rich shall not be innocent.”—Proverbs xxviii. 22.
379 “Whoever rushes to get rich will not be without guilt.” In our version the words are: “Those who hurry to get rich will not be innocent.”—Proverbs xxviii. 22.
382 Wait till prices have risen.
Wait for prices to rise.
384 Planter of sugar-canes.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Sugarcane farmer.
386 “Pythoness,” used in the sense of witch. He alludes to the witch of Endor, and the words in Samuel xxviii. 19. He is, however, mistaken in attributing these words to the witch: it was the spirit of Samuel that said, “To-morrow shalt thou and thy sons be with me.”
386 “Pythoness,” meaning witch. He references the witch of Endor and the words in Samuel xxviii. 19. However, he is wrong to attribute these words to the witch: it was the spirit of Samuel who said, “Tomorrow you and your sons will be with me.”
388 “After the lapse of years, ages will come in which Ocean shall relax his chains around the world, and a vast continent shall appear, and Tiphys shall explore new regions, and Thule shall be no longer the utmost verge of earth.”—Sen. Med. ii. 375.
388 “After many years, there will come times when the Ocean will loosen its grip on the world, and a huge continent will emerge, and Tiphys will discover new lands, and Thule will no longer be the farthest edge of the earth.”—Sen. Med. ii. 375.
389 He was king of Samos, and was treacherously put to death by Orœtes, the governor of Magnesia, in Asia Minor. His daughter, in consequence of her dream, attempted to dissuade him from visiting Orœtes, but in vain.—Herod. iii. 124.
389 He was the king of Samos and was deceitfully killed by Orœtes, the governor of Magnesia in Asia Minor. His daughter, because of her dream, tried to convince him not to visit Orœtes, but it was useless.—Herod. iii. 124.
390 Plut. Vit. Alex. 2.
393 Hist. v. 13.
394 Suet. vit. Domit. 23.
398 “Aristophanes, in his Comedy of the Knights, satirizes Cleon, the Athenian demagogue. He introduces a declaration of the oracle, that the Eagle of hides (by whom Cleon was meant, his father having been a tanner), should be conquered by a serpent, which Demosthenes, one of the characters in the play, expounds as meaning a maker of sausages. How Lord Bacon could for a moment doubt that this was a mere jest, it is difficult to conjecture. The following is a literal translation of a portion of the passage from The Knights (l. 197): “But when a leather eagle with crooked talons shall have seized with its jaws a serpent, a stupid creature, a drinker of blood, then the tan-pickle of the Paphlagonians is destroyed; but upon the sellers of sausages the deity bestows great glory, unless they choose rather to sell sausages.”
398 "Aristophanes, in his Comedy of the Knights, mocks Cleon, the Athenian populist. He includes a declaration from the oracle, stating that the Eagle of hides (referring to Cleon, whose father was a tanner) should be defeated by a serpent, which Demosthenes, one of the characters in the play, interprets as a sausage maker. It’s hard to understand why Lord Bacon would ever consider this anything but a joke. Here’s a literal translation of part of the passage from The Knights (l. 197): 'But when a leather eagle with crooked claws has caught a serpent, a stupid creature that drinks blood, then the tan-pickle of the Paphlagonians is destroyed; but the deity grants great glory to the sausage sellers, unless they prefer to sell sausages instead.'"
399 This is a very just remark. So-called strange coincidences, and wonderful dreams that are verified, when the point is considered, are really not at all marvellous. We never hear of the 999 dreams that are not verified, but the thousandth that happens to precede its fulfilment is blazoned by unthinking people as a marvel. It would be a much more wonderful thing if dreams were not occasionally verified.
399 This is a very valid point. So-called strange coincidences and amazing dreams that turn out to be true, when you think about it, aren’t really that incredible. We never hear about the 999 dreams that don’t come true, but the one out of a thousand that does get highlighted by people who don’t think critically as a miracle. It would actually be much more surprising if dreams were never sometimes accurate.
400 Under this name he alludes to the Critias of Plato, in which an imaginary “terra incognita” is discoursed of under the name of the “New Atlantis.” It has been conjectured from this by some, that Plato really did believe in the existence of a continent on the other side of the globe.
400 Under this name, he refers to Plato's Critias, where an imaginary "unknown land" is discussed as the "New Atlantis." Some have speculated from this that Plato genuinely believed there was a continent on the other side of the world.
401 Hot and fiery.
Spicy and intense.
402 With the eyes closed or blindfolded.
With eyes closed or covered.
403 He was a favorite of Tiberius, to whose murder by Nero he was said to have been an accessary. He afterwards prostituted his own wife to Caligula, by whom he was eventually put to death.
403 He was a favorite of Tiberius, and it was rumored that he was involved in Tiberius's murder by Nero. Later on, he offered his own wife to Caligula, who eventually had him executed.
404 Liable to.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Liable to.
406 Jewels or necklaces.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Jewelry or necklaces.
407 Spangles, or O’s of gold or silver. Beckmann says that these were invented in the beginning of the seventeenth century. See Beckmann’s Hist. of Inventions (Bohn’s Stand. Lib.), vol. i. p. 424.
407 Spangles, or gold or silver circles. Beckmann claims these were created in the early seventeenth century. See Beckmann’s History of Inventions (Bohn’s Standard Library), vol. i. p. 424.
408 Or antic-masques. These were ridiculous interludes dividing the acts of the more serious masque. These were performed by hired actors, while the masque was played by ladies and gentlemen. The rule was, the characters were to be neither serious nor hideous. The “Comus” of Milton is an admirable specimen of a masque.
408 Or antic-masques. These were silly performances that broke up the acts of the more serious masque. They were done by hired actors, while the masque featured ladies and gentlemen. The rule was that the characters had to be neither serious nor ugly. Milton's "Comus" is a great example of a masque.
409 Turks.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Turks.
410 “He is the best asserter of the liberty of his mind, who bursts the chains that gall his breast, and at the same moment ceases to grieve.”—This quotation is from Ovid’s Remedy of Love, 293.
410 “The best champion of mental freedom is the one who breaks the chains that weigh down his heart and stops feeling sorrow at the same time.” —This quotation is from Ovid’s Remedy of Love, 293.
413 Vide Disc. Sop. Liv. iii. 6.
414 Jacques Clement, a Dominican friar, who assassinated Henry III. of France, in 1589. The sombre fanatic was but twenty-five year of age; and he had announced the intention of killing with his own hands the great enemy of his faith. He was instigated by the Leaguers, and particularly by the Duchess of Montpensier, the sister of the Duke of Guise.
414 Jacques Clement, a Dominican friar, who assassinated Henry III of France in 1589. The dark fanatic was only twenty-five years old, and he had declared his intention to kill the great enemy of his faith with his own hands. He was urged on by the Leaguers, especially by the Duchess of Montpensier, the sister of the Duke of Guise.
416 Philip II. of Spain having, in 1582, set a price upon the head of William of Nassau, Prince of Orange, the leader of the Protestants, Jaureguy attempted to assassinate him, and severely wounded him.
416 In 1582, Philip II of Spain placed a bounty on the head of William of Nassau, Prince of Orange, the Protestant leader. Jaureguy tried to assassinate him and seriously injured him.
420 Flinching.—Vide Cic. Tuscul. Disp. ii. 14.
421 “Every man is the architect of his own fortune.” Sallust, in his letters “De Republicâ Ordinandâ,” attributes these words to Appius Claudius Cæcus, a Roman poet whose works are now lost. Lord Bacon, in the Latin translation of his Essays, which was made under his supervision, rendered the word “poet” “comicus;” by whom he probably meant Plautus, who has this line in his “Trinummus” (Act ii, sc. 2): “Nam sapiens quidem pol ipsus fingit fortunam sibi,” which has the same meaning, though in somewhat different terms.
421 “Every person is the architect of their own fortune.” Sallust, in his letters “De Republicâ Ordinandâ,” credits these words to Appius Claudius Cæcus, a Roman poet whose works are now lost. Lord Bacon, in the Latin translation of his Essays that he oversaw, translated the word “poet” as “comicus;” by which he likely meant Plautus, who has this line in his “Trinummus” (Act ii, sc. 2): “For indeed a wise person themselves shapes their own fortune,” which conveys the same idea, though in slightly different terms.
424 Impediments, causes for hesitation.
Obstacles, reasons for hesitation.
426 “A versatile genius.”
“A versatile genius.”
427 “A little of the fool.”
“A little foolish.”
430 “The Great.”—Plut. Syll. 34.
432 Fluency, or smoothness.
Fluency, or smoothness.
436 “In the sweat of the face of another.”
“Based on someone else's effort.”
439 See note to Essay xix.
440 Hold.
Hold on.
442 Regulation.
443 Be paid.
Get paid.
444 Our author was one of the earliest writers who treated the question of the interest of money with the enlightened views of a statesman and an economist. The taking of interest was considered, in his time, immoral.
444 Our author was one of the first writers to address the issue of interest on money with the progressive perspectives of a statesman and an economist. During his time, charging interest was seen as immoral.
Laws on this matter are extremely ancient. Moses forbids the Jews to require interest of each other. “Thou shalt not lend upon usury to thy brother; usury of money, usury of victuals, usury of any thing that is lent upon usury:
Laws on this subject are very old. Moses prohibits the Jews from charging interest on loans to each other. “You must not lend at interest to your brother; interest on money, interest on food, interest on anything that is lent for interest:
“Unto a stranger thou mayest lend upon usury; but unto thy brother thou shalt not lend upon usury.”—Deut. xxiii. 19, 20.
“ You may lend to a stranger with interest, but you must not lend to your brother with interest.”—Deut. xxiii. 19, 20.
Among the Greeks, the rate of interest was settled by agreement between the borrower and the lender, without any interference of the law. The customary rate varied from ten to thirty-three and one third per cent.
Among the Greeks, the interest rate was determined by an agreement between the borrower and the lender, without any legal interference. The typical rate ranged from ten to thirty-three and one-third percent.
The Romans enacted laws against usurious interest; but their legal interest, admitted by the law of the Twelve Tables, was, according to some, twelve per cent., or, to others, one twelfth of the capital, i. e. eight and one third per cent. Justinian reduced it to six per cent.
The Romans made laws against excessive interest; however, their legal interest, recognized by the law of the Twelve Tables, was, according to some, twelve percent, or, according to others, one twelfth of the capital, which is eight and a third percent. Justinian lowered it to six percent.
In England, the legal rate of interest was, in Henry the Eighth’s reign, ten per cent. It was reduced, in 1624, to eight per cent. It was further diminished, in 1672, to six per cent. And definitively, in 1713, fixed at five per cent., the ordinary rate of interest throughout Europe. In France, the rates of interest have been nearly similar at the same periods.
In England, during the reign of Henry the Eighth, the legal interest rate was ten percent. It was lowered to eight percent in 1624. In 1672, it was further decreased to six percent. Finally, in 1713, it was set at five percent, which became the standard interest rate across Europe. In France, the interest rates were almost the same during those times.
446 He was nephew of Louis the Twelfth of France, and commanded the French armies in Italy against the Spaniards. After a brilliant career, he was killed at the battle of Ravenna, in 1512.
446 He was the nephew of Louis XII of France and led the French armies in Italy against the Spaniards. After an impressive career, he was killed at the Battle of Ravenna in 1512.
450 “The close was unequal to the beginning.” This quotation is not correct; the words are: “Memorabilior prima pars vitæ quam postrema fuit,”—“The first part of his life was more distinguished than the latter.”—Livy xxxviii. ch. 53.
450 “The ending wasn’t as noteworthy as the beginning.” This quote isn’t accurate; the actual words are: “Memorabilior prima pars vitæ quam postrema fuit,”—“The first part of his life was more distinguished than the last.”—Livy xxxviii. ch. 53.
451 By the context, he would seem to consider “great spirit” and “virtue” as convertible terms. Edward IV., however, has no claim to be considered as a virtuous or magnanimous man, though he possessed great physical courage.
451 Based on the context, it seems he views “great spirit” and “virtue” as interchangeable terms. However, Edward IV should not be seen as a virtuous or noble person, even though he had a lot of physical bravery.
452 Features.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Features.
454 By making allowances.
By being flexible.
457 Spies.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Agents.
459 Site.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Site.
460 Knoll.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Knoll.
462 Eats up.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Consumes.
463 Plut. Vit. Lucull. 39.
465 Esth. i. 5; “The King made a feast unto all the people that were present in Shushan the palace, both unto great and small, seven days, in the court of the garden of the king’s palace.”
465 Esth. i. 5; “The King threw a feast for everyone in Shushan the palace, both the important and the ordinary, for seven days in the king’s palace garden courtyard.”
467 The funnel of a chimney.
The chimney's opening.
468 Where to go.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Where to go.
469 Bow, or bay, windows.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Bow or bay windows.
470 Flush with the wall.
Flush with the wall.
471 Antechamber.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Waiting room.
472 Withdrawing-room.
Living room.
473 Watercourses.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Waterways.
474 Pine trees.
Pine trees.
475 Kept warm in a greenhouse.
Kept warm in a greenhouse.
476 The damson, or plum of Damascus.
The damson, or Damascus plum.
477 Currants.
Currants.
482 Perpetual spring.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Eternal spring.
485 The blossoms of the bean.
The flowers of the bean.
486 Bring or lead you.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Bring or lead you.
487 Impeding.
阻碍 (Impeding).
489 Lilies of the valley.
Lilies of the valley.
490 In rows.
In rows.
491 Insidiously subtract nourishment from.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Steal away nourishment from.
492 To consider or expect.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ To think about or anticipate.
493 Love, are pleased with.
Love, are happy with.
494 It is more advantageous to deal with men whose desires are not yet satisfied, than with those who have gained all they have wished for, and are likely to be proof against inducements.
494 It's better to engage with people whose wants haven't been fulfilled yet than with those who have already gotten everything they desired, as they are less likely to be swayed by offers.
496 Professions or classes.
Professions or classes.
498 He probably alludes to the ancient stories of the friendship of Orestes and Pylades, Theseus and Pirithoüs, Damon and Pythias, and others, and the maxims of the ancient philosophers. Aristotle considers that equality in circumstances and station is one requisite of friendship. Seneca and Quintus Curtius express the same opinion. It seems hardly probable that Lord Bacon reflected deeply when he penned this passage, for between equals, jealousy, the most insidious of all the enemies of friendship, has the least chance of originating. Dr. Johnson says: “Friendship is seldom lasting but between equals, or where the superiority on one side is reduced by some equivalent advantage on the other. Benefits which cannot be repaid, and obligations which cannot be discharged, are not commonly found to increase affection; they excite gratitude indeed, and heighten veneration, but commonly take away that easy freedom and familiarity of intercourse, without which, though there may be fidelity, and zeal, and admiration, there cannot be friendship.”—The Rambler, No. 64.
498 He likely refers to the old tales of the friendships between Orestes and Pylades, Theseus and Pirithoüs, Damon and Pythias, and others, along with the sayings of ancient philosophers. Aristotle believes that being equal in circumstances and status is essential for friendship. Seneca and Quintus Curtius share the same view. It seems unlikely that Lord Bacon thought deeply when he wrote this because between equals, jealousy—the most treacherous enemy of friendship—is least likely to arise. Dr. Johnson says: “Friendship is seldom lasting but between equals, or where the superiority on one side is balanced by some equivalent advantage on the other. Benefits that cannot be repaid and obligations that cannot be fulfilled usually do not increase affection; they inspire gratitude, indeed, and enhance respect, but often take away the easy comfort and familiarity of interaction, without which, though there may be loyalty, enthusiasm, and admiration, there cannot be friendship.”—The Rambler, No. 64.
500 Lowering, or humiliating.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Putting down, or humiliating.
501 Referees.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Referees.
502 Disgusted.
Disgusted.
504 To have little effect.
To have minimal impact.
505 To this extent.
To this extent.
506 Of the information.
Of the info.
509 Attentively.
Pay attention.
510 Vapid: without taste or spirit.
Bland: dull or uninspired.
511 “Studies become habits.”
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ “Learning becomes routine.”
512 “Splitters of cummin-seeds;” or, as we now say, “splitters of straws,” or “hairs.” Butler says of Hudibras:—
512 “Splitters of cummin seeds;” or, as we say today, “splitters of straws,” or “hairs.” Butler talks about Hudibras:—
514 “The common father.”
“The common dad.”
515 “As one of us.” Henry the Third of France, favoring the league formed by the Duke of Guise and Cardinal De Lorraine against the Protestants, soon found that, through the adoption of that policy, he had forfeited the respect of his subjects.
515 “As one of us.” Henry III of France, supporting the alliance created by the Duke of Guise and Cardinal De Lorraine against the Protestants, quickly realized that by choosing that path, he had lost the admiration of his people.
520 “Appearances resembling virtues.”
“Looks like virtues.”
522 “Disregarding his own conscience.”
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ “Ignoring his own conscience.”
523 “To instruct under the form of praise.”
"Teach with compliments."
528 Theologians.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Theologians.
529 2 Cor. xi. 23.
530 “I will magnify my apostleship.” He alludes to the words in Romans xi. 13: “Inasmuch as I am the apostle of the Gentiles, I magnify mine office.”
530 “I will emphasize my role as an apostle.” He references the words in Romans 11:13: “Since I am the apostle to the Gentiles, I take pride in my position.”
531 Vaunting, or boasting.
Vaunting or boasting.
533 A high or good opinion.
A positive outlook.
534 Vide Liv. xxxvii. 48.
535 By express command.
By express command.
536 “Those who write books on despising glory, set their names in the title-page.” He quotes from Cicero’s “Tusculanæ Disputationes,” b. i. c. 15, whose words are; “Quid nostri philosophi? Nonne in his libris ipsis, quos scribunt de contemnendâ gloriâ, sua nomina inscribunt.”—“What do our philosophers do? Do they not, in those very books which they write on despising glory, set their names in the title-page?”
536 “People who write books about despising fame still put their names on the title page.” He quotes from Cicero’s “Tusculanæ Disputationes,” b. i. c. 15, which says, “What do our philosophers do? Don't they, in those very books that they write about ignoring fame, put their names on the title page?”
538 “One who set off every thing he said and did with a certain skill.” Mucianus was an intriguing general in the times of Otho and Vitellius.—Hist. xi. 80.
538 “Someone who presented everything he said and did with a particular flair.” Mucianus was a fascinating general during the reigns of Otho and Vitellius.—Hist. xi. 80.
540 Apologies.
Sorry.
541 Concessions.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Deals.
542 Plin. Epist. vi. 17.
543 Boastful.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Arrogant.
545 “Founders of empires.”
"Empire creators."
546 He alludes to Ottoman, or Othman I., the founder of the dynasty now reigning at Constantinople. From him, the Turkish empire received the appellation of “Othoman,” or “Ottoman” Porte.
546 He refers to Ottoman, or Othman I, the founder of the current dynasty in Constantinople. The Turkish empire got its name as the “Othoman” or “Ottoman” Porte from him.
547 “Perpetual rulers.”
“Permanent leaders.”
548 Surnamed the Peaceful, who ascended the throne of England A. D. 959. He was eminent as a legislator, and a rigid assertor of justice. Hume considers his reign “one of the most fortunate that we meet with in the ancient English history.”
548 Known as the Peaceful, who became king of England in A.D. 959. He was known for his lawmaking abilities and strict commitment to justice. Hume describes his reign as “one of the most fortunate in ancient English history.”
549 These were a general collection of the Spanish laws, made by Alphonso X. of Castile, arranged under their proper titles. The work was commenced by Don Ferdinand his father, to put an end to the contradictory decisions in the Castilian courts of justice. It was divided into seven parts, whence its name “Siete Partidas.” It did not, however, become the law of Castile till nearly eighty years after.
549 These were a comprehensive collection of Spanish laws created by Alphonso X of Castile, organized under their specific titles. His father, Don Ferdinand, began the project to resolve the conflicting rulings in the Castilian courts. The work was divided into seven sections, which is why it’s called “Siete Partidas.” However, it didn’t become the law of Castile until nearly eighty years later.
550 “Deliverers,” or “preservers.”
“Deliverers” or “preservers.”
552 “Fathers of their country.”
“Founding fathers.”
553 “Participators in cares.”
“Those involved in caring.”
554 “Leaders in war.”
“War leaders.”
555 Proportion, dimensions.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ratio, size.
556 “Equal to their duties.”
“Equivalent to their duties.”
557 “To expound the law.”
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ "To explain the law."
558 “To make the law.”
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ “To create the law.”
562 “He who wrings the nose strongly brings blood.” Proverbs xxx. 33: “Surely, the churning of milk bringeth forth butter, and the wringing of the nose bringeth forth blood; so the forcing of wrath bringeth forth strife.”
562 “He who squeezes the nose hard makes it bleed.” Proverbs xxx. 33: “Surely, churning milk produces butter, and squeezing the nose produces blood; just like provoking anger leads to conflict.”
564 Strained.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Stressed.
567 Is not successful.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ is not successful.
571 Plundering.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Looting.
572 “Friends of the court.”
“Friends of the court.”
573 “Parasites,” or “flatterers of the court.”
“Parasites” or “court suck-ups.”
576 “Mine.”
“Mine.”
577 “Yours.”
“Yours.”
578 He alludes to 1 Kings x. 19, 30: “The throne had six steps, and the top of the throne was round behind; and there were stays on either side on the place of the seat, and two lions stood beside the stays. And twelve lions stood there on the one side and on the other upon the six steps.” The same verses are repeated in 1 Chronicles ix. 18, 19.
578 He references 1 Kings 10:19, 30: “The throne had six steps, the top of the throne was round at the back, and there were supports on either side of the seat, with two lions standing beside the supports. And twelve lions were there, one on each side of the six steps.” These same verses are repeated in 1 Chronicles 9:18, 19.
580 A boast.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ A flex.
582 Sen. De Ira i. 1.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Sen. De Ira i. 1.
585 Susceptibility upon.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Vulnerability present.
588 “Ordinary abuse.”
“Regular abuse.”
589 “The thing that hath been, it is that which shall be; and that which is done, is that which shall be done; and there is no new thing under the sun. Is there any thing whereof it may be said, See, this is new? It hath been already of old time, which was before us.”—Ecclesiastes i. 9, 10.
589 “What has happened is what will happen; and what has been done is what will be done; and there's nothing new under the sun. Is there anything that can be said to be new? It's already been around from long ago, before we were here.”—Ecclesiastes i. 9, 10.
590 In his Phædo.
591 “There is no remembrance of former things: neither shall there be any remembrance of things that are to come, with those that shall come hereafter.”—Ecclesiastes i. 11.
591 “People don’t remember what happened in the past, and they won’t remember what will happen in the future, nor what is yet to come.”—Ecclesiastes i. 11.
592 “And Elijah the Tishbite, who was of the inhabitants of Gilead, said unto Ahab, As the Lord God of Israel liveth, before whom I stand, there shall not be dew nor rain these years, but according to my word.”—1 Kings xvii. 1. “And it came to pass after many days, that the word of the Lord came to Elijah in the third year, saying, Go, show thyself unto Ahab; and I will send rain upon the earth.”—1 Kings xviii. 1.
592 “Elijah the Tishbite, one of the people from Gilead, said to Ahab, 'As the Lord God of Israel lives, whom I serve, there won’t be any dew or rain for these years, except as I say.'”—1 Kings xvii. 1. “After many days, the Lord spoke to Elijah in the third year, saying, 'Go and present yourself to Ahab; I will send rain on the earth.'”—1 Kings xviii. 1.
593 Confined to a limited space.
Stuck in a small space.
595 Limited.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Limited.
596 Vide Plat. Tim. iii. 24, seq.
598 Sabinianus of Volaterra was elected Bishop of Rome on the death of Gregory the Great, A. D. 604. He was of an avaricious disposition, and thereby incurred the popular hatred. He died in eighteen months after his election.
598 Sabinianus of Volaterra was elected Bishop of Rome after Gregory the Great passed away in A.D. 604. He had a greedy nature, which led to him being hated by the public. He died just eighteen months after taking office.
599 This Cicero speaks of as “the great year of the mathematicians.” “On the Nature of the Gods,” B. 4, ch. 20. By some it was supposed to occur after a period of 12,954 years, while, according to others, it was of 25,920 years’ duration.—Plat. Tim. iii. 38, seq.
599 This Cicero refers to as "the great year of the mathematicians." “On the Nature of the Gods,” B. 4, ch. 20. Some believed it would happen after 12,954 years, while others thought it lasted 25,920 years.—Plat. Tim. iii. 38, seq.
600 Conceit.
Conceit.
601 Observed.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Noted.
603 The followers of Arminius, or James Harmensen, a celebrated divine of the 16th and 17th centuries. Though called a heresy by Bacon, his opinions have been for two centuries, and still are, held by a large portion of the Church of England.
603 The followers of Arminius, or James Harmensen, a well-known theologian from the 16th and 17th centuries. Although Bacon referred to it as heresy, his views have been held by a significant part of the Church of England for over two centuries and continue to be upheld today.
605 Germany.
Germany.
606 Charlemagne.
Charlemagne.
608 Striking.
Striking.
611 Tac. Hist. ii. 80.
613 Tac. Ann. i. 5.
614 Vide Herod. viii. 108, 109.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See Herod. viii. 108, 109.
615 Varro distributes the ages of the world into three periods; viz: the unknown, the fabulous, and the historical. Of the former, we have no accounts but in Scripture; for the second, we must consult the ancient poets, such as Hesiod, Homer, or those who wrote still earlier, and then again come back to Ovid, who, in his Metamorphoses, seems, in imitation perhaps of some ancient Greek poet, to have intended a complete collection, or a kind of continued and connected history of the fabulous age, especially with regard to changes, revolutions, or transformations.
615 Varro divides the ages of the world into three periods: the unknown, the mythical, and the historical. For the first, we only have accounts in Scripture; for the second, we need to look at ancient poets like Hesiod, Homer, or even earlier writers, and then we return to Ovid, who, in his Metamorphoses, seems to imitate some ancient Greek poet to create a complete collection or a continuous and connected history of the mythical age, especially concerning changes, revolutions, or transformations.
617 Homer’s Hymn to Pan.
Homer's Hymn to Pan.
618 Cicero, Epistle to Atticus, 5.
619 Ovid, Metamorphoses, b. ii.
620 This refers to the confused mixture of things, as sung by Virgil:—
620 This refers to the chaotic blend of things, as mentioned by Virgil:—
624 Psalm xix. 1.
626 Ovid, Metam. b. iv.
627 Thus it is the excellence of a general, early to discover what turn the battle is likely to take; and looking prudently behind, as well as before, to pursue a victory so as not to be unprovided for a retreat.
627 So, a great general knows how to quickly figure out the likely outcome of a battle; they wisely look back as well as forward to chase a victory without being caught off guard during a retreat.
628 It may be remembered that the Athenian peasant voted for the banishment of Aristides, because he was called the Just. Shakspeare forcibly expresses the same thought:—
628 It's worth recalling that the Athenian farmer voted to exile Aristides because he was known as the Just. Shakespeare powerfully conveys the same idea:—
If Bacon had completed his intended work upon “Sympathy and Antipathy,” the constant hatred evinced by ignorance of intellectual superiority, originating sometimes in the painful feeling of inferiority, sometimes in the fear of worldly injury would not have escaped his notice.
If Bacon had finished his planned work on “Sympathy and Antipathy,” he would have certainly noticed the relentless hatred shown by those who are ignorant of intellectual superiority, which often comes from feelings of inferiority and sometimes from the fear of being harmed in the world.
629 Thus we see that Orpheus denotes learning; Eurydice, things, or the subject of learning; Bacchus, and the Thracian women, men’s ungoverned passions and appetites, &c. And in the same manner all the ancient fables might be familiarly illustrated, and brought down to the capacities of children.
629 So, Orpheus represents knowledge; Eurydice stands for things, or the subject of knowledge; Bacchus and the Thracian women symbolize men’s uncontrolled passions and desires, etc. Similarly, all the ancient stories could be easily explained and made relatable for children.
632 Bacon nowhere speaks with such freedom and perspicuity as under the pretext of explaining these ancient fables; for which reason they deserve to be the more read by such as desire to understand the rest of his works.
632 Bacon speaks with incredible clarity and openness when pretending to explain these old fables; that's why they should be read more by those who want to grasp the rest of his writings.
639 The author, in all his physical works, proceeds upon this foundation, that it is possible, and practicable, for art to obtain the victory over nature; that is, for human industry and power to procure, by the means of proper knowledge, such things as are necessary to render life as happy and commodious as its mortal state will allow. For instance, that it is possible to lengthen the present period of human life; bring the winds under command: and every way extend and enlarge the dominion or empire of man over the works of nature.
639 The author, in all of his physical works, starts from the idea that it's possible and achievable for art to triumph over nature; meaning that with the right knowledge, human effort and skill can provide what is needed to make life as enjoyable and convenient as possible within its limited time. For example, it's feasible to extend human lifespan, control the winds, and generally expand and enhance humanity's dominion over nature's creations.
640 “All-gift.”
“Gifted.”
641 Viz: that by Pandora.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Viz: as shown by Pandora.
644 An allusion which, in Plato’s writings, is applied to the rapid succession of generations, through which the continuity of human life is maintained from age to age; and which are perpetually transferring from hand to hand the concerns and duties of this fleeting scene. Γεννῶντες τε καὶ ἐκτρέφοντες παῖδας, κάθαπερ λαμπάδα τὸν βίον παραδιδόντες ἄλλοις ἐξ ἄλλων—Plato, Leg. b. vi. Lucretius also has the same metaphor:—
644 A reference in Plato’s writings that describes the quick succession of generations, which keeps human life going through the ages; constantly passing on the responsibilities and concerns of this temporary existence from one person to another. Γεννῶντες τε καὶ ἐκτρέφοντες παῖδας, κάθαπερ λαμπάδα τὸν βίον παραδιδόντες ἄλλοις ἐξ ἄλλων—Plato, Leg. b. vi. Lucretius also uses this same metaphor:—
645 Eccles. xii. 11.
646 This is what the author so frequently inculcates in the Novum Organum, viz: that knowledge and power are reciprocal; so that to improve in knowledge is to improve in the power of commanding nature, by introducing new arts, and producing works and effects.
646 This is what the author often emphasizes in the Novum Organum, namely: that knowledge and power are interconnected; thus, to gain knowledge is to enhance the ability to control nature by creating new technologies and generating outcomes.
649 Many philosophers have certain speculations to this purpose. Sir Isaac Newton, in particular, suspects that the earth receives its vivifying spirit from the comets. And the philosophical chemists and astrologers have spun the thought into many fantastical distinctions and varieties.—See Newton, Princip. lib. iii. p. 473, &c.
649 Many philosophers have various ideas about this. Sir Isaac Newton, in particular, thinks that the earth gets its life force from comets. Philosophical chemists and astrologers have developed this idea into many imaginative distinctions and variations.—See Newton, Princip. lib. iii. p. 473, &c.
650 This policy strikingly characterized the conduct of Louis XIV., who placed his generals under a particular injunction, to advertise him of the success of any siege likely to be crowned with an immediate triumph, that he might attend in person and appear to take the town by a coup de main.
650 This policy clearly defined the actions of Louis XIV, who instructed his generals to inform him about any siege that was likely to succeed quickly so that he could be there in person and seem to capture the city by a coup de main.
And again—
And again—
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!